﻿* A Distributed Proofreaders Canada eBook *

This eBook is made available at no cost and with very few
restrictions. These restrictions apply only if (1) you make
a change in the eBook (other than alteration for different
display devices), or (2) you are making commercial use of
the eBook. If either of these conditions applies, please
contact an FP administrator before proceeding.

This work is in the Canadian public domain, but may be under
copyright in some countries. If you live outside Canada, check your
country's copyright laws. IF THE BOOK IS UNDER COPYRIGHT
IN YOUR COUNTRY, DO NOT DOWNLOAD OR REDISTRIBUTE THIS FILE.


Title: The Diary of Mrs. Simcoe
Date of first publication: 1911
Author: Elizabeth Simcoe (1766-1850)
Author: John Ross Robertson (1841-1918)
Date first posted: July 6 2012
Date last updated: July 6 2012
Faded Page eBook #20120712

This eBook was produced by: David T. Jones, Ross Cooling
& the online Distributed Proofreaders Canada team at http://www.pgdpcanada.net

(This file was produced from images generously made available by
The Internet Archive/American Libraries.)




  _The_ DIARY _of_ MRS SIMCOE

[Illustration: NON SIBI SED PATRIÆ]


  _John Ross Robertson_




[Illustration: [handwritten caption] Ever most attachedly yrs
E Simcoe.

(_From a Crayon Drawing at Wolford, Devon_)]




[Illustration: [handwritten caption] Your most obedient and
most faithful servant
J G Simcoe]




  THE DIARY

  OF

  Mrs. John Graves Simcoe

  WIFE OF THE

  FIRST LIEUTENANT-GOVERNOR OF THE PROVINCE OF UPPER CANADA, 1792-6


  WITH NOTES AND A BIOGRAPHY

  BY

  J. ROSS ROBERTSON


  AND TWO HUNDRED AND THIRTY-SEVEN ILLUSTRATIONS, INCLUDING NINETY
  REPRODUCTIONS OF INTERESTING SKETCHES MADE BY MRS. SIMCOE



  TORONTO
  WILLIAM BRIGGS
  1911




  Copyright, Canada, 1911, by
  John Ross Robertson.




  AN ACKNOWLEDGMENT


_The writer gratefully acknowledges his debt to the many persons in
Canada and elsewhere who have shown a kindly and personal interest in
the collection of data and of illustrations for this volume. It would
not have been possible to present so much in the line of information and
of illustrations in the volume without the aid of these friends._

_Many portraits connected with the early history of Canada, and much of
the information, have been generously supplied by His Excellency the
Governor-General, Earl Grey; Mrs. John Kennaway Simcoe, of Wolford,
Devon; Dr. Arthur Doughty, Archivist of the Dominion of Canada; Mr. L.
P. Sylvain, Assistant Librarian of the Library of Parliament, Ottawa;
Mr. Avern Pardoe, Librarian of the Legislative Assembly, Toronto; Dr. G.
H. Locke, Chief Librarian of the Public Library, Toronto; Mr. T.
O'Leary, Curator of the Chateau de Ramezay, Montreal; and Miss Janet
Carnochan, President of the Niagara Historical Society._

_Grateful acknowledgment for many portraits connected with the earlier
history of Canada, and much of the information presented, is extended to
Messrs. J. Ashbridge, J. S. Carstairs, J. E. Featherstonhaugh, Æmilius
Jarvis, E. M. Playter, S. H. Townsend, J. S. Cartwright, K.C., A. Claude
Macdonell, M.P., A. McLean Macdonell, K.C., Walter Read, K.C., H.
Crawford Scadding, M.D., Col. George Shaw, C. C. James (Deputy Minister
of Agriculture, Ontario), Mrs. Stephen Heward and Mrs. Robert Sullivan,
of Toronto; Messrs. J. S. Brierley, Hertel La Rocque, H. Ryland Low, J.
W. Molson, W. H. Whyte, Sir Edward Gordon Johnson, Bart., W. D.
Lighthall, K.C., David Ross McCord, K.C., Miss Gertrude Coffin and Mrs.
Henry J. Low, of Montreal; Dr. H. J. Morgan, and Mr. Errol Bouchette,
F.R.S.C., of Ottawa; Philippe B. Casgrain, K.C., and Mr. L. Lemieux, of
Quebec; Messrs. J. G. Elliott, Clark Hamilton, Abraham Shaw and Mrs. J.
Maule Machar, of Kingston; Messrs. Charles E. Britton and Charles
Macdonald, of Gananoque; His Honor Judge Herbert S. Macdonald, of
Brockville; Messrs. W. E. McKeough and Sydney Stephenson, of Chatham;
Messrs. William Johnson McKee and Francis Cleary, of Windsor; Prof. A.
Macmechan and Rev. C. W. Vernon, of Halifax; F. J. French, K.C., and Mr.
Edward Jessup, of Prescott; Andrew F. McCallum, C.E., Hamilton; Mrs.
George Macbeth, London; Miss Mary Servos, of Niagara-on-the-Lake;
Messrs. James H. Coyne, St. Thomas; James B. Sheehan, Dunnville; K. G.
Thomson, Norwood; A. F. Hunter, Barrie; C. H. Hale, Orillia; William
Forbes, Grimsby; W. R. Hickey, Bothwell; A. Courtney Kingstone, St.
Catharines; A. C. Casselman, North Bay; Robert C. Givins, Chicago; Peter
A. Porter, Niagara Falls, N.Y.; Basil Hamilton, Wilmer, B.C.; A. H.
Askin, Walkerville; C. M. Burton, Detroit; J. A. Macdonell, K.C.,
Alexandria; A. E. Holland, St. Eleanor's, P.E.I.; A. E. C. Holland,
Wallace Bridge, N.S.; Mrs. E. Vosburgh, niece of the late Reverend
Prebendary Sadler, of Honiton, Devon; Miss H. E. Macaulay, Exmouth,
Eng.; Hector Sinclair Fraser, Inverness; Mrs. Arklay Fergusson,
Ethiebeaton, Scotland; Mr. A. M. Broadley, Bridport, Eng.; Mr. B. O.
Pearce, Portland, Dorset, Eng.; Prof. Rushton Fairclough, Stanford
University, and Mr. Thos. H. Gwillim, San Francisco, California; Ian
Robert James Murray Grant, of Glenmoriston, Inverness-shire, Scotland;
Mme. Falret de Tuite, Pau, France; the British Museum and College of
Arms, London, Eng.; Miss Maude Givins, Toronto._




  PREFACE


The early history of Upper Canada has been usually sought for in
constitutional documents and State papers. The social life of the period
is recorded principally in the few private letters which have survived a
century. To this scanty fund of information it is to be hoped that the
diary of Mrs. John Graves Simcoe, the wife of the first Governor, will
make an interesting addition.

This record is the simple recital of her daily life in the pioneer days
when Niagara was the centre of military, civil and social life in the
new province, and York, the future capital, could scarcely count a score
of habitable dwellings outside the primitive barracks that the Governor
had erected within the few acres of ground where still stands the
Fort--the Old Fort--as it is familiarly called in these modern days.
Yes, when Navy Hall, on the banks of the Niagara River, was the first
Government house of the province and an attractive home, full of welcome
for visitors, official and unofficial.

The original manuscript of the diary, of which this volume embodies the
only copy, has been carefully transcribed by the kind permission of Mrs.
Simcoe, of Wolford, the Simcoe estate, near the old town of Honiton in
Devon, so well known to womankind for its manufacture of exquisite lace.
Mrs. Simcoe is the present lady of the manor, and widow of the late
Captain John Kennaway Simcoe, R.N., Justice of the Peace for the County
of Devon. He was the only son of the late Rev. Henry Addington Simcoe
(1800-1868) of Penheale in Cornwall, who was the third son of General
Simcoe. Captain Simcoe died at Wolford in March, 1891.

As a general rule entries were made in this record day by day and the
writings mailed every week to Mrs. Hunt, a lady who had undertaken the
charge of Mrs. Simcoe's four daughters, Eliza, Charlotte, Henrietta, and
Caroline, all under seven years of age, who remained at Wolford. Sophia,
born in 1789, and Francis Gwillim, born in 1791, accompanied the
Governor and his wife to Canada.

The diary was commenced on the 17th September, 1791, nine days prior to
Mrs. Simcoe's departure from Weymouth for Quebec, on the "Triton,"
man-of-war. The last entries are on the 16th October, 1796, when
Governor Simcoe and his wife again arrived in London.

My annotations, instead of being arranged and placed in the conventional
form as footnotes, are incorporated with the text of the diary following
the entries to which they belong. The notes are so voluminous that, if
given at the foot of each page, they would be pages in advance of the
text. The reader will, therefore, have the advantage of reading first
the text and then the note which accompanies it. The few brief notes
that appear in parenthesis throughout the actual text are principally
from memoranda made by Mrs. Simcoe in connection with the small maps
that form part of the diary.

The illustrations, except where otherwise stated, are reproductions of
water-colors, pen sketches and pencil drawings made by Mrs. Simcoe on
her outward-bound voyage, and during her residence in Canada and after
her return in 1796 to her old home in Devon.

The originals of these drawings are nearly all at Wolford. But
thirty-two, in sepia, are in a portfolio in the Royal Library in the
British Museum. This library was given by George II. to the Museum, and
with the gift the Royal privilege of receiving gratuitously a copy of
every book copyrighted in the British dominions passed to the Museum.
After his return to England, Governor Simcoe presented these drawings to
His Majesty King George III. Some of them are copies of sketches made by
Lieutenant Robert Pilkington (afterwards Major-General), one of the
staff, while on various excursions with the Governor. The inscription on
the title page of the portfolio which contains these pictures reads:
"Thirty-two views in Upper Canada by Mrs. Simcoe, presented to His
Majesty by Governor Simcoe, with a sketch of Upper Canada, drawn on
bark." These have been carefully reproduced. Other water-colors of the
collection which have so faded that they could not be satisfactorily
reproduced have been redrawn, while the original pen-and-ink sketches
and pencil drawings are in facsimile.

Notwithstanding its excellence, the value of the art work of Mrs. Simcoe
lies not so much in its merit as an exemplification of good color and
pencil work, but in the fact that it gives to present readers of
Canadian history faithful pictures of places and scenes in Upper and
Lower Canada from 1791-6, which we would have lost absolutely had it not
been for the gifted hand of the wife of the first Governor.

Were it not for her work, we would not have views of Toronto Harbor at
the end of the eighteenth century. We would not be able to contrast the
quiet of the harbor and its surroundings in 1793, when it was the home
of the aborigine and the haunt of the wild fowl, with the commercial
activities of to-day. We would not have a picture of the Mohawk Village
on the Grand River near Brantford, which, with the exception of the
Mohawk Church, has passed away; nor of the early days of the Niagara and
Kingston settlements that were then and are now important places in the
history of the Province of Upper Canada.

Her sketches of places on the route from Quebec to York, in and about
Niagara, and her copies of Lieutenant Pilkington's sketches in the
Georgian Bay district, must also add much to the interest of the reader.
One of Mrs. Simcoe's best efforts is a large water-color of the Falls of
Niagara, made during her many visits to this favored spot. It adorns the
walls of Wolford.

To the diary I have appended the journal of John Bailey, who for over
thirty-seven years was in the service of the Simcoe family at Wolford.
He entered the Simcoe household in the autumn of 1802, when a lad twelve
years of age, and after the death of General Simcoe in 1806 he continued
in the service of Mrs. Simcoe for about two years. He then went to sea
for a short time, but once more wore the Simcoe livery from 1818 to
1850, when his mistress died.

In her travels in different parts of England and Wales never once did
she neglect to have Bailey look after all arrangements for her comfort,
and act when desired as her coachman. His opinions, his reverence for
Mrs. Simcoe, his devotion to the family, mark him as a man of more than
ordinary intelligence. It is most refreshing to read his narrative.

The writing of the biography of Mrs. Simcoe entailed much research.
Every facility was courteously afforded me by Mrs. John Kennaway Simcoe.
I can never sufficiently thank her for her unwearying efforts to help me
in my quest concerning not only the life of Mrs. Simcoe, but also that
of General Simcoe, whose biography will appear in another volume.

Nothing has ever been published concerning the esteemed and talented
wife of the first Governor of Upper Canada. In presenting this record of
her life my hope is that it not only may be read with pleasure, but also
find a place on the bookshelf of all who take interest in the pioneer
days of the province that started its pace in the making of history one
hundred and twenty years ago.

  [hand-written] J Ross Robertson

  Toronto, August, 1911.




  CONTENTS


  CHAPTER I.

  Mrs. Simcoe--Her Ancestors.                                       PAGE

    The early days of Elizabeth Posthuma Gwillim--The home at Old
    Court--Her father a distinguished officer--The Gwillims of noble
    lineage--Arms and genealogy of the family                          1

  CHAPTER II.

  Ancestors of John Graves Simcoe.

    Origin of Simcoe family--Capt. John Simcoe, R.N.--His
    marriage--Simcoe arms granted--Death of Capt. Simcoe--Brief
    sketch of John Graves Simcoe in American Revolutionary War and
    as Lieutenant-Governor of Upper Canada                            12

  CHAPTER III.

  Courtship and Marriage.

    Colonel Simcoe meets Miss
    Gwillim--Engagement--Marriage--Simcoe-Gwillim arms--Removal to
    Wolford--Appointed Lieutenant-Governor of Upper Canada            29

  CHAPTER IV.

  Farewell to Wolford.

    Arrival at Weymouth--Pleasant days before setting sail for
    Canada--First entry in Mrs. Simcoe's diary--Mrs. Simcoe meets
    Lady Collier--George III.--Visit to the island of
    Portland--Story of the custom of gavel-kind--The records kept by
    a reeve staff--Something about the reeve--Lady de la Pole--Capt.
    Murray of the "Triton"--Mrs. Simcoe meets a number of
    distinguished officers                                            35

  CHAPTER V.

  The Governor and Suite Embark.

    Captain Stevenson and Lieutenant Grey--The Azores--The "Deal
    Castle"--A gale--Mother Carey's chickens--Off Sable Island--Cape
    Breton sighted--In the Gulf of St. Lawrence--Communication with
    the "Liberty"--Heavy seas--Signalling a pilot                     43

  CHAPTER VI.

  The Governor and His Family in Quebec.

    Sir Alured Clarke--Prince Edward--Regrets at leaving the
    "Triton"--First impressions of Quebec--Capt. Murray sails for
    Halifax--House in St. John Street--Recollet Church--Mrs. Simcoe
    meets Quebec notables--Colonel Simcoe sets out for Montreal--The
    Chateau St. Louis--Lieut. Talbot returns with Colonel Simcoe
    from Montreal                                                     53

  CHAPTER VII.

  Mrs. Simcoe Spends an Enjoyable Winter.

    Feast of the Epiphany--A visit to Falls of Montmorency--Mrs.
    Simcoe meets Prince Edward--Canoe travel in winter--An ice
    bridge--Social functions--Removal from St. John Street house--A
    journey from Frederickstown, N.B., to Quebec--The Heights of
    Abraham--Cape Diamond--A catastrophe                              73

  CHAPTER VIII.

  Journey to Upper Canada.

    Governor Simcoe and suite leave for Upper Canada--The Bishop of
    Caps--Letters from England--A night at Cap Santé with
    habitants--A drive to Grondines--Impressions of places en route
    to Montreal--Capt. Stevenson meets the party at Pointe aux
    Trembles (en haut)--In Government House, Montreal--Joseph
    Frobisher extends hospitality--La Baronne de Longueuil--From
    Montreal to Lachine--A Highland welcome--Courtesy of settlers
    along the St. Lawrence--Sojourn at Gananoque--Arrival at
    Kingston--Its unfitness as a seat of Government                   89

  CHAPTER IX.

  Simcoe Takes Oath of Office.

    Early Kingston--The shipyard--The lake fleet--Simcoe takes oaths
    as Governor--Entertained by Indians--Mrs. Macaulay calls on Mrs.
    Simcoe--Method of clearing land--Rev. John Stuart--The Governor
    determines to proceed to Niagara--On board the "Onondaga"        111

  CHAPTER X.

  Mrs. Simcoe's Arrival at Niagara.

    Navy Hall and environments--Freemasons' Hall--An early call at
    Hon. Robert Hamilton's--Mrs. Simcoe spends a day
    sightseeing--Making friends--A thunderstorm--The visit of H.R.H.
    Prince Edward--Mr. Littlehales goes to Philadelphia to see the
    British Ambassador--Commodore Bouchette surveys Toronto
    harbor--Thayendanegea--Evening pastimes                          121

  CHAPTER XI.

  Journeys of the Governor.

    Mr. Littlehales returns from Philadelphia--The Governor and
    party set out for Detroit--Different stages of the journey--Home
    again--An account of the trip--Governor Simcoe indisposed--A
    fortnight at Queenstown--The "Upper Canada Gazette"--Captain
    Æneas Shaw's family arrives at Niagara--The Governor's first
    visit to Toronto                                                 146

  CHAPTER XII.

  American Commissioners Guests at Navy Hall.

    Their arrival--The King's birthday celebrated--Sir William
    Johnson--Mrs. Simcoe ill at Fort Niagara--Queen's Rangers in
    camp--The Commissioners leave for Fort Erie--Illness of Francis
    Gwillim Simcoe--Recuperates at the camp on the mountain--An
    Indian council--Mrs. Simcoe's first visit to
    Toronto--Picturesque scenes--Ojibways pay their respects--Envoys
    of the Government--Governor's trip to Lake Huron--Varied
    experiences                                                      164

  CHAPTER XIII.

  Building of Castle Frank on River Don.

    The want of a summer home--a site for Castle Frank
    selected--Description of the building--Life in the early days of
    York-- Dining in a meadow on Toronto peninsula--A canoe trip to
    Scarborough Heights--Peculiarity of Indian burial rites--Armed
    schooner "Onondaga" of the Provincial Government--Sergeant
    Wright of the Queen's Rangers--Mrs. Simcoe visits old French
    Fort Rouille                                                     203

  CHAPTER XIV.

  A Winter at York.

    Residing in Castle Frank--John Scadding's dwelling burned--The
    "Onondaga" afloat--Poverty of Indians--Instructions of Lord
    Dorchester with regard to building Fort Miami--Mr. McGill's
    farm--Again at Niagara--Rumor of war--Francis Gwillim Simcoe's
    third birthday--Soldier accidentally wounds the Governor--An
    excursion to the "Forty"--General Washington at
    Philadelphia--Bishop Mountain visits Niagara--News from Fort
    Miami--Return of Alex. Mackenzie from the Pacific                213

  CHAPTER XV.

  Mrs. Simcoe Visits Quebec.

    Uncertainty of continued peace necessitates Mrs. Simcoe's going
    to Lower Canada--The "Mississaga" in readiness--Passage for
    Molly Brant--Anchored in Kingston harbor--Hospitality of
    Gananoque settlers--A stormy sail, attended with
    anxiety--Lachine reached--Wearisome drive to Montreal--Mr.
    Frobisher always hospitable--Voyage recommenced--The closing
    day--Welcome at Cap Santé--Reception at Belmont--Friendships
    renewed-- Certainty of peace--Courtesy of Lord and Lady
    Dorchester--Loss of the "Bridget"                                244

  CHAPTER XVI.

  Return to Upper Canada.

    Assembly at the Chateau--Social enjoyments--Lady Dorchester
    calls to take leave of Mrs. Simcoe--Travel in winter season--The
    Governor meets his wife--They proceed westward--Difficulties on
    the way--In Kingston--Many miles covered on Bay of Quinte
    ice--The Governor seriously ill--In great danger off Gibraltar
    Point--Gaieties at York--Pleasurable canoe trip to Niagara       264

  CHAPTER XVII.

  Visit of Duke de la Rochefoucauld.

    Prominent in France--Guest at Navy Hall--His remarks regarding
    Mrs. Simcoe--"Anglo-Canadian's" criticism--Mrs. Simcoe's opinion
    of the Duke and his party--Mrs. McGill visits
    Niagara--Characteristics of Fort Erie--Governor Simcoe proceeds
    to Long Point and Mrs. Simcoe returns to Niagara--A mineral
    spring--Long Point (Charlotteville) impresses the Governor
    favorably--His illness on return                                 277

  CHAPTER XVIII.

  Visit to New Capital of Upper Canada.

    A quick trip across the lake--Mr. John B. Laurence accompanies
    the party to York--Deer in vicinity of Lake Simcoe--Castle Frank
    in process of erection--Fishing on the Don River--Governor's
    health improves--Winter picnics--John Macaulay (Honorable John
    Simcoe Macaulay) an axeman--Thaw affects the "Head of the
    Lake"--A few days at Castle Frank in camp fashion                297

  CHAPTER XIX.

  A Trip Across Lake Ontario.

    The Governor worse--The journey from York to Niagara is made in
    four hours--A snowfall in May--News of the ratification of Jay's
    Treaty--Mrs. Simcoe takes leave of Mrs. Hamilton--Farewell to
    Navy Hall--Grandeur of the "Forty"--Over mountain and stream to
    the "Kings' Head" inn--The surrounding country--Some
    inhabitants--Sight-seeing at Stoney Creek--A diversion at
    Burlington Bay--Embarked at the inlet--A sail through a heavy
    sea to the River Credit--Arrival at York                         310

  CHAPTER XX.

  Leavetakings of Friends.

    Castle Frank in summer--The Governor receives official reply to
    his request for leave of absence--He and his suite to sail on
    the "Pearl" from Quebec--A round of farewells--Mrs. Simcoe much
    depressed at leaving friends--Sail from York on 21st July,
    arriving in Kingston on 25th--A short stay in Kingston--Some
    events of the voyage east to Lachine--Piloted through the rapids
    to Montreal--Sojourn at Mr. Edward Gray's--Unpleasant voyage
    from Montreal to Three Rivers--A few minutes with Rev. Dr.
    Mountain--Mrs. Simcoe enjoys approach to Quebec--Greetings at
    Belmont                                                          332

  CHAPTER XXI.

  Homeward Bound.

    Bishop Mountain places his house in Quebec at Mrs. Simcoe's
    disposal--She accepts offer--The "Active" with Lord Dorchester
    wrecked off Anticosti--Mrs. Simcoe fears Lord Dorchester will
    sail on the "Pearl"--A visit to the Convent of the
    Ursulines--Recollet Church destroyed by fire--Embark on the
    "Pearl"--Chased by French frigates--Anxiety at an end--Several
    days of stormy weather--Land's End sighted--In the
    Downs--Pleasant hours at Dover--The Cathedral at
    Canterbury--Mrs. Simcoe contrasts English climate with that of
    Canada-- Arrival in London                                       350

  CHAPTER XXII.

  Again at Wolford--Simcoe's Death.

    The home-coming--Life at Wolford--Gov. Simcoe appointed
    Commander-in-Chief at San Domingo--Climatic conditions
    unfavorable--Returns to England--Commander of the Western
    Military District--Appointed Commander-in-Chief in India,
    followed by orders to leave for Portugal--Mrs. Simcoe makes
    preparations to leave for the East--News of the General's
    illness and return to England--Mother and daughters hasten to
    Exeter--General Simcoe's death                                   359

  CHAPTER XXIII.

  Mrs. Simcoe and Her Children.

    Wolford after the death of the General--Rev. Henry Addington
    Simcoe--Work of the Misses Simcoe--What they did for the Parish
    of Dunkeswell--The building of the Abbey church--Carving and
    ornamentation by the Misses Simcoe--Death of Mrs. Simcoe--An
    impressive funeral service--A daughter on her mother's
    character--Capt. John Kennaway Simcoe succeeds to Wolford--His
    marriage and life on the old estate                              363

  CHAPTER XXIV.

  Loving Words from the Pulpit.

    A last tribute to Mrs. Simcoe--A memorial sermon in the parish
    church--Every parishioner present--A memorable gathering         370

  CHAPTER XXV.

  The Will of Mrs. Simcoe.

    Her daughters her heirs--Leaves a large sum of money to
    each--The land and estate of Dunkeswell Abbey left to Eliza and
    Caroline as joint tenants--Mr. Walcot, of Oundle, a cousin of
    Mrs. Simcoe, bequeaths a large estate to the Simcoe family       381

  CHAPTER XXVI.

  General Simcoe's Estate in Canada.

    His lands principally in the eastern part of the province--His
    income as Governor--Accounts not all adjusted when he left
    Canada--Trouble in disposing of lands and in collection of
    arrearages--The Castle Frank property, which belonged to
    Francis, his eldest son--Mrs. Simcoe's interest in property at
    York--Kept up a correspondence with Canadian friends until
    within a short time of her death--Profound regard for Rev. Dr.
    Scadding, of Toronto                                             387

  CHAPTER XXVII.

  John Bailey's Memoirs.

    The author talks with some of the old retainers of Dunkeswell
    Parish--Kindly words of the Simcoes from tenants--Something
    about Bailey                                                     390

  CHAPTER XXVIII.

  Bailey's Opinion of the Simcoe Family.

    Tells of incidents in the daily life at Wolford--Pleasurable
    outings--Catastrophe at the "Old Passage"--Bailey a man well
    versed in Bible knowledge--The Simcoes as early risers--The
    improvements on the estate at Wolford--Visit of Mrs. Simcoe to
    her son, Henry Addington Simcoe at Penheale--North Wales a
    favorite touring place--Bailey's knowledge of every locality
    visited                                                          393

  CHAPTER XXIX.

  The Passing of Mrs. Simcoe.

    Describes the funeral of the General in 1806, and of his
    mistress in 1850--Comments on death and the resurrection--Bailey
    tells of General Simcoe's work as commander of the South-Western
    District--Describes a sham battle near Honiton--Training of
    volunteers Simcoe's great care--Bailey on the proposed French
    invasion                                                         403

  CHAPTER XXX.

  The Village of Dunkeswell.

    Its improvement in fifty years--Improvements at Wolford--Estate
    and military discipline--Bailey again gives opinion on the
    chances of a war with France--Dinner parties at the Manor
    House--Death of the General--Bailey's high opinion of the Misses
    Simcoe                                                           409

  CHAPTER XXXI.

  Incident and Comment.

    His recollections of the General--Bailey intersperses comment of
    a religious character in relating his story--As a small boy in
    the butler's pantry--Curious incident concerning a distinguished
    Frenchman--Journey to Bath--A runaway                            415

  CHAPTER XXXII.

  Many Journeys with Mrs. Simcoe.

    Places and scenes--Comparisons by Bailey--Musings--Courtesy and
    Liberality of the General--Always progressing                    422

  CHAPTER XXXIII.

  Tribute by Bailey.

    Wolford a great social centre in Devon--The General appointed to
    India--The Scadding family in Devon and Canada--Bailey quotes
    Scripture--Likens Governor Simcoe to Biblical characters         426




  ILLUSTRATIONS


                                                                    PAGE

  Mrs. John Graves Simcoe                                 _Frontispiece_

  John Graves Simcoe                                      _Frontispiece_

  "Old Court," near Ross, Herefordshire                                1
    (From a drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Colonel Gwillim                                                      2
    (From the plaster bust at Wolford, Devon.)

  The Old Church of Whitchurch before Restoration                      3
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  Arms of Gwillim                                                      4
    (From a drawing in the College of Arms, London, England.)

  The Gwillim Tomb at Whitchurch                                       6
    (From a drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Colonel Gwillim                                                      8
    (From a drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  The Residence known as Hembury Fort                                  9
    (From a drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Mrs. Simcoe in Welsh Dress                                          10
    (From a miniature at Wolford, Devon.)

  Brocade Skirt of Gown worn by Mrs. Simcoe                           11
    (From the original at Wolford, Devon.)

  Gate of Beeston Castle, near Bunbury, Cheshire                      13
    (From a drawing made in 1818, in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  Arms of John Simcoe, R.N.                                           15
    (From a drawing in College of Arms, London, England.)

  Captain James Cook                                                  15
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Sir William Howe                                                    16
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Hon. James Bàby                                                     21
    (From a drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Navy Hall, Niagara, 1792                                     _Face_ 22
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe, in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Buckerall Parish Church, Near Honiton, Devon                        29
    (From a drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Buckerall Parish Church, Interior                                   30
    (From a drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  The Simcoe Marriage Certificate                                     31
    (From register of Buckerall Parish Church.)

  Simcoe-Gwillim Arms, 1782                                           32
    (From a drawing in the College of Arms, London, England.)

  Simcoe-Gwillim Arms, 1792                                           32
    (From a drawing at Wolford, Devon.)

  Wolford, near Honiton, Devon                                        33
    (From a drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  North View of Weymouth, 1788                                        35
    (From a drawing in the Broadley collection, Bridport, Dorset.)

  George III.                                                         36
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  A Reeve Staff                                                       38
    (From a drawing by B. O. Pearce, ex-Reeve of Portland.)

  View of Weymouth, looking West, 1791                                39
    (From a water-color by Wm. Delamotte, in the Broadley
    collection, Bridport.)

  Baron Grenville                                                     39
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Baron Thurlow                                                       40
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Princess of Wurtemburg                                              40
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Lady Poulett                                                        41
    (From a miniature owned by the late Miss Gwynne, Toronto.)

  Sir George Murray                                                   41
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Sir William Sydney Smith                                            41
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Earl St. Vincent                                                    42
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Sir Charles Grey                                                    43
    (From a portrait in possession of His Excellency Earl Grey,
    Governor-General of Canada.)

  A Snow Bird                                                         47
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe on board H. M. S. "Triton.")

  A Crossbill                                                         47
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe on board H. M. S. "Triton.")

  Island of Entry, 1791                                               49
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe on board H. M. S. "Triton.")

  The "Liberty"                                                       50
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe on board H. M. S. "Triton.")

  Lord Dorchester                                                     50
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Island of Anticosti                                                 51
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe on board H. M. S. "Triton.")

  J. F. Wallet des Barres                                             52
    (From a portrait in possession of Rev. C. W. Vernon, Halifax,
    N.S.)

  Brandy Pots Islands, 1791                                           52
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Sir Alured Clarke                                                   53
    (From an engraving in the Public Library, Toronto.)

  Prince Edward                                                       54
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  The Recollet Church                                                 55
    (From a drawing of interior of the church, restored after the
    siege of Quebec.)

  Judge Adam Mabane                                                   56
    (From an engraving in the Legislative Library, Quebec.)

  The Residence known as "Samos"                                      57
    (From a drawing in possession of P. B. Casgrain, K.C., Quebec.)

  Surveyor-General Samuel Holland                                     57
    (From a miniature in possession of his great-grandson, A. E.
    Holland, St. Eleanor's, Prince Edward Island.)

  Canadian Carriole                                                   58
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Belmont, near Quebec                                                59
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Officers' Carriole                                                  60
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Ruins of Intendant's Palace, Quebec, 1791                           60
    (From an engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  The Fort and Chateau St. Louis, Quebec--Reconstructed by Frontenac,
  1694-8                                                              61
    (From an engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  The Old Chateau Stone                                               62
    (From an engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  Haldimand Castle, Quebec                                     _Face_ 62
    (From a water-color by H. Bunnell, 1887.)

  Colonel Thomas Talbot                                               65
    (From a water-color by J. B. Wandesforde, in possession of Mrs.
    George Macbeth, London, Ontario.)

  Colonel Talbot's Residence, Port Talbot                             65
    (From a sketch sent to England in 1806, copied by Mrs. Simcoe.)

  Mgr. Hubert                                                         66
    (From an engraving in the Legislative Library, Quebec.)

  Convent of the Ursulines, Quebec                                    67
    (From a drawing by Richard Short, 1761, engraved by James
    Mason.)

  The General Hospital, Quebec                                        68
    (From a drawing in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  The Cathedral, Quebec, as Restored                                  69
    (From Routhier's "Quebec.")

  St. Louis Gate, Quebec, 1791                                        70
    (From a drawing in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  Mons. Gravé de la Rive                                              71
    (From an engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  Colonel John Butler                                                 71
    (From an engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  General St. Clair                                                   72
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Bishop Plessis                                                      73
    (From a portrait in possession of L. P. Sylvain, Assistant
    Librarian, Library of Parliament, Ottawa.)

  Sir Frederick Haldimand, Bart.                                      75
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Chief Justice William Smith                                         76
    (From an engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  The Provision Store, Quebec                                         76
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Hon. François Báby                                                  77
    (From a portrait in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  Mons. Ignace de Salaberry                                           78
    (From a silhouette in possession of Mons. Hertel la Rocque,
    Montreal.)

  Madame de Salaberry                                                 78
    (From a silhouette in possession of Mons. Hertel la Rocque,
    Montreal.)

  Father P. Felix de Berey                                            78
    (From a portrait in possession of L. P. Sylvain, Assistant
    Librarian, Library of Parliament, Ottawa.)

  Mons. Ignace de Salaberry                                           78
    (From a portrait in the Chateau de Ramezay, Montreal.)

  Colonel Æneas Shaw                                                  79
    (From a portrait from life in possession of his grandson,
    Colonel George Shaw, Toronto.)

  Hon. James McGill, Montreal                                         80
    (From a portrait in the David Ross McCord collection, Montreal.)

  Hon. Isaac Ogden                                                    81
    (From a portrait in possession of L. P. Sylvain, Assistant
    Librarian, Library of Parliament, Ottawa.)

  Major-General James Wolfe                                           82
    (From an engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  By the River, Quebec, 1792                                          83
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Cascade near Wolfe's Cove, Quebec, 1792                             84
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Hon. Paul Rocque de St. Ours                                        84
    (From an engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  Chief Justice William Osgoode                                       85
    (From an oil painting from life at Wolford, Devon.)

  Hon. Peter Russell                                                  86
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Near Falls of Montmorency, Quebec, 1792                      _Face_ 86
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  John McCord, Jr.                                                    91
    (From a portrait in the David Ross McCord collection, Montreal.)

  Sir E. Baker Baker, Bart. (Major E. B. Littlehales)                 93
    (From a portrait from life in possession of his grandson, Sir
    Randolph Littlehales Baker, Bart., Dorset, England.)

  Chambly, on the St. Lawrence, 1792                                  94
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Varennes, on the St. Lawrence, 1792                                 94
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Joseph Frobisher                                                    94
    (From a portrait in the David Ross McCord collection, Montreal.)

  Government House--Chateau de Ramezay, Montreal                      95
    (From an engraving in "Hochelaga Depicta," 1839.)

  Monklands, a Former Government House, Montreal                      96
    (From "Montreal After 250 Years," by W. D. Lighthall, K.C.)

  Dowager Baroness de Longueuil (Marie Fleury D'Eschambault)          98
    (From an oil painting from life in possession of Mrs. Rushton
    Fairclough, her great-great-granddaughter, Stanford University,
    Cal.)

  Hon. Wm. Grant                                                      98
    (From an engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  Fourth Baroness de Longueuil (Marie Charles Joseph Le Moyne)        98
    (From an oil painting from life in possession of Mrs. Arklay
    Fergusson, her great-granddaughter, Ethiebeaton, Scotland.)

  Pointe au Bodet, 1792                                       _Face_ 100
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Hon. John Munro                                                    103
    (From an engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  Carey's House, Gananoque, 1792                                     106
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  View near the Thousand Islands, 1792                        _Face_ 106
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  View near Gananoque, 1792                                          109
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  Cataraqui (Kingston), South-east View                       _Face_ 112
    (From a drawing by James Peachey, 1783, in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  A Distant View of Kingston, in 1792                                115
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Dr. James Macaulay                                                 118
    (From an oil painting from life, in possession of his
    granddaughters, the Misses Macaulay, Exmouth, Devon.)

  Mrs. Macaulay                                                      118
    (From an oil painting from life, in possession of the Misses
    Macaulay, Exmouth, Devon.)

  Rev. John Stuart                                                   119
    (From a portrait in the David Ross McCord collection, Montreal.)

  Only Remaining Building of Navy Hall Group                         122
    (From a drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Navy Hall, Niagara, from the River, 1792                    _Face_ 122
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  Hon. Robert Hamilton                                               126
    (From a miniature in possession of his grandson, Clark Hamilton,
    of Kingston, Ontario.)

  Residence of Hon. Robert Hamilton, Niagara River Road, 1792        127
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  Niagara Falls from Canadian Side, 1792                      _Face_ 128
    (From a water-color by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Colonel John Askin                                                 132
    (From a silhouette in possession of his grandson, A. H. Askin,
    Walkerville, Ontario.)

  Queenstown, or the Lower Landing, 1792                      _Face_ 132
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Niagara River at Queenstown, 1792                                  135
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Viscount George Garlies                                            136
    (From a portrait at Newton-Stewart, Scotland.)

  Queen's Rangers' Huts at Queenstown, 1792                   _Face_ 136
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  Colonel Joseph Bouchette                                           140
    (From an engraving in possession of Errol Bouchette, F.R.S.C.,
    Ottawa.)

  Thayendanegea (Joseph Brant)                                       142
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson Masonic collection.)

  Brant House, Residence of Joseph Brant, at Burlington, Ont.        142
    (From a drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Map of Niagara River, Showing Sites of First and Second Forts
  Little Niagara, 1745-51                                            144
    (From a drawing by Peter A. Porter, of Niagara Falls, N. Y.)

  Remains near Fort Schlosser                                        145
    (From a drawing by the late Col. Peter A. Porter, of Niagara
    Falls, N. Y.)

  Outline of Governor Simcoe's Route from Niagara to Detroit, 1793   147
    (From a drawing by Lieut. Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe.)

  The Mohawk Village, Grand River, near Brantford, showing Indian
  Council House and Church, 1793                              _Face_ 148
    (From a drawing in the Royal Library, British Museum, made by
    Lieut. Pilkington, and copied by Mrs. Simcoe.)

  Miss Rachel Crookshank                                             152
    (From a silhouette in possession of her niece, Mrs. Stephen
    Heward, Toronto.)

  Log Huts or Barracks at Queenstown, 1793                    _Face_ 152
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  At the Whirlpool Rapids, Niagara, 1793                      _Face_ 158
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  "The Castle," Fort Niagara, N.Y.                                   162
    (From a drawing made in 1830, copied by Mrs. Simcoe.)

  General Benjamin Lincoln                                           164
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  John Randolph                                                      164
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Timothy Pickering                                                  165
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Sir William Johnson, Bart.                                         167
    (From a portrait in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  Lady Johnson, Wife of Sir John Johnson                             167
    (From a portrait from life in possession of Sir Gordon Johnson,
    Bart., Montreal.)

  Sir John Johnson, Bart.                                            168
    (From a portrait in the David Ross McCord collection, Montreal.)

  Colonel Guy Johnson                                                168
    (From an engraving in the Chateau de Ramezay, Montreal.)

  Tents of Mrs. Simcoe in Camp near Queenstown, 1793          _Face_ 168
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Hon. Alexander Grant                                               171
    (From an oil painting from life in possession of Grant of
    Glenmoriston, Inverness-shire, Scotland.)

  Niagara Falls from Canadian Side, 1793                      _Face_ 172
    (From a water-color by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  York (Toronto) Harbor, 1793                                 _Face_ 176
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Cascade on the Severn--McDonald's Rapids, between Sparrow Lake
  and Ragged Rapids                                           _Face_ 180
    (From a drawing by Lieut. Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe, in
    the Royal Library, British Museum, London.)

  On the Severn--McLean's Bay, at Outlet to Sparrow Lake      _Face_ 184
    (From a drawing by Lieut. Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe, in
    the Royal Library, British Museum, London.)

  Sir D. W. Smith, Bart., First Surveyor-General of Upper Canada     187
    (From a portrait in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  Canise, Indian Chief, known also as "Great Sail"                   188
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  L'Abbé Philippe Louis Desjardins                                   188
    (From a portrait in the Ursuline Convent, Quebec.)

  On the Severn River--The Little Chute, near the Entrance to
  Gloucester Pool                                             _Face_ 188
    (From a drawing by Lieut. Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe, in
    the Royal Library, British Museum, London.)

  On the Severn--Head of Big Chute, near Gloucester Pool      _Face_ 192
    (From a drawing by Lieut. Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe, in
    the Royal Library, British Museum, London.)

  First Official Plan of York (Toronto), 1793                        195
    (From the original in Public Record Office, Chancery Lane,
    London, England.)

  Sparrow Lake Chute--On Severn River, below McLean's Bay     _Face_ 196
    (From a drawing by Lieut. Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe, in
    the Royal Library, British Museum, London.)

  "By Gloucester Pool," on the Severn River                   _Face_ 200
    (From a drawing by Lieut. Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe, in
    the Royal Library, British Museum, London.)

  Modern Plan showing Site of Castle Frank                           204
    (From a plan in the Crown Lands Department, Toronto.)

  Castle Frank, 1794                                          _Face_ 204
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Near Castle Frank                                                  208
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  H. M. Schooner "Onondaga"                                          211
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Edward Graves Simcoe Wright                                        212
    (From an oil painting from life in possession of his grandson,
    Edward H. Rodden, Toronto.)

  Admiral Alan Gardner                                               212
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Queen Charlotte                                                    213
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  John Scadding's Dwelling, East Side of Don River, 1793             214
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  John Scadding, Jr.                                                 215
    (From an oil painting from life in possession of his
    grandnephew, Dr. H. Crawford Scadding, Toronto.)

  Rev. Dr. Henry Scadding at Twenty-eight                            215
    (From a portrait in possession of his daughter, Mrs. Robert
    Sullivan, Toronto.)

  Rev. Dr. Henry Scadding at Fifty-six Years                         215
    (From a portrait in possession of his daughter, Mrs. Robert
    Sullivan, Toronto.)

  A View on the Miami River, 1794                                    217
    (From a drawing by Lieut. Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe, at
    Wolford, Devon.)

  Site of Fort Miami (Maumee)                                        218
    (From a drawing made in 1910, in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  South Shore of Lake Ontario from Niagara to the "Forty," 1794      222
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Waterfall near Burlington Bay, 1794                         _Face_ 222
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe, in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Twenty Mile Creek (Jordan, Ont.), 1794                             225
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Residence of D. W. Smith, Niagara, 1794                            226
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  The Servos House, Niagara, 1783-1911                               230
    (From a drawing by Owen Staples, O.S.A., of Toronto, in 1911, in
    the J. Ross Robertson collection, Public Library, Toronto.)

  The Fifteen Mile Creek, 1794                                _Face_ 230
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe, in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Interior View of Servos House                                      233
    (From a drawing by Owen Staples, O.S.A., of Toronto, in 1911, in
    the J. Ross Robertson collection, Public Library, Toronto.)

  The Gorge near Forty Mile Creek (Grimsby), 1794             _Face_ 234
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Bishop Mountain                                                    238
    (From a portrait in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Spray of the Falls of Niagara, as Seen from Chippawa River  _Face_ 238
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe, in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Lieut.-General David Shank                                         241
    (From an oil painting from life, at Wolford, Devon.)

  General Sir Roger Hale Sheaffe, Bart.                              241
    (From an engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa.)

  General Anthony Wayne                                              242
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Sir Alexander Mackenzie                                            243
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Kingston, U. C., in 1794                                    _Face_ 244
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe, in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Colonel Joel Stone                                                 249
    (From a portrait in possession of his grandson, Charles
    Macdonald, Gananoque.)

  House and Mill near Gananoque, 1794                                250
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  Fairfield House and Mill, near Gananoque, 1794                     252
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  View from Fairfield's House                                        252
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  Montreal East to Point du Lac, 1794                                256
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  Map of Route from Three Rivers to Quebec, 1794                     257
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  Lady Dorchester                                                    260
    (From a copy of a miniature in England.)

  Herman Witsius Ryland                                              263
    (From a portrait in possession of his granddaughter, Mrs. Henry
    J. Low, Montreal.)

  Government Mill on the Appanee River, 1795                  _Face_ 270
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe, in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Duke De La Rochefoucauld-Liancourt                                 277
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Mrs. Tice's House near Queenstown                           _Face_ 278
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Chief Justice William Dummer Powell                                281
    (From an oil painting from life, in possession of Æmilius
    Jarvis, Toronto.)

  Mrs. Powell                                                        281
    (From an oil painting from life, in possession of Æmilius
    Jarvis, Toronto.)

  Captain James Mathew Hamilton                                      282
    (From a portrait in possession of his grandson, Basil G.
    Hamilton, Wilmer, B.C.)

  Mrs. Hamilton                                                      282
    (From a portrait in possession of her grandson, Basil G.
    Hamilton, Wilmer, B.C.)

  Fort Chippawa, on the Welland River, 1795                   _Face_ 282
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe, in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Mouth of the Welland River at Chippawa, 1795                _Face_ 286
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe, in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  A Glimpse of the Lake and Beach near Fort Erie              _Face_ 290
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Bass Island, West End of Lake Erie, 1795                    _Face_ 294
    (From a drawing by Lieut. Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe, in
    the Royal Library, British Museum, London.)

  Site of Charlotteville, at Long Point, 1795                 _Face_ 298
    (From a drawing by Lieut. Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe, in
    the Royal Library, British Museum, London.)

  Skinner's Mill, East Bank of Don River                             301
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Lieutenant James Givins                                            304
    (From an oil painting in possession of his grandson, Robert C.
    Givins, Chicago, Ill.)

  Captain Andrews                                                    304
    (From a miniature in possession of his great-granddaughter, Miss
    Maude A. A. Givins, Toronto.)

  Original Entrance to Burlington Bay, 1795                   _Face_ 304
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  William Jarvis                                                     311
    (From an oil painting from life, in possession of his grandson,
    Æmilius Jarvis, Toronto.)

  Mrs. Jarvis                                                        311
    (From an oil painting from life, in possession of her grandson,
    Æmilius Jarvis, Toronto.)

  Chief Justice Jay                                                  312
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  The Twenty Mile Creek (Jordan, Ont.), 1796                  _Face_ 312
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Francis Gwillim Simcoe                                             315
    (From a drawing from life by Lieut. Pilkington.)

  John Green's Dwelling at the "Forty"                               316
    (From a drawing by Wm. Forbes, Grimsby, Ont., in the J. Ross
    Robertson collection.)

  View from the King's Head Inn, 1796                         _Face_ 316
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  The Head of Lake Ontario, 1796                                     320
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Coote's Paradise, near Burlington Bay, 1796                 _Face_ 320
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  The King's Head Inn, Burlington Bay, 1796                          323
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  King's Head Inn, from the South-east                               324
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  Lake Ontario and Original Entrance to Burlington Bay, 1796  _Face_ 324
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  The Shore at the "Head of the Lake"                                327
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  The River Credit, near York, 1796                           _Face_ 328
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  The Beach near the King's Head Inn, 1796                           331
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  The Garrison at York (Toronto), 1796, Showing First Houses in
  Fort and Magazine on Shore                                  _Face_ 332
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Mrs. Simcoe's Spinning Wheel                                       336
    (A photograph of the wheel in possession of Mrs. Stephen Heward,
    Toronto.)

  Playter's Bridge over the Don River at York, 1794           _Face_ 336
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Castle Frank in the Summer of 1796                                 339
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Kingston, from the Harbor, 1796                                    340
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Bridge over the Don at York, 1796                           _Face_ 340
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the Royal Library, British
    Museum, London.)

  Point Iroquois, Dundas County, 1796                                343
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  The River below Point Iroquois                                     343
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson
    collection.)

  A Bend in the River St. Lawrence                                   344
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Isle Aux Soeurs, now Nun's Island                                  345
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  General Gabriel Christie                                           347
    (From a portrait in the Chateau de Ramezay, Montreal.)

  The Recollet Church, Quebec--Exterior                              352
    (From an engraving on the spot by Richard Short, 1761, in the J.
    Ross Robertson collection.)

  Joshua Barney                                                      355
    (From an engraving in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Rev. H. A. Simcoe, Third Son of Governor and Mrs. Simcoe           364
    (From a photograph at Wolford, Devon.)

  Mother Emily Clare, Daughter of Rev. H. A. Simcoe                  364
    (From a photograph at Wolford, Devon.)

  Penheale Manor, near Launceston, Cornwall                          364
    (From a picture in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Dunkeswell Abbey Church--Holy Trinity                              365
    (From a drawing by Miss Harriet Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  A Restful Spot at Penheale                                         366
    (From a picture in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)

  Captain J. Kennaway Simcoe, R.N., Second Son of Rev. H. A. Simcoe  368
    (From a photograph at Wolford, Devon.)

  Mrs. Simcoe--The Lady of the Manor, Wolford                        368
    (From a photograph at Wolford, Devon, 1908.)

  Dunkeswell Parish Church, before Restoration--Exterior             370
    (From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Dunkeswell Parish Church, before Restoration--Interior             371
    (From a drawing by Miss Harriet Simcoe at Wolford, Devon.)

  Dunkeswell Parish Church, as Restored in 1867                      376
    (From a picture in the J. Ross Robertson collection.)




  DIARY OF MRS. SIMCOE


  CHAPTER I.

  _MRS. SIMCOE--HER ANCESTORS._


The personal character of Mrs. John Graves Simcoe, the wife of the first
Governor of Upper Canada, may be written in a few brief sentences. The
records that have been handed down to us from her own pen and from the
pen of others who were contemporary with her, all testify to her worth
as woman, wife and mother. Mrs. Simcoe had not all the advantages that
in natural course come to a daughter in girlhood days. She never saw her
father, and in the first twenty-four hours of her life she lost her
mother. Bereft of those she would have loved, it fell to other than the
gentle hands of father and mother to care for her as she grew to
girlhood.

[Illustration: "Old Court" Near Ross, Herefordshire.

(_From a Drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

Elizabeth Posthuma Gwillim was born in 1766 at Whitchurch, in
Herefordshire, at the mansion known as "Old Court" near the town of
Ross, the home of her mother, Elizabeth Spinckes, widow of
Lieutenant-Colonel Thomas Gwillim. Her father died seven months before
she was born, while her mother died a few hours after giving birth to
this daughter--her only child. She was named Elizabeth after her mother
and Posthuma to commemorate the circumstances of her birth. Her father
was an officer in the army, attaining the rank of colonel a few years
before his death. He served in Canada and was one of the three Majors of
Brigade of General Wolfe at Quebec in 1759, and died in 1766 while his
regiment was stationed at Gibraltar. The marble bust of General Wolfe,
now in the saloon at Wolford, was presented to Colonel Gwillim by the
General, and a plaster bust of Colonel Gwillim from which the picture is
taken is in the drawing-room of the old mansion. On the death of her
mother and father the infant Elizabeth inherited "Old Court" and all
that it contained. Mrs. Simcoe's mother was a daughter and co-heir of
Elmes Spinckes, Esq., of Aldwinkle in North Northamptonshire, who died
there in 1762. She succeeded to the fortune left by her mother and
grandmother, both of whom were heiresses in their own right.

[Illustration: Colonel Gwillim.]

"The old Church of Whitchurch on the Wye" was erected some hundreds of
years ago, and was the church which the Gwillim family attended from the
time of its erection. The registers show baptisms in connection with the
family as early as 1754 and burials from 1766. The family tomb of the
Gwillims is in the churchyard. In after years Mrs. Simcoe often visited
Whitchurch and made sketches of spots so well known to her mother.
Amongst them was the old church.

The Gwillims came of noble lineage. Among the Archives at Wolford is an
elaborate pedigree of the family, which is a very ancient one, the
genealogy being traceable in a straight line from the early kings of
North and South Wales. To this family belonged the celebrated Herald
Gwillim, Rouge Croix Pursuivant-at-arms, 1618.

Several pedigrees of the family have been drawn from time to time at the
different visitations or investigations by a high heraldic officer whose

duty is to examine into the pedigrees and inter-marriages of a family or
the families of a district, with the view of ascertaining whether the
arms borne by any person or persons living in that district are
incorrect or unwarrantably assumed. Of the later ones entered at the
College of Arms, one was drawn in 1569, another in 1683, and another was
drawn for the subject of this biography by Francis Townsend, Windsor
Herald, in 1806. It is a most elaborate document, being eighteen feet in
length and forty-eight inches wide, and contains about four hundred
quarterings of arms in colors, the work of a skilled artist, and
forty-four feet of illuminated border. The penwork in which the names
are written gives the document rank as an example of the best in
heraldic art, and is said to have cost £300.

The Gwillims on the paternal side were originally from Breconshire,
having been Lords of Brecon before the Conquest. At a somewhat later
date their ancestral home was at Brayne Court, Herefordshire, where they
were domiciled before the fifteenth century and again early in the
sixteenth century at Fawley Court, Langstone Court and Whitchurch Court,
and later at the Hunt House, Clodock, all in the county of Hereford.
They married into many notable families and possessed at different
periods vast landed estates, principally in the counties of Brecon,
Hereford and Monmouth.

[Illustration: The Old Church of Whitchurch, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

During the troublous times of the Conquest, and for some centuries
after, the Gwillims were actively engaged in warfare, sometimes holding
their commissions from the Welsh princes and sometimes from the English
kings. At the Wigga, Rowleston, Herefordshire, there are papers relating
to farms that had been given to Gwillims more than eight hundred years
ago for their services in the army.

The history of the family entwines with the well-known and historical
Herbert family, of which the Gwillims are a branch, both paternally and
maternally. William, eldest son of Howel-ap-Thomas, Lord of Perthhir,
was the first of the family to adopt a surname, in conformity with the
English law, and the first patronymic of Ap-Howel became corrupted with
Powell. Gwillim Dhu (William Herbert), Earl of Pembroke (beheaded at
Banbury in 1469), was commanded by the King, Edward IV., to take the
surname of "Herbert" in memory of his illustrious ancestor Henry Fitz
Herbert, Chamberlain to King Henry I. The Gwillims seem to have adopted
"Gwillim" as a surname about the same time, one Robert Gwillim, son of
Gwillim ap Thomas and Margaret, daughter and heir of Sir James Abrahall,
Knt. of Ingestone, County Hereford, being according to Francis Townsend,
Windsor Herald in 1806, the first to do so. Prior to the edict of Edward
IV. it had always been "the Welsh custom to change the surname at every
descent." Hence the Welsh were always most careful to preserve authentic
evidence of their family records.

The writings on this interesting document have been summarized from its
beginning. It will be noted that the name of Gwillim first appears about
the time of Edward IV. This summary shows an unbroken line back to
William I., of England, commonly called the Conqueror, and also to the
ancient kings of North and South Wales.

[Illustration: Arms of Gwillim.]

  Gwillim.

The arms granted to the Gwillim family are here given:--

Argent a lion rampant Ermines, collared Or. Crest--A dexter arm embowed
in armour proper grasping a broken sword argent.

The introductory paragraph or preamble as written by the Windsor Herald
reads:--

"The Genealogy of the ancient family of Gwillim deduced to Mrs.
Elizabeth P. Simcoe, wife of Lieut.-General John Graves Simcoe. Tracing
her descent paternally from the ancient British Lords of Brecon--from
Henry Fitz Herbert, who was Chamberlain to King Henry the First and from
King William the Conqueror; and paternally and maternally through Sir
Giles de Brewes--or De Braisosa, Lord of Buckingham in the time of King
Edward the First, from William de Braisosa, one of the Conqueror's
companions--whose posterity were Lords of Brembre, Brecon, and Gower and
from the ancient Earls of Clare, Gloucester, Pembroke, Hereford and
Derby and other of the most noble and illustrious families of England
and Wales, compiled from public records and other authentic evidences by
me, Francis Townsend, Windsor Herald, MDCCCVI."

Then follows the line of descent:--

Gundreda, daughter of William the Conqueror, married William, Earl of
Warren and Surrey. She died in 1085 and was followed in 1088 by her
husband, who, the records show, was buried in Lewis Priory.

The line is continued through Maynarch, Lord of Brecon, through whom
also is traced the descent from the Welsh kings, he being the fourteenth
in descent from Kariadoe Vrachfras and the daughter and heir of Pelinor,
King of North Wales.

Maynarch married Ellen, daughter of Eynon ap Selif, Lord of Cwmmwd, and
their second son was Blethyn ap Maynarch, Lord of Brecon, who married
Elinor, daughter of Twdwr Mawr, King of South Wales, 1077 to 1091, and
sister of Prince Rhys.

In 1090 A.D., Blethyn was slain by Bernard Newmarch, who became Lord of
Brecon. Blethyn's second son, Gwrgan ap Blethyn, appears in the records
as Lord of Llangorse.

Gwrgan ap Blethyn married Gwenllian, daughter and sole heir of Philip
Gwys, Lord of Wilton. Their second son, Traharne ap Gwrgan, was the next
Lord of Llangorse and married Joan, daughter of Sir Aaron ap Bledry,
Kn't.

Howel ap Traharne succeeded his father and married Gwenllian, daughter
and heir of Griffith ap Eynon of Senighenith in County Glamorgan. During
his lifetime he waged prolonged but unsuccessful wars against the Lord
of Brecon in an attempt to win back the ancient seat of his family.

At his death, Howell was succeeded by his son, Rees ap Howell, also
known as Henry III., of Aberllfni, who married Katherine, daughter of
Griffith Gwyre.

The line then comes through a cadet branch of the family, descended from
Eynon Says ap Rees ap Howell, third son of Rees ap Howell, who succeeded
to the family estate of Lywell, County of Brecon. The family
burying-place was at Crych-Einon. The family arms are given as "Argent,
3 cocks gules."

Eynon Says ap Rees ap Howell married Joan, daughter and heir of Howell
ap Meredith ap Cradock ap Justin, her mother being Ann, daughter of
Gwillim of Llewellyn-Lagar ap Ivor ap Einon. Their son was named Howell
ap Eynon.

Howell ap Eynon married Llelles Lettice, daughter and sole heir of
Cadwallader ap Gruff ap Sitsile, Lord of Gwent, and had for heir Howell
Vychan ap Howell, who took for his arms "a fess between two arming
swords."

Howell Vychan married Ellen, daughter and heir of Llewellyn ap
Howell-hen.

Their third son, Llewellyn ap Howell Vychan, married Malltion, daughter
and co-heir of Jevan ap Rees ap Jevan. The family arms were "A lion
rampant, sable armed, or."

Thomas ap Lln ap Howell, eighth son of Llewellyn and Malltion, succeeded
to the family arms, which are given during his generation as "Argent, a
lion rampant, sable armed, or." He married Margaret, daughter and
co-heir of Philip ap Adam of Llanvair, Gelgedyn.

The name Gwillim, which afterwards became the family name, first appears
as the given name of the son of Thomas ap Lln and Margaret--Gwillim ap
Thomas, who is the next in line and who married Margaret, daughter and
heir of Sir John Abrahall, Knight of Ingestone, Co. Hereford.

Robert, son of Gwillim ap Thomas and Margaret, took his father's name as
a surname and was known as Robert Gwillim of Trekenkeved. All the
information given as to his wife is that she was the "Daughter of
Egerton."

[Illustration: The Gwillim Tomb at Whitchurch.

(_From a Drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

Thomas Gwillim succeeded his father Robert and is known in the records
as Thomas Gwillim of Llangonoke. His wife was the "Daughter of
Milbourne," and their sons were: (1) John Gwillim of Trerise, who died
unmarried in 1600, and (2) William Gwillim, of Trekenkeved.

William Gwillim married Margery, daughter of Thomas Vaughan of
Trevervyn, and the line to Mrs. Simcoe is continued through his third
son, Thomas Gwillim, of Whitchurch.

Thomas Gwillim married Barbara, daughter and co-heir of Walter Powell of
Whitchurch, who was descended in a direct line from Robert Corbet, to
whom King Henry I. gave the town of Alcester ("In Com. Warn."). Corbet's
daughter, Lucy, married Henry Fitz Herbert, the famous Chamberlain of
King Henry I., and it was from this marriage that the family sprang of
which Barbara Powell was a descendant.

Thomas Gwillim was succeeded in 1634 by his son Rudhall Gwillim, of
Whitchurch, who married Jane, daughter of Edmund Fox, of Leighton Court
("aforesaid"). They had two sons: (1) Thomas, who died unmarried, and
(2) Richard Gwillim.

Richard Gwillim of Whitchurch, who succeeded to the estate in 1683 at
the age of 54, married Margaret, daughter of Charles Price, of Llanfoist
in the County of Monmouth.

Then their son, Thomas Gwillim of Whitchurch Court, married Sophia,
daughter of Selwyn of Matson, County of Gloucester.

Thomas and Sophia had two sons, Selwyn who died unmarried, and Thomas
Gwillim who succeeded his father and married Elizabeth, daughter and
co-heir of Elmes Stuart of Cotterstock, High Sheriff of the County of
Northampton.

The children of Thomas Gwillim and Elizabeth Stuart were Jasper and
Elmes, who died without issue, Henrietta Maria and Sophia, two daughters
who died unmarried and were buried at Whitchurch, and Thomas Gwillim who
succeeded to the estate.

This Thomas Gwillim of Whitchurch Court was a lieutenant-colonel in the
Army and died in 1766 and was buried in Gibraltar. His wife was
Elizabeth, daughter and co-heir of Elmes Spinckes, who died at
Aldwinkle, Sept. 22nd, 1762, and is buried there.

Thomas and Elizabeth were cousins on the maternal side. Mrs. Gwillim
died in 1766. The only child of this marriage was Elizabeth Posthuma, so
called because she was born subsequent to the death of her father. She
married John Graves Simcoe of Wolford on December 30th, 1782, and died
at Wolford, January 17th, 1850.

The Simcoes were related to the Creed family of Northamptonshire,
through the Gwillims. The connection is shown as follows:--

Sir Edward Montague, Knt., created Earl of Sandwich, July 12th, 1661,
and from present Earl, 1806.

Nicholas Stuart of Pattishull, aforesaid, J. P. for County, living 1682,
aged 57, married Susanna, daughter of Anthony Elmes and at length
co-heir, living 1681.

Sir Thomas Elmes, Knt. (bro. of Susanna) of Lilford, High Sheriff of
said County, 1670, died without issue.

Sir Sydney Montague, Knt. Master of the Requests (living 1618) married
Paulina, daughter of John Pepys of Cottenham, Co. of Cambridge.

Elizabeth, daughter of Sir Sydney Montague, Knt., married Sir Gilbert
Pickering of Tichmarsh, County of Northampton, Bart. of Nova Scotia.

John Creed of Oundle, County Northampton, Gent., married Elizabeth,
daughter of Sir Gilbert Pickering, Bart. of Nova Scotia.

Elizabeth, daughter of John Creed, Esquire, born 1672, married 1692,
died 1742, buried at Whitchurch--married Elmes Stuart of Cotterstock,
County Northampton, High Sheriff of said County, Ano. 12, Wm. III., aged
26 years, 1682, living 1710.

Anne, daughter and co-heir, died unmarried and was buried at Whitchurch.

Jemima, daughter and co-heir of Elmes Stuart of Cotterstock, aforesaid,
Esq., died at Aldwinkle, 26th May, 1763; married Elmes Spinckes, Esq.,
Lord of the Manor of Warrington, County Northampton, died at Kidwarke.
The issue of the marriage was a daughter who married Thomas Gwillim, the
father of Mrs. John Graves Simcoe.

This closes the summary.

[Illustration: Colonel Gwillim.]


Thomas Gwillim, as before stated, died at Gibraltar in 1766, seven
months before the birth of his daughter, and his widow died a few hours
after the birth.

The child thus born was named Elizabeth Posthuma. She married
Lieutenant-Colonel John Graves Simcoe, who was born in 1752 at
Cotterstock in Northamptonshire, the ceremony being performed in SS.
Mary and Giles, the Church of Buckerall parish in Devon in 1782. Colonel
Simcoe, afterwards a general and the first Lieutenant-Governor of Upper
Canada, died in 1806 in Exeter. Mrs. Simcoe, his widow, died in 1850.
Both husband and wife are buried in the east end of the private chapel
erected by the General on the estate of Wolford. General Simcoe was the
only surviving son of Captain John Simcoe, R.N., of Cotterstock, who
married Catherine Stamford on 8th August, 1747. The marriage took place
in Bath Abbey. At the time Captain Simcoe was in command of the "Prince
Edward." Afterwards he was promoted to H.M.S. "Pembroke" and died of
pneumonia while his ship was off the island of Anticosti in the St.
Lawrence River, on 15th May, 1759, four months before the capitulation
of Quebec.

The following is an extract from the Registers of the Abbey Church of
SS. Peter and Paul, Bath, regarding the marriage of Captain Simcoe:--

"1747, August 8th,--John Simcoe, Esqr., commander of His Majesties ship
Prince Edward and Catherine Stamford, spinster, of Walcott, were married
by License."

Part of the city of Bath is now in the parish of Walcott, and although
search has been made in the registers of the parish church, which date
from 1694, no trace can be found of the name of Stamford.

After the death of Mrs. Gwillim, the daughter was most tenderly cared
for by her aunt, Mrs. Graves, a sister of her mother and wife of Samuel
Graves of Hembury Fort, three miles from Wolford in Devon, who was
Admiral of the White in 1717. There is a monument in Buckerall parish
church to the memory of Admiral Graves.

To the west of Honiton one looks over a space of comparatively flat
country, to the northwest overshadowed by St. Cyres Hill, and further
north is the bold height of Dumpdon. On the top of this hill are the
remains of an oval camp, and a few miles away the better known camp
called Hembury Fort. The Fort stands very high and looks south to the
sea beyond the vale of the river Otter, and west to Haldon and the
fringes of Dartmoor over Exeter. Three ramparts surround the fort, which
covers a large space of ground. It is oval in shape, divided into two
parts by an earthwork and enclosed by a triple "vallum" or line of
palisades. Several Roman coins and an iron "lar" in the form of a small
female figure three inches high, representing a goddess who presided
over the fortunes of the home, have been found there. Past Honiton ran
the great Roman road of the Fosseway to Totnes, and according to some
authorities, on into Cornwall. It is thought that the Romans, in making
these famous roads, usually followed the line of the oldest British
ways.

[Illustration: The Residence Known as Hembury Fort.

(_From a Drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

Of Elizabeth Gwillim's very early youth little is known. Her aunt was
most affectionate in disposition, a tender, kind and lovable woman, who
in a thoroughly Christian spirit accepted the responsibilities of
watching over her sister's child. This much may be gathered from the
Graves' correspondence.

The years were not slow in passing with Miss Gwillim. As a child she
evinced a natural ability that surprised her governesses. She gathered
knowledge as eagerly as she gathered the wild flowers by the roadside,
of which she was so passionately fond.

[Illustration: Mrs. Simcoe in Welsh Dress.

(_From a Miniature at Wolford._)]

She loved to ramble through the woods, where she could reproduce bits of
landscapes that are still so charming all around Hembury Fort. Her
delight as a girl was to be skilled in pencil, pen, and water-color
work; and be it said that some of her water-colors that hang to-day on
the walls at Wolford bear excellent evidence of her artistic skill. It
was readily admitted by all who met her at Hembury Fort that Mrs. Graves
had in her niece Elizabeth an accomplished relative.

As a linguist Miss Gwillim was an apt pupil. She spoke German and French
fluently and ventured occasionally to converse in Spanish when
opportunity offered. To a letter from Miss Burgess, a friend at Tracey,
near Honiton, Devonshire, she replied with one in Spanish.

She was fond of gaiety and outdoor life. To whirl in the dance, to cross
country with the hounds, seemed second nature to her, while to tramp
through the woods and along the rural roads with her young friends was
one of the ordinary enjoyments of her life. Though she had an excellent
ear for music, she never sang or played on any instrument.

She was below the average height, about five feet, not more, and this is
indicated by a satin skirt, thirty-seven inches in length, which she
wore in her married life when she was twenty-five years of age, just
before leaving for Upper Canada. The waist is missing, but the skirt has
been preserved at Wolford. The garment was known as Mrs. Simcoe's
"presentation dress," and was worn by her at the opening of the first
Legislature of Upper Canada at Niagara on the 17th September, 1792.

[Illustration: Brocade Skirt Worn by Mrs. Simcoe.

(_From the Original at Wolford._)]

It was in the spring of 1782 that Colonel Simcoe first met Miss Gwillim;
and as the story of her life is so interwoven with that of her husband,
it is fitting that the reader should have some knowledge of the family
of Simcoe; for the first Governor of Upper Canada was a man of marked
ability, whose name is to-day a household word in the great province,
the government of which he inaugurated under many difficulties.




  CHAPTER II.

  _ANCESTORS OF JOHN GRAVES SIMCOE._


It was only in the summer of nineteen hundred and six that the writer
finally after years of research determined that the Simcoe family was of
Cheshire origin. There are no records in the papers at Wolford in Devon
which give any trace of the birthplace or even the names of the
ancestors of the first Governor of Upper Canada. Indeed, it was only
after a continuous personal quest involving a careful examination of a
score of parish and other records in villages, towns and cities of
Northumberland, Yorkshire, Northamptonshire, Devonshire, Cheshire, and
even north to the borderland of Berwickshire, that the writer was able
to place his hand on documents that proved beyond doubt that the
ancestors of John Graves Simcoe were born and bred in Bunbury, a village
and large parish in West Cheshire about three miles from Tarporley and a
mile and a half southeast of Beeston Castle. This old stronghold
occupies a romantic and impregnable site on the summit of a huge and
lofty isolated rock. It was built in 1220 by the fourth Earl of Chester
and dismantled after surrender to the Parliamentary forces in the year
1646. The parish records date from the year 1559. Mrs. Simcoe visited
the old ruin on one occasion but no date is given in the memoranda. It
was probably about 1800-1.

The first trace of the name of Simcoe was found by the writer in the
"Cantabrigiensis Graduati" of the University of Cambridge, published in
the year 1800. At page 381 of this work under the letter "S" is the
record "Simcoe, Gul., Christ, A. B., 1675" and "Simcoe, John, Christ, A.
B. 1716." The late Dr. John Peile, the master of Christ's College,
1887-1910, informed me that "this William Simcoe of 1675 was the son of
a William Simcoe, born at a place not given, in Cheshire, was at school
in Bunbury, and was admitted a sizar under Mr. Lovett at Christ's
College, 5th April, 1672, aged 19." The parish records show that he was
born in the parish of Bunbury. At Cambridge University and Trinity
College, Dublin, a sizar was an undergraduate of limited means, and was
allowed free commons and some other gratuities. Formerly menial duties
were imposed upon a sizar.

A memorandum on a half sheet of note paper in the papers at Wolford
states that Captain John Simcoe, R.N., father of General Simcoe, was
born at Leamside farmhouse, some miles from the city of Durham; but
other than this memorandum, though a close examination has been made of
the property registers of Durham University, at one time owners of the
farm, there is no entry to be found containing the name of Simcoe. It
should be stated that the University records in this regard are not
extant before 1752.

There are some hundreds of entries of births, marriages, and deaths of
persons named Simcoe in the parish books of Bunbury and the adjacent
parish of Acton, the earliest dating back to 1759, but there are so many
entries with Christian names alike that it is impossible to fix upon the
ancestor of William Simcoe who entered Christ's College, in 1675. The
opinion prevails at Bunbury that "William Simcoe," a churchwarden who
died in 1664, was his father.

[Illustration: Gate of Beeston Castle--Cheshire.

(_From an old Drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

The same difficulty arises in determining the parentage of Captain John
Simcoe, R.N., born in 1714 and father of John Graves Simcoe. Hodgson in
his history of the parish of Long Horsley in Northumberland states that
Captain John Simcoe was a son of the Rev. William Simcoe, vicar of that
parish, who died in June, 1714. If this statement be true the vicar died
in the year his son was born.

There are no letters or documents in the papers at Wolford to help in a
verification of Hodgson's statement. Suffice it to say that Captain
Simcoe was a distinguished naval officer. Of his early life nothing is
known. His after life shows that he was a man of exemplary habits and
character, highly educated, and had made a special study of seamanship
and naval tactics. He was thoroughly earnest in his work, eager in the
obtaining of knowledge and with a mind most retentive, made the best use
of leisure hours in perfecting himself so as to eventually reach the top
round of the ladder in the profession he had chosen. He had an extensive
knowledge of the classics and in mathematics he excelled. He was a
voracious reader and his cabin was the home of a small library
consisting not only of works on military and naval tactics but of the
best authors in general literature. Through the influence of his father
he entered the Royal Navy as a midshipman in 1730. The name of the ship
is not on record.

In 1737 he was promoted to a lieutenancy and in 1743 at twenty-nine
years of age he obtained a captain's commission. In 1747 he was in
command of H.M. Ship "Prince Edward." His ability was recognized in many
ways by the Admiralty, and his advice was often sought in considering
questions of grave import. He was one of the members of the
court-martial on the trial of Admiral Byng (1756-7).

About four years before the capitulation of Quebec he drew up a plan,
and wrote an able paper suggesting the manner in which not only the
ancient city could be captured, but how Canada could be possessed by the
British Crown. He addressed this document to Lord Barrington, who was
Secretary of War 1755-61; and the latter after giving the paper a
careful reading complimented Captain Simcoe on its excellence, and said
that when the time came to act, his suggestions would have due
consideration.

Another paper entitled "Maxims of Conduct," or, as it is also called,
"Rules for Your Conduct," was written in 1752 by Capt. Simcoe for the
guidance of young officers in the naval and military service, and for
the edification of his sons. It is an admirable paper, unexcelled in
style and diction, as worthy of perusal in these modern days as when it
was penned a hundred and fifty-nine years ago.

After his marriage with Catherine Stamford Captain John Simcoe decided
that he would make his home in Cotterstock, a village about a mile from
the old town of Oundle in Northamptonshire. Four children, all sons,
were issue of this marriage, Paulet William, John, John Graves, and
Percy William. The first and second sons died in infancy, and the fourth
was drowned in 1764 at Sandy Point above the head of the river Exe near
Exeter.

On August 22nd, 1747, Captain John Simcoe was granted by the Garter and
Clarenceux Kings of Arms, the arms and crest here given, namely:--Azure,
a fesse wavy ermine, between two stars of twelve points in chief and a
cannon barwise in base or, and for his crest, out of a naval cross or a
demi sea lion proper holding in his fore fin a mariner's cross staff
erect or and on his shoulder a rose gules seeded proper. In October,
1747, application was made by Captain Simcoe for an alteration in his
arms. The extract from the official document, dated 4th November, 1747,
regarding the granting of this alteration, reads:--"The crest depicted
on the other side granted to John Simcoe of Chelsea, in the County of
Middlesex, Esq., and his descendants is hereby altered from out of a
naval crown or a demi sea lion proper holding in his fore fin a
mariner's cross staff erect or and on his shoulder a rose gules seeded
proper, to out of a naval crown or a demi sea lion proper, holding in
his fore fin a dagger erect argent, the pomel and hilt gold and on his
shoulder a rose gules barbed and seeded proper as the same is in the
margin hereof more plainly depicted."

[Illustration: Arms of John Simcoe.]

Captain Simcoe joined H. M. Ship "Pembroke," 60 guns, in 1757, as
commander, with Mr. James Cook as master, and in 1759 sailed for Canada
with the fleet under Admiral Saunders. Mr. Cook was afterwards the
celebrated navigator who in 1768 circumnavigated the globe in the
"Endeavor"; and in later years he declared that he was under many
obligations to Captain Simcoe, for from him he had received a great part
of his training in "navigation and seamanship." Captain Simcoe, however,
was never to reap the reward of his years of study in naval work, for on
Tuesday, May 15th, 1759, while the "Pembroke" was nearing the island of
Anticosti he died of pneumonia and was buried at sea at six o'clock on
the evening of the 17th.

Mrs. Simcoe, on receiving the sad news of the death of her husband on
the "Pembroke," decided to leave Cotterstock, where she had spent many
happy years, and remove to Exeter. She had friends in Devon, several of
whom resided in Exeter, and she felt that the advantages for the
education of her children would be much greater in a city, possessing
better schools than Oundle. She accordingly rented a dwelling in the
Cathedral City and determined that her life's aim should be the care and
education of her boys.

[Illustration: Capt. James Cook.]

But her cup of sorrow was not yet full. The death by drowning of her
fourth son, Percy, saddened Mrs. Simcoe's heart for years; however, with
an affection that was intensified by her affliction, she devoted her
life to her surviving son and to a certain extent outlived the last
great sorrow that fell to her lot.

The future Governor of Upper Canada was an apt pupil. He received his
primary education at the Free Grammar School in Exeter and in 1766, in
his fourteenth year, he was sent to Eton. On 4th February, 1769, while
in his sixteenth year, he entered Merton College, Oxford, and
matriculated. There is no record of his graduation. It is said that
owing to ill-health he was compelled to withdraw from college at the end
of his first year. He accordingly returned to his mother's home in
Exeter and with the assistance of a tutor he devoted the years 1770-1 to
the acquiring of general knowledge and especially to the subject of
military tactics, for he had the promise of an ensign's commission from
friends of his mother in the War Office.

In 1771 at the age of nineteen he entered the army as an ensign in the
35th Regiment of Foot. He sailed on the outbreak of the war of the
American Revolution for New England and joined his regiment in June at
Boston a few days after the historic battle of Bunker Hill, or rather
Breed's Hill; for that is where the battle took place on the 17th of
June, 1775.

His anxiety to be of service to the Crown was shown by his offer to
raise a corps of negroes for service in New England; but notwithstanding
the strong influence of Admiral Graves, his godfather, who was in
command of the fleet, his offer was declined by General Gage, who was in
command of the forces. While his regiment was stationed in Boston he
acted as adjutant, but there is no record of his appointment. At the
evacuation of Boston in March, 1776, he embarked with General Howe's
army for Halifax.

During his stay in Halifax he purchased a captaincy in the grenadier
company of the 40th Regiment, and when New York was threatened with
attack he sailed with the forces early in June for Staten Island and
disembarked with the army on 3rd July, 1776. He took an active part in
the military operations in Long Island and the Jerseys during the summer
and won commendation for his services.

[Illustration: Sir William Howe.]

While at winter quarters at Brunswick in 1776 he went to New York to see
Sir William Howe and ask for the command of the Queen's Rangers, which
was then vacant. But driven by stress of weather out of its course, the
boat in which he sailed was delayed and he arrived at headquarters some
hours too late, for the position had been filled. In the summer of 1777,
still bent on an independent command, he wrote to General Grant, under
whom he had served, requesting his influence in the securing of a
command similar to that of the Queen's Rangers; but there were no
vacancies, and once more he was disappointed. The Queen's Rangers were
at that time commanded by Major Weymess. Shortly afterwards, on the
11th September, was fought the battle of the Brandywine. Simcoe led his
company of the 40th Regiment and received a wound, from which he never
fully recovered, although he was able to resume his duties.

At last his ambitions were realized, for on the 15th of October, 1777,
Captain Simcoe was nominated major commander of the celebrated
Provincial regiment known as the Queen's Rangers, which became under him
one of the most efficient and gallant corps that took part in the War of
the Revolution. It was at this time encamped with the army in the
vicinity of Germantown, near Philadelphia.

In June, 1778, he received from Sir Henry Clinton the local rank of
lieutenant-colonel of the Rangers. In an action in 1779 he had a narrow
escape for his life and was taken prisoner. He obtained his release on
the 31st of December, 1779, and returned to his regiment. His Majesty on
the 19th of December, 1781, was pleased to confer upon him the rank of a
lieutenant-colonel in the army, the duties of which he had fulfilled
from the year 1778. His regiment was amongst the troops which were
included in the surrender by General Cornwallis at Gloucester Point on
the 19th of October, 1781.

The story of his part in the campaign as colonel of the Queen's Rangers,
as told in his journal, will be found in another volume. His journal is
one of the most interesting books of its kind. It was published in
Exeter at the close of the war, and was received most favorably by the
press and highly commended by the leading military writers of England.
Simcoe returned to England in December, 1781, at the close of the war,
married Miss Gwillim in 1782, and from 1783-7 he resided in the
Cathedral City.

In 1784, the estate of Wolford, four miles from Honiton, in the parish
of Dunkeswell, Devon, was purchased by Mrs. Simcoe. Although there was
an old farmhouse on the property, a new residence was built; the estate
was considerably improved during the years 1786-7, and in 1788 Colonel
Simcoe and his family left Exeter and took up their residence at
Wolford. He held the rank of colonel in the army from the 18th of
November, 1790, and in the same year he was elected to Parliament for
the borough of St. Maw's in Cornwall. His political career, however, was
of short duration, for in 1791 he received his commission as
Lieutenant-Governor of the new province of Upper Canada and sailed from
Weymouth for Quebec on the 26th of September in the ship "Triton," 21
guns, accompanied by his wife and two of his children and Lieutenant
Talbot.

In a despatch to the Secretary of State, Lord Dorchester had previously
recommended Sir John Johnson as first Lieutenant-Governor of Upper
Canada. Sir John Johnson had rendered valuable services, and in the
matter of claim was entitled to consideration. On the other hand, his
appointment was undesirable, not only on account of his large property
holdings in the new province, and consequent local interests, but also
from the fact that the policy of the British Government did not allow
the appointment of residents of colonies in the government of the same.

The "Triton" arrived in Quebec on the 11th of November. Lord Dorchester,
the Governor-General, was on leave of absence in England and
Major-General Alured Clarke, who by the way was a Devonian, was acting
as administrator. Simcoe had been entrusted with the commission of and
instructions to the Governor-General which were to be issued on the
division of the province into Upper and Lower Canada, together with the
commission of Sir John Johnson, Bart., as Superintendent-General of
Indian affairs, and the commission of Major-General Alured Clarke as
Lieutenant-Governor of the new Province of Lower Canada. All these
documents were duly delivered on the day following his arrival.

Simcoe presented also a personal letter from the King to H.R.H. Prince
Edward, Duke of Kent, the father of Queen Victoria, in which His Majesty
commended the newly appointed Governor to his son, who was in command of
the 7th Fusiliers, stationed at Quebec. It should be stated that
Governor Simcoe was offered by the War Office before his departure for
Canada the rank of Brigadier-General; but he declined the promotion
because he foresaw that unless His Royal Highness should be promoted at
the same time, his acceptance would place him above the King's son.

Moreover, Governor Simcoe understood that such promotion was not desired
by Prince Edward, and from general belief it was also not his Majesty's
intention to confer it. Governor Simcoe had always a dislike to nominal
rank. His local Provincial rank in America was senior to that of
Major-General Alured Clarke, for early in 1778 Simcoe had been gazetted
a lieutenant-colonel, though of course ranking as the youngest of the
service.

The Governor in a letter to Mr. Dundas on the 6th September, 1791, said:
"I by no means wish to command or to wound the feelings of a senior
officer, much less to interfere with the just pretensions of the son of
my Sovereign."

The official proclamation and the text of the Act dividing the old
province of Canada into two provinces was issued on 18th November, 1791,
a week after the Governor's arrival in Quebec, and was published in the
Quebec _Gazette_ of December 1st, 1791. The natal day of the new
provinces was fixed for the 26th of December.

General Alured Clarke was duly sworn in as Lieutenant-Governor of the
Province of Lower Canada, but being administrator in the absence of the
Governor-General he occupied a different position from that of Governor
Simcoe. When the proclamation was issued for the division of the
province, Lieutenant-Governor Clarke had full powers as regards his own
government, but he had no authority to deal in any way with the affairs
of the civil government of the Province of Upper Canada. But, at the
same time, acting as administrator, he could exercise all the
prerogatives and powers of the Governor-in-Chief in either province.

The Act of 1791 making further provision for the government of the
province of Quebec is familiarly known as the Act for dividing the
province of Quebec into the provinces of Upper and Lower Canada. But Mr.
Avern Pardoe in his excellent paper on "The First Chapter of Upper
Canada History" (Ontario Historical Society Transactions, Vol. VII.)
points out, the creation of the new provinces was an Act of the King
under his royal prerogative. The Crown divided Quebec by proclamation
and Parliament's duty and privilege in the matter was to provide a
constitution for them.

The statute quoted enacts that these provinces which the King has
created shall have a Legislative Council and Assembly and that these
shall be assembled by the Governor or Lieutenant-Governor. But there is
nothing in the Act authorizing the appointment of a Governor or
Lieutenant-Governor. That is another prerogative of the Crown--in these
days exercised on advice but hardly so in the days of George III. Nor
does the Act contain any information as to the extent of the powers
conferred upon the Governor or the Lieutenant-Governor of the Province.
That is yet another prerogative of the Crown. The powers of the Governor
and Lieutenant-Governor are those conferred upon them by their
commissions and instructions.

Lieutenant-Governor Simcoe seems to have been from the first at a loss
to know his exact relations to the Governor-General, Lord Dorchester.
The commission of and instructions to Lord Dorchester as
Governor-in-Chief and Captain-General over the provinces of Upper and
Lower Canada issued on the division of the province, were brought out by
Simcoe as before said, and Simcoe's own instructions directed him to
read Dorchester's instructions and conduct himself accordingly.

The power of the Governor-General was almost unlimited. The whole duty
of the Lieutenant-Governor was to follow out the instructions of the
Governor-in-Chief. There were no instructions issued to Governor Simcoe
other than his commission and the injunction to regard Dorchester's
instructions, neither is there record of any instructions having been
addressed to Simcoe. His commission, which was simply a few hundred
words appointing him as Lieutenant-Governor, contained nothing that
would throw light on the extent of the powers the Lieutenant-Governor
should exercise.

Simcoe felt that in accepting office he should in the main have been
free to administer the affairs of the province as one endowed with
authority, and that he should not be hampered with edicts and
instructions from Quebec, but should have the right to communicate
direct with the home authorities. As a matter of fact he did so
communicate.

In the Simcoe correspondence there is a letter from Sir George Yonge in
connection with the military force, giving an "extract from the
instructions given to the civil Governor."

These instructions show that, where no specific orders have been given
by the Commander-in-Chief or by the General commanding the district, the
civil Governor-in-Council may give orders for the marching of troops and
other military services; but such order must be repeated to the
Commander-in-Chief, and that the Civil Governor must not interfere with
the detail of the military regimental duty.

The complexity of the situation and the delay in getting his government
formed was galling to Simcoe. He foresaw that he would be virtually
cribbed, cabined, and confined in Quebec for the winter, and that he was
absolutely powerless to make any immediate move in the direction of
occupying his seat of government.

Meanwhile he occupied his time with various matters that concerned the
new province. Many months before his departure from England, indeed
before the Canada Act of May, 1791, was passed, he had considered the
policy he would pursue in conducting his new government; for, of course,
he knew at that time his appointment was assured.

One of Simcoe's first suggestions was the raising of a military force
for service within the limits of the province. This suggestion was
assented to in August of 1791, the corps being known as the Queen's
Rangers. Another was that he should be permitted to visit Philadelphia,
where the United States Congress was sitting, to discuss and mediate on
the Indian question. But this suggestion was not acted upon.

Even in regard to the administration of justice in Upper Canada the
Governor's hands were tied; for, as there was no majority of his Council
in Canada, the oaths could not be administered. He, therefore, had no
power to issue a proclamation. This was after the division of the
provinces was proclaimed. Major-General Alured Clarke could act for
Lower Canada, but Governor Simcoe, until he had taken the oath, had no
legal power. This difficulty might have affected the organization of
courts in Upper Canada, but when Judge Powell was appointed to hold
court in Kingston in December, the difficulty was overcome by him, as,
on the advice of Chief Justice Smith, he did not raise the question of
authority to hold court in the new province.

Simcoe now occupied a singular position. By virtue of his commission he
was the Governor of the new province of Upper Canada, but,
notwithstanding, had no military command; and as regards his own
military rank, he could not avail himself of his colonelcy until the
corps--the Queen's Rangers, of which he was Commander--or part of it,
was actually on service under him. This restriction was specifically set
forth to Governor Simcoe in a letter from Sir George Yonge, the
Secretary of State, on September 21st, 1791. Simcoe knew that the
Rangers would not arrive until the summer of 1792 and keenly resented
the inevitable delay in the recognition of his rank.

Furthermore, his civil powers as Lieutenant-Governor were not operative
until a meeting of the Executive Council had been convened and the oaths
of office administered. Four members of this body had been nominated by
the authorities in London, namely, William Osgoode, William Robertson,
Alexander Grant and Peter Russell. Mr. Grant was the only member who had
arrived in Canada. Thus, in the absence of a majority of his Council,
the Governor had practically to mark time and await their arrival.

Simcoe saw clearly the situation and at once applied to England for
permission to nominate James Baby, of Detroit, as one of the three
Councillors required and asked permission to appoint two more so that
the seven members required by the act would meet and initiate the
business of organizing the government of the new province. In June,
however, Osgoode and Russell arrived, and with Baby made a quorum. The
appointment followed of John Munro, of Matilda, in January, 1792, and
later of Richard Cartwright, jr., of Kingston, Robert Hamilton, of
Niagara and Richard Duncan, of Rapid du Plat. The Council was now
complete. William Robertson, however, never came to Canada but resigned,
his place being filled in June, 1793, by the appointment of Aeneas Shaw.

[Illustration: Hon. James Baby.]

All this delay was vexatious to Simcoe. True, he and his wife were the
recipients of unbounded hospitality from the military, civil, and social
leaders of the old capital, but the Governor was a man of active habit
and eager to journey to his new province.

At the end of May and in the second week of June two divisions of the
Queen's Rangers arrived at Quebec, and some weeks later reached the new
province.

Governor Simcoe had paid a short visit to Montreal in December, 1791,
but did not go further west. On the 8th June, 1792, with his family and
Lieutenants Grey and Talbot he left Quebec for Kingston in bateaux,
arriving in Montreal on the 17th, leaving there on the 27th and reaching
Kingston on the 1st of July. On the 8th of July the Governor repaired to
the Protestant church, and there the oaths were administered by Chief
Justice Osgoode. The Honorable James Baby and the Honorable Peter
Russell, together with the magistrates and principal inhabitants of the
town, were present; and the ceremonial must have been, so far as the
primitive environment permitted, of a very impressive character. A note
containing the minutes of the Executive Council in connection with this
event is given in its proper place in Mrs. Simcoe's diary for July,
1792.

From Kingston, Governor Simcoe, with his family and suite, sailed on the
Government schooner "Onondaga" for Niagara, where they arrived on the
26th July, 1792. Navy Hall was undergoing alterations. These were not
completed, so by the Governor's orders three marquees were pitched on
the hill above the Hall. In these the Governor's family and suite were
housed pending the completion of the alterations. Navy Hall had been
originally built by Governor Haldimand for the use of the naval officers
on the lakes. During Simcoe's time some additions were made. One of
these was a council chamber, and it was used as a ball-room where Mrs.
Simcoe entertained. Simcoe's work in the way of organizing the
Provincial Government and carrying on the affairs of the Province, will
be told in another volume.

Simcoe was energetic in his administration and was inspired by a
determination to do his best for the people he was called upon to
govern. The first Legislature was called on 17th September, 1792, at
Navy Hall, Niagara, and was prorogued on the 15th of October. There has
always been some doubt as to the building and the place where the first
Legislature met. Some assert that the meeting was held in a tent pitched
on the common above Fort George. This ground was marked by an old oak
tree known as the "Parliament Oak." A picture of this tree in decay is
in the Museum, Niagara-on-the-Lake. Another writer asserts that the
Legislature met in Freemasons' Hall, Niagara. The records of the Upper
Canada _Gazette_, however, dispose of all doubts, for in the issue of
that paper of 18th April, 1793, the words "Government House, Navy Hall"
are used, and on 3rd July, 1794, the same words are used, while on the
10th of August, 1794, Governor Simcoe calls the members to appear at
"our Government House, Navy Hall." On the 14th of August, 1794, the
latter expression is again used.

During Simcoe's term from 1792-6 five sessions of the Legislature were
held at Niagara, in one of the four buildings known as Navy Hall, for
there was no accommodation for the Legislature at York. The buildings at
York were not ready for occupation till 1797, the year following
Simcoe's departure. Rochefoucauld in his "Tour Through Upper Canada,"
1795, writes that "during our residence at Navy Hall the session of the
Legislature of Upper Canada was opened." He does not indicate any
building other than "Navy Hall" and says the Governor "dressed in silk
entered the hall with his hat on his head, attended by his adjutant and
two secretaries."

Eight acts were considered and passed. The ancient laws of the Province
of Quebec were abolished, the laws of England were to prevail, and all
forms of law and equity were to be in conformity with the British rules
of evidence. Trial by jury was established and provision made for the
recovery of small debts. Jails and court houses were to be erected in
the four Districts, the Eastern, the Middle, the Home and the Western. A
marriage bill was introduced with the view of legalizing all irregular
marriages, for at this period no marriage ceremony was legal unless
performed by a clergyman of the Church of England. It was, therefore,
necessary that all past marriages should be legalized and a law provided
for the future validation of all such unions.

[Illustration: Navy Hall, Niagara, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

But this act was withdrawn and another act was drawn during the recess,
submitted to the authorities in England, and was then passed by the
Legislative Assembly and assented to by the Governor. Shortly after the
prorogation of the first Assembly the publication of the _Upper Canada
Gazette or American Oracle_, the official journal of the province, was
commenced.

In February, 1793, General Simcoe visited the western parts of the
Province, accompanied by Major Littlehales, Captain Fitzgerald,
Lieutenant Smith of the 5th Regiment, and Lieutenants Talbot, Grey and
Givins. They proceeded west to the Mohawk village on the Grand River,
then to the Moravian Settlement of the Delaware Indians, and returned by
way of the present site of London, Ont., which at a later date Simcoe
suggested as a proper place for the capital of the province.

On the 2nd May, 1793, he visited the site of Toronto for the first time
and decided to call the new town York "in consideration and compliment
of the Duke of York's victories in Flanders." But it was not until the
26th August, 1793, that the official notification of the name was
published.

In 1793, Simcoe directed also the making of a roadway to the western
part of the province, the present Dundas Street, and named it after the
Right Hon. Henry Dundas, Secretary of State for the Colonies. In May,
1794, he paid his second visit to the site of his new capital (now
Toronto), and ordered Mr. Alexander Aitkin, a Government surveyor, to
make a plan of the town. He also selected the site for a fort at the
west end of the town so as to command the mouth of the harbor. This
fortification was destroyed in 1813, but rebuilt in 1816, and is now
(1911) being restored by the corporation of Toronto under agreement with
the Dominion Government.

It must be remembered that Lord Dorchester, the Governor-General, was on
leave of absence and did not return to Canada until September of 1793.
From the date of Lord Dorchester's return down to the date of Simcoe's
departure from Canada, there was constant friction between the
Governor-General and the Lieutenant-Governor of Upper Canada. Indeed, it
looked as if Dorchester had determined to make Simcoe's position as
uncomfortable as possible. Simcoe had not forgotten the "unjust,
humiliating and disgraceful order," as he termed it, issued by Guy
Carleton in 1783, concerning a charge made against the Queen's Rangers
as being guilty of "plundering and marauding" on Long Island Sound
during the War of the Revolution, a charge, by the way, that was without
foundation. The official correspondence shows that Dorchester seized
every opportunity to clog the wheels of Simcoe's Government. As an
example of this unfriendliness Dorchester compelled Simcoe to change the
system of contracting for supplies and he ordered the change in a manner
that was most mortifying.

Then again, Simcoe was strongly against the proposal of Dorchester to
erect a fort in the Indian territory on the Maumee River. Dorchester
insisted that the fort should be established and his order was carried
out by Simcoe. He did not agree with Simcoe on the choice of London as
the capital of Upper Canada; and when Simcoe objected to Dorchester's
policy of removing the best part of the troops from Upper Canada and
taking them to Quebec, the Governor-General wrote to Simcoe saying that
he would act on his own judgment irrespective of the opinion expressed
by Simcoe. The official correspondence of the time teems with passages
at arms between Dorchester, Simcoe, and the Duke of Portland.

Simcoe, of course, had carried on official correspondence during his
term with the authorities at London. Dorchester naturally thought that
Simcoe should use the Governor-in-Chief as the medium of communication.
Indeed, Dorchester complained that he had not been treated as the
Governor-in-Chief should be; and that the authorities in London, that
is, the Duke of Portland, had no right to receive official
communications from the Lieutenant-Governor, who was subordinate to the
Governor-in-Chief.

The poles could not be further apart than Simcoe and Dorchester in their
views as to the powers and prerogatives of the Governor and
Lieutenant-Governor, respectively. Dorchester would have made the new
province a military colony with forts for the protection of the
settlers. On the other hand Simcoe's aim was to bring in colonists--even
American colonists--and make Upper Canada a great agricultural province.

Simcoe often said that the day would come when every acre of land from
the Ottawa to the Detroit River would so respond to the call of the
husbandmen that the sickle would never be idle and the people never be
in want.

The Duke of Portland tried to throw oil on the troubled waters, but
without avail. Dorchester felt that Simcoe was his inferior officer, for
he writes that Simcoe "seemed to think that he had an independent
command." Simcoe held fast to the idea that, outside of actual military
operations, he was supreme in his own province. The neglect to furnish
Simcoe with individual instructions defining exactly his powers and
duties seems to have been the cause of all the trouble.

This continued friction and unrest between the Governor and
Lieutenant-Governor in Upper Canada led to the resignation by both of
their respective commands in the usual form of "leave of absence."
Dorchester sailed for England on the 9th July and Simcoe said farewell
to Upper Canada on the 21st July, 1796. On the 10th September, with his
wife and children he sailed from Quebec in H. M. Ship "Pearl," which
anchored in the Downs on the 13th of October. On disembarking, the
General and his family proceeded to Dover, Canterbury and Dartford, and
on Monday, the 17th, reached Wolford.

In 1796 the British Government wanted an officer to take charge of the
forces in San Domingo. General Simcoe, who had been gazetted
Major-General on the 2nd of October, 1794, was offered the position. He
called upon the Duke of Portland, who told him that he could retain his
position of Lieutenant-Governor of Upper Canada or go as
Commander-in-Chief of the forces in San Domingo, to succeed Sir Ralph
Abercrombie.

Simcoe accepted the new position and on the 3rd of December, 1796, he
was appointed Civil Governor and Commander-in-Chief of the British
forces in San Domingo in place of Sir Adam Williamson, who had
established the British protectorate over the island.

Simcoe was much disappointed. In a letter written to H. R. H. the Duke
of Kent on 24th November, 1801, referring to his San Domingo
appointment, Simcoe writes: "His Grace (the Duke of Portland) expressly
told me that I was to be Commander-in-Chief. In this I was disappointed.
Sir R. Abercrombie retained that office, but with the injunction
communicated to him by a letter from Mr. Dundas, the Secretary of State,
not to exercise any authority in San Domingo," and Simcoe further adds,
"I believe such an injunction to be illegal, I am sure it was
unmilitary." In this letter Simcoe also pointed out that his "services
in Canada had been slighted" in that as Lieutenant-Governor he had a
fair claim to the command of the Royal Americans in preference to
General Hunter. The letter further shows that he was promised the
position of Governor-General of Canada and also a peerage.

In 1797 General Simcoe proceeded to his new post with instructions to
aid the French in restoring, if possible, order to the island. While the
General did excellent work in his command, he became wearied with the
kind of warfare in which he was engaged, and after eight months in the
island he returned to England, either to procure a force adequate for
the work or to abandon the cause. His place was filled by his second in
command, Brigadier-General Sir Thomas Maitland, appointed 18th April,
1797. In 1798, owing to the fear that Napoleon would seek a landing on
British soil, General Simcoe was appointed to the command of Plymouth
and the Western District, and in February, 1801, he was gazetted as
"Lieutenant-General in the Army."

In 1806 the General was appointed Commander-in-Chief of the British
forces in India, to succeed Lord Lake, and he at once began to make
arrangements for departure to his far-distant command. Mrs. Simcoe and
one of her daughters had gone to London and were busily engaged in
making purchases such as would be required in their new home, when an
entire change of plan came from the authorities in London by special
messenger to Exeter, the headquarters of the Western District.

The order was in effect that the British Government had information that
led to the belief that an invasion of Portugal was contemplated by
Napoleon. The orders were peremptory. The fleet under Earl St. Vincent
was cruising off Brest, whence it was ordered to the Tagus, while Lord
Rosslyn and Lieutenant-General Simcoe were directed to join Earl St.
Vincent at Lisbon.

General Simcoe had been in poor health, but by exercising the greatest
care he was able without undue exertion to cover the large amount of
work assigned to him in the command of the Western District. He was so
confident of his physical strength that he did not hesitate to accept
the India command when it was offered to him.

Indeed it was anticipated that after the negotiations in Lisbon he would
return to England and then proceed to India. But it was not to be. He
sickened on the voyage to Lisbon and was compelled to return to England.
There was some delay owing to the non-arrival of the man-of-war which
was ordered to convey him to England. But on the 28th of September,
1806, he sailed on H. M. S. "Illustrious" and on the 21st of October he
landed at Topsham and the next day was carefully driven to Exeter and
taken to the house of his friend, Archdeacon Moore, whose dwelling was
in the Cathedral Close. He was too ill to make the journey to Wolford,
and on the following Sunday, the 26th, the General passed away.

The remains of the General were embalmed and kept in Exeter until the
4th of November in order that the funeral arrangements might be
perfected. His funeral was an imposing one and every mark of respect was
paid by the citizens and by the military authorities. The burial took
place at Wolford, fourteen miles from Exeter, and the old Roman road
over which the cortege passed was lined by the volunteer militia of
Devon. At the third mile of the journey a squadron of dragoons were
drawn up and escorted the remains to Wolford. The regulars stationed at
Exeter were unable to take part owing to the fact that there was a
Parliamentary election in progress and during such an event the military
were not allowed in the constituency. Reaching Wolford at six o'clock in
the evening, the burial was by torchlight in the presence of his widow
and family and the leading men of the county. The remains were interred
at the east end of the private chapel, which had been erected by the
General.




  CHAPTER III.

  _COURTSHIP AND MARRIAGE._


Lieutenant-Colonel Simcoe after his return in 1781 from the American
campaign, spent some days in London with the authorities of the War
Office. During that summer he journeyed to Exeter and resolved that
Devon, the county in which he had so many friends and connections,
should be his permanent home.

[Illustration: Buckerall Parish Church, Devon.

(_From a Drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

There is no correspondence in the manuscripts at Wolford to show whether
his mother, to whom he was devoted, was alive at the time of his return.
Nor is there any record of her death to be found in the registers of the
Cathedral or of any of the churches of Exeter, although diligent search
for entries has been made by the writer. The impression amongst the
Devon connections of the family--all by marriage--is that Mrs. Simcoe
died in Exeter shortly before the return of her son from the United
States.

After his return the Colonel was not in the best of health. The
strenuous activities of military life in the American campaign had told
severely on his physique. He had not fully recovered from the effects
of a wound he had received at the Battle of Brandywine; and, therefore,
a quiet life and perfect rest were prescribed by his physician. He loved
the balmy air of Devon and enjoyed short visits to the country houses of
friends, who delighted to welcome him; for he had a happy and amiable
disposition, and was an entertaining conversationalist.

But there was one country home where his presence gave more than
ordinary pleasure. It was Hembury Fort, some miles from Honiton. Here on
the site of this old Roman encampment resided two old friends of his
father, Admiral and Mrs. Graves. The Admiral was his godfather, and out
of respect and deep regard for that officer, Captain Simcoe, R.N., had
given his son "Graves" as one of his Christian names. Mrs. Graves was a
sister-in-law of Colonel Gwillim of "Old Court" in Herefordshire.

[Illustration: Buckerall Church--Interior.

(_From a Drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

On the first of these visits, in the spring of 1782, Colonel Simcoe met
Miss Gwillim. It is said to have been a case of love at first sight. She
was then sixteen, petite, fair to see, bright and entertaining, and
attractive in manner. The Colonel, now in his thirtieth year, renewed
his visits; and in this case the course of true love ran absolutely
smooth, for the engagement followed, but no date for the wedding was
fixed.

Mrs. Graves naturally thought that sixteen was rather an early age for
her niece to assume the responsibilities of married life, but whatever
objections she offered were evidently overcome, for Samuel Graves and
Margaret Graves were witnesses to Simcoe's marriage at Buckerall Parish
Church, on the 30th of December, 1782, which was solemnized by the Rev.
Thomas Rosskilly, Curate of the Parish.

The marriage certificate reads:--

"No. 60--Lieutenant-Colonel John Graves Simcoe of this Parish and Miss
Elizabeth Posthuma Gwillim of this Parish were married in this church by
License this 30th Day of December in the Year One Thousand Seven Hundred
and Eighty-two by me, Thos. Roskilly, Curate. This Marriage was
solemnized between Us, John Graves Simcoe, Elizabeth Posthuma Gwillim,
in the Presence of Saml. Graves, Margaret Graves."

Where the honeymoon was spent does not appear in the Wolford MSS., but
the Colonel and his wife after marriage resided in Exeter. The Colonel
felt that Devonshire was really his native county. He had practically
lived in it for twenty-three years from 1759, when his mother and his
brother Percy left Cotterstock, after the death of his father. With this
idea in his mind he determined to settle down in some congenial spot, of
which there are so many in Devon, the most charming of all the English
counties.

His wife felt as he did, and her fortune made it possible to realize
this desire. Accordingly in 1784 Wolford and the surrounding estate were
bought by Mrs. Simcoe from the heirs of Peter Geneste. But it was not
until 1788 that they made Wolford their permanent residence, after
improvements in the house had been made.

[Illustration: The Simcoe Marriage Certificate.

(_From Register of Buckerall Parish Church._)]

Shortly after the marriage, the College of Arms, on application,
authorized the arms here depicted to be borne by Colonel and Mrs.
Simcoe, viz., Dexter, Simcoe--Azure a fesse wavy Ermine between two
stars of twelve points in chief and a cannon barwise in base or,
Sinister, Gwillim--Argent, a Lion rampant, Ermines, collared Or. Crest,
Simcoe:--Out of a naval crown Or a demi Sea Lion proper holding in his
fore fin a dagger erect Argent the pomel and hilt gold and on his
shoulder a Rose Gules barbed and seeded proper as hereon depicted.

Mrs. Simcoe was entitled to a large number of quarterings and at a
subsequent date some of these were added to the arms borne by the
Colonel and his wife. An explanation of the later arms is:--The arms in
the first and fourth quarters are those of Simcoe. The arms in the
second and third quarters have not been identified by the College of
Arms, London, England, and there is nothing in the College to show that
Colonel Simcoe was entitled to make use of this quartering. With regard
to the smaller shield--the first quarter is an incorrect representation
of the Gwillim arms. The second, consisting of four lions and crosses,
represent the Spinckes arms. The third quarter contains the arms of
Stuart--Or a fesse chequy argent and azure, a bordure, ermine; and the
arms in the fourth quarter of the smaller shield are those of
Elmes--Ermine two bars sable each charged with five elm leaves or.

[Illustration: Simcoe-Gwillim Arms, 1782.]

[Illustration: Simcoe-Gwillim Arms, 1792.]

From 1783-7 the Colonel and his wife lived at St. Stephen's in Exeter,
and in January, 1784, Eliza, their first child, was born. Then in
August, 1785, at St. David's in Exeter, Charlotte, the second child,
arrived, and in April of 1787, the third child, Henrietta, another
daughter. The first child born at Wolford was Caroline in November of
1788, followed by Sophia, another daughter, in October of 1789. The
sixth child, the first boy, Francis Gwillim, was born in June, 1791,
some months before the departure of the Colonel and his wife for Canada.

The Exeter _Flying Post_ of Thursday, June 9, 1791, announces the birth
as follows:--"Monday, the Lady of Colonel Simcoe was safely delivered of
a son and heir, at their seat, at Wolford Lodge, near Honiton."

The Colonel devoted his entire time for the first few years to
reorganizing and improving his estate. Wolford, which was a small but
well-built house, was remodelled. A new dwelling was built in front of
the old-time farmhouse. Every convenience for those days was introduced;
roadways were laid out through different parts of the estate, which
covered about 5,000 acres; and under the direction of Colonel Simcoe and
his active and well-informed manager, Mr. John Scadding, many valuable
improvements were made. Mr. Scadding was the father of the late Rev.
Henry Scadding, D.D., grand-uncle of Dr. H. Crawford Scadding, of
Toronto.

All this delighted Mrs. Simcoe. She had a direct interest in the work of
improvement, and it was at her suggestion that many of the acres,
thickly wooded to-day, were planted and improved.

Mrs. Simcoe, as has been said, was of a vivacious disposition. She was
fond of gaiety. Wolford in 1789 became the centre of attraction in that
part of the county. The house had ample accommodation for visitors, and
never a week passed without all its guest-chambers being filled.

Mrs. Simcoe had inherited all the Gwillim wealth and it was liberally
spent, not only in improving the estate but in making life enjoyable in
the manor house. She had a great admiration for her husband and was
especially pleased when in 1790 he entered Parliament as the
representative of St. Maw's in Cornwall.

[Illustration: Wolford, Near Honiton, Devon.

(_From a Drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

But a change in their lives came when the British Government decided in
the summer of 1791 that it would require Colonel Simcoe's services
immediately as the first Lieutenant-Governor of the new Province of
Upper Canada. All plans for the coming winter were summarily disposed
of, for arrangements had to be promptly made for the journey to Canada.
Mrs. Simcoe and the Colonel went to London, the former to arrange for
her outfit, the latter to interview the authorities at the War Office
and receive his final instructions.

Then came the question of the children--which of the six could be taken
to Canada. Eliza was seven years of age, Charlotte six, Henrietta four,
Caroline three, Sophia two, and Francis Gwillim was only three months
old. Mrs. Simcoe would have liked to take all her little ones with her,
but that was impossible.

Fortunately, however, there were two old friends, Mrs. and Miss Hunt, in
whom the Colonel and his wife had the greatest confidence and in whose
care at Wolford they determined to leave the four eldest, Eliza,
Charlotte, Henrietta and Caroline, taking Sophia and Francis to Canada.
Mrs. Simcoe returned from London in the beginning of September and most
energetically directed the packing and looked forward with pleasure to
the days to be spent in the new world.

The story of Mrs. Simcoe's life from the day she with her husband left
Wolford and sailed in H. M. S. "Triton" from Weymouth, cannot be told
better than it is written in her diary. Some incidents of her life in
Canada not given in the diary will be found in subsequent chapters.

When in 1759, her father, Captain Gwillim, ascended with General Wolfe
the rugged path that led to the heights of Abraham, little did he think
that thirty-two years later his daughter would give to future
generations of Canadians pictures of places in the new land that he and
his companions were winning for the Empire. But the daring and resolute
soldier of Wolfe transmitted to his daughter not only the courageous
qualities that had been necessary to win this new land for Britain, but
also the foresight and the genius by which she has preserved by pen and
pencil the spirit both of the natural scenery and the social life of the
New Britain that was being planted.




  CHAPTER IV.

  _FAREWELL TO WOLFORD._


The air at Wolford was filled with loving farewells as Colonel Simcoe,
his wife, his children and attendants left one of the happiest of
England's homes to face the perils of an Atlantic voyage. For a week
before their departure the county people had called to say good-bye, and
wish the new Governor and his wife a safe voyage to their colonial home
in the western continent.

[Illustration: North View of Weymouth in 1788.

(_From a Drawing in the Broadley collection._)]

Wolford had during the few years of residence by the Simcoes been the
most hospitable of all the country houses in that part of Devon. Its
guest chambers were never without an occupant, and the reception days of
Mrs. Simcoe had a welcome and a charm for the large circle of friends
who had the pleasure of being entertained there.

Colonel Simcoe's name was a household word, not only in county families,
but in military circles in Devon and Cornwall, and as a Devon chronicle
writer says, "more distinguished men than ever dined under one roof in
Devon were often found at Colonel Simcoe's table."

The afternoon of Thursday, 17th September, 1791, was fixed for the
journey to Weymouth, from which port they were to sail. The luggage--and
there was plenty of it--had been sent forward on Wednesday. On Saturday
morning, the 17th, the party arrived at Weymouth and in a few hours
were comfortably settled in lodgings which faced the esplanade and the
bay.

Weymouth is a well known port in Dorset, on the English Channel south of
Dorchester, on a bay at the mouth of the river Wey. The river separates
the two quarters of the town. Old Weymouth is on the south side and
Melcombe Regis faces the bay on the north. The sands are extensive and
there is a magnificent esplanade. George III. after his serious illness
in 1788 found the place an excellent health resort and visited it nearly
every year between 1788-1805. He resided at Gloucester House, built by
the Duke of Gloucester and bought by the King. Owing to the King's
visits the town soon attained considerable social prominence.

Colonel and Mrs. Simcoe thoroughly enjoyed the days spent in Weymouth
before sailing in the "Triton" frigate which lay anchored in the bay
awaiting the embarkation of its distinguished passengers. The first
entry in Mrs. Simcoe's diary was made on the day of her arrival in
Weymouth.

    Weymouth, Saturday, 17th Sept., 1791--We arrived at Weymouth. I
    walked with Lady Collier on the Esplanade in the evening.

Note.--Lady Collier was Elizabeth Fryer, second wife of Sir George
Collier, whom he married in 1781. He was Senior Naval Officer, Halifax,
July, 1776-9, and in 1780 commanded the "Canada."

    Sunday 18th--Went to church with Lady Collier and to the Rooms
    in the evening. The King looked very well.

Note.--Robert Huish (1777-1850) in his "King George III." writes:

"The time of His Majesty was chiefly occupied at Weymouth in receiving
the formal address of the corporation or the visits of the nobility and
gentry of the vicinity, and partly on horseback, rambling over the hills
and downs or walking on the esplanade amidst respectful joyous groups of
his loyal subjects. The Sabbath day was always passed in the offices of
religion, the royal family walking to church without parade or ceremony,
the service of the day always ending with 'God Save the King.'"

[Illustration: George III.]

Mr. A. M. Broadley, of Bridport, Eng., informs me that the "Weymouth
Rooms" patronized by the Royal Family were those known as "Stacey's,"
formerly part of the Royal Hotel, which can be clearly seen in the
earlier pictures and engravings of Weymouth (1789-91) of which he
possesses a large collection. The "Royal" spoken of by Dr. Wolcot in his
satire "Weymouth Amusements" (1795), was pulled down several years ago
and has been replaced by a modern building.

    Mon. 19th--I went to Portland Island, a rock peninsula of
    Dorsetshire, connected with the mainland, with Lady de la Pole,
    wife of Sir John de la Pole, and went round the Island in a
    cart, the conveyance generally used on those rough roads. The
    sea views are very fine. There is an uncommon aperture in the
    land in one spot, where we looked down as if into a vast well
    and saw the waves dashing below. We drove by the lighthouse.
    There are some buildings in ruins covered with ivy which have a
    very picturesque appearance. We stopped to take some refreshment
    after the drive at one of the largest villages in the island,
    where we tasted Portland mutton. The inhabitants of the island
    have laws and regulations peculiar to themselves. For instance,
    there is an official of the island called a Reeve. He collects
    rent and has a staff called the Reeve Staff, a very long stick
    on which payments are recorded in notches cut on the face of the
    stick. In buying and selling land the buyer and the seller go to
    the church, and sign a register before witnesses. They call it a
    Church Gift. It's very simple--no writings or parchment used, no
    lawyers consulted. We crossed a very narrow passage to the
    island, but it is sometimes very rough.

Note.--The Isle of Portland, really a peninsula, though generally called
an island, is in Dorset, south of Weymouth, projecting into the English
Channel and terminating in the Bill of Portland. It is four and a half
miles long and about two miles wide and nine in circumference. It is
connected with the mainland at Abbotsbury by the shifting Chesil Beach,
a narrow ridge of gravel and shingle ten and a half miles long. This
peninsula is practically a great bed of stone, first used in the reign
of James I. The stone is quarried in blocks of three to fourteen tons
each. St. Paul's Cathedral and other great structures were built of
stone from these quarries. Portland is a "liberty" of itself, and the
custom of "gavel-kind" prevails, which is an old land tenure in England
still in vogue in Kent, by which land descends to all the sons in equal
shares.

In Portland service of lawyers is not necessary in connection with the
sale and purchase of land. The ordinary method of conveyance is almost
unknown in Portland. This is done by what is called a Church Gift, a
form used for the purchase from time immemorial. The buyer and seller go
to the church and in the church is a register. The Church Gift is signed
in presence of two witnesses who must be "Tenants" of the Manor. The
deed is called a Church Gift instead of a common law conveyance.

One of the officials of the Island of Portland is called the Reeve. His
duty for his year of office is to collect the Chief or Quit rent. He
holds the office for one year only and never for a second term. A new
Reeve is appointed annually by the Court Leet, which is held twice a
year, in May and November. A woman or a man may hold the office. Men and
women have had equal rights in Portland, long before any Married Woman's
Property Act was passed by Parliament giving women their rights. This
has been the case in Portland from time immemorial and women make wills
and hold offices and buy and sell property quite apart from their
husbands.

The duty of the Reeve for his year of office is to collect the Quit
Rent or Chief Rent which is due to the Lord of the Manor, who in this
Manor is the King or Queen, this being a Royal Manor. The Quit Rent is
an annual payment at the rate of three pence per acre to the Lord of the
Manor by landowners in the Island for their private lands as distinct
from Crown Lands and Common or Parish lands. Every such landowner is
called a "tenant" of the Manor, but the private lands are treated as
freehold notwithstanding this annual payment to the Chief. On the death
of a tenant there becomes due to the Chief a payment of 2/6 which is
paid out of the lands owned at his death. There are three kinds of land,
viz.: The Crown lands, Private lands and Commonable or Parish lands, the
latter belonging to the King and the tenants, and in which the tenants
have equal rights with the King.

The Reeve Staff or Stick is the record of the payment of this Quit Rent
and is of Saxon origin. It is a stick from ten to twelve feet long and
one and a half inches square. Payments are represented by notches cut
across the face of the stick. A deep notch cut across the whole side of
the face represents one shilling. A notch half way across represents
sixpence, a lighter and not so deep a notch across the whole face
represents a penny. A notch the same depth as the last named half way
across the stick represents a halfpenny, and a quarter across, one
farthing. No one pays less than a farthing, but it is easy to see that
an acre may be so divided as to make many owners who would pay one
farthing each. This was the custom before books for keeping accounts
were in vogue. It is done every year, but in these modern days books are
kept as well. Each Reeve prepares a new Staff and retains it as his
own--as the stick he used during his term of office.

[Illustration: A REEVE STAFF]

The Chief or Quit rent is paid on private lands only. The total amount
has stood at £14 14s. 3d. from time immemorial and although by the
sub-division of land the Reeve collects more, only this sum is paid over
to the Chief. No question is asked and so the extra amount goes into the
pocket of the Reeve. The payment proper to the Reeve is £1 per year.
Formerly he had no money payment, but had the use of a piece of land for
the year. This piece of land is called the "Reeve Plot."

[Illustration: View of Weymouth, Looking West, 1791.

Showing (A) Gloucester Lodge, (B) Stacey's Hotel Rooms.

(_From a Water-color in the Broadley collection._)]

The picture of a Reeve Staff is from a drawing kindly made for me by Mr.
B. O. Pearce, an Ex-Reeve, prominent in business circles in Portland. He
also furnished the information in this note concerning the peculiar
customs of Portland and the use of the Reeve Staff.

    Mon. 19th--I dined with Lady de la Pole at Stacey's Hotel on the
    Esplanade, and went in the evening to see the play of "As You
    Like It," which was very well performed. Col. Simcoe dined with
    Lord Grenville.

Note.--This conclusively proves Mr. Broadley's contention as to Stacey's
Rooms existing in 1791. They were quite close to Gloucester Lodge. Lady
de la Pole was the wife of the sixth Baronet.

George William Wyndham--Baron Grenville (1759-1834), Home Secretary,
1789-90 and Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs 1791-1801 in Pitt's
administration.

[Illustration: Baron Grenville.]

    Tues. 20th--I was tired with writing, and did not go to the
    ball.

    Wed 21st--The Chancellor, Edward, Lord Thurlow, is gone into
    Flintshire.

    The sealers, those officials who prepare documents for sealing
    in the Lord Chancellor's department, are following with Gov.
    Simcoe's commission, but not having yet overtaken him, we are
    detained here and complaining of losing a fine east wind. We
    give two and a half guineas a week for a very small lodging. I
    could not go to Lullworth Cove to-day lest the Commission should
    arrive, in which case we are to sail immediately.

Note.--Thurlow, Edward, first Baron Thurlow (1731-1806), Lord
Chancellor, 1778, prepared a celebrated report on the Quebec Bill which
was quoted at length in Christie's History. He intrigued with George,
Prince of Wales, against Pitt, and was obliged to resign in 1792. His
political principles were merely a high view of royal prerogative and an
aversion to change. It was of him that Macaulay said, "I wonder if any
man ever was as wise as Thurlow looks."

Lullworth Cove is a beautiful inlet in the English Channel, almost
landlocked, deep and narrow with lofty cliffs, and very fine scenery. It
is a few miles from Weymouth, and is usually visited by excursionists.

[Illustration: Baron Thurlow.]

    Thur. 22nd--Intelligence is received that the Chancellor is gone
    to Cumberland.

    Fri. 23rd--I was pleased with a camera obscura I saw fixed in
    the top of a room. I bought a wooden pentograph, an instrument
    for the mechanical copying of engravings, diagrams and plans.
    The Misses Rolle, members of Lord Rolle's family (a Devonshire
    nobleman) are here and very civil to me. I went five miles with
    Lady Poulett and her children in her Sociable (a carriage of the
    period), and dined with her.

Note.--Henry Rolle was created Baron Rolle of Stevastone in January,
1747, and died without issue in 1759. His nephew John Rolle eventually
succeeded to the Stevastone property. He was M.P. for Devonshire,
1780-4, 1790, and was a staunch adherent of Pitt. In 1796 he was created
Baron Rolle of Stevastone. He died without issue in April, 1842. The
"Misses Rolle" were Isabella Harriot Charlotte, born 1754, and Florence,
born 1762.

    Fri. 23rd--In the evening we walked on the esplanade. The Royal
    family came and spoke to Lady P., and the Princess Royal carried
    Lady Mary Poulett, daughter of the Earl, a heavy child three
    years old, the whole length of the esplanade.

[Illustration: Princess of Wurtemburg.]

Note.--Princess Charlotte Augusta Matilda, born 29th September, 1766,
eldest daughter of George III., (1738-1820) married in 1797, her cousin
Frederick William Charles, Duke of Wurtemburg, who subsequently became
King of Wurtemburg. He formed an alliance with Napoleon in 1805, his
army fighting for Napoleon for several years, but eventually joining the
allies in 1813.

Lady Mary Poulett was the second daughter of John, the fourth Earl
Poulett, by Sophia his wife, daughter and heir of Admiral Sir George
Pocock, K.B. Lady Mary in 1821 became the second wife of Lord Charles
Henry Somerset.

[Illustration: Lady Poulett.]

    Sat. 24th--I walked on the sands with Coll. Simcoe before
    breakfast. We met the King. He asked me whether I left my
    children at school, how I should like being at sea, &c. I was
    not well and dined at home. Sir de la Pole sent me landrails. My
    French cook dressed them without taking out the inside, and I
    found a shell as large as a nut in one of them. I thought they
    lived by suction. How could this be?

Note.--The Landrail or Corncrake, a migratory bird, leaves England
before the winter, and repairs to other countries in search of food. It
appears in England the latter end of April.

[Illustration: Sir George Murray.]

    Sun. 25th--I was at the Rooms to-night, and met Capt. Sydney
    Smith. He wore a handsome star given him by the King of Sweden,
    in whose service he distinguished himself. He is thought to be
    like Charles the Twelfth of Sweden. His countenance reminded me
    of pictures of some great men in Elizabeth's reign--a marked
    countenance, expressing the reverse of a trifling character.

    The whole of this day it blew so heavy a gale that the "Triton,"
    the ship on which we are to sail for Canada, was obliged to go
    out to sea, it being dangerous to remain at anchor. From Lady de
    la Pole's windows in this hotel, where I dine, the waves looked
    tremendous. The scene was grand, but, as the Queen (Charlotte)
    observed this evening, was "mixed with too much horror to be
    pleasing."

Note.--Sir William Sydney Smith (1764-1840) a naval officer who entered
the Navy in 1777, became captain in 1782, knighted in 1792. He was
captured off Havre by the French in 1796, imprisoned in Paris for two
years, escaped in 1798, and in 1799 undertook the defence of St. Jean
d'Acre. In March, 1799, he captured the French vessels and held the town
until the siege was raised. He died in 1840.

[Illustration: Sir Sydney Smith.]

    Sun. 25th--I dined yesterday, 24th, at Sir G. Collier's, with
    Capt. Murray, of the "Triton," who appears a very gentlemanly
    man, and his having the reputation of being an excellent
    officer is a great consolation to us who are about to sail in so
    late a season for a northern climate. Sir J. Jervoise is the
    only man who tells Coll. Simcoe that he is certain of making his
    passage at this time of the year. Others think it is too late,
    but he is a man of knowledge in nautical affairs, and,
    therefore, his opinion is to be trusted to.

    The King asked Capt. Murray about his stock of provisions for
    the voyage, and hoped he had prepared for making my passage as
    comfortable as possible to me.

Note.--Sir George Murray, 1759-1819, Vice-Admiral, of a younger branch
of the Elibank family. His actual services in the Navy probably began
about 1772 when he joined the "Panther" on the Newfoundland station. He
was afterwards in the "Romney," the flagship of Rear Admiral John
Montague, on the same station. In 1792 he was appointed to the "Triton"
frigate, and afterwards to the "Nymphe." In 1807, he was appointed
commander-in-chief of the naval operations against Buenos Ayres. On 25th
October, 1809, he was promoted to be a Vice-Admiral, was nominated a
K.C.B. on 2nd January, 1815, and died suddenly at Chichester on 28th
February, 1819.

[Illustration: Earl St. Vincent.]

John Jervoise (Jervis), Earl St. Vincent, the first Viscount, was born
at Meaford, Staffordshire, 17th January, 1734. He entered the navy in
his tenth year, led the advanced squadron in charge of transport past
Quebec, was entrusted by Wolfe with his last message to his betrothed,
1759, and was a personal friend of Captain John Simcoe, R. N., father of
Governor Simcoe. He became admiral of the blue and commander of the
naval forces in the Mediterranean in 1795, and in consequence of his
victory over the Spanish fleet off Cape St. Vincent in February, 1797,
was raised to the peerage. In 1821 he became admiral of the fleet.




  CHAPTER V.

  _THE GOVERNOR AND SUITE EMBARK._


Mrs. Simcoe's description of the trip from Weymouth to the New World
forms an interesting commentary upon the ocean travel of a century ago.
Long was the voyage and great was the discomfort even upon the "Triton,"
which compared most favorably with the usual sailing craft of the day.
With wind as the only motive power, the man-of-war which bore the Simcoe
party towards the West took forty-six days upon a voyage which the fleet
liner of to-day would make in less than five. And the gain in comfort
has been no less marked.

However, Mrs. Simcoe was possessed of an industry which prevented her
long passage from being irksome. Much of the time she spent in reading
and writing. Every incident of importance found its way into her record.
The vessel's speed and weather conditions were, of course, sedulously
jotted down by the diarist; there is mention of the rare passing
vessels; while the description of the routine life upon an eighteenth
century warship has a peculiar interest to the luxury-loving traveller
of to-day.

When land was sighted, the Captain's chart was always consulted and
every point of land that had a name found a place in her daily writings.
She certainly had a traveller's mind, with powers of observation that
added to her voyage pleasure both for herself and for the friends to
whom she wrote.

    Mon. 26th Sept.--Wind east, blowing fresh, fine and clear. It
    became calm this morning, and at one o'clock p.m. we embarked on
    board His Majesty's frigate "Triton," 28 guns, Captain Murray.
    Capt. Stevenson accompanied us, and Lt. Grey, a son of Sir
    Charles Grey's, for whom Coll. Simcoe requested a passage, who
    is going to join the Fusiliers or the 7th Regt. at Quebec, the
    regiment of which Prince Edward is Colonel.

    I became giddy as soon as I entered the ship and went to my
    cabin, an apartment just large enough to swing a cot, which I
    immediately got into. On leaving Weymouth and in going through a
    surf called the Portland Race, one of the port hole windows was
    stove in, and the gentlemen at dinner were quite wet.

[Illustration: Sir Charles Grey.]

Note.--Sir Charles Grey, first Earl Grey, 1729-1807, a General in the
Army, was conspicuous for his services to the King in the American
Revolution. He was created Earl Grey and Viscount Howick in 1806. Earl
Grey, the present Governor-General of Canada, is the fourth bearer of
the title, and is directly descended from Sir Charles Grey. Lieutenant
Thomas Grey, who sailed with Governor Simcoe, was fifth son of Sir
Charles Grey, was lieutenant-colonel of the 12th Regiment of Foot, which
embarked for the East Indies, 8th June, and anchored in Table Bay, 19th
September, 1796. The regiment was in bad health while in Table Bay, so
Grey was probably left behind when it sailed on the following 10th of
November. He retired by sale of his commission, 1st December, 1796, and
died at the Cape of Good Hope, 17th January, 1797, unmarried.

    Tues. 27th--East, fresh and fine. Went before the wind at 9
    knots an hour.

    Wed. 28th--East, fresh and fine. Went upon deck. Our hours are
    early. We breakfast at 8; dine at 2, and never take any supper.

    Sunday, Oct. 2nd--Calm.

    Mon. 3rd--Rough.

    Tues. 4th--I got the better of my sickness yesterday, but there
    blew so strong a gale of wind that I was obliged to remain in my
    cot or in a corner behind the stove in the great cabin, to
    secure myself from falling. It was by persevering to go on deck
    and by eating salt beef, covered with mustard, that I soon
    became well. As my health amends my spirits rise, and I am
    rather diverted at the difficulties we meet with at dinner,
    when, in spite of all care, the dishes are often tossed to every
    corner of the room. The ship not having sufficient ballast makes
    her roll so unreasonably. I think I have great merit in
    beginning to write to you this early, in spite of rough weather.
    The children (Francis and Sophia) are well, but never appear to
    be safe except when in their cots, for the nurses are much
    indisposed and have very indifferent sea legs. I am learning to
    walk on deck, but cannot yet do it without leaning on the arm of
    a gentleman. Capt. Murray, who has been in France, plays at
    reverse, the French card game, with us. Sophia's amusement is
    seeing the poultry on deck, where a little midshipman carries
    her every day. The wind has for several days driven us to the
    southward of our course. It begins to blow hard again, so I must
    retire to my cot.

    Wed. 5th--Calm. Went five knots an hour.

    Thur. 6th--Went six knots an hour.

    Fri. 7th--We saw porpoises.

    Sat. 8th--Calm and fine. It is expected we shall see the Azores
    or Western Isles to-morrow night.

    Sun. 9th--Hot and fine. We rose from dinner at three o'clock to
    see a ship pass. She was the "Minerva," of London, from New York
    to Malaga, a Spanish port on the Mediterranean. I admired the
    sight as she sailed close to us. She did not give any
    intelligence. At 10 p.m. an island was seen.

    Mon. 10th--Fine, very hot. The heat was so excessive I could not
    sleep, and rose at 6 o'clock to look at the island, which was
    Corvo, the most northerly of the Azores. The mist presently
    dispersing, we saw Flores, the westernmost island of the Azores,
    where, in 1591, Sir Richard Grenville, in a small man-of-war,
    the "Revenge," held at bay fifteen Spanish warships till his own
    was but a wreck. The atmosphere far from clear. Corvo is
    extremely high land, lat. 39, Corvo S.S.E., 3 leagues.

    Coll. Simcoe has been reading "L'Histoire Generale de la
    Nouvelle France," by Francois Xavier Charlevoix, the French
    Jesuit traveller, who twice visited Canada and sailed down the
    Mississippi to New Orleans, and who says that Corvo was
    discovered by a Portuguese, who found it uninhabited, but saw an
    equestrian statue on a pedestal, of what metal made he knew not;
    but there was an inscription on it which was not legible. The
    right hand of the finger pointed to the west.

    The Western Isles are inhabited by Portuguese, who are fond of
    buying black clothes whenever ships call there, which they
    frequently do to take in water, and which we should have done
    had not the lateness of the season in which we quitted England
    made it necessary not to lose an hour on the passage, as we are
    doubtful of reaching Quebec before the St. Lawrence is filled
    with ice.

    I should have liked to have gone on shore here, as the climate
    is said to be delightful and the islands abounding in grapes,
    oranges, melons, chestnuts, etc. No boats came to us with
    fruits, and they rarely fish beyond their harbour on account of
    the heavy squalls to which the coast is subject, which endangers
    their being blown out to sea. From the description of the
    islands I would like to make a voyage here instead of going to
    Tunbridge Wells (in England) or other watering places, where
    people frequently tire or weary themselves. The scheme would be
    more enlarged, and I believe much more amusing. Being at sea in
    good weather is delightful, and there is no occasion to execute
    such a voyage in the equinoxial season.

    Tues. 11th--Wind light, very hot and contrary. A ship on her
    larboard tack was seen last night; we, being on the starboard,
    did not speak with her. I rose this morning at three o'clock and
    looked at the constellation of Orion and its stars in great
    brightness. The heat is excessively oppressive, though we have
    the windows open all night.

    Wed. 12th--I copied some prints of ships Capt. Murray lent me.
    An American vessel was seen.

    Thurs. 13th--Fine. A sail passed this morning, supposed to be an
    English 44 guns. At noon a Portuguese vessel was seen.

    Fri. 14th--Very hard gale this morning. The sea ran mountains
    high. I sat on deck and saw the men reefing the sails. Their
    situation appeared tremendous. Mr. Benge, the Purser, gave Coll.
    Simcoe an account of his having been twice wrecked on the 14th
    October, which made him rather distrust his safety on this
    anniversary. He was on the "Deal Castle" when she and seventeen
    ships were lost on the Spanish main. She was carried by a
    violent gale of wind over a high rock, and struck on the sands.
    At two in the morning her bottom stove in, but she did not sink
    till after daylight, when all the men except seventeen got on
    shore on rafts. The account of such perils during such weather
    was not very amusing to us.

Note.--On the 10th of October, 1780, a dreadful hurricane commenced on
the island of Barbadoes, and continued without intermission for
forty-eight hours. Ships were driven from their anchors, the capital of
the island was destroyed, and the inhabitants were compelled to take
refuge in cellars. Many were killed by falling buildings, and on the
following day there was not a house in the island that had escaped
damage, many of them were levelled to the ground, and the loss of life
amounted to thousands. Many of the ships moored at St. Lucia were driven
out to sea. The "Andromeda," 28 guns, and the "Deal Castle," 24 guns,
were lost on the coast of Martinique, while the "Thunderer," among other
vessels, was never heard of again, and the exact place of their loss was
never ascertained.

    Sat. 15th--Wind N.W., cold, hard gale. This hard gale did not
    cool the cabins, which had been so extremely heated; I was,
    therefore, glad to be on deck to get rid of the headache,
    notwithstanding the weather was so rough that I was obliged to
    hold fast by a cannon. The waves, rising like mountains, have
    the grandest and most terrific appearance, and when the ship
    dashes with violence into the sea, much as a chaise in the act
    of overturning, it is surprising that she rights again. I viewed
    this tempestuous scene with astonishment.

    Sun. 16th--A very stiff gale. Fine weather makes me very happy,
    but when it blows hard this abode is certainly horrid beyond the
    imagination of those who have not experienced it. The noises on
    board a ship, till one becomes accustomed to them, almost
    deprive one of one's senses; in bad weather they are doubled;
    every place wet and dirty, besides being bruised by sudden
    motions of the ship and half drowned by leaks in the cabin. The
    gale has to-day been stiff and contrary. Two days since we
    expected to have been ere this catching cod on the banks of
    Newfoundland, and now we are far off. Those who are of a
    sanguine temper think we may get to New York; others foresee
    that we shall be driven to Barbadoes, where we must pass the
    winter, and in May sail for Antigua to refit.

    Coll. Simcoe is the only person who supposes it possible to
    reach Quebec. It will be so late before we come into the River
    St. Lawrence that the pilots will probably have quitted the Isle
    of Bic, an island in the river near Rimouski, below Quebec, and
    the master of the "Triton" cannot carry her up without a pilot.
    In this case we must return to the Gulph, and the season being
    too severe to keep in a northern latitude, we must steer for
    Barbadoes, and there shall meet with millions of those black
    beetles I so much detest, those _verdaderos ninos
    d'eponomon_--lizards, centipedes and scorpions besides:
    _Desdichada de mi que tengo de ayer?_ (I miserable, what have I
    of yesterday?)

    After being amused during the day by a description of those vile
    reptiles, the evening proved so rough and dismal that everybody
    sat melancholy and unoccupied. I learnt a hymn in the
    _Spectator_, happening to open the book where there was one
    applicable to our present situation.

    I then sat myself down to copy pictures of ships, and by
    perseverance and determined opposition to unfavourable
    circumstances I finished six pretty correctly. My cot striking
    against the side of the cabin most uncomfortably, Coll. Simcoe
    thought of the method used by the ancients to lessen the force
    of battering rams by hanging up feather beds to receive them.
    This device made the cot slide up and down very easily.

Note.--Addison's _Spectator_--the first number of this periodical was
published in March, 1711, and the last on the 20th December, 1714. The
_Spectator_ newspaper was not published till 1828.

    Mon. 17th--We saw porpoises.

    Tues. 18th--A pleasant morning. At 12 a sudden gale of wind
    arose, and while I was engaged in a game of Piquet, the French
    card game much played in England, with Capt. Murray, a lee lurch
    threw me to the side of the cabin against the fender. I was
    vexed at the accident, though not hurt, having piqued myself on
    having been so expert as always to have avoided falling.

    Wed. 19th--A brig seen. A shag (or green cormorant) with a red
    bill was seen. Wind variable.

    Thurs. 20th--Wind moderate. We are 130 leagues from
    Newfoundland. This distance we have kept these last five days. I
    began to draw a map of the Genesee River, New York State--falls
    into Lake Ontario.

Note.--Mrs. Simcoe was very fond of drawing maps. One of her maps of
Upper Canada, about four feet square, is preserved at Wolford. It is
very accurately drawn.

    Fri. 21st--Very hard gale. A tempestuous night. It rained upon
    my bed, but a thick greatcoat covered me, and I slept well. This
    ship is a good sea boat, but so leaky in her upper works that
    the floor of my cabin is scarcely ever dry, and the baize with
    which it is covered retains the wet. Therefore, I always wear
    clogs. Some shrouds were lost in this gale of wind.

    Sat. 22nd--N.E. hard gale.

    Sun. 23rd--Wind N.E. Whales seen near the ship, and many birds,
    which are signs of being in soundings, though none can be
    obtained. As the sun has not been seen for some days no
    observation can be taken, and the compass is so bad a one that
    it traverses to all points in a gale of wind, so that the Master
    knows not where we are, or, in bad weather, what course we are
    going.

    Mon. 24th--Wind N.E. Cold and clear. Number of gulls and
    shearwaters and Mother Carey's chickens flying about. They are a
    brown bird with white spots, pretty and rather larger than a
    sparrow, a storm petrel, a little bird which frequents this part
    of the Atlantic. The shearwater is a bird measuring 15 inches in
    length, 31 inches in breadth. It has a black and yellow bill,
    white under wings and body, back and tail black, found on waters
    all over the world. Mother Carey is Mater Cara. The birds are
    called "Sailors'" friend; their appearance portends bad weather.
    To kill them is unlucky. Each bird is supposed, so legend says,
    to contain a soul of a dead sailor. At 12 o'clock we were in 75
    fathoms of water. Cod, haddock and halibut were caught. A very
    cold night and rained into my cot.

[Illustration: A Snowbird.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Tues. 25th--N.W. wind excessive. No soundings since 12 last
    night. It is extraordinary to be out of them so soon. It is
    hoped we shall keep clear of Sable Island, 30 leagues east of
    Nova Scotia, which is frequently enveloped in fog, and,
    therefore, very dangerous. No trees grow on it, but there is
    plenty of wood from the frequent wrecks that are driven on its
    shores. It abounds with rats, snipe, and so forth.

    Wed. 26th--Wind N.W. So extremely cold that I could not stay on
    deck without a fleecy, hosiery greatcoat on; a bird like a
    linnet and a crossbill alighted on the rigging. It was out of
    the reach of land. I hoped to have kept it in my cabin, but it
    soon died. This bird is about the size of a lark and 7 inches in
    length. It has a peculiar bill, the upper and under mandibles
    curve in opposite directions and cross each other at the points.
    Its eyes are hazel, and its general colour reddish mixed green,
    but these birds are sometimes rose colour or yellowish green.

[Illustration: A Crossbill.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Thurs. 27th--Wind moderate. A beautiful owl, olive colour, with
    white spots and black about his face, was caught to-day. He was
    not larger than a thrush and not wild; also a bird the size of a
    lark.

    Fri. 28th--Wind N.E. A fine morning, and we fortunately made the
    Isle of Sable, thirteen leagues N., only 8½ fathoms water,
    before 12 o'clock, when a very thick fog came on.

Note.--Sable Island is a small island off Nova Scotia, first sighted by
Cabot in 1497, situated in the Atlantic Ocean, lying 110 miles southeast
of Cape Canso, lat. 43° 58' N., long. 59° 46' W. It is deep, low and
sandy, about 25 miles in length and surrounded by shoals and sandbanks,
and known as "the ocean graveyard." In 1791 it was forty miles long; in
1890 it had been reduced to 25 miles. Cape Sable Island is the
southwesternmost extremity of Nova Scotia and is frequently confused
with Sable Island.

    28th, p.m.--If it blow hard until to-morrow we hope to go
    through the Gut or Strait of Canso, a beautiful passage between
    Nova Scotia and Cape Breton from the Atlantic Ocean into
    Northumberland Strait, between high, rocky shores, and the
    shortest way to the Gulf of St. Lawrence. I am now reconciled to
    being at sea. I am well enough to work, write or draw; and
    sailing at the rate of 10 miles an hour without fatigue or
    trouble (which in this good weather is the case) is very
    pleasant. I should like to embark in summer, see various coasts,
    look into the harbours, and pass two or three months in this
    way. For example, come to Spanish River, on the Cape Breton
    Coast, where we hope shortly to be, and I am told is a pretty
    place, and I hope to visit Mrs. McCormick, wife of Lieut.-Col.
    McCormick, governor of the island of Cape Breton, to-morrow.

Note.--Spanish River is known to-day as Sydney Harbour.

    Sat. 29th--Wind N.W. The wind against our going through the Gut
    of Canso. At 8 to-day we saw the coast of Nova Scotia. At 12
    observed White Island, east of Liscomb Harbour. We saw American
    schooners. The white sails appeared very pretty to us who had
    been so long without seeing any objects, and the breakers along
    the coast, contrasted with some dark shores, had a good effect.
    We saw the Gut of Canso at a distance. At 4 we saw at the south
    end of Cape Breton, Richmond Island, so called in some charts,
    in others Isle Madame. We were very near it. It is a bold,
    perpendicular, dark red rock, shaded almost to black, and
    covered with pine, which looks richer than oak, and the conic
    shape when in maps looks well. Some large blasted pine, quite
    white, had a wild, fine effect. At the end of this island are
    rocks under water, which form fine breakers, dashing up a great
    height and sinking beneath the blue tide. A little distance from
    Richmond lies Green Island, a small, low, smooth, olive-coloured
    slip of land south of Isle Madame. Behind Richmond island is
    Arichat Harbour, on the west coast of Isle Madame, off the
    southern coast of Cape Breton, from whence we saw a schooner
    coming. Within half an hour she came up with us, but could not
    pilot us into Arichat harbour, or we should have anchored safely
    there and waited for an E. wind to carry us thro' the Gut of
    Canso, the passage between Nova Scotia and Cape Breton Island.

    Coll. Simcoe quotes "there is a tide in the affairs of men," and
    says our losing the opportunity of going thro' the Gut of Canso
    makes him, for the first time, doubtful of reaching Quebec. He
    is particularly disappointed at not seeing this passage, as his
    father, Capt. John Simcoe, R.N., of the "Pembroke," proposed to
    the Admiralty to carry large ships through it, and would have
    gained much time by so doing. This advantage was lost, as his
    proposal was objected to by the officers, who were afraid to
    risk the passage. We are now beating about, not making much way
    or venturing to make more sail than will carry us 5 knots an
    hour during this night, lest we get among the numerous breakers
    hereabouts.

    Sun. 30th--Wind W., clear and cold. Passed Louisbourg at seven
    this morning. Coll. Simcoe was very sorry he had not seen that
    harbour, so often mentioned in his father's papers. At ten we
    passed the Isle de Scatari, Lat. 46, long. 59, 45 W., off Cape
    Breton (near the entrance to Miré Bay). Then saw Cape Breton. At
    eleven made Flint Island and Cape Percé (north of Miré Bay). We
    passed Spanish River at 6 in the evening. I did not see it. Gov.
    McCormick lives there, and has a brig in which he goes to
    England.

Note.--Flint Island is east of Cape Breton between North and South Head
at the entrance of Cow Bay.

Governor Macormick, of Cape Breton, was appointed to that office October
11th, 1787, as successor to Des Barres, and in September of the
following year, entertained at Sydney, the capital, Prince William Henry
(afterwards William IV.), who had arrived there in his yacht the
"Andromeda." Governor Macormick resigned on 27th May, 1795. He was a
personal friend of Governor Simcoe and was frequently at Wolford.

    Mon. 31st--Wind N.E. Snow. At eleven we passed Niganiche
    (Niganish) Island, off the east coast of Cape Breton, near
    Middle Head. At 12 Cape Nord, the N.E. extremity of the island
    of Cape Breton, which is broken into rifts and chasms, a very
    bold coast. There was a good deal of snow on the trees, and as
    it was still falling, together with fog, I saw but little. It
    had a wild appearance. Lat. 47, long. 42½. This place abounds
    with ducks.

[Illustration: Island of Entry, 1791.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--In Bayfield's Admiralty charts Inganish Island is situated north
of Middle Head, between North Bay and South Bay, lat. 46° 50' on east
coast of Cape Breton. It is sometimes spelled "Ingonish."

    Tues. November 1st--Wind N.W. Cold. We saw the Magdalen Islands
    about the centre of the Gulf of St. Lawrence. They are
    uninhabited, and in summer frequented by sea cows. There is good
    duck shooting on them, and codfish near them, for which purpose
    an American schooner is now at anchor off one of them. At 12 saw
    Amherst Island, the south island of the Magdalen group, and
    afterwards to the north and east the Isle Entry, another of the
    group.

    Wed. 2nd--Wind N.W., very cold. I saw Amherst Island in another
    point of view; also Deadman's Isle, which appears in shape like
    a ram.

Note.--Deadman's Island is a small island to the west of the Magdalen
group. In a French map of 1755 by Vangoudy, the island is given as "Isle
de Corps Mort."

    Wed. 2nd--We met the "Liberty," of Whitby, bound to Portsmouth
    from Miscou (Misco) Harbour, in Miscou Island, at the entrance
    to the Bay of Chaleur, laden with plank. The "Liberty" informed
    us that the "Alligator," with Lord Dorchester on board, had put
    into Halifax the 7th of September, having sprung her bowsprit,
    and the "Penelope" was nearly being lost at the same time. Capt.
    Murray sent a boat on board the "Liberty," with letters for
    England. During the time we lay to, several codfish were caught.
    I like the chowder made of them very much. Coll. Simcoe has the
    gout in his hand.

[Illustration: The "Liberty."

(_From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--Guy Carleton, who was created first Baron Dorchester in 1786,
served in America from 1758 to 1762, and from 1766 to 1770, was acting
Governor of Quebec. Upon his return to England in 1770, he advocated the
passing of the Quebec Act and in 1775 returned as Governor of that
province. For five months he successfully defended Quebec against the
Americans, and in October of the same year, 1776, defeated them on Lake
Champlain. In 1782-3 he was Commander-in-Chief in America. As Governor
he resided in Quebec from 1786 to 1791, and as Governor-General from
1793 to July, 1796, when he returned to England.

[Illustration: Lord Dorchester.]

    Fri. 4th--Wind N.E. Dreadful gale and snowstorm; several men
    frost bit during the last night, which was the worst weather we
    have had. The ship pitched her forecastle under water
    continually. In the morning the Isle Bonaventure, just
    north-east and opposite the Percé Rock, on the Gaspé coast, was
    seen, but the wind being contrary they tacked all day and lost
    ground. We were under single reef courses the whole day.
    Coppers, or kettles from the ship's galley, are kept boiling
    night and day to thaw the tackle and ropes, which are
    continually freezing. The sailors have no clothing more than
    they would have on a West India voyage, and suffer severely. Had
    we been 8 leagues more to the northward, this wind would have
    served to carry us up the St. Lawrence River.

    Sat. 5th--Wind N.W., moderate. N.W. during the day, but at night
    the wind came S.W., and we ran our course at the rate of 8 knots
    an hour. Isle Bonaventure was seen again.

    Sun. 6th--Wind N.W. Passed Cap des Rosiers north of Cap Gaspé,
    in fine weather, but at 12 o'clock a most heavy gale of wind
    came on, which lasted till 12 at night, the highest sea and the
    roughest weather we have had. Two reefs in the foresail. Tacked
    all day and lost much ground. If this weather continues many
    hours we cannot weather it, but must be blown out of the river
    and go to New York, if we can, more probably to be blown to the
    West Indies, the men being so disabled by the frost and so many
    on the sick list that there are not enough to work the ship
    against adverse winds. The dinner overset, the tea things broke,
    but I eat broth without spilling it.

    Mon. 7th--Wind moderate. Saw Anticosti Island. It's a large
    island in the estuary of the St. Lawrence.

    Tues. 8th--Wind moderate, N.W., hard frost and clear. We saw
    part of the coast called in the chart Les Vallees, two rivers in
    Gaspé County falling into the Gulf of St. Lawrence. Tacked all
    day and made some way.

Note.--Called "Great and Little Valley" in chart of Gulf of St. Lawrence
published by Robert Sayer, London, 1st August, 1785.

    Wed. 9th--N.E. Clear and moderate. Saw Mons. Camille and Riviére
    Matane.

Note.--Mount Camille, in Rimouski County, is one of the highest
mountains in Quebec, being about four thousand feet in height. River
Matane, also in Rimouski County, rises in the Shickshock Mountains and
falls into the Gulf of St. Lawrence.

[Illustration: Island of Anticosti.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    I walked two hours on the deck this afternoon, and saw a fine
    sunset behind Bique (Bic), a village in Rimouski County, near
    Rimouski. When we came within sight of Bique, Capt. Murray fired
    a gun for a pilot, and one very soon after the signal came on
    board. He had arrived from Isle aux Coudres (or Hazel Island, 17
    leagues N.E. of Quebec) this day to attend a dance at Bique,
    which latter place he had quitted a week before, not expecting
    any ships from England at so late a season. To-morrow he would
    have returned to Coudres, and we must have left the river for
    want of a pilot. Our arrival this day was, therefore, most
    fortunate. I copied some of Des Barres' charts this morning. The
    wind was so fair that all the sails were set, even the sky
    scrapers, and the ship went so steadily that I did not feel any
    motion.

Note.--Bic, or Sainte Cecile de Bic, is a post-village of Rimouski
County, about a hundred and eight miles below Quebec City and nine miles
west of Rimouski. There is an island opposite this village three miles
in length and three-quarters of a mile in breadth called Bic or L'Islet
au Massacre. According to tradition two hundred Micmac Indians were
murdered here by the Iroquois about two hundred years ago. The place is
also called Bicque and Bique.

[Illustration: Des Barres.]

Joseph Frederic Wallet des Barres was born in 1722. He was the
descendant of the Protestant branch of a noble French family who
emigrated to England after the revocation of the Edict of Nantes. In
1756 he embarked, as lieutenant, in the 60th Regiment of Foot for
America. From 1784-1787, Des Barres was Lieutenant-Governor of the Isle
of Cape Breton, and in 1785 founded Sydney. He ranked in the army as
Colonel (Brevet) from 1st January, 1798, and retired in 1803. A large
part of the Maritime Provinces were surveyed by Des Barres and many of
the best maps of the period were made by him. He was Captain Cook's
teacher in navigation. His death took place in Halifax, N.S., in
October, 1824, at the age of 102.

[Illustration: Brandy Pots Islands, 1791.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Thurs. 10th--N.E. Rain and mild. We saw three ships on their way
    to England anchored off the Brandy Pots Islands, N.E. of Hare
    Islands. Passed Hare Island and the Kamouraska Islands. I feel
    the air much heavier since we have been so near land. We expect
    to be at Quebec in the night. The Island of Orleans (N.E. of
    Quebec) reaches from nearly opposite Cape Tourmenté to within a
    league and a half of Quebec. It is seven leagues in length and
    three in width. As Baron Jean de la Hontan writes in his
    "Voyages dans l'Amerique Septentrionale" (published in 1704),
    "north of the Isle of Orleans the river divides into two
    branches;" the ships sail through the south, the north channel
    being foul with shoals and rocks.




  CHAPTER VI.

  _THE GOVERNOR AND HIS FAMILY IN QUEBEC._


Governor Simcoe, although he had brought his commission as
Lieutenant-Governor of Upper Canada with him, was compelled, owing to
circumstances related in a previous chapter, to remain at Quebec until
June of 1792, before proceeding to the Upper Province and to Kingston,
where he would take the oaths of office. There were many matters of
importance to be arranged before he entered upon the active duties of
his position.

The Act of the Imperial Parliament dividing the old province of Quebec
into the two provinces of Upper and Lower Canada was passed in May,
1791. The commission of Governor Simcoe is dated 12th September, 1791,
and the proclamation in accordance with the Act was issued at Quebec on
November 18th, 1791. In June, 1792, he proceeded to Upper Canada,
arriving at Kingston in July, where he took the oaths of office in
presence of his Executive Council.

    Fri. 11th--I expressed so much concern to quit the ship that
    Capt. Murray said he was almost afraid to dine on shore, lest I
    should order the ship under weigh to sail on a further voyage.
    The "Triton" anchored at Quebec at one this morning. At 7 I
    looked out of the cabin window and saw the town covered with
    snow, and it rained the whole day. Coll. Simcoe and Capt. Murray
    dined with General Alured Clarke, the Lt.-Governor,
    administrator, to meet H.R.H. Prince Edward.

Note.--Sir Charles Alured Clarke had a long and distinguished military
career. When fourteen he entered the army as an ensign. Seventy-three
years later, on the accession of William IV., he was made a field
marshal. He died in September, 1832. Sir Alured was Governor of Jamaica
from 1782-90, when he was transferred to the staff at Quebec. He was
sworn in as Lieutenant-Governor of the Province of Quebec, 8th of
October, 1790. He received his commission as Lieutenant-Governor of
Lower Canada, September 12th, 1791, and remained in office until January
21st, 1796. During the two years' absence of Lord Dorchester, he acted
as administrator of the province. Subsequently he became
Governor-General of India and later Commander-in-Chief of the forces
there.

[Illustration: Sir Alured Clarke.]

Edward Augustus was the fourth son of George III. and the father of
Queen Victoria. He was not liked by his parent and spent most of his
time in military service abroad. For a while he was in command of the
7th Royal Fusiliers at Gibraltar and at once showed himself a thorough
martinet, and became so unpopular with his men that he was sent to
Canada in 1791. Three years later he served in Martinique and St. Lucia,
but on the close of operations returned to Canada. In 1799 several
promotions came his way. He was made Duke of Kent, and
Commander-in-Chief of the forces in British North America. In 1802 he
was appointed Governor of Gibraltar. In July, 1818, he married Victoria
May Louisa, widow of Enrich Charles, Prince of Leiningen. Eighteen
months later he died.

[Illustration: Prince Edward.]

The 7th Regiment or Royal Fusiliers was formed in 1685. In 1773 they
proceeded to Canada and were stationed at Quebec, Montreal and St.
John's. When Quebec was besieged by Montgomery and Arnold, the garrison,
of which sixty men of the Fusiliers formed part, defended the place with
firmness and intrepidity. The regiment fought during the War of the
Revolution. They returned to England in 1783, on conclusion of the
treaty of peace. In May, 1791, the regiment was again in Canada under
the command of Prince Edward, who in 1799 was created Duke of Kent. In
1801 the Duke was removed to the First or Royal Regiment, and was
succeeded in the colonelcy by Lieutenant-Governor Sir Alured Clarke,
from the 5th Foot, who had commanded the Fusiliers during a great part
of the American war. In 1810, the regiment, which was stationed in the
West Indies, returned to England.

    Fri. 11th--I was not disposed to leave the ship to enter so
    dismal looking a town as Quebec appeared through the mist, sleet
    and rain, but at 6 o'clock Lt. Talbot went ashore with me, and
    General Clarke's covered carriole, a small chaise on runners
    instead of wheels, was ready to carry me to the Inn in the Upper
    Town, to which we ascended an immensely steep hill through
    streets ill built. The snow was not deep enough to enable the
    carriole to run smoothly, so that I was terribly shaken, and
    formed a very unpleasant idea of the town which I had come to,
    and the dismal appearance of the old-fashioned inn I arrived at,
    which, I could suppose, resembled my idea of a Flemish house,
    was not prepossessing. My rooms were all on the first floor and
    a large kitchen adjoining the sitting room. I did not suffer
    from cold, for it was heated by poils or stoves, which were so
    well supplied with wood that I found it sometimes necessary to
    open the finettes, or sliding panes of glass in the windows. I
    met with fine partridges and excellent apples called Roseaux,
    pink throughout, and they had a flavour of strawberries--a very
    early apple, and they do not keep.

    Sun. 13th--Capt. Murray sailed for Halifax. I sent letters to
    England by a merchant vessel. I was amused by seeing dogs of all
    sizes drawing traineaux or sleds with wood. Mastiffs draw loads
    of provisions, and very small dogs carrioles, with children in
    them.

    Fri. 18th--I walked with Coll. Simcoe to Cape Diamond and saw
    the citadel, which is fortified by many works, and from whence
    there is a very grand view of the town, shipping and distant
    mountains as far as Cap Tourmenté, near the mouth of the river.
    The inhabited country near Quebec is embellished by the villages
    of Montmorency at the Falls, Charlesbourg, Lorette, St. Foix
    (Ste. Foy), all within a few miles of Quebec. It seemed very
    perilous walking over acres of ice, but cloth shoes or worsted
    stockings over shoes prevent slipping.

    Sat. 19th--I went to the house we have hired in St. John Street,
    which is a very moderate one, but the only one at present to be
    let. There is a poil or stove in one parlour, and a fireplace in
    the other.

    Mon. 21st--I went to a subscription concert. Prince Edward's
    band of the 7th Fusiliers played, and some of the officers of
    the Fusiliers. The music was thought excellent. The band costs
    the Prince eight hundred a year.

    Sat. 26th.--A Mr. Hazeel, who is lately come from the River la
    Tranche (the Thames in Middlesex, U.C.), dined with us, and
    confirms the favourable opinion we have entertained of the
    country on its banks. We supped at Major Watson's. Mrs. Watson
    appeared pleasing. Mrs. Caldwell, wife of Coll. Caldwell, was
    there.

Note.--There was a Major Watson on the staff at Quebec in 1791. He
belonged to the 3rd Foot Guards. He became Major-General, 20th December,
1793.

[Illustration: The Recollet Church--Interior View.]

    Sun. 27th--I went to church. The service is performed in a room
    occasionally used as a Council Chamber. Prince Edward always
    goes to church, and his band plays during the service. On the
    death of the two Jesuits the Recollet Church will devolve to the
    English, and as these men are very old, the English Government
    do not think it necessary to build a church for the use of
    Protestants; indeed, the French allow us to use the Recollet
    Church between the hours of their service, but as they will not
    admit of fires in it, the Council Chamber is generally used as a
    church in the winter.

Note.--The Recollet Church in 1791 was situated on the site of the
present English Cathedral. The Convent gardens occupied the site of the
present Court House. The picture is from a drawing showing the interior
of the church restored after the Siege of Quebec.

    Mon. 28th--I went to a concert, and afterwards to a dance at the
    Fusiliers' Barracks.

Note.--The Fusiliers' Barracks were on the site of the present City
Hall, Quebec.

    Tues. 29th--I supped at Major Stewart's, of the Royal Regiment
    of Artillery, and met Mrs. P. V. (full name not in MSS.), the
    most unpleasing woman I have seen in this place. She is just
    arrived from London.

Note.--Major John Stewart became Lieutenant-Colonel of the regiment in
1793.

    Wed. 30th--St. Andrew's Day. Coll. Simcoe dined with Dr. Mabane
    at Woodfield, near Quebec. He was an army surgeon, came into the
    Council at Quebec, amassed money, and lived what is called most
    hospitably, far beyond his fortune.

Note.--Judge Adam Mabane was a member of the first Executive Council of
Quebec (1775). He at one time resided at Woodfield, formerly "Samos,"
which is situated three miles from Quebec. It was an elegant mansion and
richly laid out estate. In 1646, the Company of New France owned the
estate surrounding Woodfield. After various owners it passed in 1731
into the hands of Monseigneur Dosquet, Bishop of Samos, who built the
dwelling house. He was consecrated Bishop of Samos in 1726, and
evidently gave the name of the diocese to the house. 1733 he was made
Bishop of Quebec, having been for three years coadjutor to Monseigneur
Duplessis-Mornay. In 1763, the land on which the house stood was
conceded by the Quebec Seminary to Thomas Ainslie, who renamed the
dwelling "Woodfield," and in 1769, Judge Adam Mabane acquired it. He
died in 1792, and his sister Miss Isabella Mabane bought it in 1794,
holding it until 1805, when it was purchased by the late Honorable
Matthew Bell, who in 1816 sold it to Mr. William Sheppard.

[Illustration: Judge Mabane.]

The original house was built on the brow of the hill overlooking the St.
Lawrence. It was of stone, one storey high, peaked roof, after the style
of architecture which prevailed in those days, something the same as
that of the manor house at Beauport. Judge Mabane made many alterations,
adding a second storey and two pavilion wings connected with the house
by corridors. In 1775-6, it was used as an hospital for American
soldiers. In December, 1842, the house was destroyed by fire and a new
residence built by Mr. Sheppard. In 1847 Woodfield was sold to Mr.
Thomas Gibb, who exchanged it with his brother, Mr. James Gibb. In 1879,
the estate was sold as a site for a rural cemetery.

The information concerning Samos is from an excellent paper written by
P. B. Casgrain, K.C., Clerk of Circuit Court, Quebec, and presented to
the Royal Society of Canada in 1906.

    Thurs. 1st Dec.--A fine, clear day. I walked near three miles to
    Major Holland's, Surveyor-General, where I saw some fine prints
    of Italy and Mount Vesuvius.

    Observing that the stoves are generally heated to an excessive
    degree, I was told that in this house they were always moderate.
    I looked at the Fahrenheit's thermometer in the room, and it was
    74°. They said that it had been 86° at Chief Justice Smith's a
    few evenings ago.

[Illustration: The Residence Known as Samos.

(_From a Drawing in possession of P. B. Casgrain, Quebec._)]

[Illustration: Surv.-Gen. Holland.]

Note.--Major Samuel Holland was born in England in 1717, receiving his
military education there and in Holland. At an early age he entered the
Army as Lieutenant of Artillery and served some time on the Continent.
In 1756 he was promoted to a captaincy and in the following year was
appointed aide-de-camp to General Wolfe. He took part in the expedition
against Louisbourg and was engineer-in-chief with Wolfe and Saunders at
Quebec. According to some critics he stood near Wolfe when that officer
fell. In 1763 Holland was appointed Surveyor-General of Quebec and
Director of Surveys in British North America, and also a member of the
Council, Quebec. Many of the manuscript plans in the Dominion Archives
are signed by him. During his stay in Quebec, Prince Edward paid Holland
many visits at his old mansion on the Ste. Foy Road. He married Marie
Josephte Rolet, by whom he had eight children, the eldest, Colonel John
F. Holland, being the first British subject born on Prince Edward
Island. The only living grandson of the Surveyor-General is Augustus E.
C. Holland (son of Frederic Braham Holland), of Wallace Bridge, N.S. A.
E. Holland, of St. Eleanor's, P.E.I., is a great-grandson through his
father, Samuel Holland, Jr., while Miss Marion Holland, of Melbourne,
Que., and Mrs. Alton Rowland, of Windsor Mills, Que., daughters of the
late H. A. P. Holland, are also great-grandchildren of the
Surveyor-General.

    From hence I went in an open carriole (which is a sort of phæton
    body on a sledge or runners, shod with iron instead of wheels)
    to Woodfield, to call on Dr. Mabane's sister. It is three miles
    from Quebec, a beautiful situation among woods, on the steep and
    high banks of the St. Lawrence, and within a mile from Wolfe's
    Cove, the spot where Wolfe landed. From hence I went to "Sans
    Bruit," a house of Coll. Caldwell, let to a Mr. Philip Tosey, a
    Church of England clergyman, who emigrated from Sussex. He is
    military chaplain, and is also engaged in clearing 7,000 acres
    of land, and of his skill in farming Mr. Young, the
    agriculturist, has written so largely. I walked from hence to
    Quebec, two miles. It is fatiguing to walk on snow when not
    perfectly frozen, and my half boots were heavy with icicles.

[Illustration: Canadian Carriole.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--"Sans Bruit," on the Ste. Foy Road, was bought by Colonel Murray,
a nephew of General Murray, and named "Sans Bruit," which means "without
noise." It appears that on one occasion the Colonel wrote to a merchant
in the Lower Town asking him to send him a list of articles, and at the
foot of the letter he wrote "Sans Bruit, 1 June." The merchant, thinking
that this was simply a caution to him to deliver the goods without
noise, arrived at the house at night and as secretly as possible. The
Colonel heard the disturbance at the door, and discovered that the
merchant was doing his best to call attention to his presence with the
least noise possible. Explanations were given, but the merchant still
thought that "_Sans Bruit_" was simply a word of caution, and could not
possibly be the name of a residence.

Rev. Philip Tosey was appointed rector of the parish of Quebec in 1786.
He was the second authorized Protestant minister in the city and was
also Ecclesiastical Commissary for the Eastern District.

    Fri. 2nd--We dined at Belmont, four miles from Quebec, Coll.
    Caldwell's, a very indifferent house in appearance, but
    comfortable within. I nearly fainted with the heat this evening,
    and was told that Fahrenheit thermometer in this drawing-room
    had one evening been at 100. I eat part of a metiffe, a bird
    between a wild goose (the outarde) and a tame one. It was much
    better than the tame goose. I found it so cold coming home after
    supper in a covered carriole that I wore one of the fencing
    masks lined with fur which Capt. Stevenson gave me.

Note.--The estate of Belmont, on the north side of the Ste. Foy Road,
near Quebec, originally belonged to the Jesuit Fathers. After passing
through different hands it came into the possession of Honourable
Colonel Henry Caldwell, who was Assistant Quartermaster-General under
Wolfe, in 1759. He settled in Quebec after the conquest, held the
Provincial rank of lieutenant-colonel and was appointed to the
Legislative Council in 1792. In 1794 he became Receiver-General of the
Province. Colonel Caldwell built the mansion, which was burned in 1798
and rebuilt in 1800. He died there in 1810. During the years that
followed the property was owned by different parties until the late
manager of the Beauport Asylum bought it, and it is now a private
sanitarium, known as the "Belmont Retreat."

[Illustration: Belmont, Near Quebec.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Sat. 3rd--Coll. Simcoe set out for Montreal, accompanied by
    Capt. Stevenson. They wore large beaver coats, and the carriole
    was filled with buffalo skins. I copied some views of Italy that
    Major Holland lent me.

Note.--I find mention of Captain Stevenson in a letter of General
Simcoe, dated 6th September, 1791. Simcoe refers to Captain Stevenson in
these words: "I have recommended him to the office of Deputy
Quarter-Master General, to relinquish the idea of not joining his
regiment till the spring, and to accompany me to Quebec, not thinking it
fitting in respect to the commission with which I am honoured that if I
should be blown off the St. Lawrence into an American port that I should
arrive there unattended, and in case of personal accident that those
whom I value more than life would be without a protector."

[Illustration: Officers' Carriole.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Sun. 4th--Mrs. Tosey, wife of the military chaplain, carried me
    to church in a carriole like a narrow coach, which, from its
    length, was much easier than those usually used, but too heavy
    for one horse to draw with ease, therefore seldom used.

[Illustration: Ruins of Intendant's Palace, Quebec, 1791.

(_From an Engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa._)]

    Mon. 5th--A thaw to-day; the air raw and cold, and the roads
    full of cahots--a word used in Quebec for the holes and pits
    made on the snow roads--makes driving very jolty; but it did not
    deter Prince Edward and a party from driving 8 miles to the
    village of Lorette. It is the custom here to make parties to
    dine in the country at a distance of ten miles. They often carry
    a cold dinner, and return to a dance in the evening, and this
    in the severe weather, which seems as much relished by the
    English as the Canadians. Their partners must be very agreeable,
    or they could never have liked these parties. I drank tea with
    Mrs. Watson, wife of Major Watson.

    A slight shock of an earthquake was felt in Saint Louis Street
    this evening. Quebec is divided into Upper and Lower town. The
    latter is inhabited by the merchants for the convenience of the
    harbour and quays. They have spacious houses three stories high,
    built of dark stone, but the streets are narrow and gloomy. In
    the suburbs of St. Foy are ruins of the Intendant's Palace,
    which was a very large building. The upper town is more airy and
    pleasant, though the houses in general are less.

[Illustration: The Fort and Chateau St. Louis, Quebec.

(_From an Engraving in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa._)]

Note.--Ste. Foy--this form of spelling has been used by the Abbé Scott,
who found it in the original documents. When Talon filled the office of
Intendant, he had a brewery built at the Palais, which was finished in
1671. This industry, quite a new one in the country, did not prove as
profitable as expected. Thereupon the Intendant made the building his
residence, and the Superior Council held its sittings there. The
Council, when first established, held its sittings in a house called the
"Palais" at the corner of the Place d'Armes and St. Louis Street, on the
very spot, in fact, where the present Court House stands. Talon's
brewery was destroyed by fire in the night of the 5th January, 1713. On
its ruins was erected the splendid building of the Intendant's Palace,
of which Kalm and Charlevoix speak in terms of admiration. It was almost
entirely demolished during the siege of 1759. At the present day a large
brewery stands on the ruins of the Intendant's Palace, and thus the site
is restored to its former use.

    Mon. 5th--The Chateau, the residence of the Governor, just above
    the lower town, contains some very good rooms built by Sir
    Frederick Haldimand. The situation is very high, and commands a
    most noble prospect down the river. The old chateau is in a
    ruinous state, but it is used for public offices, and convenient
    for the Governor as being so near his own residence that there
    is only a courtyard between them.

Note.--Champlain in 1620 built the first Fort St. Louis. In the year
1646, a contract was passed between the Company of New France and the
contractors for more extensive works of defence in Quebec. In the
following year the foundation of the first Chateau was laid. The Chateau
was built within the boundary of the Fort, and the distinction between
Chateau and Fort has not always been preserved. Many imagine that the
famous Chateau St. Louis was but one structure, whilst in reality it was
composed at one time of three, viz.: Fort St. Louis, Chateau St. Louis
and Haldimand Castle. The Chateau overhung the cliffs, as may be seen by
the view in "Hawkins" and other works, and in fact it occupied the site
of the present terrace. In 1784, while levelling the yard at the
Chateau, workmen dug up a large stone with a Maltese cross on it,
bearing date 1647. In later years there was some controversy as to
whether the date on the stone was 1646 or 1647, but it was finally
decided to be the latter, and that the old relic was intended to
commemorate a double event, viz:-the years in which the Fort St. Louis
Bastion was begun and finished, 1646 and 1647. The stone was first
placed in the cheek of the gate of the new building, Haldimand Castle,
at the rear, about on the site of the present Chateau, and subsequently
was placed over the entrance to the hotel known as the Chateau
Frontenac. The Chateau St. Louis was rebuilt in 1694-8 and another
storey added in 1811. It was destroyed by fire in 1834. Sir Frederick
Haldimand lived there from 1777 to 1784.

[Illustration: The Old Chateau Stone.]

    Wed. 7th--Gen'l. Clarke's servant threw himself from the Chateau
    into the Lower Town, some hundred feet, without breaking a bone
    or being killed. I received a letter from Coll. Simcoe, who
    travelled in the carriole to Three Rivers, 100 miles, where he
    found the river open, and was obliged to cross it in a boat and
    proceed the remaining 100 miles to Montreal in a calèche, a
    carriage like a gig, with a seat in front for the driver. He
    reached Pt. aux Trembles, on the island of Montreal and within
    three leagues of Montreal, the second day from Quebec.

    Sun. 11th--I dined at Coll. Caldwell's, and soon after I
    returned home Coll. Simcoe arrived from Montreal, which place he
    left yesterday. He brought with him Mr. Talbot, of the 24th
    Regt., a relation of Lady Buckingham, who was aide-de-camp to
    the Marquis while he was Lieutenant of Ireland, and at whose
    request Coll. Simcoe takes Mr. Talbot into his family.

[Illustration: Haldimand Castle, Quebec, Residence of Sir Frederick
Haldimand.

(_From a Water-color by H. Bunnell, 1887._)]

[Illustration: Colonel Talbot.]

[Illustration: Colonel Talbot's Residence, Port Talbot.

(_From a Sketch sent to England in 1806, and copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--Thomas Talbot, son of Richard Talbot and Margaret, afterwards
(1831) Baroness Talbot, was born at Malahide, near Dublin, on 19th July,
1771. In May, 1783, when little more than eleven years of age, he
received a commission in the army, as ensign in the 66th Regiment of
Foot. In September of the same year he became a lieutenant, his
retirement on half pay, from 1784 to 1787, immediately following. The
Lord Lieutenant of Ireland at that time was the Marquis of Buckingham, a
relative of Talbot's, and he, with Arthur Wellesley, afterwards Duke of
Wellington, acted as aides to the Marquis. In 1790, Wellesley became a
member of the Irish Parliament, and Talbot joined the 24th Regiment at
Quebec. Soon after Governor Simcoe's arrival in Canada, Talbot became
his private and confidential secretary, remaining a member of the
Governor's family until 1794. In June of that year he returned to
England, having been summoned to join his regiment. In 1796 he was
appointed Lieutenant-Colonel of the 5th Foot, which had been stationed
at Niagara during the period he had been on Simcoe's staff, and three
years later commanded the second battalion of the regiment in Holland.
Talbot returned to Canada in 1801, seeking a place to establish a
settlement. Through an oversight he did not accomplish his purpose and
again went to England, where he was assisted in his efforts by General
Simcoe. In 1803, Colonel Talbot took up permanent residence in Upper
Canada, receiving a grant of 5,000 acres in the Township of Dunwich. He
founded what is known as the Talbot Settlement, which in 1831 was
estimated at 40,000 souls. During his residence in Canada, Colonel
Talbot occasionally visited England, and it was on his last visit, in
1851, that he met the companion of his early youth, Arthur Wellesley,
then Duke of Wellington. It is a coincidence that they died within a few
months of each other, the "Iron Duke" passing away on 14th September,
1852, and the "Founder of the Talbot Settlement" on 6th February, 1853.

The house was situated on the cliff at the top of a green slope rising
to the west from the mouth of the Talbot Creek, in Dunwich. The place
has always been called Port Talbot although there is neither port nor
village in the vicinity. The site of Colonel Talbot's home is now
occupied by a residence built by Colonel (afterwards Lord) Airey about
1849, left of the wing shown in the picture on the brow of the hill,
nearest the creek.

    Thurs. 15th--We walked to the provision store, a road by the
    riverside below Cape Diamond, always sheltered and well beaten.

    Sun. 18th--We dined at Belmont.

    Mon. 19th--Dined and supped at Madame Báby's, wife of Monsr.
    (Hon.) François Báby, a member of the Legislative Council. I ate
    part of the moufle of the orignale, or elk. They are sometimes
    shot by the Indians, and much esteemed. It was a very rich dish,
    with an excellent sauce. I am told the lip of the ox is
    sometimes sold for it. A pie made of _crête de coys_ (a pie
    garnished with cocks' combs) is also a very favourite dish among
    the Canadians, and easily procured, as quantities of poultry are
    killed in the beginning of the winter and kept hung up in a
    frozen state. The poultry eat dry, but when preserved in barrels
    of snow, as is the custom at New York, they retain the juices
    much better.

    Tues. 20th--We supped at Mr. Thomas Ainslie's, the Collector of
    Customs here.

    Wed. 21st--We dined with Mr. Jenkins Williams, the Clerk of the
    Legislative Council. The supper was very elegant. Mrs. Williams
    is a very genteel woman, and paints beautifully and dresses very
    well. She has not been here above two years, having been
    educated in London.

Note.--Jenkins Williams was Judge Jenkins Williams of the District of
Quebec in 1797. He succeeded Judge Mabane as Judge of the Court of
Common Pleas in 1792.

[Illustration: Mgr. Hubert.]

    Thurs. 22nd--I had an order from Mgr. François Hubert, the
    Catholic Bishop of Quebec, for admittance to the Convent des
    Ursulines, where I went to-day with Madame Báby. The Superieure
    (La Mère Saint Louis Gonzague) is a very pleasing, conversible
    woman of good address. Her face and manner reminded me of Mrs.
    Gwillim (Mrs. Simcoe in this writing refers to a relative of her
    own, not her mother, who died at her birth). The nuns appeared
    cheerful, pleased to see visitors, and disposed to converse and
    ask questions. Their dress is black with a white hood, and some
    of them looked very pretty in it. They carry cleanliness and
    neatness to the greatest pitch of perfection in every part of
    the convent, and are industrious in managing a large garden.
    They educate children at this convent, taking both pensionnaires
    and day boarders. They make many decorations for their altars
    and church, and gild picture frames. They showed a fine piece of
    embroidery worked by an English nun, since dead. Some of them
    make boxes and pin cushions of birch bark, worked with dyed
    hair of the orignale or elk. It is so short that it must be put
    through the needle for every stitch, which makes it tedious. All
    sorts of cakes and sweetmeats are made here, and all the
    desserts in Quebec are furnished by the nuns. They dry apples in
    a very peculiar manner. They are like dried apricots. All these
    things are of use to maintain them, their finances being very
    moderate.

    Another convent is called the Hotel Dieu, for the reception of
    the sick, whether French or English. It is attended by the
    medical men on the staff, who speak highly of the attention
    payed by the nuns to the sick people. The General Hospital is a
    convent a mile out of the town, where sick and insane people are
    received.

Note.--Mgr. Jean François Hubert was born in Quebec on the 23rd
February, and became Bishop of Quebec on 12th June, 1788. He died at the
General Hospital, Quebec, on 17th October, 1797, Mother St. Louis de
Gonzague, who was several times Superior of the Ursulines Convent, died
on the 23rd March, 1802.

[Illustration: Convent of the Ursulines, Quebec, 1791.

(_From a Drawing by Richard Short._)]

Note.--The General Hospital of Quebec occupied the site of the Convent
of the Recollets on the banks of the River St. Charles. It was first
occupied as an hospital on 30th October, 1692. In 1740 and 1859,
additions were made, and considerable repairs in 1850. There do not
appear to have been many editions of pictures since 1743. The present
hospital is on the same site as it was in 1791.

    Fri. 23--The great church or cathedral stands in the centre of
    the town, and appears to be filled with people at all hours of
    the day. It is a handsome building. Near to it is the seminary,
    where boys are educated, and some of the Catholic clergy reside
    there. The Jesuits' or Recollet Church is a handsome building,
    ornamented with some pictures, but no fine paintings. Two models
    of ships are suspended in it, placed there in commemoration of
    the arrival of some of the settlers from France. The only two
    Jesuits living have spacious apartments near the church, and a
    good library and large gardens. I went to a subscription ball
    this evening. There were three rooms well lighted, and the
    company well dressed.

Note.--The Cathedral stands on the same ground as in 1791. The first
parish church at Quebec was destroyed by fire in 1640 and the new
structure, which afterwards became the Cathedral, was not commenced till
September, 1644, under the name of Notre Dame de la Paix. It was opened
in 1650. During the siege of Quebec in 1759 nearly all the wooden
portion of the church was destroyed, but it was restored between 1769
and 1771. In 1843 considerable changes were made at the east end, but
the building is practically the same in the interior as it was in 1791.

[Illustration: The General Hospital, Quebec.

(_From an old Drawing in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa._)]

    Sat. 24th--Dr. T. M. Nooth says a great light was observed last
    night in the air in a direction N.E. beyond St. Paul's Bay,
    which is 30 leagues below Quebec, opposite Isle aux Coudres, in
    the St Lawrence. He supposed an eruption had taken place from a
    volcano, which is believed from the reports of Indians to be in
    those parts, and a fresh eruption might have taken place there,
    occasioned by an earthquake which was severely felt a few days
    since near St. Paul's Bay. However, there is much of conjecture
    in the supposition about the existence of this volcano.

Note.--The Quebec _Gazette_, of the 22nd December, 1791, contains a
letter from St. Paul's Bay written on December 11th, giving an account
of a violent earthquake that occurred on the 6th at Bay St. Paul and
relating the fact that there were thirty shocks in one day. On the 17th,
about five o'clock in the evening "a globe of fire appearing to the eye
of the size of a 48-pound cannon ball was observed in the sky coming
from the southwest striking towards the northeast, disappearing in its
perpendicular descent above St. Paul's Bay, after bursting with an
explosion." This strange "great light" which Dr. Nooth observed on the
evening of the 23rd may have been a repetition of "the globe of fire" on
the 15th.

    Sun. 25th--Christmas Day. I went with Madame Báby at 5 in the
    morning to the Cathedral Church, to see the illuminations of the
    altar, which to those who have not seen the highly-decorated
    Roman Catholic churches in Europe is worth seeing. The singing
    and chanting was solemn. I was wrapped up very much, and wore a
    kind of cloth lined with eiderdown, a very comfortable
    head-dress; but the cold was intense, for the Roman Catholics
    will not admit of fires in their churches, lest the pictures
    should be spoiled. I saw no fine pictures.

    Mon. 26th--This day the division of the Province of Quebec into
    Upper and Lower Canada, and the new constitution given to the
    former, was announced by proclamation. There were dinners at the
    hotels and illuminations at night to commemorate this event.

Note.--This proclamation was issued at Quebec on the 18th of November,
1791, and decreed that the division of the two provinces should take
effect on 26th December, 1791.

[Illustration: The Cathedral, Quebec, as Restored.

(_From Routhier's "Quebec."_)]

    Wed. 28th--I was at a very pleasant ball at the Chateau, and
    danced with Prince Edward.

    Thurs. 29th--We drove to Woodfield, and admired the beautiful
    scenery around it.

    Sat. 31st--We drove to Belmont. We saw two Indians from the
    village of Lorette who had mocassins to sell, a kind of leather
    shoe made of untanned deer skins, which I was glad to buy for
    the children on account of their softness. These Lorette Indians
    were originally Hurons, converted, but reluctantly, by the
    Jesuits. They speak French, and are so intermixed with that
    people that they scarcely appear to differ but in dress. They
    wear shirts, leggings and blankets, and the men wear fur or
    cloth caps.

    I walked this evening at nine o'clock to Fort Louis Gate, one of
    the old gates of the city.

Note.--The Indians at Lorette, about eight miles from Quebec, were of
the Huron tribe. After the Indian massacres of 1648-9, parties of the
tribe sought refuge in different places, one section seeking refuge on
the Island of Orleans. They were afterwards located in Quebec, and upon
Marquis de Tracy effecting a truce in 1665 with the Iroquois, the
enemies of the Hurons, the latter left the city. After several flittings
they finally, in 1697, settled at Lorette, where some hundred
descendants of the once warlike race live to-day.

[Illustration: St. Louis Gate, 1791.

(_From a Drawing in the Dominion Archives, Ottawa._)]

Mrs. Simcoe had reference to St. Louis Gate, the entrance to Quebec from
the west. The Fort St. Louis stood on the edge of the cliff, and the
entrance to the remains of the Fort in 1792 was through the Chateau
Haldimand.

    Sat. 31st--The moon shone bright, and, however intense the cold
    is here, it is so extremely still at night that it is less felt
    than in England, where a less degree of cold is attended with
    wind. There is little wind here, except with a snowstorm of fine
    snow. The French call it poudre or powdered snow, and to travel
    with that blowing in one's face is very disagreeable. The
    Canadians wear scanty, thick woollen coats, and sometimes
    leather ones, with hoods to them, over a bonnet rouge, a red
    bonnet. The habitants call it a capitshaw, and their coats are
    tied round with a coloured worsted sash. They have always a pipe
    in their mouths. The French women wear long, thin linen cloaks,
    sometimes hoods lined with eiderdown, but often walk in the
    street with only a muslin cap.

    There was an anniversary dinner to-day, attended by those
    gentlemen who particularly distinguished themselves in the
    defence of the town when attacked by Montgomery on 31st Dec,
    1775. Coll. Caldwell was among the most active persons on this
    occasion.

[Illustration: Mons Gravé de la Rive.]

    This day five years since (31st Dec, 1786) the air became in a
    few hours so dark that it was necessary to light candles. At
    three o'clock black clouds were continually rolling onwards from
    the southwest. The darkness continued the whole of the next day,
    when a person could not be discerned on the opposite side of the
    street. It was supposed to be occasioned by the eruption of a
    volcano. Père Gravé, Superieur, Seminaire, believes the report
    of Indians, who assert that they have seen a burning mountain to
    the north-east of St. Paul's Bay.

    Accounts received from Montreal of the defeat of 2,000 of the
    people of the United States, about twenty miles from the Miami
    Fort, by 1,400 Indians. They had barricaded their camp with
    flour barrels, etc. The Indians attacked them, beat them, and
    took six pieces of cannon, all their provisions, new clothing,
    etc., killed 1,200 men, Coll. Butler and other officers, among
    whom, it was supposed, St. Clair fell. The troops retreated and
    were pursued by 400 Indians, who probably would have destroyed
    them all if they had not stopped to plunder.

Note.--Mons. François Gravé de la Rive during the interval between 1768
and 1802, was several times Superior of the Quebec Seminary. He was born
in France and came to Canada in 1754, and for many years was Vicar of
the Diocese of Quebec. He died, aged 71, in the Hotel Dieu, Quebec, on
4th February, 1802, and was buried in the Seminary Chapel.

[Illustration: Colonel Butler.]

John Butler was born in New London, Conn., in 1725, his father, an Irish
officer, having come to the North American Colonies with his regiment
about 1711. Butler's first service was as a captain in the Indian
Department in the expedition against Crown Point under Sir William
Johnson, where he greatly distinguished himself. He also served under
Abercrombie at Ticonderoga and with Bradstreet at the capture of Fort
Frontenac. He accompanied Johnson against Fort Niagara as second in
command of the Indians and after General Prideaux's death he followed
him in the command. He afterwards served throughout the Revolutionary
War in command of the famous corps of "Rangers" bearing his name. This
corps was disbanded June, 1784. Butler, after the war, was appointed
Deputy-Superintendent of the Indians. He died near Niagara in 1796, and
was buried in the private burying ground of the family.

[Illustration: Gen. St. Clair.]

General St. Clair was an American General of considerable reputation. He
commanded at Ticonderoga in 1777 and had to evacuate the fort on
Burgoyne's attack in July. He was Governor of the Ohio territory in
1789-1802. The fight at Miami between the Indians and the United States
troops occurred on the 3rd November, 1791. He was defeated in an
ambuscade by Indians near Fort Recovery in Ohio. After defeat he
resigned his command and was succeeded by General Wayne, who was
appointed to conduct the operations with a newly recruited force. (See
Archives, Q. 57, p. 178.)




  CHAPTER VII.

  _MRS. SIMCOE SPENDS AN ENJOYABLE WINTER._


From the day of her arrival in Quebec, Mrs. Simcoe's time had been fully
occupied. It was one round of unalloyed pleasure. Everyone in military
and social circles seemed determined that there should be nothing
lacking to make her winter's sojourn enjoyable. The deeds of hospitality
were exemplified in the fullest sense of the term and ofttimes after the
return of the Governor and his wife to England, the memories of the
pleasant months spent in the "Ancient City" during the winter and spring
of 1791-2 were the subject of conversation at Wolford. The Simcoes made
many friends in Quebec. Mrs. Simcoe was a most lovable woman, highly
educated, well informed, bright, cheerful, and always ready to join in
the social festivities that were a great feature in Quebec a century
ago. Her husband during this period won the lasting friendship of Prince
Edward. They seemed by instinct to be drawn to each other. Between them
a personal correspondence continued up to the time of the General's
death. The intimacy, begun in Quebec, was cemented in the years that
followed. It was a generous friendship, and Prince Edward, then and
after he became Duke of Kent, never forgot to write from time to time a
friendly line to Simcoe.

[Illustration: Bishop Plessis.]

But, with all the social appointments, Mrs. Simcoe found time to keep up
her diary, and her first record in 1792 was of a sermon she had heard in
the old Cathedral of Quebec.

    Fri. 6th Jan., 1792--Le Jour des Rois--the Epiphany visit of the
    Wise Men to Christ. I went with Madame Báby to the Cathedral,
    and heard Monsr. du Plessis, the Bishop's Chaplain, preach a
    most excellent sermon on the subject of the Kings of the East
    seeking Jesus Christ. His action was animated and his sermon
    impressive. The Bishop himself was present. He wore a white
    muslin dress and a rich mantle embroidered with gold; blue silk
    gloves, worked with gold; his mittens pink and silver, blue and
    gold. He changed them two or three times during the service,
    which had a theatrical, poor and unfit appearance.

Note.--Joseph Octave Plessis was born at Montreal in March, 1762. He was
ordained priest at Quebec on 11th March, 1786, and from time to time was
employed as professor of humanity at the College of St. Raphael, also as
Secretary to the Bishop of Quebec and curate of the capital. In
September, 1797, he was created coadjutor to Bishop Denault, and
obtained the royal acceptance through General Prescott. He succeeded
Mgr. Denault and took possession of his seat on 17th January, 1806. He
left for England and Rome in 1819, and in consideration of services
rendered to England during the French Revolution and during the War of
1812, he met with a kind and hearty reception from Lord Bathurst. He
died at the General Hospital, Quebec, on 4th December, 1825. Bishop
Plessis was the greatest man who ever occupied the Roman Catholic
episcopal seat at Quebec since François de Laval Montmorency.

St. Joseph Street, in the suburb of St. Roch, Quebec, was named after
Bishop Plessis, and it is interesting to note that the church in St.
Roch's was built by him on land donated by Mr. John Mure, a
Presbyterian. The church was dedicated to St. Joseph.

    Sat. 7th--Fahrenheit's thermometer 23 degrees below. I rub silk
    gowns with flannel to see the beautiful streams of fire which
    are emitted with a crackling noise during the cold weather.

    Tues. 10th--I bought an eiderdown quilt which cost £4 16s.

Note.--It is generally admitted that money has doubled in value since
1791, so £4 16s. would now be worth £9 12s. or $36.85. Lambert says in
his Travels (1806-8) that the dollar or Spanish piastre was worth five
shillings in Canadian currency, and that to bring sterling money into
Canadian currency, one-ninth must be added.

    Thurs. 12th--I drove out in a covered carriole.

    Wed. 18th--A ball at the Chateau. This being Queen Charlotte's
    birth-night, there were near 300 people. The ladies were well
    dressed.

    Sat. 21st--Miss Johnson dined with me, and we went to a dance in
    the evening at the Fusiliers' mess room--very agreeable. The
    thermometer is 24 degrees below. In the New York paper I read of
    "a leaf imported from Botany Bay, which when dried goes off by
    the application of a match with an explosion like gunpowder, and
    the air is agreeably perfumed."

Note.--Miss Johnson was Ann, eldest daughter of Sir John Johnson. She
married, in 1797, Colonel Edward Macdonell, Deputy Quartermaster
General.

    Tues. 24th--I gave a dance and supper to a dozen of the 7th
    Fusiliers and as many young dancing ladies. My rooms being small
    obliged me to invite so few, and only those who danced.

    Sun. 29th--Drove in a covered carriole towards the Isle of
    Orleans, an island in the St. Lawrence seven miles below Quebec.
    The ice was so rough and snow uneven that I was almost seasick.

    Mon. 30th--I went in an open carriole to see the Falls of
    Montmorency, six miles from Quebec. The river roars over a rocky
    bed among woods before it reaches the precipice, over which it
    falls 280 feet. The rocky sides are covered on the summit with
    wood. Sir Frederick Haldimand built a summer house projecting
    over the water, supported by beams. We descended to it by steps
    cut in the rock, and from it we had a fine view of the Fall. Sir
    Frederick Haldimand built a good house near the bank of the
    river and commanding a fine prospect. Prince Edward hired it
    last year, but as he went to Quebec every day, found the stony
    roads prejudicial to his horses' feet.

Note.--Sir Frederick Haldimand (1718-1791), lieutenant-general, colonel
commandant of the 60th Foot, was a Swiss by birth. In 1756 he was
lieutenant-colonel of the Royal Americans, afterwards the 60th Foot and
now the King's Royal Rifle Corps, then being recruited in America under
command of the Earl of Loudoun. On the 27th of June, 1778, he was
appointed to succeed Sir Guy Carleton, afterwards the first Lord
Dorchester, as Governor and Commander-in-Chief in Canada, which post he
held until 1784, when he returned to England. As an administrator in
Canada he is accused, says Lee in the National Biography, of being harsh
and arbitrary and more than one action for false imprisonment was
successfully maintained against him on his return to England.
Haldimand's commissions, 1758-85, including the entire records that
accumulated during his public career, are in the British Museum and
copies are in the Archives Department in Ottawa. He built the residence
known as Haldimand House, Quebec.

[Illustration: Sir F. Haldimand.]

Of the summer house, the Baroness Riedesel says in her diary: "When we
first went to see that sublime scene (Montmorency Falls) I happened to
say to the General that it must be delightful to have a little dwelling
opposite to it. Three weeks later (in the summer of 1782) we accompanied
him thither a second time and after having climbed up a steep ascent and
the detached rocks, which were connected by small bridges and reminded
me of some descriptions of Chinese gardens, we at last reached the top,
where the General begged my hand to show me into a small house, which
was as it were suspended on the cataract . . . . . The foundations of
the house consisted of eight strong beams laid athwart beneath which the
cataract hurried down with tremendous velocity."

"The good house" Mrs. Simcoe refers to was Montmorency House, which is
not to be confused with Chateau Haldimand, the addition built in 1784 to
the Castle of St. Louis. With Montmorency House Prince William Henry
fell in love when in Canada; from 1791 to 1794 Prince Edward made it his
home in the summer time; and now the Haldimand House--Kent Lodge--is a
summer hotel, the home of many a tourist, who comes to be thrilled by
the rushing waters of the Montmorency.

In the Supplement to the Quebec _Gazette_, 22nd December, 1792, is the
following notice. "For sale, the elegant villa of the late Sir Frederick
Haldimand, K.B., delightfully situated near the Falls of Montmorency,
with the farm house, Quebec, 1st December, 1791."

    Tues. 31st--A very pleasant dance at the Chateau this evening.

    Tues. Feb. 7th--At two o'clock the kitchen chimney was on fire.
    It was soon extinguished, as the people here are expert in using
    fire engines. The houses being covered with shingles (wood in
    the shape of tiles), fires spread rapidly if not immediately
    put out. Prince Edward, General Clarke, etc., dined with Coll.
    Simcoe, and this accident retarded the dinner, so I went to bed
    before the dinner.

    Wed. 8th--Supped at Mrs. Smith's, wife of the Chief Justice.

Note.--Chief Justice William Smith, born at New York, 1728, educated at
Yale, was appointed a member of His Majesty's Council in 1769. After the
evacuation of New York he withdrew to England with Sir Guy Carleton, who
was at that time commander-in-chief. Mr. Smith remained in England until
1786 when he was appointed first Chief Justice of Canada and continued
to hold the office until his death seven years later. His second son,
Honorable William Smith, wrote our first Canadian history in English.

[Illustration: Chief Justice Smith.]

    Thurs. 9th--Coll. and Mrs. Caldwell and Major and Mrs. Watson
    dined with us. We went to the Assembly, where an account was
    brought of our house being burnt down. Coll. Simcoe went home
    and found it only the chimney on fire. I was not told of it,
    though an officious man afterwards assured me he would have
    informed me had he known it.

    Sat. 11th--We supped at Madame Báby's, but not till 12 o'clock,
    it being a fast day. Then there was a good dinner.

    Sun. 12th--Walked by the sea.

[Illustration: The Provision Store, Quebec.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Mon. 13th--We walked to the provision store before breakfast;
    dined at Belmont. The thermometer 3 degrees below.

    Tues. 14th--Supper at Major Stewart's (of the Royal Regiment of
    Artillery). The Prince was there. During the winter large masses
    of ice float down the river, and the people who come to market
    from the opposite shore pass in canoes, which they quit when
    they come to one of these large bodies of ice, and carry their
    canoes across the ice on their shoulders and launch them again
    in the water, and this is repeated several times before they
    reach Quebec, where they sell a fat turkey for 15d. and
    provisions, all kinds, in proportion. The mode of crossing the
    river appears so difficult and dangerous that it seems hardly
    credible till it has been seen. This evening it was announced
    that "le pont est pris" (the bridge has formed), that is, there
    is now a complete body of ice filling up the river, and canoes
    will be no longer used, as carrioles will drive across, which is
    very useful to the peasants and very pleasant to those who drive
    for amusement, and this year the weather, having been calm and
    the wind with the tide when it froze, the ice is very smooth. It
    is seven years since a bridge was formed.

    Wed. 15th--Coll. Simcoe and I were going to walk on the ice
    bridge. As there was a narrow space containing water between the
    land and the ice, a plank was laid across, which Coll. Simcoe
    had passed, and stepping back to give me his hand, he slipped
    into the water, but luckily caught hold of the plank which
    supported him until the Canadians who were near and on my
    screaming out "Au secours" (help) assisted him out. Had the
    plank given way he must have gone under the ice, and it would
    have been impossible to have got out. We walked to Monsr.
    Baby's, and I ran home to order dry clothes to be brought there.

    Fri. 17th--I went to the ball at the Chateau. There was also a
    dance at the barracks to-night.

    Sat. 18th--One of the casmettes (or bombproof chambers) near
    Fort Louis Gate has been fitted up for a theatre. Some Canadian
    gentlemen represented the French play of "Le Medecin malgre lui"
    (Molière) and "La Comtesse D'Escarbagnas" (Molière). I was
    surprised those people, unused to see theatrical
    representations, could perform as well as they did, and I was
    much amused. The Fusiliers are going to act plays, and as Coll.
    Simcoe does not like to see officers so employed he does not
    intend to go to the theatre again. I went across the river to
    Point Levy yesterday. The ice was excellent, and the sun
    excessively hot. We walked as far as the church. The firs looked
    beautiful among the snow this bright day. We met the Prince in a
    carriole. I gathered bunches of berries from a low shrub Dr.
    Nooth called a clither. People cut holes in the ice and catch
    fish through them. Poisson d'or (gold fish) pickerall are the
    most esteemed fish.

Note.--Superintendent-General T. M. Nooth was on the staff of the Quebec
Hospital.

    Sun. 19th--Dined at Monsr. Báby. Met Madame Tonacour and Monsr.
    and Madame De Salaberry, etc.

[Illustration: Hon. François Báby.]

Note.--Colonel, the Honorable François Báby, Adjutant-General of Militia
of Lower Canada, was born in Montreal, 4th December, 1733. He was a
member of the Executive and Legislative Councils and deputy of the
French-Canadians to the Court of Great Britain in 1773. He married in
1786, Delle Marie-Anne Tarieu de Lanaudière. He took an active part,
together with his brother-in-law, Charles Tarieu de Lanaudière, then
A.D.C. to Lord Dorchester, in the events of the time. His death occurred
at Quebec in October, 1820.

Monsieur Ignace-Michel L. A. de Salaberry, whose father settled in
Canada in 1735, was born at the Manor House, Beauport, Que., 5th July,
1752, and was educated in France. He married Catherine François de
Hertel. Monsieur de Salaberry was a friend of the Duke of Kent. Colonel
Charles de Salaberry, hero of the Battle of Chateauguay, which took
place on 26th October, 1813, was the son of Monsieur and Madame de
Salaberry. She died at Beauport on 28th January, 1824, her husband's
death taking place on 22nd March, 1825.

[Illustration: Mons. de Salaberry.]

[Illustration: Mme. de Salaberry.]

    Mon. 20th--The heads of the French clergy dined with Coll.
    Simcoe--the Bishop, Monsr. Gravé the Vicar-General, Père Barré,
    etc. Père Barré quite an Irishman and too jocose for his
    station.

[Illustration: Father de Berey.]

Note.--From his wit and repartee, Mrs. Simcoe evidently thought Father
P. Felix de Berey, (pronounced Barry) an Irishman. He was, however, born
in Montreal, on 10th June, 1720, and elevated to the priesthood in 1743.
His father was a military officer, and Father de Berey was a military
almoner, wounded on the battlefield in ministering the last Sacraments.
He was the last Provincial of the Recollets in Canada. De Berey gave
dinners to the Governors, even to the Duke of Kent, and proposed a toast
in his honor. He was invited to the officers' mess and his witty remarks
and brilliant conversation were greatly appreciated there. He died 18th
May, 1800.

[Illustration: Mons. de Salaberry.]

    Tues. 21st--Madame Báby, Mons. and Madame de Salaberry, etc.,
    dined with us and stayed till two in the morning. Ther. 26
    degrees below.

    Sat. 25th--Walked to the provision store. The scene on the river
    is now a very gay one. Numbers are skating; carrioles driven
    furiously, as the Canadians usually do; and wooden huts are
    built on the snow, where cakes and liquor are sold, and they
    have stoves in their huts.

    Thurs. March 1st--Walked to Pt. Levy.

    Fri. 2nd--I gave a dance to forty people. The Prince was
    present. We have left the house we had in St. John Street, and
    taken one the back rooms of which look into the Ursuline
    gardens. By removing a wooden partition upstairs we have made a
    room, 45 feet long, with a tea room and a card room adjoining,
    which makes a good apartment for a dance, with a supper room
    below. The Fusiliers are the best dancers, well dressed, and the
    best-looking figures in a ballroom that I ever saw. They are all
    musical and like dancing, and bestow as much money, as other
    regiments usually spend in wine, in giving balls and concerts,
    which makes them very popular in this place, where dancing is so
    favourite an amusement that no age seems to exclude people from
    partaking of it; and, indeed, I find giving dances much the
    easiest mode of entertaining company, as well as the most
    pleasant to them. Mr. Talbot (Lieut. Talbot) manages all the
    etiquette of our house, and is _au fait_ in all those points
    which give weight in matters of no moment.

    Sun. 4th--Capt. Shaw, of the Queen's Rangers, and four other
    gentlemen arrived from Frederickstown, in New Brunswick, which
    is 370 miles from hence. They walked on snow shoes 240 miles in
    19 days, came up the river St. John, and crossed many small
    lakes. Their mode of travelling was to set out at daybreak, walk
    till twelve, when they stood ten minutes (not longer, because of
    the cold) to eat. They then resumed walking till half-past four,
    when they chose a spot, where there was good fire-wood, to
    encamp. Half the party (which consisted of 12) began felling
    wood; the rest dug away the snow till they had made a pit many
    feet in circumference, in which the fire was to be made. They
    cut cedar and pine branches, laid a blanket on them, and
    wrapping themselves in another, found it sufficiently warm, with
    their feet close to a large fire, which was kept up all night.
    Capt. McGill, who set out with them, cut his knee in felling
    wood, and was forced to stay at the Madawaska Settlement (now
    Edmundston, N.B.).

    One of the attendants, a Frenchman, used to the mode of
    travelling, carried 60 lbs. weight and outwalked them all. They
    steered by the sun, a river, and a pocket compass. Captain Shaw
    is a very sensible, pleasant Scotchman, a Highlander. His family
    are to come from New Brunswick to Upper Canada next summer.

    Capt. Shaw gave me a description of the moose deer, which they
    call here "Orignale," and of which we eat the moufle. Their legs
    are so long and their bodies so heavy that they step to the
    bottom of the snow, but they are so strong that they
    notwithstanding trot 10 miles an hour and travel through the
    most unbeaten country, subsisting on the moss of the trees and
    young boughs. They travel in droves, the strongest going first,
    and when they come to a good place for browsing stay till they
    have taken all the tender, and then seek another station. They
    may be tamed, but if several are not kept together, in the
    spring they will probably return to the woods. The moose deer is
    frequently met with in New Brunswick, and the caribou, which is
    so light an animal as scarcely to break the snow. I have seen a
    caribou at Mr. Finlay's. It was like an English fawn.

[Illustration: Colonel Shaw.]

Note.--Captain Æneas Shaw was a captain in the Queen's Rangers and
served in the American War. He settled in York (Toronto) in 1793 and
lived in a dwelling some hundred feet northwest of the present site of
Trinity College on Queen Street. He became Lieutenant-Colonel in 1799.
He attained the rank of Major-General, and was a member from June, 1793,
of the Executive Council of Upper Canada. General Shaw died 15th
February, 1815, and was buried in St. James' Churchyard, on the west
side of the cathedral. His grandson is Colonel George Shaw, formerly of
the Post Office Department, and in his time an active member of the
militia.

Captain John McGill was an officer of the Queen's Rangers under
Lieutenant-Colonel Simcoe in the War of the Revolution. He settled in
Upper Canada and was Commissioner of the Stores in 1793,
Inspector-General of Accounts in 1805, and Receiver-General in 1818. He
owned the site on Queen Street where the Metropolitan Church now stands,
and built a commodious cottage upon it. This residence was known as
"McGill Cottage," and in 1813, when the Americans visited York the women
and children of the town were sent for safety to McGill Cottage, which
was occupied by Captain McGill and his wife, who was a sister of the
Honorable George Crookshank. A sister of Captain McGill married a
McCutcheon, their sons being Peter and James McCutcheon. The elder son,
Peter, was the inheritor of the bulk of the property in Upper Canada of
Honorable Peter McGill, and it was a condition of his will that Mr.
McCutcheon should assume the name "McGill." The Honorable Mr. McGill was
from Dumfriesshire, Scotland, and came to Canada in 1809. He was
President of the Bank of Montreal from June, 1834, until June, 1860, and
died in September of that year.

The Honorable James McGill, founder of McGill College in Montreal, was
not related to the foregoing family. He was born in Glasgow, in 1744,
and died in Montreal in 1813.

Bishop Strachan, of Toronto, also married a McGill, a daughter of Dr.
Wood, of Cornwall, and widow of Dr. Andrew McGill of Montreal, but she
was not connected with the families of either John, Peter or James
McGill.

Many references to the McGill families in Canada in different
publications conflict, owing to the fact that there was similarity of
Christian names in all the families, hence the detail of relationship
given.

[Illustration: Hon. Jas. McGill.]

    Tues. 6th--We dined and supped at the Hon. Hugh Finlay's, the
    Deputy Postmaster-General of Canada under P.G.M. of Great
    Britain.

Note.--The Honorable Hugh Finlay was Deputy Postmaster-General for
Canada from 1774 to 1800. He had served from 1750-1774 under Benjamin
Franklin, first English Deputy Postmaster-General for the
British-American Provinces.

    Wed. 7th--Drove in an open carriole to Coll. Caldwell's. I gave
    a dance to thirty people this evening. I was this week in a
    covered carriole, driving towards the Isle of Orleans, but part
    of the river having frozen, the ice was in so rough a state that
    I was quite seasick in the carriage. As we passed the furrows of
    ice, the large heaps, collected in some places many feet high,
    formed an extraordinary sight.

    Fri. 9th--Chief Justice Smith dined here. The Fusiliers acted
    "The Wonder" to-night.

    Tues. 13th--Supped at Mr. Isaac Ogden's, Judge of the Admiralty.

Note.--Honorable Justice Isaac Ogden of Quebec and Montreal, Court of
King's Bench district of Montreal, appointed by Guy Carleton. He was
born in New Jersey in 1740. In 1785, he was Judge of the Admiralty
Court, Quebec, and later returned to Montreal. He resigned in 1818 and
died in London, Eng., in 1824.

    Wed. 14th--Supped at Mr. Coffin's.

Note.--Thomas Ashton Coffin was a member of the celebrated family who
had their descent from Tristram Coffin of Alwington, south of the
boundary between Somerset and Devon in England, who settled in 1643 in
New England at Salisbury and then went to Nantucket, at that time a
dependency of New York. Thomas Ashton Coffin was private secretary of
Sir Guy Carleton (Baron Dorchester in 1786) by whose side he sat in the
last boat which left Castle Garden on the evacuation of New York in
1783. When Dorchester became Governor-General of Canada in 1786, Coffin
accompanied him and by his influence was appointed Secretary and
Controller of Accounts in Lower Canada. He died in England in 1810. Miss
G. L. Coffin of Montreal is a connection of Thomas Coffin.

[Illustration: Hon. Isaac Ogden.]

    Thurs. 15th--Went to a musical party and a dance at the
    barracks, which was very pleasant. The Fusiliers all dance as
    well as Count Schernischoff or any famous Russian.

    Another mail arrived, and no letter from you, my dear friend
    (Mrs. Hunt, who, with her daughter, Miss Hunt, took charge of
    Mrs. Simcoe's children at Wolford during the absence of the
    parents in Canada). How is it that you I esteem so wise should
    not have had observation enough to have found out by the
    newspapers that packets go to New York and Halifax every month,
    and are immediately forwarded from thence here? Do you not
    remember Lake Champlain and Lake George, Hudson's River,
    Skeneborough, on a creek of that name, Albany and all that route
    from New York to Quebec, which you have so often drawn, and
    which is passed constantly and in a rapid manner when the lakes
    are frozen? This town is now supplied with fresh cod in a frozen
    state from Boston, distant 500 miles, and it is sold at 6d. per
    lb. We have had some excellent venison from the township of
    Matilda (Iroquois, in Dundas County). I daresay you remember
    that name on the map, above 400 miles from hence. I find our
    maps to be little better than sketches, little of the country
    having been surveyed. The surveyors draw slowly, and, I am told,
    when they want to suit their maps to the paper, do not scruple
    cutting off a few miles of the river or adding to it.

    Coll. Simcoe has had a letter from Capt. Murray, of the
    "Triton," from Halifax, which place he compares to Capua, in
    southern Italy. Coll. Simcoe makes the same complaint of Quebec,
    where he finds few men of learning or information, literary
    society not being necessary to the amusement of ladies. I am
    very well off amongst the women, and really find this a
    delightful place. The morning Coll. Simcoe and I spend together
    in reading, walking, etc. In the evening I go to balls,
    concerts, suppers, and, when I am with French families, _je fais
    la conversation d'une façon à peu près parisienne_ (I speak as
    readily as a Parisian)--as Monsr. Báby is pleased to say--and to
    have everybody I see assiduous to please me, and to have
    nothing to do but to follow my own fancy, is a satisfactory mode
    of living, not always attainable on your side of the Atlantic.
    How happy I am.

    I quite enjoy the thoughts of the long journey we have before us
    and the perpetual change of scene it will afford, but the people
    here think it as arduous and adventurous an undertaking as it
    was looked upon to be by my friends in England. It is surprising
    that those who are so much nearer to a country should esteem it
    as impracticable as those who are so many thousand miles
    distant.

    Capt. Murray was all but lost in going to St. John, and from
    thence to Halifax. The day after he left Quebec the river was so
    full of ice his sailing would have been impossible. No ships
    ever left Quebec as late as the "Triton." The merchantmen sail
    on the 10th of October. Capt. Shaw also advises me not to
    believe the formidable accounts I have heard of rattlesnakes, of
    which he has seen numbers in Carolina. He affirms they never
    bite but when trod upon or attacked, and the wound they make is
    cured by well-known herbs, as horehound and juice from the
    plantain plant.

    Sun. 18th--We walked from seven till nine this morning on the
    Heights of Abraham, the plain on which Genl. Wolfe was killed.
    It is said he was shot from behind a fence by a French priest
    who is still living. The troops daily practice walking on these
    plains in snowshoes. The racket is made of deer or elk skins.
    The frame is of light wood an inch thick, 2½ feet long, 14
    inches broad. We found it dry at this early hour on the track
    the troops had beaten.

Note.--During the engagement of the 13th September, 1759, Wolfe received
three wounds. The first was probably from the Indians on the right, the
second from the French-Canadians who were advancing in the centre; and
the third seems to have been from the Indians or Canadians in the bushes
on Wolfe's right, sheltered in the only bit of short brushwood on the
top of the cliff. The statement that Wolfe was shot by a French priest
behind a fence is absurd, because there were no fences on the Plains,
nor any kind of shelter beyond the bushes before mentioned, on the
cliff. It has also been said, and the statement often repeated by
newspapers, that Wolfe was shot by one of his own men in revenge for
some punishment which Wolfe had inflicted for disobedience. This is also
improbable, because Wolfe, at the time of his fatal wound, was at the
head of his army in advance of Bragg's Regiment. As he received the
wound in front, it must have proceeded from the enemy.

[Illustration: General Wolfe.]

    Mon. 19th--We dined at Mr. William's, the Clerk of the Council.
    Went in the evening to the concert, and returned to supper, an
    elegant supper in the Council Room, after which there was music.

    Thurs. 22nd--Walked to "Sans Bruit." Capt. (Benjamin) Fisher, of
    the Royal Engineers, lent me his portfolio, in which there were
    some beautiful views taken in the Island of St. Domingo; I
    almost regretted not to have been in the West Indies. We supped
    at Mr. Ainslie's, the Collector of Customs, to-night.

    Sat. 31st--We walked to Coll. Caldwell's before breakfast, and
    returned as far as "Sans Bruit" in a carriole and dined there.
    The most unpleasant time of the year is now commencing. The
    snow melting prevents the use of carrioles, and there is still
    too much to use calèches. During the month of April the people
    are, from this circumstance, little able to go from their
    houses; besides easterly winds, which bring rain, prevail very
    much.

    Tues. April 3rd--We walked to Belmont before breakfast, and
    found the road dry, but in the middle of the day the snow was so
    melted by the excessive heat of the sun that we stayed there
    until eight o'clock and then walked home, the snow being then
    perfectly frozen again.

    Wed. 4th--Mr. Fisher, of the Engineers, showed me some beautiful
    views he took of Windsor Castle for Prince Edward. His oil
    painting did not please me.

[Illustration: By the River, Quebec, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--This is evidently a rapid sketch of part of the river at Quebec,
1792. The building on the right is the Chateau St. Louis, and on the
left is shown a powder magazine near the King's bastion.

    Sun. 8th--We walked a mile before breakfast about Cape Diamond.
    After church we repaired to the lines with Mr. Talbot, who
    showed us an unfrequented terrace where Sir F. Haldimand began
    to make a walk on the side of this noble cliff, which is crowned
    by fortified works. The terrace commands the St. Lawrence as far
    as Cape Tourmenté eleven leagues below Quebec, rocky and
    precipitous, and the Isle of Orleans to the east.

    The shipping and the Lower Town are immediately below and
    towards the Heights of Abraham the blue distant hills of Vermont
    are seen, and the spray from the fall of the Chaudière River
    rising in Lake Megantic and joining the St. Lawrence about seven
    miles from Quebec. The rocks and brushwood that adorn the
    precipitous side of the hill form a fine foreground to this
    grand scene, with which we were so delighted that we came to
    view it again in the evening, and did not return home till it
    was dark, or rather starlight.

Note.--The commander of Quebec is styled "Commander of the Fortress of
Quebec and of the Town Lines," which means the walls which encircle the
city. The "lines" referred to in this passage would be some part of the
grounds immediately within the walls.

    Fri. 13th--Walked towards Wolfe's Cove and upon Cape Diamond.
    Dined with Mrs. Winslow, wife of the Acting Paymaster-General.

Note.--The Winslows, one of the best known families on the American
Continent, settled as U. E. Loyalists in Eastern Canada. Joshua Winslow,
who is given in the Quebec Directory of 1791 as residing at 12 St. John
Street, was Paymaster-General of the British Forces in North America.
His great-great-grandfather, John Winslow, born at Droitwich, England,
in 1597, came to America in 1621, settled at Plymouth, Mass., and was a
merchant and shipowner. He married in 1624, Mary, daughter of James
Chilton, who came out in the "Mayflower." Joshua Winslow married Anna
Green. They had a daughter Anna who while at school in Boston wrote an
interesting diary. Joshua Winslow died in Quebec in 1801. Edward
Winslow, a brother of John Winslow, was Governor of Plymouth for some
years.

[Illustration: Cascade Near Wolfe's Cove, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Fri. 20th--The Prince dined with us, Gen'l. Clarke, Mrs. Murray
    and St. Ours; a very cold evening indeed. As the cold weather
    and the short days leave us people cease to be sociable, and no
    kind of gaiety is continued but a few dinner parties. I have
    been so unaccustomed to pass evenings alone this winter that I
    do not like relinquishing balls, concerts, suppers and cards.

[Illustration: Paul Roch de St. Ours.]

Note.--Honorable Paul Roch de St. Ours (sometimes Rocque) was born in
1747. He was Colonel commanding of the Assomption Division of the
Militia in Lower Canada. In 1787, he was a member of the Legislative
Council. His death took place in 1814.

    Sun. 29th--We walked twice this day to Cape Diamond. In the
    morning we saw a merchant vessel sail to England, the
    "Recovery," in which I sent letters by Mrs. Tosey, the Sussex
    clergyman's wife, to you and other friends. Walking on Cape
    Diamond after a rainy day, I saw amongst the distant hills to
    the north a cloud rise in a conic form in a light sky until it
    united with black clouds above. We thought it might be a
    waterspout. Last week the thermometer fell 30 degrees in three
    hours and 54 in eleven hours. A beautiful moth was sent to me.
    It remained all day in a torpid state, and flew away at night.

    Mr. Fisher, of the Royal Engineers, exchanges duty with Mr.
    Wolfe, in order to go to Niagara to take views of the Falls. I
    saw mosquitoes this evening while walking on the ramparts. They
    are like gnats. Last week I walked to Powell Place and
    Woodfield. The woods are beautiful, and we went near to Sillery,
    that pretty vale Emily Montague describes; indeed, her account
    of Quebec appears to me very near the truth.

    A boat going to the Isle of Orleans was overset a few days ago.
    Fourteen passengers were drowned. Accidents often happen on this
    river by carrying too much sail. When the wind is against the
    tide it is very dangerous. The currents are excessively strong.

Note.--Powell Place was owned by Sir Henry Watson Powell, who resided
there from 1780-95. It was renamed Spencer Wood by the Honorable Michael
Henry Percival, a relative of the Honorable Spencer Percival, the
Chancellor of the Exchequer, who was assassinated in England in 1812.
The situation was most picturesque, about two miles from the city walls,
on the south side of the St. Louis Road. It is now the residence of the
Lieutenant-Governor of Quebec. The land occupied is about one-half of
the estate as it was when known as Powell Place.

The "History of Emily Montague," by Mrs. Frances Brooke (Frances Moore)
1724-89, published in 1769, was a series of letters addressed from
Sillery by Emily Montague, the heroine, to her friend, Arabella Fermor,
to military admirers, and to some British noblemen, friends of her
father. The work, which is dedicated to Guy Carleton, afterwards Lord
Dorchester, is the earliest novel written in Canada. Mrs. Brooke was the
wife of Rev. John Brooke, D.D., Rector of Colney, Norfolk, and Chaplain
to the garrison at Quebec in 1764-8. It is said that the "handsome
Colonel Rivers" who won the heart of Emily Montague was none other than
Colonel Henry Caldwell. In all probability he was a friend of the
novelist.

    Sat. 2nd June--Mr. Osgoode, the Chief Justice of Upper Canada;
    Mr. Peter Russell, the Receiver-General; and Mr. White, the
    Attorney-General, arrived from England. Mr. Russell has his
    sister with him.

    Miss Rolle sent me a doll in the Duchess of York's Court dress.
    My clothes for the 4th of June not being arrived, I made myself
    a turban like the doll's.

[Illustration: Chief Justice Osgoode.]

Note.--At the early age of fifteen William Osgoode entered Christ
College as a commoner. He studied law, became M.A. in 1777, and was
called to the bar of Lincoln's Inn. He was appointed first Chief Justice
of Upper Canada in 1792, his active judicial duties commencing in August
of that year. He was a Legislative Councillor of the Province, appointed
to the Council in July, 1792, and in the following September was
appointed Speaker. In consequence of his charge to a grand jury that
slavery ought not to exist in the colony of Canada, the Legislature of
Upper Canada passed in July, 1793, an Act entitled "An Act to prevent
the further introduction of slaves, and to limit the terms of contracts
for service within this Province." In 1794 Osgoode became Chief Justice
of Lower Canada, retaining the office until 1801, when he resigned and
returned to England. He died in 1824, aged seventy.

The Honorable Peter Russell was in 1792 appointed Receiver-General of
Upper Canada by Governor Simcoe. As President of the Council he
succeeded the Governor in 1796, retaining the position until 1799. In
accordance with Simcoe's instructions the second Parliament of the
Province met at York on 1st June, 1797, and several acts were passed
during Russell's administration. His plan was to follow in the footsteps
of Governor Simcoe, with whose policy he was familiar. He died at his
home, Russell Abbey, Toronto, in 1808.

John White was Attorney-General of Upper Canada, and was killed in a
duel, 3rd January, 1800.

[Illustration: Hon. Peter Russell.]

    Mon. June 4th--A splendid ball at the Chateau, but the heat was
    so great that I was very near fainting after having danced Money
    Musk and the Jupon rouge.

    Tues. 5th--This afternoon we drove to Montmorency, about eight
    miles from Quebec, and drank tea there. I walked a little way up
    the river, which dashes over a very rocky bed among the woods,
    which, being now in leaf, made the accompaniment of the falls
    much finer than when I was last, there.

[Illustration: Near the Falls of Montmorency, Quebec, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]




  CHAPTER VIII.

  _JOURNEY TO UPPER CANADA._


The pleasant sojourn of seven months at Quebec was "a new chapter in my
life," said the Governor's wife in a letter to an English friend. The
kindness, the hospitality, the respect and the courtesy which had been
paid to them by those of the official circles in the ancient city gave
untold pleasure to the newcomers. The Governor was popular because he
was a man not only of extensive military experience but also of wide
general knowledge, a gifted and interesting conversationist, and, withal
affable and courteous to all with whom he came in contact. His wife made
friends rapidly, and as became the wife of one occupying a distinguished
position, she maintained a dignity and gentleness of manner that some
say "was born with the Gwillims," while at the same time she had an
attractiveness that was always remembered by the many friends she met.

On the 8th of June, 1792, Governor Simcoe, with his wife and party, set
out towards his post in the Western province. Mrs. Simcoe often declared
that she required a deal of courage to entrust herself and her children
to the Canadian bateaux, which were the only possible means of
transportation.

    Fri. 8th June--At six this morning we left Quebec, walked
    through Fort Louis Gate, and descended the hill to the river,
    where we embarked in a large batteau (bateau) with an awning,
    accompanied by Lts. Grey and Talbot. Another batteau carried the
    children, and a third the servants and baggage. In three hours
    we reached Pt. aux Trembles (En Bas), on the north shore of the
    river, seven leagues above Quebec, landing a mile below the
    Maison de Poste. A small tent being pitched, we breakfasted, and
    afterwards went to see the church, which is a neat one and
    contains a picture of St. Cecilia, given by Gen'l. Murray, which
    is highly esteemed. We took an early dinner, of which an eel,
    caught here, formed a part, and as we had just finished our
    repast al fresco, the Bishop of Caps, who resides in this
    village, came to wait on Coll. Simcoe. He is a man more esteemed
    for his learning than religion; being once accused of having
    Voltaire's works in his library, he replied: "Les meilleurs
    médecins tiennent les poisons en leur boutique" (The best
    doctors keep poisons in their dispensary). He apologized for not
    inviting us to his house, as it was repairing.

    We waited until near six for the tide, when we embarked, and
    passed some beautiful high banks covered with wood. At Jacques
    Cartier, on the north shore of the river, eight leagues above
    Quebec, between Three Rivers and Quebec, are mills on a river
    which flows into the St. Lawrence from between two very high
    hills much enriched by wood. It is an exceedingly strong pass
    and a picturesque scene.

    The evening was delightfully calm. My admiration of the setting
    sun on the unruffled surface of this wide river was interrupted
    by meeting a boat, which brought English letters forwarded from
    Montreal, and the satisfaction of reading some of yours (letters
    from Mrs. Hunt at Wolford) engaged my attention as long as it
    was light enough to read.

    It was ten o'clock when we arrived at Cap Santé, on the north
    shore. The man who kept the Maison de Poste was so ill that we
    could not be admitted there, so we walked towards a cottage
    where the habitants were going to bed, but with all possible
    French _politesse_ the woman removed her furniture and children,
    and presently accommodated us with two empty rooms, with a
    thousand compliments and regrets that "des gens comme nous"
    (strangers) should be so ill lodged. The apartment was
    indifferent enough, but as we travel with a _boydet_, which is a
    folding camp chair as large as a mattress, the "Triton's" cot,
    blankets, and a mosquito net tent to hang over the bed, we soon
    furnished a room comfortable enough for people whom a long day's
    voyage had given sufficient inclination to sleep. The gentlemen
    slept in a batteau. It was too late to get our provisions from
    the boat, and we supped on the bread, eggs and milk the cottage
    afforded.

Note.--Cap Santé is on the west bank of the mouth of the River Jacques
Cartier. It was here that the French encamped and threw up works after
the capitulation of Quebec. John Montressor's map of 1760 shows the fort
on the bank of the river. In his diary he says that when serving under
that 'mad Murray' he disguised himself (being then a captain of
engineers) as a drummer boy of marines and went to Jacques Cartier with
a flag of truce, by which means he was able to examine the works and
direct operations against them a few days later on.

    Sat. 9th--We rose at six this morning, and walked on the hill
    which rises abruptly behind this house. It is a fine turf, with
    large trees scattered over it, and has a very park-like
    appearance. To the east the view is finely terminated by the
    church, which is covered with tin, as is usual in this country.
    It is surprising to me that it does not rust. It proves the
    habitual dryness of the air. The effects of tin roofs and
    steeples are very brilliant. Beyond Cap Santé the tide ceases.
    We embarked at nine and passed the rapids of Richelieu, after
    which the steeple of the church of Deschambault, 12 leagues
    above Quebec, embosomed in wood, becomes a fine spot. Coll.
    Simcoe wished to examine the ground at Deschambault with
    reference to it as a military position. I went on shore there
    with him while the gentlemen proceeded to the boat. I waited at
    the Maison de Poste (for I was indisposed) while Coll. Simcoe
    walked to the point, and in about an hour we set out in a
    calèche--a small carriage, buggy, on two wheels, with a hood,
    goes very fast, and is very light in weight, used in the
    Province of Quebec amongst the habitants--and drove nine miles
    through a beautiful woody country, over very rough roads, to
    Grondines, a village 16 leagues above Quebec, on the north
    shore, where we dined and slept at the house of Madame Hamelin,
    the seigneuresse of this village, whom we saw in the evening
    sitting in the churchyard, amid a large audience of peasants,
    reading and commenting on some handbills dispersed by a Quebec
    merchant (Mr. McCord), a candidate to represent this county
    (Hampshire) at the next election.

Note.--Hampshire was one of the original divisions of the Province of
Quebec in its first Parliament. In the next electoral changes in 1829,
the name Portneuf was applied to the county.

John McCord was a leading merchant in Quebec, one of the pioneers, son
of John McCord, a leader of the English party after the cession of
Canada. John McCord, Jr., appears to have thought of being a candidate
for Hampshire in 1792, but apparently changed his mind, for his name is
not given in the Parliamentary lists. His brother, Judge Thomas McCord,
was, however, elected in 1810 for Montreal West, and for Bedford in
1817, which then comprised a vast tract. The McCord family was one of
the most prominent in Quebec.

[Illustration: John McCord, Jr.]

David Ross McCord, K.C., of Temple Grove, Montreal, is a great-grandson
of John McCord, Sr., and grandson of Judge Thomas McCord. John McCord,
Jr., of whom Mrs. Simcoe writes, was his great-uncle.

The ruins of the old church and parsonage at Grondines may still be seen
on the beach, about half a mile from the newer church of 1841.

    Sat. 9th--The tone and _air decidè_ of the reader, the attention
    of the audience and the Flemish appearance of their figures
    would have afforded an excellent picture. The Canadian women are
    better educated than the men, who take care of their horses and
    attend little to anything else, leaving the management of their
    affairs to the women.

    I saw here a kind of mespilus, or medlar tree, which bore fruit
    almost pear shaped. They called it "_Poire sauvage_," and a
    fruit "_superbe_." "Magnifique" and "superbe" are words the
    Canadians apply on all occasions. Nothing could less call for
    such an epithet than the present fruit. A pretty wild plant,
    somewhat like buckwheat, called "_herbe à la puce_," is said to
    blister the hands and faces of those who touch it, though it is
    not equally poisonous to all persons. Here I met with an ugly
    insect of the beetle kind, called "_frappé d'abord_," which
    fetches blood wherever it strikes.

    Sun. 10th--We left Grondines at 8. The current becoming very
    strong, the men were obliged to _tirer à la cordelle_, or drag
    the boat by ropes on a narrow beach under high, woody banks. We
    picked up pieces of chalk or clay, which drew like crayon, but
    the strokes were not so easily effaced. I saw millions of yellow
    and black butterflies, called New York swallow-tails, on the
    sand. We dined in the boat and passed St. Pierre les Becquets, a
    village (in Nicolet County) 22 leagues above Quebec, and its
    church on a very bold projecting point nearly opposite to
    Batiscan (in Champlain County). We disembarked this evening at
    Cap de la Magdelaine, the most dirty, disagreeable receptacle
    for mosquitoes I ever saw, the inhabitants even catching wood
    pigeons in a most disagreeable manner.

    I take no sketch of a place I never wish to recollect. Mr.
    Talbot gave a shilling to liberate some wood pigeons I must
    otherwise have seen and heard fluttering most disagreeably. I
    was much obliged to him for this polite attention.

Note.--Batiscan is in Champlain County, 81 miles above Quebec, on the
north shore of the St. Lawrence, near Three Rivers, which is 95 miles
northeast of Montreal.

    Mon. 11th--We rose at four and embarked, and went a league to
    Trois Rivières, in the County of St. Maurice, a town which takes
    its name from three rivers--St. Maurice, Richelieu and St.
    Lawrence--which spring from one source and, after having flowed
    some miles separately, unite and fall into the St. Lawrence half
    a mile below the town. There is a small convent here, and they
    work remarkably well on bark. We paid a great price for a bad
    breakfast at an inn kept by an Englishman, for we were not so
    lucky as to go to the French Maison de Poste, where we should
    have fared better and paid less. Three leagues from hence we
    reached Point du Lac, in St. Maurice County, at the entrance of
    Lake St. Pierre (St. Peter), which is about 15 leagues long.
    Three leagues farther we stopped to dine in the boat near
    Machiche, in a small cove, where the heat was intense and the
    mosquitoes numerous. From hence we passed extremely flat shores
    and confined scenery. The gentlemen were impatient of the heat,
    and perpetually wearying the conductor of the batteau with
    questions as to how far we were from Cap de Loup, complaining of
    the inconvenience of the trajet, meaning journey or voyage. At
    length he would say nothing except "_Mais pourtant il ne fait
    pas froid_" (It is nothing compared to the cold), which, indeed,
    we were all very sensible of. Went on shore early this evening
    at Rivière du Loup. (This village and river is the same in name
    as Rivière du Loup, in Kamouraska and Temiscouata Counties.) The
    village has a pretty bridge, and lies in a flat, cultivated
    country. We were but ill accommodated here, and nothing amusing
    occurred but Mr. Talbot's ineffectual efforts to paddle a canoe
    across the river. The difficulties he met with in this first
    attempt, and the handkerchief tied round his head, _à la
    Canadien_, diverted me much.

    Mr. (Lieut.) Grey cut his finger, and applied the turpentine
    from the cones of the balm of Gilead fir, a remedy for wounds
    greatly esteemed. Collins the nurse girl's slow manner,
    characteristic of the Western States, diverted us. Being desired
    to make haste, she replied, "Must I not put the sugar in the
    children's breakfast?" in the true American tone.

Note.--Machiche is a village on the river of the same name in St.
Maurice County, Quebec. The spelling Machiche is the common abbreviation
of Yamachiche, from the Algonquin, meaning a muddy stream or river.

    Tues. 12th--We embarked at four, and soon after we left Lake St.
    Pierre, stopped at Sorel (on right bank of River Richelieu, at
    mouth of Lake St. Peter), and took some refreshment at Mr.
    Doughty's, a clergyman whose wife is from New York, and the
    house was the cleanest and the neatest I have seen.

Note.--The Rev. John Doughty was chaplain in the King's Royal Regiment
in the war of 1775. He was formerly a minister of the gospel at
Schenectady on the south side of the Mohawk River in the State of New
York. In 1781 he went to England; but returned to Canada and officiated
as a missionary at Sorel.

    The situation of Sorel is so flat that nothing relieves the
    prospect but the masts of a few small ships building here. We
    dined in the boat, and the heat was excessive, but the evening
    calm and so very pleasant as almost to persuade me it is worth
    while to cross the Atlantic for the pleasure of voyaging on this
    delightful lake-like river, the setting sun reflecting the
    deepest shades from the shores and throwing rich tints on the
    water. This repose is finely accompanied by the songs of the
    batteau men, which accord in time to the regular stroke of the
    oars and have the best effect imaginable. No wonder Spenser,
    Ariosto, etc., dwelt on the delight of sailing in a boat on
    lakes, and make it the approach to islands of delight. After a
    day of fatigue, where strong currents require peculiar exertion,
    they sing incessantly and give a more regular stroke with the
    oars when accompanied by the tunes. This practice has been
    learned from Grand Voyageurs, or Canadians who are hired by the
    North-West Company to take canoes to the Grand Portage beyond
    Lake Superior. Now and then an Indian halloo breaks the
    often-repeated notes, and enlivens the sound. We admired one of
    their songs, "_Trois filles d'un Prince_" (Three Daughters of a
    Prince), so much that we desired it to be often repeated.

Note.--Edmund Spencer, a celebrated English poet, 1552-1599. Ariosto
Ludovico, 1474-1533, a celebrated Italian poet, author of "Orlando
Furioso."

    Our attention was engaged by hearing firing from the shore. The
    batteau men said, "_Comme il faut à Mon'sr le Gouverneur_" (It
    is a welcome to Monsieur, the Governor), but who paid this
    respect we did not find out.

    We reached the Maison de Poste at Dautray (Dautré) on north
    shore, just out of Lake St. Peter, west, before sunset, pitched
    the little tent, and admired rich tints and deep reflections
    from the opposite shore. We met with tolerably good rooms here.
    Mr. Littlehales, Coll. Simcoe's Military Secretary, overtook us
    here, and brought with him letters from you (Mrs. Hunt) which
    made me very happy. He travelled post from Quebec, where he
    arrived in the last vessel.

Note.--Major E. B. Littlehales, who was Military Secretary to Governor
Simcoe during the period of his residence in Canada, was an excellent
official of the Crown as well as of Governor Simcoe, in preparing plans
and obtaining information respecting the newly settled country, the
affairs of which his chief was called upon to administer. He was also an
author of some repute, being the writer of the "Journal of an Exploring
Excursion from Niagara to Detroit," first given to the public in 1834,
though the expedition took place in 1793.

Major Littlehales, who returned to England on the recall of Governor
Simcoe, was shortly afterwards promoted to the rank of
lieutenant-colonel, and in 1801 became Under-Secretary of the Military
Department in Ireland, which position he held until 1820. In 1802
Lieutenant-Colonel Littlehales was created a Baronet, and by Royal
License in 1817 assumed the surname of Baker in lieu of that of
Littlehales, on inheriting the property of Ranston in Dorsetshire, thus
being for the rest of his life Sir Edward Baker Baker. His grandson, Sir
Randolph Littlehales Baker, M.P. for North Dorset and residing at
Blandford, Dorset, England, is the present baronet.

[Illustration: Sir E. B. Baker.]

    Wed. 13th--We set out at four in the morning. In the afternoon
    we saw the Blue Mountains of Chambly, a village in Chambly
    County, on the Richelieu River, five leagues from Montreal, and
    Beloeil Mountain, a considerable elevation in the County of
    Rouville, seven leagues from Montreal, both of which we noticed
    with pleasure, not having before seen any distant view during
    our voyage.

[Illustration: Chambly, on the St. Lawrence, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    We passed Varennes (in Verchères County), a large village and
    handsome church on the shore, six leagues below Montreal. That
    of Cap Santé, twelve leagues above Quebec, was built in
    imitation of it. At eight we reached Pointe aux Trembles (En
    haut), on the island of Montreal, and ten leagues from Dautray.
    Here we went on shore, intending to go by land the remaining
    three leagues to Montreal. We found Capt. Stevenson just arrived
    in Mr. Frobisher's phaeton, sent for me, as a hired calèche is a
    wretched conveyance on the excessive rough roads around
    Montreal. Notwithstanding the merits of the phaeton and the
    river, I every moment expected to have been thrown out by the
    violent jerks in passing over the ruts in this bad road.

[Illustration: Varennes, on the St. Lawrence, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    At eleven o'clock we arrived at Montreal, and after a little
    delay, occasioned by the lateness of the hour, we got into
    Government House, and I was delighted with the size and
    loftiness of the rooms, which are so much better than any I have
    been in at Quebec. On the road we passed a group of Indians
    sitting around a fire near the river, which in this dark night
    afforded a good subject for a picture.

[Illustration: Joseph Frobisher.]

Note.--Joseph Frobisher was one of those who in the winter of 1783-4,
with Simon McTavish, formed what has been known in Canadian history as
the "North-West Company." He was the first to proceed to the great
unknown West, and went as far as the Churchill River. Up to 1774, all
the Indians of that vast region were accustomed to carry their furs to
the Hudson's Bay. Mr. Frobisher meeting several bands of Indians on the
way thither induced them to trade with him. He remained two years in the
country, enduring great hardships, but established a firm trade with the
red men. He returned in 1776, and during these two years, so plentiful
were the furs and on such advantageous terms were they bought that when
he arrived in Montreal he had secured what at that time was considered a
competency. His brother Benjamin, who died in 1787, travelled even
further west and was the first white man who ever reached "Isle à la
Croix."

In 1798, Joseph retired from commercial life. He had come from England,
and with James McGill was a vestryman of what was then called the
"Protestant Congregation of Montreal." This afterwards became Christ
Church, erected in Notre Dame Street, and burned down. It is now the
English Cathedral on St. Catherine Street. He and John Richardson
represented the East Ward of Montreal in the first Parliament of the
Province of Lower Canada in 1792-6. His son represented St. Laurent
District in 1804.

[Illustration: Government House--Chateau de Ramezay, Montreal.

(_From "Hochelaga Depicta."_)]

    Sun. 17th--The joy I felt in finding myself in spacious
    apartments was checked the next day by finding the heat more
    insufferable than I had ever felt. The thermometer continued at
    96 for two days, and the heat was not ill-described by a
    sentinel who exclaimed, "There is but a sheet of brown paper
    between this place and hell." In the town are abundance of
    merchants' storehouses, the doors and windows of which are iron,
    and many of the houses, as well as churches, are covered with
    tin. By these circumstances, I believe, the heat is increased.
    The Government House is built on arches, under which are very
    large offices, which might be made very comfortable summer
    apartments.

Note.--The Government House referred to was the building now known as
the Chateau de Ramezay. The earliest view of the Government House,
Montreal, is found in "Hochelaga Depicta," published in 1839, but it is
not very accurate. The elaborate railing and coping of the wall shown do
not date back so far.

It was the residence of Claude de Ramezay, Governor of Montreal, from
its erection in 1705 until his death in 1724, and although Madame de
Ramezay made several attempts to get the Government to purchase it for a
Governor's residence, she never succeeded. So in 1745 the heirs sold it
to "La Compagnie des Indes," which company made it the headquarters of
the fur trade in Canada, and so it continued until the conquest. The
company's further trade in Canada having been interdicted, it sold
"India House" to William Grant, who in 1774 leased it, and four years
later sold it to the Government. Governor Haldimand often resided in it,
and no doubt others too, but there is not much documentary history
relating to it from its purchase in 1778 until about 1820, when sundry
items began to appear in the estimates for the repairs and the upkeep of
the Government House at Montreal. Later Mrs. Monk, widow of a petty
officer in one of the regiments of the line who had been keeper of
stores at St. Johns, was appointed housekeeper to the Government House.
She was the mother of the celebrated Maria Monk.

[Illustration: Monklands, a Former Government House, Montreal.

(_From "Montreal After 250 Years."_)]

On the complaint of Lord Aylmer, Governor-General, in 1831, that the
Government House was in bad repair, and so destitute of furniture that
it necessitated great expense in moving his furniture to and from
Montreal every time he visited the place, a bill was passed authorizing
the expenditure of £300 to £400 in furnishing the Government House and a
large sum to put it in repair. A commission was appointed to supervise
this expenditure and plans and specifications were made for elaborate
repairs which included the addition of another storey, but the amount
required so exceeded the vote that little was done and the amount
appeared as an unexpended balance on the estimates for several years
afterwards.

In 1837, the house was made the headquarters of the special council
which was appointed during the rebellion and sat there until 1841. The
Governor, then of necessity a regular resident in the city, occupied a
rented house on the opposite corner. In 1845, when the seat of
government of the united provinces was moved from Kingston to Montreal,
the building was set apart for departmental offices and Monklands
acquired for the Government House. It was then that some of the changes
that characterize the Chateau de Ramezay of to-day were made. In 1894
the Chateau was sold by the Provincial Government and purchased by the
Corporation of the City of Montreal, and in 1895 the Numismatic and
Antiquarian Society obtained the building for the purpose of founding an
Historical Portrait Gallery and Museum.

Monklands was built by the Monk family and was situated at Côte St.
Antoine on the side of the mountain. The house is now called the Ville
Marie Convent and is the boarding school of the Nuns of the
Congregation. On each side the nuns have had large additions made but
the house still remains just as it was when Government House. In the
fire which destroyed the Convent some years ago, the original building
escaped.

    Mon. 18th--I was so oppressed by the heat that it diminished the
    pleasure of driving on the mountain of Montreal. A mile from the
    town it rises in the midst of a plain, like the Wrekin, one of
    the highest points in Shropshire. The view from it is remarkably
    fine, commanding a vast extent of river diversified by islands.
    The towns of Longueuil, on the right bank of the river, and
    L'Assomption, etc., are opposite, and the distance terminated by
    the Blue Hills of Chambly.

    The town of Montreal is large, and the spires of the churches,
    covered with tin, give a brilliancy to the scene and look like
    mosques. The country around is much cultivated, and orchards
    cover nearly all the top of the mountain. Capt. Stevenson
    carried us two miles beyond the fine prospect towards La Chine
    (Lachine), which is three leagues above Montreal, I think merely
    to show how bad the road was, and we returned about nine o'clock
    to Mr. Frobisher's villa on the side of the mountain, and drank
    tea there.

    In going from hence to Montreal we saw the air filled with fire
    flies, which, as the night was dark, appeared beautiful, like
    falling stars. I dined at Mr. Frobisher's house in the town,
    where the chairs were the same as I have seen sold in London for
    four guineas each.

Note.--Mr. Frobisher's villa, or country house, which Mrs. Simcoe speaks
of as being on the side of the mountain, was named Beaver Hall and was
situated on the ridge of the Beaver Hall Hill, near the present position
of Belmont Street, Montreal. It was on the line of the latter street and
across the line of the present street called after it, Beaver Hall,
which latter was on the site of Frobisher's avenue leading to the house.
It blocked the present Beaver Hall (street).

    Tues. 19th--I dined with La Baronne de Longueuil at a pretty
    house she and Mr. Grant have built on the north shore of her
    island of St. Helen's, opposite the east end of Montreal. Though
    the distance is so short, the current is so strong that the
    passage is rather alarming. The island is four miles in
    circumference, and the views from many points very pretty.
    Montreal and Longueuil are good objects to view from it. La
    Baronne has the only hothouse I have seen in Canada. Ice houses
    are very general here, but seldom used for the purpose of
    furnishing ice for a dessert. They use the ice to cool liquors
    and butter, and the ice houses are used for larders to keep
    meat.

Note.--The third Baron de Longueuil, Charles Jacques Le Moyne, died
while on active military service in 1755. His infant daughter, Marie
Charles Joseph, born some months later, inherited the title as fourth
Baroness. Her mother (Marie Fleury d'Eschambault, of a noble French
family), known as the Dowager Baroness, married a second time, in 1770,
Honorable William Grant, Receiver-General, while the daughter became the
wife in 1781 of Captain David Alexander Grant, nephew of the
Receiver-General.

[Illustration: Dowager Baroness de Longueuil.]

Shortly after her marriage with Honorable William Grant the Dowager
Baroness built a residence on the picturesque family property on St.
Helen's Island. It was here Mrs. Simcoe was entertained during her first
visit to Montreal, and where in all probability she met the younger
people.

[Illustration: Hon. Wm. Grant.]

It is stated that the fourth Baroness in her own right, a much loved
person in the family and respected in Montreal society of her day, did
not assume rank until the death of her mother in 1818. In her marriage
contract, however, she is styled "Mademoiselle Marie Charles Joseph
Lemoine de Longueuil, Baroness de Longueuil et Dame de Beloeil, fille
majeure usante et jouissante de ses droits," which shows clearly that
she assumed title on attaining her majority. The contract further states
that she was sole inheritor of the name, arms and estate of the third
Baron.

There is no portrait of the fourth Baroness in existence, except the one
as an old lady, here given, while her mother's picture is from an oil
painting made comparatively early in life.

[Illustration: Fourth Baroness de Longueuil.]

Mrs. M. Arklay Fergusson of Ethiebeaton, Scotland, Mrs. Fairclough, wife
of Prof. Rushton Fairclough, Stanford University, Cal., and Mrs. J.
Maule Machar, Kingston, Ont., are, on their mother's side,
great-great-granddaughters of the third Baron de Longueuil, while Madame
F. Falret de Tuite, Reginald, Baron de Longueuil, John Grant de
Longueuil and Mademoiselles de Longueuil, Pau, France, bear the same
relation through their father. Mrs. Machar's husband was the only son
of the late Rev. Dr. Machar, at one time principal of Queen's
University, Kingston, and only brother of Agnes Maule Machar, the
well-known Canadian authoress. The nephew of the present Baron is heir
to the title and property.

    Fri. 22nd--We went from Montreal to La Chine (Lachine), ten
    miles of very rough road, in Mr. Frobisher's carriage. The river
    from Montreal to La Chine is so shallow and full of rocks, and
    currents so strong that the boats always go up unloaded, the
    baggage being sent in waggons. Sir John Johnson, the agent for
    Indian Affairs, has a neat-looking house in this village.

    We slept at a very indifferent house, to which, as it bore the
    name of an inn, we did not bring our beds or provisions, and
    were the worse off as to lodging. I disliked the dirty
    appearance of the bed, and slept on a blanket upon the table.
    Opposite this place and on the other side of the river is
    Caughnawaga, a village of Indians who are Catholics (in
    Laprairie County, on south shore of the St. Lawrence). They have
    a neat church there.

    Sat. 23rd--We embarked at six. Soon afterwards left Pointe
    Claire and Isle Perrot (15 miles from Montreal, an island in the
    River St. Lawrence, S.W. of the island of Montreal, between the
    Lake of the Two Mountains and Lake St. Louis) to the north, and
    saw the junction of the Ottawa or Grand River, which divided
    Upper and Lower Canada with the St. Lawrence, the former pouring
    its dirty coloured water into the transparent stream of the St.
    Lawrence at the St. Anne's rapids, above the island of Montreal.

Note.--Besides the Ottawa or Grand River here mentioned, there is
another Grand River (known also as the Ouse) in Ontario, which empties
into Lake Erie.

    We soon arrived at the Cascades, the commencement of the rapids
    above La Chine. The term "rapid" is meant to describe shallow
    water, strong currents and a rocky bottom, which causes the
    whole surface of the water to appear foaming and white, like
    breakers at sea. The batteau men kept as close to shore as
    possible, and by dint of exertion and labour they pole and tow
    the boat up against the current. We went on shore at the
    Cascades, and walked a mile through a wood and saw the boats
    pass some tremendous rapids near this place, where Gen'l.
    Amherst lost eighty men during the last war by coming down
    without conductors in the boats. Saw a swordfish in a little
    stream near the mill. After our re-embarking we came to a very
    strong current at Point au Diable (a prominent headland four
    miles west of the Cedars village).

    The gentlemen walked to lighten the boat. I was tired by the
    heat, and laying my head on a trunk in the boat, I slept till
    the rapid was past. Two leagues from hence we met with one more
    formidable, so that the baggage in the boats was moved into
    waggons, and we went in a calèche as far as the Cedars, a
    village ten leagues above Montreal, where there is a tolerable
    inn, at which we slept. M. de Longueuil has a seigneurie near
    this place. These properties, estates or grants of land were
    given to the old French families who had settled in the Province
    of Quebec, by Louis XIV. Seigneur was the title for the Lord of
    the Manor.

    Sun. 24th--Seven miles from Les Cedres is Coteau du Lac (or St.
    Ignace, a village in Soulanges County, 37 miles south-west of
    Montreal), where we passed through locks. A few troops are
    stationed in a house here. Opposite to it is an island called
    Prison Island. It was so called from some rebels having been
    confined on it during the last war, some of whom escaped by
    swimming across the rapids by which it is surrounded.

Note.--This island is at the mouth of Lake St. Francis, an expansion of
the St. Lawrence, midway between the west part of Grand Isle and the
estuary of the River de L'Isle.

    A few miles beyond this entered Lake St. Francis, and saw a part
    of the blue ridge of the endless mountains. Four leagues from
    Coteau de Lac is Pointe au Bodet, the centre of Lake St. Francis
    and the commencement of Upper Canada.

Note.--Pointe au Bodet is on the north shore of Lake St. Francis, in the
Seigneury of Monsieur de Longueuil, and a little east of the cove in
which is the boundary line between the Provinces of Quebec and Ontario.

    We arrived here about sunset, and at a small inn on the Point
    found the principal inhabitants of the Township of Glengarry
    (Highlanders in their national dress). They came to meet the
    Governor, who landed to speak to them. They preceded us in their
    boat, a piper with them, towards Glengarry House, Mr.
    McDonell's, where the gentlemen went, but the wooden awning of
    our boat being blown off by a violent and sudden squall arising,
    we were glad to make towards the shore as fast as possible at
    Pointe Mouille on Lake Francis, west of Pointe au Bodet, and
    thought ourselves lucky that the boat had not been overset. We
    met with a miserable, wretched, dirty room at a Highlander's,
    the only house within some miles.

Note.--Colonel John Macdonell was a captain in Butler's Rangers (his
father having first settled in America at the breaking out of the
Revolutionary War). In 1792 he was elected member for Glengarry and was
afterwards Speaker of the first House of Assembly of Upper Canada. He
was lieutenant-colonel commanding the 2nd Royal Canadian Volunteers,
recruited in 1796 and disbanded after the Peace of Amiens. He married
Helen, daughter of Henry Yates, at one time Governor of the State of New
York. Colonel Macdonell built one of the first stone houses in Ontario
at a point on the St. Lawrence below Cornwall and west of Pointe au
Bodet. The house was burned down in 1813 but the ruins still remain and
the point is known as Glengarry Point or Stonehouse Point.

Colonel John Macdonell of Glengarry has been frequently confused with
Colonel John Macdonell who was killed at Queenston Heights in 1812. The
latter, however, was a nephew of the first Speaker, and J. A. Macdonell,
K.C., of Alexandria, Ont., is a great-grandnephew of Colonel John
Macdonell, the First Speaker, and a grandnephew of Colonel John
Macdonell, the Attorney-General who was also A.D.C. to General Brock. He
was killed with that officer at Queenston, and buried under the monument
erected on the Heights. A. McLean Macdonell, K.C., Toronto, is also a
great-grandnephew of the first Speaker of the Legislature of this
Province, while A. Claude Macdonell, K.C., M.P., is a near kinsman.

    Mon. 25th--We breakfasted with Mr. McDonell, four leagues from
    Pointe Mouille; his new house (Glengarry) he has not finished,
    and resides in that which he first erected on his ground. A
    Catholic priest, his cousin, was there, who has lived five years
    among the Iroquois Indians at St. Regis (near Cornwall). They
    have a church, and he performs divine service in the
    Iroquois, of which he is a perfect master, and he says their
    attention to the church service is very great, and the women
    sing psalms remarkably well. After breakfast we proceeded a
    league to Coll. Gray's, from whence the Governor went to the
    Isle of St. Regis, to visit the Indians at their village, where
    they received him with dancing in a fierce style, as if they
    wished to inspire the spectators with terror and respect for
    their ferocious appearance. We slept at Coll. Gray's, at Gray's
    Creek, four miles below Cornwall.

[Illustration: Pointe au Bodet, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--The Catholic priest to whom Mrs. Simcoe refers was the Rev.
Roderick Macdonell, well known as "Mr. Roderick," a cousin of Colonel
John Macdonell. He was educated at the Scots College, Valladolid, and
was first priest in Glengarry, being stationed at St. Regis on the south
shore of the St. Lawrence, a short distance below Cornwall. This was
always an Indian settlement.

James Gray, known as Colonel Gray, was born in Scotland and served in
the British Army for 26 years. In 1763 he was captain in the 42nd or
Black Watch Regiment, and was afterwards major of the 1st Battalion of
the King's Royal Regiment of New York. He settled at what is known as
Gray's Creek, near Cornwall. He died on 11th May, 1796. Colonel Gray's
son, Robert Isaac Dey Gray, was the first Solicitor-General for Upper
Canada. His name was second on the list of charter members of the Law
Society of Upper Canada, 1797. In 1804, he was lost in the "Speedy" on
Lake Ontario on his way to Presqu' Isle, where an Indian was to be tried
for murder.

    Tues. 26th--Capt. Munro came here and brought a horse of Mr.
    Duncan's for me to ride. As it would be very tedious to go up
    the Long Sault in the boat, we propose riding beyond that and
    another rapid called Galettes. We set off about ten o'clock. On
    our way we passed through Cornwall (22 leagues south-west of
    Montreal), a settlement four miles from Coll. Gray's. There are
    about fifteen houses and some neat gardens in them; and rode
    eleven miles to Mr. Macdonell's at the Long Sault, his farm
    being very near that Grand Rapid, which rapid continues a mile;
    the whole of the river foaming like white breakers, and the
    banks covered with thick woods, is a very fine sight.

[Illustration: Hon. John Munro.]

Note.--Captain Munro was the Honorable John Munro of Matilda, a member
of the first Legislative Council. Born in Scotland in 1731, he came to
America in the 48th Regiment in 1756. As a magistrate he had come into
fierce opposition before the Revolutionary War with Seth Warner and
Ethan Allan in northern New York. He was captain in the King's Royal
Regiment of New York and lost in consequence of the Rebellion a large
area of land near Fort Bennington, N. Y. In the Canada Archives, 1891,
will be found a report by him (1784) on the lands of New Brunswick. By
one daughter who married Colonel Eustache de Lotbiniere he was the
ancestor of Sir Henry Joly and the Harwoods of Montreal; Major W. F. W.
Carstairs of Strathcona, and J. S. Carstairs of Toronto, are
descendants of another member of his numerous family.

The Long Sault Rapids are in the St. Lawrence River, between Barnhart
and Long Sault Island, twelve miles above Cornwall. They are about nine
miles long.

    Mrs. Macdonell sang Erse songs very pleasingly, and her children
    and servants speak no language but Erse, the language of the
    descendants of the Gaels or Celts in the Highlands of Scotland;
    Gaelic, belonging to Erse (Irish). I wish'd they had not thought
    it necessary respect to dine very late. There are wolves and
    bears in this part of the country. They sometimes carry off
    sheep, calves or pigs, but do not attack men.

    Mr. Duncan's (Capt. Richard Duncan, late of 55th Regt.) horse
    carried me very well. It is certainly necessary to have a horse
    of the country to pass the bridges we everywhere met with,
    whether across the creeks (very small rivers) or swamps. The
    bridges are composed of trunks of trees unhewn, of unequal
    sizes, and laid loosely across pieces of timber placed
    lengthways. Rotten trees sometimes give way and a horse's leg
    slips through, and is in danger of being broken. The horse I am
    now riding had once a fall through an old bridge. He now goes
    very carefully. Coll. Gray tells me that the juice of horehound
    and plantain, a tropical plant yielding fruit extensively
    serviceable for food, cures the bite of a rattlesnake. A negro
    in Carolina obtained his freedom in the last war for the
    discovery. We had black bass for dinner. Great numbers are
    caught near the rapids. They are extremely good, nearly as large
    as carp, as firm as a dory and of very good taste, but we dined
    too late to be pleasant. I suppose it was meant for respect.

Note.--Honourable Richard Duncan, whose memory still survives in Dundas
County as "Judge Duncan," and whose daughter's name is perpetuated in
Mariatown, now really an outlying part of Morrisburg, came to America in
1755. He became a captain in Sir John Johnson's corps, and married a
sister of Captain (afterwards Colonel) Thomas and Captain William
Fraser. He was a member of the first Legislative Council.

When Mrs. Simcoe was on her way west to Niagara Mr. Duncan presented her
with a horse named "Jack" which was taken to Navy Hall and used during
her residence there.

    Wed. 27th--We rode ten miles to a tolerable inn, where a dinner
    was prepared, but we were engaged to dine and sleep at Capt.
    John Munro's, who had served in the Revolutionary War, twelve
    miles beyond this place. The first eight we went in the boat,
    and the remaining four we rode.

    An Irish Captain gave us a basket of wild strawberries, which
    were as large and as well flavoured as the best scarlet
    strawberries in gardens in England. We passed Capt. Duncan's
    house a mile before we came to the Rapid Plat, close to which is
    Capt. Munro's. His wife is a Dutch woman, and the house was
    excessively neat and clean, and one of his daughters very
    handsome. We went to see Mr. Munro's sawmill, where a tree was
    cut into 16 planks an inch thick in an hour.

Note.--In the list of Justices of the Peace appointed June 10th, 1793,
are found the names of William and John Fraser, Richard Duncan, John
Munro and James Gray.

The cutting of a log into sixteen planks twelve feet long and an inch
thick, would in a saw mill to-day take three minutes.

    Thurs. 28th--We set out on horseback this morning; took some
    refreshments at Mr. T. Frasier's, six miles from the Long Sault,
    and then rode five miles to Mr. W. Frasier's, where we dined.
    His house is just beyond Les Galettes (Galoos or Gallops, off
    Pointe Gallop), the last rapid on this side of Lake Ontario.

Note.--Colonel Thomas Fraser, born in Scotland, was a son-in-law of Hon.
John Munro. Before enlisting in McAlpine's Corps, in which he served as
lieutenant, his record is given as "a farmer of property in the Province
of New York, lost by the Rebellion." He served during the Revolutionary
War, at the close of which he received a grant of land in Grenville. In
1796 he was chosen as a non-resident member for Dundas. Two of the
leading military officers of Dundas, John Munro and Richard Duncan,
being out of reach, the electors determined to select a representative
military officer residing outside of their townships, and so Thomas
Fraser was chosen.

Captain William Fraser, also a Loyalist, was a brother of Colonel Thomas
Fraser.

    Thurs. 28th--I observed on my way hither that the wheat appeared
    finer than any I have seen in England, and totally free from
    weeds. Mr. Frasier mentioned an instance of the fertility of the
    soil. One of his fields having produced a great quantity of
    wheat, and that what fell out in reaping had the next year
    produced a very fine crop, without the field having been plowed
    or sown. There are many Dutch and German farmers about here,
    whose houses and grounds have a neater and better appearance
    than those of any other people. This afternoon we proceeded in
    the boat to Monsr. Lorimer's, an agent for Indian Affairs, where
    we had good venison but indifferent lodging. Coll. Simcoe
    stopped on the way to look at Isle Royale.

Note.--Chevalier Lorimer was an interpreter of the Indian Department in
1797.

Isle Royale is between Gallop Island and River de la Vielle Galette,
near Point Patterson.

    Fri. 29th--We embarked early and met the 26th Regt. in a brigade
    of boats. We stopped to speak to Capt. Talbot, who is in Prince
    Edward's family. He had been to see the Falls of Niagara, and
    was returning with the 26th Regt.

Note.--Captain Talbot was one of Prince Edward's suite, when in Canada.
He is previously mentioned by Mrs. Simcoe when staying in Quebec, as
Prince Edward was then residing there, at Montmorency House, near the
Falls. In August, 1790, the 26th proceeded to Niagara and in June, 1792,
returned to St. John's. Captain Talbot was not an officer of the 26th,
nor was he related to Mr. Talbot, private secretary of Colonel Simcoe.
In the Quebec Directory of 1791, there appears "Captain Talbot, H.R.H's
suite 4 Ann St."

    Fri. 29th--We passed to-day some rocks beautifully variegated
    with yellow and grey tints. I believe clay was among it. We saw
    a number of fine hemlock spruce trees. They are an exceedingly
    handsome tree, like yew, but of a lighter foliage, though as
    dark a colour, and grow to a more immense height than the
    English people can suppose probable. We came to so miserable a
    house where we were to lodge to-night, within a league of
    Grenadier Island, that we preferred pitching a tent for
    ourselves, letting the children sleep in the boat, and left the
    house for the gentlemen. While the tent was pitching I fished
    and caught a small perch. Many people carry trolling lines, or
    lines which run out of a small fishing wheel or pulley lying out
    of the stern in their boat, and catch abundance of black bass
    and other fish all the way up the St. Lawrence. Capillaire or
    maidenhair fern and its species grows in great perfection
    throughout this country. Much surprised to find the blankets so
    wet in a tent, although the weather had been dry.

Note.--Grenadier Island, one of the Thousand Islands, is fourteen miles
above Brockville, and is about five miles long.

    Sat. 30th--After passing Grenadier Island we came to the
    Thousand Islands. The different sizes and shapes of these
    innumerable isles have a pretty appearance. Some of them are
    many miles in extent, many of them only large enough to contain
    four or five trees, pine or oak, growing on a grey rock, which
    looks very pretty, variegated by the different mosses with which
    the crevices are filled.

    We passed the river Gananowui (Gananoque), and half a mile
    beyond it came to Carey's house, which was so dirty a house that
    we again pitched the tent, which, notwithstanding it rained
    incessantly the whole evening and the greatest part of the
    night, kept us quite dry, and I slept vastly well. I was
    surprised to find how wet the bed clothes were in the tent when
    I rose, and yet I caught no cold, though these nights were the
    first in which I slept in a tent. In spite of the rain Coll.
    Simcoe went to the mill on the Gananowui River near its mouth,
    where a harbour might be made for shipping. This river has
    communication a great way back with the river Rideau, and by
    some lakes to the Ottawa River. These and other advantages make
    this one of the most eligible situations for the establishment
    of a town, but Sir John Johnson obtained a grant of the land
    hereabout, which prevents the probability of any such
    improvements being made by Government.

[Illustration: Carey's House, Gananoque.

(_From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--Judge McDonald, of Brockville, informs me that according to a
statement said to have been made in 1854 by one Mrs. Charlotte Jameson,
then the oldest inhabitant of Gananoque, Joel Stone was the first white
person who ever resided on the peninsula on the west side of the
Gananoque River. He was landed from a French bateau and left to his own
resources. Fortunately a resident on a nearby island espied the
handkerchief with which Stone was signalling for help and sent two
Indians to rescue him. They took him over to the island where a
Frenchman named Carey, an uncle of Mr. Jameson, lived alone in a hut.
Eventually Mr. Stone and Carey removed to the mainland, and the latter
kept a house of public entertainment. The place was only accessible by
open boat, while no bread could be obtained except hard biscuits. For
Mr. Stone and for travellers, they kept a kind called King's biscuit,
while for the others they provided navy biscuit. They kept two cows and
exchanged the milk with the bateau men for biscuit, and exchanged the
latter again with the Indians for fish, venison, game and wild fruit.
Carey had been formerly a waiter and knew how to cook and wait upon
gentlemen, so that he and Stone were tolerably comfortable. One day when
they were all absent, the building and Mr. Stone's effects were burned,
and this was the means of breaking up their family arrangement, as Carey
took a farm two miles above Gananoque at Jameson's or Sheriff's Point,
and lived there with his sister, Mrs. Sheriff, and a little girl,
afterwards Mrs. Jameson. The picture shown is of Carey's house at
Gananoque.

[Illustration: View Near the Thousand Islands, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Sun. July 1st--We rose very early this morning in order to take
    a view of the mill at Gananowui before we proceeded on our way
    to Kingston. The scenery about the mill was so pretty that I was
    well repaid for the trouble of going. Then we returned to our
    large boat and proceeded. After passing Grande Island and Isle
    Cauchois, we drew near to Kingston, which we were aware of
    before we saw the houses, as we discerned the white waves of
    Lake Ontario beyond, looking like a sea, for the wind blew
    extremely fresh.

[Illustration: View Near Gananoque, 1792.

(_From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--Wolfe Island, three miles from Kingston, was called by the French
Grande Island. General Simcoe in his proclamation, 1792, directed it to
be called Wolfe Island. Howe Island, nine miles from Kingston, was
called by the French Isle Cauchois, and was named by General Simcoe or
his advisers, Howe Island, after Lord Howe.

    Kingston is six leagues from Gananowui, and is a small town of
    about fifty wooden houses and merchants' storehouses. Only one
    house is built of stone. It belongs to a merchant. There is a
    small garrison here and a harbour of ships. They fired a salute
    on our arrival, and we went to the house appointed for the
    commanding officer, at some distance from the barracks. It is
    small but very airy, and so much cooler than the great house in
    Montreal that I was very well satisfied with the change. The
    Queen's Rangers are encamped a quarter of a mile beyond our
    house, and the bell tents have a pretty appearance. The
    situation of this place is entirely flat, and incapable of being
    rendered defensible. Therefore, were its situation more central,
    it would still be unfit for the seat of government.




  CHAPTER IX.

  _SIMCOE TAKES OATH OF OFFICE._


Kingston in 1792 was the most important spot on the map of Canada, west
of Montreal. It was not only the military but the commercial centre of
the new province and occupied that position for many years. The
Legislature of the Province of Canada after the Union Act of 1841 held
three sessions there from 14th June, 1841, until 5th March, 1844, when
the seat of government was removed and the settlements west on the lake
secured in natural course the trade that from humble beginnings has
to-day a volume ever increasing with the great tide of population.

Kingston is situated at the head of the St. Lawrence at the outlet of
Lake Ontario. The harbor is an excellent one, and ships of any size can
be accommodated in perfect safety. In 1672 the place was known as
Cataraqui, and visited by De Courcelles, the Governor of New France. He
was succeeded by Count Frontenac and the fort was built by him and named
in his honor. This fort was held by the French until 1758, when it fell
into the hands of the British under Colonel Bradstreet.

In 1783 a number of Loyalist emigrants under Captain Michael Grass
settled in what is now the Township of Kingston. The surveys were made
by Deputy Surveyor John Collins. The town plot was laid out in 1783. The
first picture of Cataraqui showing what was left of Fort Frontenac, was
made in 1783. It was styled "a southwest view of Cataraqui drawn by
James Peachey, Ensign 60th Regiment. Taken by Louis Kotte."

About 1788 Kingston was selected by the British Government as a military
and naval station--the principal one on Lake Ontario. Surveyor Collins
in his report to Lord Dorchester did not favor the selection of Kingston
as the best situation for vessels, "as it lies open to the lake and has
not very good anchorage near the entrance, so that vessels are obliged
to run a good way up for shelter from the most frequent winds." Collins,
therefore, proposed Carleton Island, as it "afforded the best shelter."
Lord Dorchester thought otherwise, and Haldimand Cove between Point
Frederick and Point Henry, opposite Kingston, was selected as the site
for the dockyard and storehouses.

In 1792, according to Mrs. Simcoe, the town contained about fifty
houses. In 1795, the Duke de la Rochefoucauld-Liancourt visited Kingston
and wrote that it had "about 129 or 130 houses."

Mrs. Simcoe made three pictures of the town, dated 1792, 1794 and 1796.
The first is a sketch from the water-front, evidently made from a
distance. The view in 1794 is also from the water-front, but shows
distinctly the principal houses, including the steeple and belfry of
the first church, known from 1820 as St. George's, while her latest
picture was taken from a point between Fort Frederick and Main Street,
Kingston, looking toward the northwest.

    Mon. 2nd--We went across the bay this morning to see the
    shipyard. There are two gunboats lately built on a very bad
    construction. Coll. Simcoe calls them the "Bear" and the
    "Buffalo," as they are so unscientifically built, and intends
    they shall aid in carrying provisions to Niagara. The present
    establishment of vessels on this lake consists of the "Onondaga"
    and "Mississaga," named after the Indian tribes, top-sailed
    schooners of about 80 tons, and the "Caldwell," named after
    Coll. Caldwell, which is a sloop. They transport all the troops
    and provisions from hence for the garrison of Niagara, Forts
    Erie and Detroit. They land them at Niagara, from whence those
    for the higher ports are forwarded nine miles across a portage
    by land to Fort Chippawa, three miles above the Falls of
    Niagara, from whence they are embarked in boats and carried 18
    miles to Fort Erie, from whence vessels take them to Detroit, at
    the extremity of Lake Erie, which is about 250 miles in length.

    *    *    *    *    *

Key to Illustration following.

    No. 1 represents a small house, but of the owner or occupant
    nothing is known. It is near the site of the old Recollet
    Church, which appears to have been removed or destroyed.

    No. 2 represents the Commandant's house, which was on the line
    of Queen Street not far from Bagot Street.

    No. 3 represents the barracks built by Count Frontenac inside
    the fort, the walls of which are designated by No. 4. The
    barracks appear to have been on the north-west side of the fort.
    The wall of the fort in the original picture is partly dark
    shaded and partly light. The light part represents the
    south-west side of the wall, the dark the south-east side.

    No. 5 is a round tower built within the bastion at the corner of
    the fort. This was the south bastion. The tower was built of
    strong rubble masonry, and continued in existence until 1832,
    when it was razed to the ground. The site of the tower,
    indicated by the circular stone work, is distinctly visible
    to-day in the barrack square close to the ball alley.

    No. 6 is a three-cornered building, which was built of stone in
    front of, and a protection to, the entrance to the fort, which
    was on the north-east side, facing Barriefield. One angle
    pointed towards Barriefield, and the building was constructed in
    this shape in order to divert the fire of guns which might be
    directed against the gate.

    No. 7 represents a storehouse with a wharf in front of it, which
    formerly belonged to Mr. Forsythe.

    No. 8, further east, represents the storehouse owned by the
    Honorable Richard Cartwright, with a wharf in front of it. The
    adjoining building also probably belonged to him. Beyond this
    storehouse the land runs to a point and then sweeps into the
    left, forming a bay, which has now been nearly all filled up, on
    which are the Montreal Transportation Company's shipyard,
    Anglin's mill and other works. The other houses are probably
    engineers' or officers' quarters, or houses occupied at the time
    by inhabitants.

Note.--This drawing or sketch was taken twenty-five years after the
bombardment of the fort by Bradstreet (1758), and the walls bear traces
in the picture of the bombardment. Bradstreet's batteries were placed
one to the west of the house marked "1," another on the high ground
behind the house marked "2," No. 1 being about the site of the present
market-place, and the other on the high ground, on Queen Street, near
the corner of Bagot Street.

It is claimed by some old inhabitants of Kingston that Forsythe's wharf
was at the foot of Brock Street where Folger's Wharf now is.

[Illustration: Cataraqui (Kingston), 1783.

(_From a Drawing by Ensign James Peachey._)]

    Coll. Simcoe went on board the "Onondaga," and says we shall
    find tolerable accommodation in her when we go to Niagara,
    though he is much disposed to row round Lake Ontario in a boat,
    but everybody about us opposes the scheme as tedious and
    dangerous. Probably those who are of the party do not like the
    trouble of such a voyage, and I suppose Coll. Simcoe will go at
    last in a vessel rather than oppose these Sybarites of Italy,
    devoted to luxury and pleasure.

[Illustration: A Distant View of Kingston in 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    I gathered a very sweet and pretty white flower, the petals of
    the texture of orange flowers, five petals, ten chives, tipped
    with orange colour, the style pink, the leaves a light green,
    growing from the root, eight or ten flowers on short foot stalks
    on a long stalk, seed vessel round and small. Some ladies came
    to see me in the evening. I walked.

    Tues. 3rd--There are Mississaga Indians here. They are an
    unwarlike, idle, drunken, dirty tribe. I observe how extremes
    meet. These uncivilized people saunter up and down the town all
    day with the apparent nonchalance, want of occupation and
    indifference that seems to possess the London beaux in Bond
    Street.

    Sat. 7th--I walked this evening in a wood lately set on fire by
    some unextinguished fires being left by some persons who had
    encamped there, which in dry weather often communicates to the
    trees. Perhaps you have no idea of the pleasure of walking in a
    burning wood, but I found it so great that I think I shall have
    some woods set on fire for my evening walks. The smoke arising
    from it keeps the mosquitoes at a distance, and where the fire
    has caught the hollow trunk of a lofty tree the flame issuing
    from the top has a fine effect. In some trees where but a small
    flame appears it looks like stars as the evening grows dark, and
    the flare and smoke, interspread in different masses of dark
    woods, has a very picturesque appearance, a little like the poet
    Tasso's "enchanted wood."

    Sun. 8th--The Governor went to church and took the oaths
    preparatory to acting as Governor.

Note.--The following is an extract from the Minutes of the first
Executive Council of Upper Canada held on July 8th, 1792, from the
records of the Archives Department at Ottawa, with reference to Governor
Simcoe taking the oaths.

  "UPPER CANADA.

  "Kingston, July 8th, 1792.

"His Excellency John Graves Simcoe, Esqr., Lieutenant-Governor of the
Province of Upper Canada, Colonel commanding the forces in the said
Province, etc., etc., etc., having appointed the Protestant Church, as a
suitable place, for the reading and publishing of His Majesty's
Commissions. He accordingly repaired thither attended by

  The Honourable William Osgoode, Chief Justice,
  The Honourable James Baby,
  The Honourable Peter Russell,

together with the Magistrates, and principal inhabitants, when the said
Commission appointing His Excellency, (GUY) LORD DORCHESTER Captain
General and Governor-in-Chief, etc., etc., etc., of Upper and Lower
Canada, and also the Commission appointing the said John Graves Simcoe,
Lieutenant-Governor of the Province of Upper Canada were solemnly read
and published.

"His Excellency then took the Oaths mentioned in an Act of Parliament
passed in the first Year of His late Majesty King George, as altered and
explained by an Act passed in the 6th year of the reign of his present
Majesty, and also made, and subscribed the declaration mentioned in an
Act of Parliament made in the Twenty-fifth year of the reign of Charles
II., for preventing the dangers which may happen from Popish Recusants.
The Oath for the due execution of his place and trust was administered
to him by the Hon. W. Osgoode, Chief Justice, and he also took the Oath,
required by an Act passed in the 7th and 8th years of the reign of King
William III. to be taken by Governors of Plantations to do their utmost
that the laws relating to the plantations be duely observed."

The Protestant church referred to was opened in 1792. The Synod
authorities at Kingston state that the earliest minutes of the vestry
extant, dated 1820, designate the church as St. George's. In 1827, the
building was removed to make room for business houses, and the present
St. George's Cathedral was erected on the corner of King and Johnson
Streets. It was, however, called St. George's Church until 1862, when
Kingston was made the seat of a diocese. The Cathedral was enlarged in
1892, the deep chancel and apse being added. In 1899 the building was
destroyed by fire, only the walls remaining. It was rebuilt in 1900.

The _British Whig_ office, 306-10 King Street, formerly called Church
Street, now stands where the first church stood. Its front was where the
rear wall back of the printing office rests. The Kingston _News_ of some
years ago gives an interesting account of the inception and erection of
the church, which reads:

"On April 15th, 1791, a meeting was held in Kingston (the record does
not say where, but most probably in the house of Dr. Stuart), to
consider the desirability of building a church and to procure the
necessary means to do so. Besides the Rev. John Stuart, there were
present at this meeting, Richard Cartwright, senior; Richard Cartwright,
junior; James Richardson, Joseph Anderson and Archibald Thomson. It was
decided to build a church and the contract was awarded to Archibald
Thomson, who, by the way, was not a churchman, but a Presbyterian,
though probably not a very strict one, as for the short period he
remained in Kingston after the church was opened he was a pewholder
therein. Archibald Thomson was of Scottish birth, having been born at
Moudie Hill, Canobie, Dumfriesshire. About the middle of the last
century, he and two of his brothers, Andrew and David, emigrated to the
American colonies when they were very young men, probably just before
the Revolutionary War. At its close they left the United States and
settled in Upper Canada, Archibald, the one we are referring to, coming
to Kingston. He was father of Hugh C. Thomson, an active business and
newspaper man in Kingston from 1814 until his death in 1834. Early in
1793 Archibald Thomson, who was a U. E. Loyalist, left Kingston and
removed to Markham, where he resided until his death. He is buried in
St. Andrew's churchyard in Scarborough, some twelve miles from Toronto.

"Another meeting was held on October 25th, 1791, at which was present
the Rev. J. Stuart, Messrs. Christopher Georgen, James Richardson, Wm.
Atkinson and Archibald Thomson. Resolutions were unanimously passed as
follows:

"First--That the money subscribed for the purpose of erecting a church
should be immediately applied to that use.

"Second--In consequence of the foregoing resolutions, a carpenter is to
be employed to erect a frame building of 40x32 feet in the clear. To
weather board, shingle and floor it; also to ceil and sash it.

"As has been stated Archibald Thomson was the builder, and the total
cost was less than $600. The church was opened in March, 1792. Among the
first pewholders were Peter Smith, William Coffin, Allen McLean, John
Baird, Robert Macaulay, Neil McLean, two pews; Honorable Richard
Cartwright, who also had two pews. The rent of the pews was $4 a year,
or one pound, Halifax currency. In 1795, Robert Macaulay and Peter Smith
were the churchwardens. Nothing occurred to mar the harmony that existed
among the congregation. That was before the days of surpliced choirs and
choral services, and when it would have been an unheard-of innovation
had the clergyman preached a sermon less than half an hour in duration.
As regards the musical arrangements a hundred years since, at first
there was a barrel organ, which some little time after was replaced by a
manual. Whether the organist was accompanied by a bass viol and flute,
history sayeth not, but it is more than likely such was the case.

"On June 13th, 1795, a public meeting was held of the parishioners, when
so much had the congregation increased that it was resolved to extend
the church by putting in a gallery, and this was done."

The son of Hugh C. Thomson, editor of the Kingston _Herald_, was the
late Rev. C. E. Thomson of St. Mark's Church, Toronto Junction, who in
1903 was the president of the U. E. Loyalists Association of Ontario. K.
G. Thomson of Norwood, Ont., is a son of the late Rev. C. E. Thomson,
and a great-grandson of Archibald Thomson.

    Tues. 10th--The Council met. I walked this evening. Some Indians
    arrived from a distance. They fired a salute with muskets, which
    was returned with a cannon.

    Wed. 11th--The Indians came to dance before the Governor, highly
    painted and in their war costume, with little clothing. They
    were near enough to the house for me to hear their singing,
    which sounded like a repetition in different dismal tones of
    he', he', 'he', and at intervals a savage whoop. They had a skin
    stretched on sticks imitating a drum, which they beat with
    sticks. Having drank more than usual, they continued singing the
    greatest part of the night. They never quarrel with white people
    unless insulted by them, but are very quarrelsome amongst
    themselves. Therefore, when the women see them drunk they take
    away their knives, and hide them until they become sober.

    This evening I walked through a pretty part of the wood and
    gathered capillaire and a very pretty, small flower, five white
    petals of an exceeding firm texture, the purple short chives
    which support the anther of the flower proceeding from a purple
    rim that surrounds a very prominent green seed-vessel, on long
    foot stalks; from the top of the stalk the leaves spear shaped,
    sawed, polished, of the darkest green, and almost as firm as
    holly; numerous. It grows in very shady places, an evergreen. I
    was driven home by the bite of a mosquito through a leather
    glove. My arm inflamed so much that after supper I fainted with
    the pain while playing at chess with Capt. Littlehales.

    Fri. 13th--Mrs. Macaulay, the garrison surgeon's wife, drank tea
    with me. She is a naval officer's daughter, and a very agreeable
    woman.

[Illustration: Dr. Macaulay.]

[Illustration: Mrs. Macaulay.]

Note.--Dr. James Macaulay, born in Scotland in 1759, entered the army as
surgeon to the 33rd Regiment, about 1785. He came to Canada with the
Queen's Rangers and was stationed at Kingston and Niagara. Subsequently
he received the appointment as deputy inspector-general of hospitals. In
the army list, 1795, he is given as "Surgeon James M'Aulay, on garrison
duty." Dr. Macaulay was twice married, first in 1790 to Elizabeth Tuck
Hayter, and second in 1817 to Rachel Crookshank. He had issue by his
first wife only, namely:--(Hon.) John Simcoe, Colonel of the Royal
Engineers; (Sir) James Buchanan, first Chief Justice of Common Pleas,
Upper Canada; George, a barrister-at-law; and Allan, a clergyman;
Elizabeth, who married Judge Hagerman; Mary, who married John William
Gamble, of Woodbridge; Ann, who married Dr. Peter Diehl, and Sarah
Hayter, who became the wife of John S. Cartwright. Two sons of the last
named are James S. Cartwright, K.C., Master in Chambers, Toronto, and
John R. Cartwright, K.C., Deputy Attorney-General. Of the daughters of
Honorable John Simcoe Macaulay, Sarah Sophia Bingham, Henrietta Emma and
Mrs. Purcell (Elizabeth Mary) live in England.

When Toronto became the seat of government instead of Niagara, Dr.
Macaulay settled in the former place with his family. Teraulay Street,
Toronto, preserves the last syllable of Hayter and the two last
syllables of Macaulay.

    Sat. 14th--Mr. Scadding caught a beautiful green grass snake,
    which was harmless. After keeping it a day or two he let it go.
    The way of clearing land in this country is cutting down all the
    small wood, pile it and set it on fire. The heavier timber is
    cut through the bark five feet above the ground. This kills the
    tree, which in time the wind blows down. The stumps decay in the
    ground in the course of years, but appear very ugly for a long
    time, though the very large, leafless white trees have a
    singular and sometimes a picturesque effect among the living
    trees. The settler first builds a log hut covered with bark, and
    after two or three years raises a neat house by the side of it.
    This progress of industry is pleasant to observe.

    Sun. 15th--I went to church twice. The clergyman, Mr. Stuart, is
    from the United States. He preached good sermons with an air of
    serious earnestness in the cause which made them very
    impressive.

[Illustration: Rev. John Stuart.]

Note.--Dr. John Stuart was born in Harrisburg, Pa., in 1740. He was
originally a Presbyterian, but later sought for admission in the Church
of England, was admitted to Holy Orders in 1770 and appointed as a
missionary to the Indians at Fort Hunter on the Mohawk River for eight
years. He translated part of the New Testament and Book of Common Prayer
into the language of the Mohawks; came to St. Johns in the Province of
Quebec in October, 1781; was appointed chaplain to the garrison at
Kingston and arrived there in August, 1785, and was the first incumbent
of the Protestant church in Kingston, which was erected in 1791. He died
in Kingston on 15th August, 1811, and was succeeded as Archdeacon by Dr.
John Strachan, afterwards first Bishop of Toronto. It is somewhat of a
coincidence that Bishops Strachan and Bethune, like Archdeacon Stuart,
were sons of parents who belonged to the Church of Scotland. Archdeacon
Stuart's son, Rev. George O'Kill Stuart, was born at Fort Hunter in
1776; ordained in 1800 by the Bishop of Quebec, and in 1801 was sent as
a missionary to York, where he became first rector of the Anglican
church, now St. James Cathedral, Toronto. He was appointed rector at
Kingston in 1812, was the Bishop of Quebec's "official" in Upper Canada
and later Archdeacon of York, and was the first Dean of the See of
Ontario. He died in 1862.

    Mon. 16th--We sailed half a league this evening in a pretty boat
    of Mr. Clark's, attended by music, to Garden Island, opposite
    Kingston.

Note.--Garden Island is immediately west of Wolfe Island, whose western
portion is opposite Kingston. In French maps it is called "Ile aux
Forêts."

    Wed. 18th--We sailed towards the mills.

Note.--The grist mills, "Kingston Mills," were in 1782-3 built by Mr.
Robert Clarke for the Government, some five miles back from Kingston, at
the site of the first lock of the Rideau Canal, where a waterfall
furnishes the only water power in this vicinity.

    Thurs. 19th--The Governor went to-day to see Carleton Island,
    nearly opposite the shore from Kingston, where there were
    extensive fortifications, now dismantled. The island was
    afterwards discovered to be within American territory. Returned
    at six with wild raspberries, which were exceedingly fine.
    Carleton Island abounds with them and strawberries and plums,
    while the air is esteemed so healthy that the people go there to
    get rid of the ague, a complaint which is very prevalent in this
    province. The flowering raspberry grows wild here, and bears a
    very insipid, flat fruit. Mr. Fisher, of the Engineers, is here
    on his way to Quebec from Niagara. He showed us some beautiful
    sketches he has taken of the Falls of Niagara.

Note.--Carleton Island lies near Wolfe Island, opposite Kingston, close
to the south shore of the St. Lawrence.

    Sat. 21st--There are no rides about Kingston, or any pleasant
    walks that we have met with. Sailing is, therefore, our only
    amusement. To-day we were prevented by rain from going to the
    mills on the Cataraqui. It is in the interest of the people here
    to have this place considered as the seat of Government.
    Therefore they all dissuade the Governor from going to Niagara,
    and represent the want of provisions, houses, etc., at that
    place, as well as the certainty of having the ague. However, he
    has determined to sail for Niagara to-morrow.

    Mon. 23rd--At eight this morning we went on board the
    "Onondaga"--Commodore Beaton, the naval officer who has charge
    of the armed vessels on Lake Ontario. We sailed with a light
    wind. A calm soon succeeded, and we anchored seven miles from
    Kingston. The men who navigate the ships on this lake have
    little nautical knowledge, and never keep a log book. This
    afternoon we were near aground. The lake is beautifully
    transparent. We saw the bottom very plainly.

    Tues. 24th--A wet day and a foul wind. I played at chess or at
    cards all the day. Our Devonshire steward was surprised to find
    in the ship's steward an acquaintance, Charles Trump, who had
    left Kentisbeare, the village six miles west from Wolford, 16
    years ago.

    Wed. 25th--A clear, cold day; made little way--a head wind. I
    saw the spray of the Falls of Niagara rising like a cloud. It is
    40 miles distant.




  CHAPTER X.

  _MRS. SIMCOE'S ARRIVAL AT NIAGARA._


Thursday, the twenty-sixth of July, 1792, was a day that created no
little stir in the little hamlet at the mouth of the Niagara River,
which was to become the home, at least for a few years, of the first
Governor of Upper Canada.

Navy Hall had not any charms from an architectural standpoint. It was
about as primitive in construction as the log cabin of the pioneers.
Still, the group of four frame buildings that Mrs. Simcoe closely
scanned as the "Onondaga" came up the river, had at least the merit of
being well built in every detail.

The best picture extant of Navy Hall is that of 1792 made by Mrs.
Simcoe, the original of which is now in the Royal Library in the British
Museum. There is another view, a water-color, made by Mrs. Simcoe, 13th
September, 1794, on board the sloop-of-war "Mississaga," while lying
just outside the mouth of the Niagara River.

The group of buildings known as Navy Hall stood on the brink of the
river, just below Fort George, the fortification commenced in 1796,
whose guns commanded the old French fort on the opposite side of the
river. The buildings were four in number, as shown in maps and drawings
of 1792-6-9, and also on a map made by Surveyor-General Chewett in 1804.
One building only is shown in the plans of 1817-19-35. There is only one
map, dated 1851, on which it is not called Navy Hall. The old building
shown in the picture was removed about 1862 from its original site to
its present location. When the terminus of the Southern Railway, now the
Michigan Central, was to be changed it was found that the tracks would
go partly through the oak grove and this old building. In order to save
the relic of olden time, permission was obtained from the Government to
remove the building. It was then removed back into the enclosure of Fort
George near the old Ferry House. In doing so the building was placed
parallel with the river instead of an end slanting to it. An old lady, a
Mrs. Quade, who was born at Niagara in 1804, and lived there till 1829,
in visiting the town in later years said to her children as they passed
the old building, "There is the old Parliament House," so that there
seems to be no doubt that the building is one of the four buildings
comprising Navy Hall in 1792-6.

The principal building, longer than the others, stood nearly at right
angles to the river, while the remaining three were to the northwest and
parallel to the river. These buildings were built for the use of the
commanders of the sloops-of-war on Lake Ontario, not so much for
residential purposes as for the housing of stores to supply the vessels
when cruising on the western part of the lake. The principal supplies
for these vessels were, however, kept at Kingston, the colonial naval
centre in early days.

The site is fixed beyond doubt by the report of Captain Gother Mann of
the Royal Engineers, who on 22nd September, 1789, after reporting as to
the condition of Fort Niagara on what is now the American side of the
river stated that "a survey of the heights also, on the opposite side of
the river about Navy Hall, has been made with a view to ascertain the
best system of fortifying the same so as to establish a permanent post
there, and which might also counteract the designs of an enemy in his
attack on the Fort of Niagara." Gother Mann further reported on 1st
March, 1790, that "the ground above Navy Hall, if chosen for a principal
post, will admit a wall of good capacity, but, as it will be retired
from the river, there must be subordinate batteries on the banks thereof
to command the passage; it will be about sixteen hundred yards distant
from the Fort at Niagara, which, though within the distance of annoying
an enemy, could not prevent his carrying on operations against the
Fort." The result of this recommendation was the erection of Fort
George, the earthworks of which are still standing and have received but
little care from the Dominion Government.

[Illustration: Only Remaining Building of Navy Hall Group.

(_From a Drawing [1887] in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

The buildings of Navy Hall did not favorably impress the Duke de la
Rochefoucauld-Liancourt during his visit to Niagara in 1795. In his
writings he refers to the Governor's residence, where he was a guest for
some time, at a "small, miserable wooden house, which was formerly
occupied by the commissaries." There seems to be no doubt that all the
buildings comprising Navy Hall except one which is still standing, with
alas, part of the roof fallen in, were burnt by the Americans in 1813.

[Illustration: Navy Hall, Niagara--From the River, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Thurs. 26th July--At nine this morning we anchored at Navy Hall,
    opposite the garrison of Niagara, which commands the mouth of
    the river. Navy Hall is a house built by the Naval Commanders on
    this lake for their reception when here. It is now undergoing a
    thorough repair for our occupation, but is still so unfinished
    that the Governor has ordered three marquees to be pitched for
    us on the hill above the house, which is very dry ground and
    rises beautifully, in parts covered with oak bushes.

    A fine turf leads on to woods, through which runs a very good
    road leading to the Falls. The side of our hill is terminated by
    a very steep bank covered with wood, a hundred feet in height in
    some places, at the bottom of which runs the Niagara River. Our
    marquees command a beautiful view of the river and the garrison
    on the opposite side, which, from its being situated on the
    point, has a fine effect, and the poorness of the building is
    not remarked at this distance, from whence a fine picture might
    be made.

    The Queen's Rangers are encamped within half a mile behind us.
    In clear weather the north shore of Lake Ontario may be
    discerned. The trees which abound here are oak, chestnut, ash,
    maple, hickory, black walnut.

Note.--Here Fort George stands. Below, the path slopes from Fort George
to the river. The part "covered with oak bushes" is now (1911) called
Paradise Grove. The last troops to occupy Fort George were the Royal
Canadian Rifles, about 1856.

    Sun. 29th--There is no church here, but a room has been built
    for a Freemasons' Lodge, where divine service is performed.

Note.--There has, for many years past, been a difference in opinion as
to the exact site of the building in Niagara occupied by the Masonic
Lodge in 1792-3. It is contended by some that on the northwest corner of
King and Prideaux Streets, a tavern was built, and next to it the
Freemasons' Hall. This is borne out by the fact that the Land Board of
Niagara in 1791 gave permission to erect a tavern at the east corner of
the town, near the river, and a Masonic Lodge next to it. On the other
hand however, in the Crown Lands Department in a list of the lots of
1795, lot 33 is marked "The Lodge" and in another document lot 33
(northwest corner of King and Prideaux Streets) is marked "Freemasons'
Lodge." The site of the present lodge is one block from the first lodge,
and it might be that although the Land Board gave permission to build,
the hall may not have been erected there. It is practically an unsolved
mystery where the lodge met the first two years, but certain it is that
in 1792 there was a Freemasons' Lodge, and both tradition and the two
documents mentioned point to the north side of the lower end of King
Street as the place of meeting.

    Mon. 30th--At eight this morning we set off in calèches to go to
    the Falls, fourteen miles from hence. We stopped and breakfasted
    at Mr. Hamilton's, a merchant who lives two miles from here at
    the landing (Queenstown), where the cargoes going to Detroit are
    landed and sent by land eleven miles to Fort Chippawa.

    We had a delightful drive through the woods on the bank of the
    river, which is exceedingly high the whole way. As we approached
    the landing I was struck with the similarity between these hills
    and the banks and those of the River Wye about Symond's Yat (the
    name of a rising ground or eminence overlooking the Wye), and
    the lime rock near Whitchurch, both in Herefordshire, which
    differs very little, except in the superior width and clearness
    of the Niagara River.

Note.--Honorable Robert Hamilton, son of Rev. John Hamilton, was the
Deputy Provincial Grand Master of the First Provincial Grand Lodge of
Freemasons, under Mr. William Jarvis. He was a merchant at Niagara, a
member of the Land Board in 1791 at that place, a member of the first
Executive Council of the civil government in 1792, and a man prominent
in affairs in that part of Upper Canada. He was also the first judge of
the district of Nassau. Lord Dorchester formed western Canada into four
districts, of which one was Nassau, and it was located between the river
Trent on the east and a line extending from Long Point north from the
western boundary, which included the Niagara peninsula.

[Illustration: Hon. Robert Hamilton.]

In 1797, the lodges at Niagara elected Hamilton as Provincial Grand
Master in the place of Mr. William Jarvis, although the records after
that date give the name of the latter officer as continuing in the
office to which he had been appointed. Mr. Simon McGillivray, however,
in a letter which he wrote to the Grand Master of England, in 1822,
states that after Mr. Jarvis removed to York "the lodges at Niagara held
a meeting and elected the late Robert Hamilton Provincial Grand Master,"
but, he added, "Jarvis retained his warrant." It is possible that the
lodges did this in 1797 and at a subsequent meeting in 1799-1800
re-elected Jarvis, for in a circular, dated 29th March, 1803, "R. W.
Bro. William Jarvis, Esq., G. Master," is given.

During the American revolution, Mr. Hamilton, in partnership with Mr.
(afterwards Hon.) Richard Cartwright, established a store on Carleton
Island, near the military post which was known as Fort Haldimand, and
carried on an extensive trade with the Indians. Soon after the close of
the war Mr. Hamilton removed to Queenston, and was appointed one of the
local judges, having Lieutenant-Colonel John Butler as his colleague on
the bench.

Captain Patrick Campbell, who visited Niagara in December, 1790, says:

    "Mr. Robert Hamilton, a gentleman of the first rank and property
    in the neighbourhood, and one of the Governor's Council, came
    also to wait on me and invite me to his house, an honour I
    readily embraced. He and Mrs. Hamilton were so very obliging as
    to go along with me in their oak sled to see the Grand Falls of
    Niagara."

Hamilton built a large stone residence at Queenston, a brewery and a
warehouse. In 1792 he was appointed a member of the Legislative Council
for the new Province of Upper Canada, an office he retained until his
death. For some time he distinguished himself in connection with Mr.
Cartwright, his old partner, also a member, by opposing Government
measures, thereby incurring Lieutenant-Governor Simcoe's lively
displeasure. In one of the Governor's despatches he denounces Hamilton
as an "avowed republican," but when it was hinted that certain
privileges would be taken away from them the opposition ceased. Governor
Simcoe acknowledged that he had received much valuable information from
Mr. Hamilton respecting the commerce of the country and particularly the
Indian trade of the far West.

[Illustration: Residence of Honorable Robert Hamilton on the Niagara
River Road, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Mr. Hamilton married about 1786, Catherine (Askin) Robertson, widow of
John Robertson. There were five children by this marriage; Robert, of
Queenston; (Hon.) George, who in 1812 moved to Burlington Bay, where he
became the founder of the city of Hamilton; James, of London; Alexander
and Samuel. Hamilton took as his second wife Mary (Herkimer) McLean,
widow of Neil McLean, and had issue, Joseph, Peter Hunter and (Hon.)
John, of Kingston, one of whose sons, Clark Hamilton, was formerly
collector of the port of Kingston; while another was the late Judge J.
M. Hamilton, County Judge of Halton.

    Mon. 30th--Mr. Hamilton has a very good stone house, the back
    rooms overlooking on the river. A gallery, the length of the
    house, is a delightful covered walk, both below and above, in
    all weather. After an excellent breakfast we ascended an
    exceedingly steep road to the top of the mountain, which
    commands a fine view of the country as far as the garrison of
    Niagara and across the lake. From hence the road is entirely
    flat to the Falls, of which I did not hear the sound until
    within a mile of them. They are heard at Navy Hall before the
    rain when the wind is easterly, though the Falls are to the S.W.
    of Niagara. The fall is said to be but 170 feet in height. The
    river previously rushes in the most rapid manner on a declivity
    for three miles, and those rapids are a fine sight. The fall
    itself is the grandest sight imaginable from the immense width
    of waters and the circular form of the grand fall, to the left
    of which is an island, between it and the Montmorency Fall, so
    called from being near the size of the fall of that name near
    Quebec. A few rocks separate this from Fort Schlosser Fall, on
    the American side of the river, which, passing over a straight
    ledge of rock, has not the beauty of the circular form or its
    green colour, the whole centre of the circular fall being of the
    brightest green, and below it is frequently seen a rainbow.

Note.--By the interposition of two islands the river Niagara is
separated into three falls, that of the Great Horseshoe on the west or
British side, and those of Fort Schlosser and Montmorency on the eastern
or American side. The three falls, with the islands, describe a
crescent.

    Mon. 30th--I descended an exceedingly steep hill to get to the
    Table Rock, from whence the view of the Falls is tremendously
    fine. Men sometimes descend the rocks below this projecting
    point, but it is attended with great difficulty and perhaps
    little picturesque advantage. The prodigious spray which arises
    from the foam at the bottom of the fall adds grandeur to the
    scene, which is wonderfully fine, and after the eye becomes more
    familiar with the objects I think the pleasure will be greater
    in dwelling upon them. After taking some refreshment on Table
    Rock, we went three miles to Chippawa Fort, admiring the rapids
    all the way. The Chippawa River, which falls here into the St.
    Lawrence, is a dull, muddy river running through a flat, swampy
    country.

Note.--The St. Lawrence River may be said to rise at the source of the
St. Louis, which flows into Lake Superior. It receives different names
in different parts of its course. Between Lake Superior and Huron it is
called the St. Mary; between Lake Huron and Erie, the St. Clair and
Detroit; between Lake Ontario and Erie, the Niagara; and between Lake
Ontario and the ocean it takes the name of St. Lawrence. The part of the
river below Kingston is called sometimes "The Lake of the Thousand
Islands."

    People cross from Chippawa to Fort Schlosser, but great caution
    is necessary, the current is so extremely strong, and if they
    did not make exactly the mouth of the Chippawa the force of the
    water below it would inevitably carry them down the Falls
    without redress. Eight soldiers, who were intoxicated, met with
    this accident in crossing the river some years since. Their
    bodies were taken up entire some distance below the Falls. An
    Indian was asleep in his canoe near Fort Schlosser. The canoe
    was tied to a tree; some person cut the rope; he did not wake
    until the canoe had got into the strong current. He found all
    his endeavours to paddle ineffectual, and was seen to lay
    himself down, resigning himself to his fate, and was soon
    carried down the Fall.

    In the evening we returned to Mr. Hamilton's and slept there. I
    suffered exquisite pain all the day from a mosquito bite, which
    the extreme heat increased, and at night my sleeve was obliged
    to be cut open. I did not see any rattlesnakes, though many
    ladies are afraid to go to the Table Rock, as it is said there
    are many of these snakes near it. There are crayfish in very
    small pools of water. Mr. McDonnell said that pounded crayfish
    applied to the wound was a cure for the bite of a rattlesnake.

    Tues. 31st--Returned to dine in our marquee. Information is
    received from Prince Edward that he will be here the 20th of
    August, which will prevent our going to Detroit immediately,
    as the Governor had intended. Here are numbers of winged
    grasshoppers. They are hard, scaly and ugly as rhinoceros, and
    the colour of dead leaves. The high grounds above Navy Hall are
    so covered with them that the whole field appears in motion.

[Illustration: Niagara Falls from the Canadian Side, 1792.

(_From a Water-color by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Wed. Aug. 1st--We dined with Major and Mrs. Smith (the Major was
    afterwards the Colonel of the regiment). He is in the 5th Regt.,
    and commands the garrison. Lt. Smith, his son, is married to a
    beautiful Irish woman. A great many officers of the 5th are
    married. Though the buildings look so well from the other side,
    I found the quarters very indifferent.

    Mrs. Smith has two tame racoons. They resemble a fox, are
    exceedingly fat animals, with bushy tails. It is remarkable that
    they have a joint in the nose. When they eat they use their fore
    feet, as monkeys do. I also saw a flying squirrel, which I did
    not admire. Its tail was like a rat's, and the eyes very large.
    I thought the ground squirrel much prettier. The black squirrel
    is large and quite black. It is as good to eat as a young
    rabbit.

Note.--Major John Smith, afterwards lieutenant-colonel of the Fifth
Foot, was commandant of the fortress of Niagara, where he died in 1795.
His son, Lieutenant Smith, was subsequently Sir D. W. Smith,
Surveyor-General, Upper Canada. Mrs. Simcoe speaks of Lieutenant Smith
being married "to a beautiful Irish woman," who was his first wife,
Anne, daughter of John O'Reilly, Ballykilchrist, County Longford,
Ireland. The 5th Regiment of Foot or Northumberland Fusiliers, of which
Lieutenant-Colonel Smith was in command at Niagara from 1792 until his
death, was formed in 1674, fought in Flanders and also in the war of the
American Revolution. In 1774 the regiment landed in Boston; in 1778 was
in various parts of the West Indies and returned to England in 1781. In
1787 the regiment embarked for Canada and in 1790 was quartered at
Detroit, whence it was removed in June, 1792, to Niagara. It was here
reviewed by H.R.H. the Duke of Kent and General Simcoe, who reported to
the commander-in-chief that it was the "most fit for actual service."
The regiment remained at Niagara till that fort was given up to the
Americans in 1796, when it was ordered to Quebec. In 1797 it returned to
England.

    Fri. 3rd--The Governor set out this evening to sleep at the
    Landing (Queenstown), intending to go to-morrow to Fort Erie,
    thirty miles. Mr. Talbot (Gov. Simcoe's private secretary) drove
    me to the Landing, and we returned to supper at Navy Hall. We
    saw a fine bald eagle on the wing.

    Sat. 4th--The Governor returned to dinner quite unexpectedly,
    having heard that the vessels he meant to have seen had sailed
    from Fort Erie to Detroit. Mrs. Macaulay drank tea with me. The
    weather is so exceedingly hot that I am quite oppressed by it,
    and unable to employ myself. I am sorry I have not a thermometer
    to ascertain the degree of heat. We have a very large bower,
    composed of oak boughs, in which we dine, it being greatly
    cooler than a tent. We like this place much better than
    Kingston. Mrs. Hamilton and her sister, Miss Askin, daughters of
    Coll. John Askin, a wealthy merchant of Detroit, dined with us.
    They are French women from Detroit.

Note.--John Askin, or Erskine, a kinsman of John Erskine, Earl of Mar,
who headed the revolt in 1715 in favor of the Old Pretender, emigrated
to America about 1759 and was a merchant at Albany. About 1762-3, he
with others, came with supplies to the relief of the British besieged by
Pontiac at Detroit. In 1764, he went as King's Commissary to
Michillimackinac and in 1780 returned to Detroit to engage in trade. In
1787 Askin was captain of militia for Detroit, in 1796 was
lieutenant-colonel of militia for the Western District, and in 1801, was
colonel in the same corps. He was also one of the magistrates of the
District. On the evacuation of Detroit by the British in 1796 he came to
Canada. Colonel Askin married first a French lady whose name cannot be
ascertained and by her had three children, John, Catherine (Robertson)
who became the wife of Honorable Robert B. Hamilton, of Niagara, and
Madeleine, who married Dr. Richardson, of the Queen's Rangers. The
children by his second wife, Marie Archange Barthe, were Therese, who
married Colonel Thomas McKee, son of Colonel Alexander McKee, Deputy
Superintendent-General of Indian Affairs; Archange, married Colonel
Meredith, of the Royal Artillery, afterwards commandant at Halifax;
Adelaide, married Colonel Elijah Brush, of the Michigan Militia;
Charles, captain in Colonel Clark's Lincoln Militia, married Monique
Jacobs; James, colonel of militia; Alexander, artillery driver, 1812-15;
Eleanor, married Richard Pattison, of Sandwich, captain of militia. A.
H. Askin, of "Strabane," near Walkerville, is a son of Charles; J.
Wallace Askin, of Sandwich, is a grandson of James, while William
Johnson McKee, of Windsor, is a great-grandson of Therese Askin.

[Illustration: Col. John Askin.]

    Mon. 6th--The Queen's Rangers are encamped at the Landing, and
    are employed in building huts near the river to live in next
    winter. It is a very picturesque place. The Governor crossed the
    water from thence, and ascended a very steep road to see the
    remains of the French fort at Lewiston.

    From thence there is a fine view towards the head of Lake
    Ontario, 50 miles distant. Near this fort are tumuli, or earth
    mounds, where bones have been dug up, and it is supposed to have
    been an Indian burying place. I received some shaddocks, a
    species of orange, from the West Indies, which I considered an
    excellent fruit.

[Illustration: Queenstown, or The Lower Landing, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--The original corps known as "Rogers' Rangers" was raised in
Connecticut and the vicinity of New York by Colonel Robert Rogers, under
whom it served in the war with the French. Their strength was at one
time 400, all Americans and all Loyalists. In 1776 Rogers was appointed
Governor of Michillimackinac. He was succeeded in his command of the
Rangers by Colonel French and afterwards Major Weymess, whom Major
Simcoe succeeded. The latter reorganized the corps as the Queen's
Rangers and it fought under him in the war of the American Revolution.
It was disbanded in 1782. The Queen's Rangers of Niagara history were
a different body. They were raised in Canada from old soldiers of the
regular regiments, strengthened by a detachment of ex-soldiers from
English regiments, which was drafted and came out to Canada with William
Jarvis, the first Provincial Secretary, in 1792. They were camped at
Queenstown in 1792 and in August of 1793 the two divisions of the
regiment were stationed at York, now Toronto. The British War Office
ordered the disbandment of the regiment in 1802. There was a Masonic
Lodge in this regiment, known as No. 3 on the Provincial Masonic
Register. Provincial Secretary Jarvis, who was the Provincial Grand
Master for Upper Canada, issued a warrant establishing this lodge in
1793. It ceased work in 1802 at the time the regiment was disbanded.

[Illustration: Niagara River at Queenstown, 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Fri. 17th--I desired to drive out last evening, though everybody
    foretold an approaching thunderstorm, which indeed came on with
    great violence when we were half way to the Landing. I feared
    that the lightning would make the horse run away, but he only
    started at every flash. The recollection that it was my own
    determination brought me into danger was very unpleasant.
    However, we got back safe and in time to save the marquees from
    being blown down. Mr. Grey's and Mr. Talbot's were overset, but
    the Governor preserved ours by having the cords held until the
    violence of the storm was over. The tents were so near the river
    that we were afraid they would be blown into it.

    We were so cold and wet we were glad to drink tea. It was quite
    dark, and too windy to allow of our burning candles, and when
    the forked flashes of lightning enlightened the air I was able
    to drink tea. I wrapped myself up in two or three great-coats,
    and intended, if the tent was blown down, to take shelter under
    the great dinner table. The rain and wind did not cease for two
    hours, and we had no means of drying our clothes and were
    obliged to sleep in a wet tent. However, we have not caught
    cold.

    I received a very pretty set of Nankeen china from England
    to-day, and in an hour after it was unpacked the temporary
    kitchen (an arbour of oak boughs) took fire, and in the hurry of
    moving the china it was almost all broken. Luckily the weather
    was calm, or the tents might have taken fire. We are in daily
    expectation of the Prince. The canvas houses are not arrived or
    Navy Hall finished, and the dilemma has been whether to give him
    the marquees for his residence or the damp house. We have
    decided to take the latter ourselves, so here we came in a cold,
    blowing, dismal night.

    I sat by myself in a miserable, unfinished, damp room, looking
    on the lake, where it blew quite a gale, the "Bear," a gunboat,
    tossing about terribly, and not a cheerful thought passing
    through my mind, when I had the happiness of receiving a letter
    from you, which raised my spirits, though for some hours after
    that pleasure I felt more dejected than at all other times, from
    the recollection of absence from my friends.

    The "Bear," a Government sloop, is arrived from Irondiquet Bay
    and the Genesee River, both in New York State, and brought two
    families from Carolina to settle in this province. They have had
    a most terrible passage, being obliged to stay under the
    hatchway almost all the time.

    Sat. 18th--We crossed the river; from a green bank had a very
    pretty view of Navy Hall.

    Mon. 20th--Cold weather. We walked.

    Tues. 21st--Very cold; we walked by the side of the lake, which
    is quite like a sea beach, only the marine smell is wanting.

    Tues. Sept. 18th--Prince Edward came here the 21st of August. He
    went to the Fort at Niagara, and when a salute was fired the
    Governor was standing very near the cannon, and from that moment
    was seized with so violent a pain in his head that he was unable
    to see the Prince after that day, and kept his room for a
    fortnight. He had a gouty pain in his hand before, and it is
    supposed the shock of the cannon firing so immediately above him
    fixed the disorder in his head. He is now recovered, and has a
    pain in his foot, which perhaps would more effectually relieve
    his head if it were more violent.

    Lord Garlies and Capt. Markham stayed here a week, but the
    Governor was not well enough to see them more than once.

Note.--Prince Edward, afterwards Duke of Kent, arrived at Navy Hall to
visit General Simcoe, August 21, 1792. On the 23rd he went to Fort
Niagara to review the troops, and on the 26th he sailed for Kingston.

George, Viscount Garlies, was the eldest son of the 7th Earl of
Galloway. He was in command of the "Winchelsea" with Sir John Jervis'
fleet in the West Indies and was mentioned for distinguished conduct. He
became 8th Earl in November, 1806. He died 27th March, 1834, and was
succeeded by his eldest son Randolph.

[Illustration: Viscount Garlies.]

John Markham, second son of William, Archbishop of York, was in command
of the "Blonde" with Jervis' West Indian fleet and was mentioned in
despatches 21st April, 1794, for distinguished conduct in the attack on
St. Pierre.

[Illustration: Queen's Rangers' Huts at Queenstown, Where the Regiment
was Stationed in 1792.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Wed. 19th--I send you May apple seeds. I think it is the
    prettiest plant I have seen; the leaves extremely large, of a
    bright green; the flower consists of five white petals of the
    texture of orange flowers, but three times larger; ten yellow
    chives round a large seed vessel, which becomes a fruit of
    the colour and near the size of a magnum bonum plum, the seeds
    resembling a melon. The flower is on a short foot stalk, one or
    two sitting between the leaves. They grow near the roots of old
    trees in good land. The fruit is ripe in August. Manitou means
    the "Evil Spirit" or "Devil" in the Iroquois language; Niche is
    "friend," and sago "How-do-you-do?" These are the Indian words I
    have learnt.

    Sun. Nov. 4th--We have had a great many whitefish. They are
    caught here from October to April. In summer they go into deeper
    water. They are most exquisitely good. We all think them better
    than any other fresh or salt water fish; they are so rich that
    sauce is seldom eaten with them, but it is a richness that never
    tires, it is of so delicate a kind. They are usually boiled, or
    set before the fire in a pan with a few spoonfuls of water and
    an anchovy, which is a very good way of dressing them. The
    sturgeon are about six feet long. Those that are caught here are
    infinitely better than those which go to the sea; cooks who know
    how to dress parts of them, cutting away all that is oily and
    strong, make excellent dishes from sturgeon, such as mock turtle
    soup, veal cutlets, etc., and it is very good roasted with bread
    crumbs. The 5th Regt. have caught 100 sturgeon and 600 whitefish
    in a day in nets.

    A great many settlers come daily from the United States, some
    even from the Carolinas, about 2,000 miles. Five or six hundred
    miles is no more considered by an American than moving to the
    next parish is by an Englishman. Capt. Duncan has sent me the
    horse I rode to Mr. Frazier's. Mr. Talbot went with Coll. Butler
    to distribute presents to the Indians at Buffalo Creek, near
    Buffalo. He bought a very pretty fawn skin of one of them for
    me, and I made it into a tippet. He also brought me a cake of
    dried hurtleberries made by the Indians, which was like Irwin's
    patent black currant lozenges, but tastes of smoke.

    The Indians make very long speeches at their councils. One of
    them, named Cowkiller, spoke for five hours in a late debate
    between them and the people of the United States.

    I have seen some translations of speeches, full of
    well-expressed, fine sentiments, marking their reliance on the
    Great Spirit. They appear to have great energy and simplicity in
    their speeches.

Note.--Buffalo Creek is south of Buffalo City, near New Amsterdam, and
four miles above Fort Schlosser.

Cowkiller was a Seneca Chief, and a speaker at a council meeting
February 7th, 1794, at Buffalo Creek.

    Mon. Nov. 5th--The ships sail for Kingston this week, and remain
    there closed up by the ice in that harbour until April. The
    Governor will now have less to write, and, I hope, fewer
    headaches. The winter express indeed will afford an opportunity
    of sending some despatches. It arrives here from Quebec late in
    January, and after going to Detroit returns here; it was
    established for the use of the merchants, and travels on
    snowshoes, coming by way of Fort Oswego. Capt. Stevenson has
    gone to England, and Mr. Littlehales to Philadelphia, to see Mr.
    Hammond, the British Ambassador to the United States.

Note.--George Hammond was sent in 1791 by Lord Grenville, Secretary for
Foreign Affairs, to Philadelphia to act as Minister plenipotentiary to
the United States. Although only twenty-eight, Hammond was the first
British minister accredited to the United States. Thomas Jefferson, the
American Secretary of State, regarded his arrival as a "friendly
movement." The conflicting claims of the two countries in giving effect
to the Treaty of 1783 involved Jefferson and Hammond in very serious
controversy. In 1795 Hammond left America to become Under-Secretary at
the Foreign Office in London.

    Tues. Nov. 6th--I have met with a beautiful blue flower near the
    river. The edges of the petal are finely sawed. The cardinal
    flower, which grows in the wettest and most shady places, is a
    beautiful colour. I am told the Indians use the roots
    medicinally.

    I send you some seeds of the wild asparagus. It may be eaten
    when very young; afterwards it becomes poisonous. The milky
    cotton in the seed vessel is very pretty, and makes excellent
    pillows and beds. I hope you will grow enough to stuff a muff. I
    do not know how to describe the flower, it is so unlike anything
    I ever saw.

    Mon. 26th--We have had very little snow, which is melted; the
    weather is again as the autumn, has continued very mild and
    pleasant. Mr. Bouchette has surveyed Toronto Harbour. It is 35
    miles from hence across the lake.

Note.--Commodore Jean Bouchette was born at Quebec on the 5th July,
1736. He was the son of Marc Bouchette, who held a Government
appointment under the French régime. The family is of Breton extraction,
being, according to tradition, descended from Jean Bouchet, who wrote
chronicles at the time of Joan of Arc. When Sir Guy Carleton was forced
by the Americans to withdraw from Montreal in 1775, Bouchette took the
Governor-General and two aides, all disguised as peasants, in an open
boat to Quebec. A flotilla of eleven boats was captured by the enemy.

In 1783, Bouchette was placed in command on Lake Ontario and established
the Naval Docks at Kingston. He held this position until his death in
1804. There appears to have been some difference of opinion between
General Simcoe and Commodore Bouchette as to the respective merits of
Toronto and Kingston as the naval base on Lake Ontario, the latter
declaring that as the American base was at Sackett's Harbour, the
British forces should be concentrated at Kingston. Bouchette married in
1772 Angelique Duhamel.

[Illustration: Col. Joseph Bouchette.]

Lieutenant-Colonel Joseph Bouchette, son of the Commodore, began his
career in the provincial navy under his father. He made the first survey
of the harbor of Toronto in May, 1793, received his appointment as
second lieutenant in the following year, serving in the navy until 1796.
In 1797, he commanded an armed row-galley which cruised between Montreal
and Quebec. His reports seem to have led to the arrest of Colonel
McLean, afterwards executed as a spy. He took a military course in 1800.
In 1804, he was appointed Surveyor-General of Lower Canada, raised a
regiment, Quebec Volunteers, in 1812, and in 1813 was appointed
lieutenant-colonel and transferred to staff and intelligence service. In
August, 1814, Bouchette left for England, and while there was nominated
Surveyor-General under the several articles of the Treaty of Ghent, for
establishing the boundary between the United States and His Majesty's
possessions in America. He published maps of Canada and two
works--"Topography of Lower Canada," in one volume, 8vo, London, 1815;
and "Topography of the British Dominions in North America," 3 volumes,
4to, London, 1831-2. He married Adelaide, daughter of Charles Chaboillez
of the North-West Company, and had three sons, Joseph,
Deputy-Surveyor-General; Frank, 68th Light Infantry, and Robert Shore
Milnes, Commissioner of Customs until 1875. The surviving
representatives of the family in Canada are Errol Bouchette, F.R.S.C.,
of Ottawa, a writer on economics and sociology, and Robert Shore Milnes
Bouchette of Montreal.

    Wed. 28th--Went to the Fort this morning. Mrs. Macaulay drank
    tea with me, and I had a party at whist in the evening. The
    partition was put in the canvas houses to-day, by which means I
    have a bedroom in it as well as a sitting-room. These rooms are
    very comfortable, about thirty feet long. The grates did not
    answer for burning, and I have had a stove placed instead,
    though as yet a fire has not been wanted. The weather is so mild
    that we have walked in the garden from eight till nine in the
    moonlight these last two evenings.

    Mon. 3rd Dec.--The Governor went to the Landing, and I went to
    the Fort to see Capt. Darling's stuffed birds. The most
    beautiful of them he called a meadow lark, the size of a
    blackbird, the colours the richest yellow, shaded to orange
    intermixed with black; the Recollect, a light brown with a tuft
    on its head and the tips of the wings scarlet, like sealing wax;
    a blackbird with scarlet on the wings--they abound here in
    swamps; a scarlet bird called a King bird, the size of a small
    thrush; a bird like a canary bird, but the colours much
    brighter; a grand Duc Owl. Among the animals there was a skunk
    like a polecat, with black and white marks.

Note.--Henry Darling was ensign in the 5th Regiment in 1780. In April,
1783, he had rank as lieutenant in the army, and in the regiment the
following September. He eventually became General. In September, 1793,
he, with Lieutenant Pilkington of the Royal Engineers, Lieutenant Givins
of the Queen's Rangers, and Mr. Alexander Aitkin, Deputy Provincial
Surveyor, accompanied Governor Simcoe to Matchedash Bay.

    Sun. 9th--Capt. Brant (Thayendanegea), Chief of the Six Nations
    Indians, dined here. He has a countenance expressive of art or
    cunning. He wore an English coat, with a handsome crimson silk
    blanket, lined with black and trimmed with gold fringe, and wore
    a fur cap; round his neck he had a string of plaited sweet hay.
    It is a kind of grass which never loses its pleasant scent. The
    Indians are very fond of it. Its smell is like the Tonquin or
    Asiatic Bean.

Note.--Joseph Brant's Indian name Thayendanegea denotes strength and is
translated "Two sticks of wood bound together." He was born on the banks
of the Ohio in 1742, where his parents were engaged in a hunting
expedition. The home of the family was at Canajoharie Castle, the
central of the three castles of the Mohawks in their native Mohawk
valley. Brant's father, who was a full-blooded Mohawk of the Wolf tribe,
died when the lad was quite young. The widow married a second time an
Indian whose Christian name was Barnet, hence the contraction Brant.
Joseph was educated at "Moor Charity School" in Lebanon, Connecticut. He
accompanied Sir William Johnson with the army during several expeditions
against the French, and took part in many of the encounters between the
revolutionists and the Indian tribes. His allegiance to Britain so
provoked the Americans that the valley of the Mohawks, the original home
of Brant's people, suffered more than any other part of the country
during the war.

In 1776 he visited England and was presented to the Court. He proudly
declined to kiss the King's hand, but remarked that he would gladly thus
salute the Queen. While in England he was initiated into Freemasonry in
"The Falcon Lodge" in Princess St., Leicester Fields, London, and
presented by George III. with a Masonic apron.

[Illustration: Thayendanegea.]

After the war, he, with a greater part of the Mohawks, and a number of
Indians from the other five tribes, withdrew to Canada, where the Six
Nations subsequently received grants of land on the Bay of Quinte and
the Grand River. Brant had a grant of land near Wellington Square, now
Burlington, Ontario, where he built a dwelling long known as Brant
House.

In 1785 through his efforts a wooden church was erected at the Mohawk
village near Brantford, where was placed the first "church-going bell"
that ever tolled in Upper Canada.

In 1791-2, when Governor Simcoe arrived as Lieutenant-Governor of Upper
Canada, he was the bearer of a letter of introduction to Brant from the
Duke of Northumberland, who had been adopted by the Mohawks under the
Indian name "Thorighwegeri," or the Evergreen Brake. This name involves
the very pretty conceit that a titled house never dies.

[Illustration: Brant House at Burlington, Ont.

(_From a Drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

In the years 1791-2 Brant was energetically negotiating for peace
between the Indian tribes and the United States. Governor Simcoe on his
way to Detroit in 1793 had a conference with him at the Council House in
the Mohawk village on the Grand River. An important conference between
the United States Commissioners and the Indian chief was held at Navy
Hall, Niagara, and a subsequent conference was held at Detroit. He died
in Brant House on the 24th November, 1807, aged 64, and his remains were
interred in a vault on the south side of the Mohawk Church on the Grand
River.

It is noteworthy that Brant, although a chief by courtesy and ability,
and always so called, was not such by descent.

    Mon. 10th--The Governor set out to walk to Burlington Bay (now
    Hamilton, Ont.), at the head of Lake Ontario, about fifty miles
    from hence.

    Sat. 15th--Mrs. Macaulay gave me an account of a subscription
    ball she was at, which is to be held in the town of Niagara
    every fortnight during the winter. There were fourteen couples,
    a great display of gauze, feathers and velvet, the room lighted
    by wax candles, and there was a supper as well as tea.

    Sun. 16th--I sat up all night to read poems of Louis Velez de
    Guevara, the Spanish poet and dramatist (1570-1644), and the
    history of Prince Ctesiphon, and some pages of "Don Quixote";
    went to bed in my clothes at six, rose at nine, dressed,
    breakfasted at ten.

    Mon. 17th--The Governor returned at five to-day from his walk to
    Burlington Bay. The shores of the lake are, for a great
    distance, as high as the Falls of Niagara, and several small
    rivers, falling from that height, make picturesque scenes. He
    was delighted with the beauty of the country and industry of the
    inhabitants. He lodged every night in houses, where he was
    accommodated with a clean room and a good fire.

    Sun. 23rd--I left Trojan, my hound, in my room while I went to
    dinner, and he tore to pieces my best map of Canada and the
    United States, which I had taken great pains to draw. I must
    paste it together again, but its appearance is spoiled. The
    Governor made some very pretty verses on the occasion.

    Sat. 29th--Coll. Simcoe walked to the Landing and Fort
    Schlosser, opposite Chippawa. The weather is so mild we
    breakfasted with the door open into the garden.

[Illustration: Niagara River, Showing Sites of First and Second Forts
Little Niagara, 1745-51.

(_From a Drawing by Peter A. Porter._)]

Note.--Simcoe must have crossed the river at Queenston Landing and
thence walked to Fort Schlosser on the American shore, about a mile and
a half above the Falls, almost opposite Chippawa. It was built by
Colonel Schlosser of the British Army in 1760 to replace the second Fort
Little Niagara which had been burned by order of General Pouchot, who
was in command of Fort Niagara in 1759 when the British besieged the
greater fort. This second Fort Little Niagara was a short distance down
stream from the site of Fort Schlosser. Both forts were at the upper end
of the portage which ran from Lewiston to that point. Queenston and
Lewiston were called the Lower Landings, and Chippawa and Schlosser the
Upper Landings, on the Canadian and American shores respectively. In
1792, the first Fort Little Niagara (abandoned in 1751) was merely the
remains of a blockhouse, and the second Fort Little Niagara but a
memory. Fort Schlosser, an earthwork fort, was at that time garrisoned,
though it was never a strong fort. The eleven blockhouses (shown on the
map) built by Montresor in 1764, were in 1792 in a dilapidated
condition, and when given up in 1796 at the end of the "hold over"
period, were almost useless. There are now no remains of Fort Schlosser,
which stood near the river bank. A stone chimney, however, which stood
a short distance away, still exists. It was moved about a hundred feet
from its original site and re-erected stone by stone in 1896. Mr. Peter
A. Porter writes that it was, prior to its removal, the oldest remaining
bit of perfect masonry on the frontier. It was attached to the barracks
which the French built for Fort Little Niagara, and was later attached
to the mess house which the British built in connection with Fort
Schlosser. The frame of that mess house was prepared at Fort Niagara, at
the mouth of the river, while the French were in possession there. It
was intended for a Catholic church but the British took the frame to the
site of the new fort, and put it up there. Judge Porter resided in the
building from 1806 to 1809. It was burned in 1813. The sketch of the
chimney was made for Lossing by Colonel Peter A. Porter, of Niagara
Falls, N.Y., who was killed in the American Civil War. He was the father
of Mr. Peter A. Porter of Niagara Falls, N.Y., who has done much for the
research of Niagara Falls history.

[Illustration: Remains near Fort Schlosser.]

The map gives the relative position of the existing forts on the
American and Canadian sides of the river in 1792 and the sites of first
and second Forts Little Niagara.

    Mon. 31st--A large party at dinner. Mrs. Hamilton, wife of Hon.
    Robert Hamilton, came to see me. We play at whist every evening.
    Coll. Simcoe is so occupied during the day with business that it
    is a relaxation. I have not lost one rubber since the 28th of
    November. We usually play four every evening.

    Mr. Chief Justice Osgoode is now in his own house, which is so
    near that he always came in an evening to make up our party.
    Till within this fortnight he resided in our house, not having
    been able to meet with any that suited him, and Coll. Simcoe
    finds him a very agreeable companion.




  CHAPTER XI.

  _JOURNEYS OF THE GOVERNOR._


Shortly after Major Littlehales' return from Philadelphia in January,
1793, Governor Simcoe set out for Detroit, walking with his party a
greater part of the way. This midwinter trip, which to a certain extent
was one of exploration, occupied about five weeks. Not only did the
country west of Niagara impress the Governor favorably, but he was
convinced that an admirable site for Canada's capital would be New
London, on La Tranche (Thames) River, now London, Ontario.

    Sun. 3rd Feb., 1793--Mr. Littlehales returned from Philadelphia.
    He gave the following journal of his travelling to New York:
    "Crossed the water at Queenstown (the Landing), ascended the
    mountain which is a part of the Alleghany. Six miles beyond the
    Landing passed the Tuscarora village, and forty miles farther
    the Tonawanda village, on the Niagara river, which runs into
    Tonawanda Creek, and is eleven miles S.E. of Niagara Falls. The
    Tonawanda Creek is navigable for batteau nearly to its source;
    from thence through a thick wood, full of swamps and creeks,
    twenty miles to Butter Milk Falls, so named from the richness of
    the land, to the Genesee River, 95 miles from Niagara; thence to
    Lake Cayuga ferry two miles, 150 miles from Niagara, to Onondaga
    Lake, two miles N.W. of Syracuse, 190 miles to Niagara." Mr.
    Littlehales travelled late; after passing Onondaga Lake lost
    himself in the woods, and was thirty hours without provisions.
    Whitestown, in Oneida County, N.Y., near Fort Stanwix, on the
    Mohawk River, 250 miles from Niagara, has 6,000 inhabitants.
    Seven years ago it was a desert. From Whitestown to Schenectady,
    80 miles; fine meadows called German Flats, chiefly inhabited by
    Germans. Schenectady, N.Y., is a regular-built, considerable
    town, containing 3,000 Dutch. It is 300 miles from Niagara. New
    York is finely situated. Mr. Littlehales stayed there but two
    days, and proceeded to Philadelphia, 600 miles from Niagara. He
    left it on the 5th of January, and on the 9th reached
    Northumberland, on the forks of the Susquehanna. Each town has a
    thousand inhabitants. Mr. Littlehales forded the Tioga seven
    times, crossed the Conestoga and Conhocton Rivers, then went 60
    miles over extremely steep ridges of the Alleghany mountains to
    Williamsburgh, in the Genesee, and arrived at Niagara on the
    20th, which by this route is but 400 miles from Philadelphia.

[Illustration: Outline of Governor Simcoe's Route from Niagara to
Detroit, 1793.

(_From a Drawing by Lieutenant Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--There are no entries in the diary from 31st December, 1792, until
February 3rd, 1793. On the 16th of January, 1793, Katherine, the seventh
child and sixth daughter of Mrs. Simcoe, was born at Niagara. This
little one died in York and was buried in the Military Burying Ground
west of the old Fort on the 17th April, 1794. There is no record in York
of the birth or baptism of this child. There was no parish register in
1793; for the first church in York was not erected until 1802, when the
parish was constituted. Religious services at that time were held in the
barracks of the Fort. There is, however, a record in the parish book of
Dunkeswell, which states that the daughter Katherine was born 16th
January, 1793, at York and died at "two years of age" and was buried in
York on the 17th of April, 1795. There is no doubt as to the birth date,
but the burial date is an error. Katherine was only a year and three
months old at the time of her death and burial, which took place at York
on either the 17th or 18th of April, 1794, while Mrs. Simcoe was living
there. It could not have occurred in April, 1795, for Mrs. Simcoe was
then at Kingston.

It is odd that Mrs. Simcoe makes no reference in the diary to the birth
of her daughter, but in a letter to Mrs. Hunt, dated February, 1793, she
writes "I have the pleasure to inform you my little Katherine goes on
well, eats, sleeps and grows fat, so I hope she will not feel the want
of a wet nurse, which was what I could not procure for her. Will you do
me the favor to join with Mrs. Montagu, in answering for the little
stranger. I shall be happy further to cement our friendship by this mark
of it. I have already had her privately baptized."

The Montagus and Gwillims were cousins. Mrs. Simcoe evidently wished
both Mrs. Montagu and Mrs. Hunt to "answer" or act as god-mothers for
the little Katherine.

The record in the Dunkeswell Parish register is undoubtedly incorrect as
regards the place of birth, age and date of burial of the child. It was
probably inserted by Mrs. Hunt, who apparently forgot that Mrs. Simcoe
was in Niagara at the time the child was born.

A small headstone of marble was sent from Honiton about 1795, before the
Governor left Upper Canada, and placed at the head of the grave, but was
removed by persons unknown, prior to 1850, for it was not standing at
that date.

    Mon. Feb. 4th--The Governor set off from hence in a sleigh, with
    six officers and twenty soldiers, for the Mohawk village on the
    Grand River (near Brantford), where Capt. Brant and twenty
    Indians are to join him and guide him by the La Tranche river to
    Detroit, no Europeans having gone that track, and the Indians
    are to carry provisions.

    The Governor wore a fur cap, tippet and gloves and moccasins,
    but no great-coat. His servant carried two blankets and linen.
    The other gentlemen carried their blankets in a pack on their
    backs.

    Fri. 8th--I draw maps, write, read and work so much that the
    days do not seem long, though I am alone. I am so persuaded that
    the journey will be of service to the Governor's health that I
    rejoice he has undertaken it. This evening I received some
    letters from England, brought from Montreal by Indians, who hung
    the packet so near their fire that the edges of the letters were
    burnt and the dates illegible. I received a letter from the
    Governor, who had proceeded forty miles and had a pleasant
    journey, but it now rains very much, which I fear will spoil the
    roads.

    Tues. 12th--I heard of the Governor's safe arrival at the Mohawk
    village the third day after he left this place. He was much
    pleased with seeing their church and hearing their women sing
    psalms. The Indian women have remarkably sweet voices.

[Illustration: The Council House. The Mohawk Church.

The Mohawk Village, Grand River, 1793.

(_From a Drawing by Lieutenant Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

The following letter, found in the MSS. at Wolford, was written in
February 1793, by Mrs. Simcoe to Mrs. Hunt. It is appropriate to
insert it in the diary at this date, for what it contains might well
have been written in the diary:

    "Navy Hall, Feby., 1793. My Dear Mrs. Hunt:--Expecting an
    express soon from Quebec, I prepare my letters beforehand, that
    they may be ready. I have the pleasure to inform you my little
    Katherine goes on vastly well, eats, sleeps and grows fat, so I
    hope she will not feel the want of a wet nurse, which was what I
    could not procure for her. Will you do me the favour to join
    with Mrs. Montagu in answering for the little stranger. I shall
    be happy further to cement our friendship by this mark of it. I
    have already had her privately baptized. I long for the arrival
    of the express, as it is some time since I have heard from
    England. The accounts I have received from every correspondent
    of the great improvement of the little girls under your tuition
    is a very great happiness to me, the greatest that can be next
    to being an eye-witness of it. The whole winter has been like an
    exceeding fine, dry autumn in England; the climate is delightful
    and the country plentiful, and a pleasant society within a
    certain circle; in short, we have nothing to complain of but not
    seeing the children and the absence of some friends. Coll.
    Simcoe is gone to Detroit, on foot the greatest part of the way,
    a journey of about 400 miles, but as I am convinced the exercise
    and air will do his health and spirits great good I rejoice in
    his absence, though it will be a month or six weeks; he has five
    officers as companions, a dozen soldiers and twenty Indians with
    him as guides. As it is a service of no danger, and I think will
    afford him amusement, I am quite easy about it, and have so much
    writing, drawing, arranging papers and working to do that the
    days pass very quick; besides, I have now and then card parties
    here and at the Chief Justice's, for I am become a great whist
    player. Francis is the most engaging, pretty child you ever saw
    at his age; he is at present very handsome. Pray give my love to
    Miss Hunt; tell her there are as many feathers, flowers and
    gauze dresses at our balls (which are every fortnight) as at a
    Honiton assembly, and seldom less than eighteen couples. I have
    not attended them because I was, the greatest part of the
    winter, in daily expectation of being confined. I have taken the
    canvas house we brought from England for my own apartment; it
    makes two very comfortable and remarkably warm private rooms; it
    is boarded outside to prevent snow lying on it. The comfort I
    derived from these apartments was extremely great when I lay in,
    because, being in a manner separate from the rest of the house,
    it was so very quiet. The greatest inconvenience in this country
    is want of servants, which are not to be got. The worst of
    people do you a favour if they merely wash dishes for twenty
    shillings a month. The sergeant's wife I took with me I am happy
    to keep in my house, for she is a very steady person, remarkably
    fond of the children and attentive to them, and a good worker,
    and Joseph makes himself very useful.

    "Mr. Scadding seems very well satisfied with his sixty pounds a
    year as clerk, and sometimes has the amusement of shooting; he
    looks as rosy as ever, though he leads so much more sedentary a
    life. Adieu, my dear Madam.--Believe me, very sincerely yours,

  "E. P. Simcoe.

  "To Mrs. Hunt,
  "Wolford Lodge,
  "Honiton, Devonshire."

    Sun. 17th--I heard that the Governor was well and within four
    days of Detroit. I went to dine with some ladies of the Queen's
    Rangers at the Landing, where the Rangers are quartered in huts.
    The Governor has had a hut built for himself, and we have hung
    up the tapestry in it which came from Stowe (the seat of the
    Marquis of Buckingham, England), which makes the room very
    comfortable. I slept here.

    Mon. 18th--Mrs. Hamilton drank tea with me. Mrs. McGill, wife of
    the commissary, Capt. John McGill, and Miss Crookshank, her
    sister, are pleasant women from New York. I gave a dance this
    evening. There were above ten couples.

Note.--The allusion to the two ladies as being from New York arose from
the fact that they were sisters of the Honorable George Crookshank,
whose wife was Miss Sarah Susannah Lambert of New York. The ladies had
been visiting in the United States. Honorable George Crookshank, was
Deputy Commissary-General during the War of 1812, and a member of the
old Legislative Council of Upper Canada. His daughter, who resides on
Peter Street, Toronto, is the widow of the late Mr. Stephen Heward. Miss
(Rachel) Crookshank referred to by Mrs. Simcoe, afterwards became the
second wife of Dr. James Macaulay.

[Illustration: Miss Crookshank.]

    Tues. 19th--The bugle horns sound delightfully here; they echo
    among the rocks so finely. I called on Mrs. Hamilton on my way
    to Navy Hall, and brought Miss Butler, sister of Coll. Butler,
    home with me.

Note.--There is doubt as to the location of Butler's Barracks. In the
opinion of Miss Janet Carnochan, President of the Niagara Historical
Society, Butler's Barracks were on the hill north of Navy Hall, not
where the present Butler's Barracks are. Buttons from the uniform of
Butler's Rangers have been found on the hill north of Navy Hall.

    Wed. 20th--I dined at the Chief Justice's (Osgoode), who had a
    large party to meet me. I played seven rubbers at whist.

    Thur. 21st--I received a letter from the Governor, dated Upper
    Delaware village, on the La Tranche (now Delaware, Ont.). He had
    a pleasant journey, passed a fine open country, without swamps.
    The La Tranche, at 150 miles above its mouth, is as wide as the
    Thames is at Reading (capital of Berkshire, England).

    Mon. 25th--I had company at dinner and cards in the evening.

    Wed. 27th--The coldest day we have had this winter. The
    thermometer stood at 55 deg. at the Chief Justice's, though the
    stove was almost red hot.

    Fri. Mar. 1st--A lady dined with me, and we played at whist in
    the evening with the Chief Justice.

    Fri. 8th--Mr. McGill dined with us. A snowstorm the whole day,
    drifted by a high wind; the river so full of ice that it
    appeared immovable for some hours.

    Sat. 9th--A fine, clear day; the river full of ice. Towards two
    o'clock it separated and floated down, and a boat came over from
    the garrison.

[Illustration: Log Huts or Barracks at Queenstown, 1793.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Sun. Mar. 10th--The Governor and Mr. D. W. Smith returned. It is
    exactly five weeks since he left this place. He is remarkably
    well, and not fatigued. He went a part of the way in sleighs,
    but walked the greater distance. The Journal does not contain
    many incidents. The map which accompanies it shows the various
    creeks they passed, or fallen trees, which require some care and
    dexterity to cross. His Excellency's leaving Detroit under a
    salute from all His Majesty's ships lying there is mentioned, as
    also that "His Excellency ordered prayers to be read in the
    woods on Sunday, and forty people attended. His Excellency and
    suite eat raccoons and porcupines, which were good, the latter
    like pork." The porcupine's quills stuck into Jack Sharp's neck
    (a Newfoundland dog), and they were very difficult to extract
    and made him ill for many days.

    The Governor rose early on the march and walked till five
    o'clock. A party of the Indians went on an hour before, to cut
    down wood for a fire and make huts of trees, which they cover
    with bark so dexterously that no rain can penetrate, and this
    they do very expeditiously; when the Governor came to the spot
    the Indians had fixed upon the lodge for the night, the
    provisions were cooked; after supper the officers sung "God Save
    the King," and went to sleep with their feet close to an immense
    fire, which was kept up all night. The Governor found his
    expectations perfectly realized as to the goodness of the
    country on the banks of La Tranche, and is confirmed in his
    opinion that the fork of the river is the most proper site for
    the capital of the country, to be called New London (London,
    Ont.), on a fine, dry plain without underwood, but abounding in
    good oak trees. A spring of real petroleum was discovered on the
    march by its offensive smell.

Note.--The section of country referred to is near "Moravian Town," a
little east of which settlement was a petroleum spring. The Moravian
village is in the Moravian Reserve, Township of Orford in the County of
Kent, on the direct route from Niagara or York (Toronto) to London and
Detroit. It lies between Bothwell and Thamesville and is a few miles
east of the Grand Trunk Railroad. There were no white settlers in the
township till after 1817, but there was a settlement of Delaware Indians
from about 1792, in a place called "New Fairfield," since better known
as "Moravian Town," in the north of the township. Old Moraviantown was
in the township of Zone, Kent County, but the present place known as
Moraviantown is as stated, in Orford, across the river Thames, and
opposite to old Moraviantown. It is five miles from the town of Bothwell
and is about the same distance from Thamesville and Highgate.

The petroleum spring referred to by Mrs. Simcoe was, no doubt, a
reality, as the crude oil or petroleum was obtained a century ago from
the surface of the water of the river Thames in several places along the
river in this neighborhood. Mr. W. R. Hickey of Bothwell, who so kindly
furnished me with this information, states that settlers seventy years
ago used to gather the petroleum from the surface of the water and sell
it as a medicine. There were several of these springs or exudations
within the range of three miles east of where old Moraviantown stood.
When the first oil excitement in Bothwell, about 1865-6, was at its
height, a refinery was in operation on the north bank of the river. The
first well that started the oil boom in 1865 was drilled about five
miles east of the site of old Moraviantown, just at the boundary line
between the counties of Kent and Middlesex, near the location of the
Longwoods Road, or London Road, as it used to be called.

The Delaware Indians were the principal remnant of the once flourishing
congregation of the Moravians or United Brethren Church of the United
States, who were compelled in 1792 to seek an asylum in Canada, where
they were favorably received by the provincial authorities and were
permitted to settle on the River la Tranche (Thames). By an
Order-in-Council dated the 19th of July, 1793, fifty thousand acres of
land bordering on the river were granted for their use. They built
twenty-nine houses and huts and a chapel wherein ministered the German
missionary supported by the Moravian Society. The population was a
hundred and sixty-seven Indians of the Delaware and Iroquois nations. By
a second Order-in-Council issued 26th February, 1795, a survey of the
original grant was made and the land appropriated to the trustees of the
"Moravian Society" to be reserved forever to the Society, in trust, for
the sole use of their Indian converts. The first settlement was made on
the north side of the river Thames.

The site of old Moraviantown is now occupied by cultivated farms, and
there are on the north side of the river a few graves, where the early
Indians had their burying-ground.

The ground is historic, for a battle was fought there on the 5th of
October, 1813, between the British and Indian forces under General
Procter and the celebrated Indian chief, Tecumseh, and the American army
under General Harrison. Tecumseh was killed after a desperate
resistance, and the Indian village was burned by the invaders.

Across the lot where the graves are is a small ravine leading to the
river, and old residents say that it was there or near there that
Tecumseh fell.

After the battle the Indians removed to the opposite side of the river.
In 1836 these Indians were induced to surrender a large portion of their
land, about six miles square, for an annuity of one hundred and fifty
pounds.

This second letter found in the MSS. at Wolford is also written to Mrs.
Hunt. It is a motherly letter showing a great regard for Mrs. Hunt and
deep affection for the children under her charge at Wolford. It reads:

    "Navy Hall, March 13th, 1793. My Dear Mrs. Hunt:--The contents
    of your last letters, informing me of Mrs. Graves's quitting
    Wolford, was not any great surprise to me, as I thought such an
    event not improbable. Be assured, my dear Madam, that the
    confidence we repose in your care and attention to our children
    makes us perfectly indifferent to any expense that must
    necessarily be incurred by your keeping house for them. The
    benefit they will receive from the good and religious principles
    you will instil into their minds will be cheaply purchased, and
    pray do not be uneasy at any trifling expense which you deem
    proper to be incurred. Coll. Simcoe desired Mr. Flood to get a
    second-hand carriage for yours and their accommodation. We are
    very anxious that they should stay at Wolford. I should never be
    satisfied about their health were they at Bath, as I have a
    great prepossession against that place for children. I hope with
    a carriage (and be as liberal of fires as possible) that you and
    Miss Hunt will reconcile yourselves to Wolford, as we should not
    be happy to have the children removed. It is a great pleasure to
    me to have them brought up so near Miss Burgess, that they may
    get the habitude, by seeing her often, of acquiring a great
    regard for a friend to whom I am so much attached, and I think
    it much better as you have determined it, to be at Wolford than
    to encumber her house with so many children, though the offer
    was extremely kind of her.

    "As for Mrs. Graves' desire of having Eliza on a visit, we
    cannot refuse it; but it is Coll. Simcoe's and my absolute
    desire that she does not stay above a month or six weeks in
    these annual visits, because we should be sorry the child's
    education should be stopped, or that she should be longer
    separated from her sisters, which reasons alone determined us to
    deprive ourselves of her company. Besides, I think the child has
    too great a tendency to weak lungs to make it at all proper for
    her to be longer there, was there no other reason. The other
    children, of course, Mrs. G. would not wish to be troubled with;
    if she did, the same system should prevail as with regard to
    Eliza.

    "Pray give my love to Miss Hunt; tell her I should have answered
    her letter, but I send this by a pacquet as the quickest
    conveyance to you, and letters sent by pacquets cost such sums
    of money that I will not write to her till I send to Mr.
    Burgess. They are rather longer going through the Secretary of
    State's office, but without there is anything material to be
    speedily answered it is the best way to write, on account of the
    expense.

    "Give my kindest love to the children. Tell them the same reason
    and being greatly pressed for time (as this is an unexpected
    opportunity) hinders my writing to them, and thanking Charlotte
    for her very pretty ruffles, which I value much, and Harriett
    for her letter. Tell Eliza there are no guava trees here. The
    country is not hot enough, but her father thanks her for her
    thinking of it. Let them know that their father is just returned
    from Detroit; looks remarkably well in health, and is grown
    really fatter, though he has performed a journey of six hundred
    miles in exactly five weeks, and walked a great part of the way.
    I will write them a further account by the first opportunity of
    sending to Mr. Burgess.

    "I enter exactly into what Miss Hunt's and your feelings have
    been, because I have known and experienced enough of these kind
    of proceedings.

    "I am sure Miss Hunt's instructions are much better than Mr.
    Pigot's few visits. In short, we are quite happy in every
    account I hear of your proceedings with respect to the children,
    and are only anxious that everything should go on comfortably to
    yourself and Miss Hunt. Mr. Flood will be of any assistance in
    his power. Believe me to be, my dear Mrs. Hunt, with great
    regard and confidence in your friendship,

  "Very sincerely yours,

  "E. Simcoe.

    "Coll. Simcoe desires his best compliments. Eliza or Charlotte
    have not sent me any drawing lately. I hope they continue to
    like drawing; she writes vastly even on one line. I wish I was
    as good an arithmetician as you have taught her to be. I think
    you were quite right to discharge a gardener that must be a
    useless expense. I am glad Melly is still with you; I hope she
    continues to merit your good opinion, for I always liked her
    much.

  "To Mrs. Hunt,

  "Wolford Lodge, near Honiton,

  "Devonshire, England."

    Wed. 13th--Coll. Simcoe has gout in his hand.

    Sat. 16th--Coll. Simcoe so much better as to walk on the sands.
    The thermometer 72 in the shade. There are thousands of duck fly
    up the river daily. They are called cawines, a species of wild
    duck. They have a fishy taste and are never eaten; their down
    appears to me exactly the same as that of the eider duck. I
    lately dreamt of being fired at by small shot in passing through
    a wood, and have since had quite a horror of the sound of a
    musquet or anything military.

    I have been much amused by reading Watson (Richard Watson,
    Trinity College, Cambridge) on chemistry, in which there is an
    account of the making of an artificial volcano that I think
    would please you, an experiment of putting diamonds and rubies
    in separate vessels and exposing them to a violent fire--the
    diamonds were dissipated and the rubies unchanged in weight or
    colour.

    Mon. April 1st--Rode to Queenstown, where we intend to reside a
    fortnight. Mr. Grey and Mr. Talbot are going to New York.

    Tues. 2nd--Very warm weather.

    Wed. 3rd--The weather extremely warm, but we find the log huts
    cool from the thickness of the timber with which they are built.
    We do not keep house here (Queenstown). As there are not offices
    belonging to our rooms we did not bring many servants, but dine
    at the mess. Immediately after I have dined I rise from the
    table, one of the officers attends me home, and the band plays
    on the parade before the house until six o'clock. The music adds
    cheerfulness to this retired spot, and we feel much indebted to
    the Marquis of Buckingham for the number of instruments he
    presented to the regiment. The bugles sound at five every
    morning, and Coll. Simcoe goes out with the troops and returns
    to breakfast at nine.

    Fri. 5th--Fahrenheit ther. 78 deg. in the shade, 112 deg. in the
    sun to-day at Navy Hall. "Trojan" has been so ill, in
    consequence of a blow he received on his head since we left Navy
    Hall, that the servants supposed him to be mad and shot him,
    which we regret most excessively, not believing he could be mad,
    as he ran into the water a short time before he was killed. I
    gave a dance this evening. A soldier was pointed out to me by
    the name of Swambergh, a Swede who had distinguished himself in
    a battle where the King of Sweden was present; this incident and
    the admiration I know you feel for Swedes caused me to observe
    something peculiarly fine in his countenance, when, on further
    enquiry, it proved that the man shewn was not Swambergh, but a
    worthless thief--so much for my skill in physiognomy.

    Sat. 6th--I rode a pleasant horse of Mr. Mayne's to Navy Hall;
    returned here in the evening, but not being expected, found a
    cold, wet room and spent an uncomfortable evening. St. Denis, of
    the 5th, caught yesterday, at Niagara, 500 whitefish and 40
    sturgeon; this is common sturgeon, one nearly 6 ft. long.

Note.--Captain William Mayne belonged to the Queen's Rangers. He
returned to England in 1797.

    Sun. 7th--We dined with Mrs. Hamilton, wife of Mr. Robert
    Hamilton, and walked in the evening where I observed some trees
    on fire; the flames, in part concealed, appeared like stars, and
    had a beautiful effect.

    Mon. 8th--A very warm day. I rode to the Falls; there are still
    heaps of ice below them, but it had not a brilliant or fine
    appearance, as I had expected to see.

    Tues. 9th--Mrs. Richardson breakfasted with me. Very wet
    weather. We played at chess all the day.

    Wed. 10th--Very cold and some snow. We drove to Navy Hall and
    slept there.

    Thur. 11th--A very fine day. Went to Queenstown; walked by the
    river half a mile to a beautiful spot among the rocks. The
    rapid, clear water, with a bright tinge of green from the
    reflection of the high banks covered with trees, had a fine
    effect, and we determined that it would be a delightful spot to
    have a cold dinner at, and the music would sound well among the
    rocks.

    Sat. 13th--Returned to dinner at Navy Hall. Jacob and Aron
    (Mohawks) came express from Detroit in eight days; they walked
    56 miles this day.

[Illustration: At the Whirlpool Rapids, Niagara, 1793.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Mon. 15th--I dined at the Fort, and caught cold by crossing the
    water this very cold day. In a newspaper from the States was the
    paragraph: "His Serene Highness of Upper Canada gives great
    encouragement to settlers."

    The "Caldwell" sloop, an armed vessel of the Provincial
    Government, arrived at Kingston from home on the 6th April; the
    day before the harbour had been so full of ice that she could
    not have got in. An Indian who speaks English, being asked at
    what hour he arrived, pointed to the west and said, "when the
    clock was there." It reminded me of a line in Spencer, "The
    clock in Jones high house."

    Thur. 18th--A newspaper is published here, called the "Upper
    Canada Gazette or American Oracle" (first issue April 18th,
    1793). As yet it is filled with proclamations and
    advertisements. The only printer to be met with was a Frenchman
    named Louis Roy, and he cannot write good English. A surveyor
    went to the first forks of the La Tranche, and gives the most
    favourable account of the land.

Note.--Governor Simcoe's Proclamation of July 16th, 1792, which would
fain have converted La Grande Riviere into "The Ouse," permanently
transformed La Tranche into the Thames.

    Fri. 19th--Capt. Æneas Shaw is arrived, with his wife and seven
    children, from Oswego, where he met his family and spent the
    winter with them. The south shore of Lake Ontario being
    uninhabited, from Oswego they brought with them an Indian to
    build huts and shoot partridges and ducks. They came the whole
    way in a boat. The only alarm they met with was from trees
    falling near their hut one night. The children had made fires
    for diversion too near large trees, without considering which
    way the wind might blow them down, and the hut was in danger
    from their fall.

    Tues. 23rd--I thought of you (Mrs. Hunt) as by agreement. I rode
    to the whirlpool, a very grand scene half way between Queenstown
    and the Falls, where the current is so strong that eddies are
    formed in which hewn timber trees are carried down the Falls,
    from a saw mill, upright. Vast rocks surround this bend of the
    river, and they are covered with pine and hemlock spruce; some
    cascades among the rocks add to the wild appearance. These
    scenes have afforded me so much delight that I class these days
    with those in which I remember to have felt the greatest
    pleasure from fine objects, whether of art or nature, as at
    Blenheim (seat of the Duke of Marlborough), the "Valley of
    Rocks," near Lynmouth and Lynton, in North Devon. I met with
    some pretty flowers and a beautiful milliped. I gave a ball this
    evening. Some small tortoises, cut up and dressed like oysters
    in scollop shells, were very good at supper.

    Wed. 24th--I rode to the whirlpool with Mr. Pilkington (Robert
    Pilkington, lieutenant in the Royal Engineers). As we came back
    it was almost dark, and the fires the Indians had made by the
    waterside for the purpose of spearing fish had a picturesque
    appearance among the rocks. The light attracts the fish, and the
    Indians are very expert in spearing them.

    Fri. 26th--A very wet night. It rained into the huts, but I
    found one corner of the room dry, and there I placed my bed.
    Capt. Shaw has given me a tea-chest in bird's-eye maple. It is a
    beautiful wood, the colour of satinwood. The tea-chest was made
    at New Brunswick. Capt. Shaw mentioned many instances of persons
    settled in New Brunswick who, having marry'd women from the
    United States, were persuaded by them to quit the country, as
    they would not live without the apples and peaches they had been
    used to at New York. The Americans are particularly fond of
    fruit. The Indians bring us cranberries in spring and autumn
    which are as large as cherries and as good; the best grow under
    water. They also supply us with chestnuts, which they roast in
    a manner that makes them particularly good.

    Mon. 29th--Rode before breakfast. At Navy Hall, the "Onondaga"
    arrived from Kingston in 22 hours. There is a large stone house,
    built by the French, in the Fort at Niagara, and from thence it
    is said to take its name, as Niagara, in the Indian language,
    signifies "great house." Pray take notice we call it "Niágara."

Note.--This house is a large stone building which stands within the
precincts of the American Fort, and was built by the French prior to
1750 by order of Governor Vaudreuil. The Fort and its defences were
completed by General Pouchot, in 1759. The British afterwards added a
storey with, in the opinion of Mr. Peter A. Porter, a timbered roof.
During the War of 1812 the Americans are said to have torn it off, made
a flat roof, with stone walls projecting a foot or so above it, and to
have mounted a cannon on the roof. After the war they evidently restored
the timbered roof, and the present cupola was put on in 1823. As it is
not supposed the British ever used any brick at the Fort, the erection
of the brick chimneys is fixed at a date subsequent to the War of 1812.

[Illustration: "The Castle," Fort Niagara, N.Y.

(_From a Sketch sent to England about 1830 and copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

The origin of the name Niagara is disputed. Some say that the word is of
Indian origin, meaning "thunder of water," and others derive it from
Onghiara, the name of the old Indian village near the Falls.

    Tues. May 2nd--Coll. Simcoe set off, accompanied by seven
    officers, to go to Toronto. He means to go round by the head of
    the lake in a batteau.

    Wed. 3rd--I borrowed Sir Joshua Reynolds' "Discourses." They
    amuse me very much.

Note.--Mrs. Simcoe refers to "Discourses Delivered to the Students of
the Royal Academy" by Sir Joshua Reynolds, Knight, with introduction and
notes by Roger Fry.

    Fri. 5th--A very cold day.

    Tues. 9th--I am feverish and ill. I caught cold by sitting late
    with the windows open after a very hot day, and the dew falls
    here most heavily.

    Sat. 13th--Coll. Simcoe returned from Toronto, and speaks in
    praise of the harbour, and a fine spot near it covered with
    large oaks, which he intends to fix upon as a site for a town. I
    am going to send you some beautiful butterflies.

Note.--This was the Governor's first visit to the site of Toronto. The
"fine spot" was on the bay front, east of the present George Street as
far as Berkeley Street. The lower part of the present Berkeley Street,
from the present King south to Palace (Front Street), was later called
Parliament Street, as it led to the Legislative Buildings. Berkeley
Street, north of King, was not opened until some years later.

According to the plan made by Aitkin in 1793, the original town of York
was divided into ten blocks, five south and five north of King Street,
the west boundary being George Street, the east Parliament (Berkeley),
the north Duke Street, and south Palace (Front Street). Although the
streets were not named in 1793, the plan shows the location of the
present George, Frederick, Sherbourne (Caroline), Princes, Ontario, and
Berkeley (the first "Parliament" Street) all running from the south to
the north, and Palace (Front Street), King and Duke, all running from
the west to the east.

The area covered by the Aitkin plan was not extensive. The number of
feet from the south side of Palace (Front Street) at the east side of
George Street to the north side of Duke Street was 740 feet. From the
west side of George to the east side of Parliament the measurement was
1770. When the streets were laid out on this plan Front was known as
King and in a later plan as Palace Street. The modern King was Duke
Street, and the modern Duke, Duchess Street. These street names were
intended as compliments to King George III., and the Duke and Duchess of
York. George Street was named after the Prince of Wales, Frederick after
the Duke of York himself, Caroline in honor of the niece of George III.,
who, in 1795, married her cousin the Prince of Wales, afterwards George
IV. Princes Street commemorated collectively the male members of the
Royal Family, the Dukes of Clarence, Kent, Cumberland, Sussex and
Cambridge. It will be noted that the correct orthography of the present
Princess Street is "Princes" Street.




  CHAPTER XII.

  _AMERICAN COMMISSIONERS GUESTS AT NAVY HALL._


The life at Navy Hall was enlivened by many pleasant incidents during
the years of its occupancy by Governor Simcoe and his wife. Prominent
people from Britain touring the western continent who brought letters of
introduction, always had a generous welcome and a pleasant time as long
as they occupied the guest chambers of that primitive residence, the
pioneer Government House. Americans in official positions who visited
Niagara ofttimes expressed their gratification with the kindly reception
accorded them by the Governor and his wife.

It is true that the Governor had, to a greater or less extent, his likes
and dislikes, and sometimes was rather frank in expressing his opinions,
but he never forgot the requirements of his official position. So that
whatever the Governor's sentiments might be regarding the United States
and its Government, all guests from the Republic were made to feel as
much at home as if they were seated at their own fireside. Accordingly
the best of treatment was accorded the American Commissioners who came
to Niagara to discuss the Indian boundary question with Governor Simcoe
and a deputation of fifty Indians headed by Brant. The negotiations at
Navy Hall and subsequently at Miami came to naught, as the redskins
insisted that the settlers on their side of the Ohio River should be
evicted.

[Illustration: General Lincoln.]

    Sun. 14th--Three commissioners, who are appointed by the United
    States to treat with the Indians at Sandusky, Ohio, are arrived
    here, and intend to stay at our house until they receive further
    orders from Philadelphia. Mr. John Randolph, a political friend
    of President Jefferson, is a Virginian. Benjamin Lincoln and
    Coll. Timothy Pickering are both of Massachusetts, New England.
    Coll. Simcoe calls the latter my cousin; his ancestor left
    England in Charles 1st's reign, and this gentleman really bears
    great resemblance to the picture Mr. Gwillim (a relative of Mrs.
    Simcoe) has of Sir Gilbert Pickering.

    If the proffered mediation of England with respect to this
    treaty of Sandusky had been accepted by the States, and
    Washington had gone thither, Gov. Simcoe would have gone to meet
    him. I am not sorry that the circumstance is avoided.

[Illustration: John Randolph.]

Note.--John Randolph of Roanoke, an American orator, was born in
Virginia in 1773. He claimed to be a descendant of Pocahontas, the
Indian princess. He studied for short periods at Princeton and Columbia
College. In 1799 he was elected to Congress and re-elected many times.
He gained a high reputation as a debater. He became estranged from
Jefferson about 1806 and tried to defeat the election of Madison and
opposed the War of 1812. He was defeated at the election in 1813, but
was again elected in 1815. He was a man of genius and was distinguished
for his ready wit, which, joined to his mastery of the weapons of
sarcasm and invective, rendered him a formidable opponent in debate.

General Benjamin Lincoln was born in Massachusetts in 1733. He was
originally a farmer. He was a member of the Provincial Congress
assembled in 1775 at Cambridge and Watertown and one of the secretaries
of that body, and also a member of the committee of correspondence
appointed to communicate with the several towns in Massachusetts and
with other colonies upon the circumstances of the time. In 1776 he was
appointed a major-general of militia and joined the army of Washington
in 1777. He was appointed to the chief command of the Southern
department about September, 1778, and defended Charleston against
Prevost in 1779. Later Lincoln was besieged by Sir Henry Clinton in that
place and compelled to surrender. In October, 1781, he became Secretary
of War and retired in 1784. He was elected Lieutenant-Governor of
Massachusetts in 1787 by the Federalists. He died in 1810.

Timothy Pickering, an American statesman, was born in Massachusetts in
July, 1745. He graduated at Harvard in 1763 and became Judge of the
Common Pleas in 1775. He joined the army of Washington in 1776 and took
part in the battles of Brandywine and Germantown in October, 1777. He
was appointed Postmaster-General of the United States by Washington in
1791 and Secretary of War in 1794. From 1814-1817 he was a member of the
national House of Representatives.

[Illustration: Timothy Pickering.]

There are no entries in the diary between Sunday, May 14th, and June
14th, for between these dates Mrs. Simcoe was on a visit to Fort Niagara
and apparently did not continue her diary during that period. But to
revert to the Commissioners' stay at Navy Hall--the 4th of June was a
gala day at Niagara, for the second session of the Legislature was in
progress, and the day was the anniversary of the birth of His Majesty
the King.

The _Upper Canada Gazette_ in its issue for the second week in June
(1793) says:--"On Tuesday last, the fourth of June, being an anniversary
of His Majesty's birthday, His Excellency the Lieutenant-Governor held a
levee at Navy Hall. At one the troops in garrison and at Queenstown
fired three volleys. The field pieces above Navy Hall under the
direction of the Royal Artillery, and the guns at the garrison, fired a
royal salute. In the evening His Excellency gave a ball and elegant
supper in the Council Chamber, which was most numerously attended."

Of this ball and supper another notice is extant. The three
distinguished Americans, General Lincoln, Colonel Pickering and Mr.
Randolph, were amongst the guests at the ball and supper. General
Lincoln in his private journal, since printed in the Massachusetts
Historical Collections, Vol. V., 3rd Series, makes the following note of
the entertainment:

June 4th--"The King's birthday. At eleven o'clock the governor had a
levee at his house, at which the officers of government, the members of
the legislature, the officers of the army, and a number of strangers
attended. After some time the governor came in, preceded by two of his
family. He walked up to the head of the hall and began a conversation
with those standing in that part of the hall, and went around to the
whole, and I believe spoke with every person present. This was soon over
and we all retired. At one o'clock there was firing from the troops, the
battery and from the ship in the harbor. In the evening there was quite
a splendid ball, about twenty well-dressed and handsome ladies, and
about three times that number of gentlemen present. They danced from
seven o'clock till eleven, when supper was announced and served in very
pretty taste. The music and dancing were good, and everything was
conducted with propriety. What excited the best feelings of my heart was
the ease and affection with which the ladies met each other, although
there were a number present whose mothers sprang from the aborigines of
the country. They appeared as well dressed as the company in general,
and intermixed with them in a measure which evinced at once the dignity
of their own minds, and the good sense of the others. These ladies
possessed great ingenuity and industry, and have great merit; for the
education they have acquired is owing principally to their own industry,
as their father, Sir William Johnson, was dead and the mother retained
the manners and dress of her tribe. Governor Simcoe is exceedingly
attentive in these public assemblies, and makes it his study to
reconcile the inhabitants, who have tasted the pleasure of society, to
their present situation in an infant province. He intends the next
winter to have concerts and assemblies very frequently. Hereby he at
once evinces a regard to the happiness of the people and his knowledge
of the world; for while the people are allured to become settlers in
this country from the richness of the soil and the clemency of the
seasons, it is important to make their situation as flattering as
possible."

The American guests were evidently impressed with the function, and the
tribute they paid to the beauty of the Canadian ladies who were present
could not fail to please the Governor, who some time later had the
pleasure of reading this extract from the private journal of the gallant
General who had been his guest.

The compliments paid to the daughters of Sir William Johnson were well
deserved. Their mother, with whom Sir William had contracted an Indian
marriage, was Mary Brant, or, as she was familiarly known, "Miss Molly,"
sister of Chief Joseph Brant.

[Illustration: Sir Wm. Johnson.]

[Illustration: Lady Johnson.]

Sir William Johnson, Bart., was the eldest son of Christopher Johnson,
of Warrentown, County Down, Ireland. His mother was Anne Warren, sister
of the brothers Oliver and Peter Warren, whose names are identified with
the naval glory of England. Sir William was born in 1715 and came to
America in 1738. He settled on the banks of the Mohawk. About 1740, he
married Catherine Weisenberg and had one son, afterwards Sir John
Johnson, and two daughters, Mary and Nancy. Mary married Colonel Guy
Johnson, nephew of Sir William, and Nancy (Ann) married Colonel Daniel
Claus.

In 1756 Sir William exerted himself to revive the waning friendship of
the Mohawks towards the British as against the French. He succeeded,
became their captain, and was called Warraghiyagey, signifying
"Superintendent of Affairs." The Indian tribes then united with Johnson
at their head. There is no trace of when he attained the rank of
colonel, but it must have been about 1746. In a letter written in that
year, Governor Clinton addresses him as "Colonel William Johnson at
Albany." In November of 1747 he had command of the northern frontier of
New York. His management of the Indian Department was most favorably
recognized by the British Government.

In 1750 Colonel Johnson was appointed to a seat in His Majesty's Council
for the Province of New York, in the room of Philip Livingstone,
deceased. This was the first step towards the prominent and influential
position he was destined to occupy in later years. In 1755, during the
war against the French, he was made a major-general and was created a
baronet in November of the same year. In July, 1759, General Prideaux,
while besieging Fort Niagara, was killed by the bursting of a shell
carelessly discharged by one of his own gunners, and Sir William Johnson
took command. The fort was attacked, and after a terrific siege and the
defeat of the French General D'Aubry, who was hastening to the relief of
Niagara, General Pouchot surrendered and the flag of Britain was raised
over its walls. General Prideaux was buried in the chapel of the fort.
"I was the chief mourner," writes Sir William Johnson in his private
diary. The jurisdiction of Sir William extended over all the tribes of
the northern colonies. He died in July, 1774, and was succeeded by his
son, Sir John, who had been knighted during his father's lifetime. The
third baronet was Sir Adam Gordon Johnson, the eldest surviving son of
Sir John. Sir Adam Gordon dying without issue, Sir William George
Johnson became fourth baronet, and he was succeeded by his nephew, the
present holder of the title, Sir Edward Gordon Johnson, of Montreal.

[Illustration: Sir John Johnson.]

Johnstown, in Fulton County, New York, originally (1798) named
Caughnawaga, was founded by Sir William Johnson, who resided there
during the later period of his life. Sir William erected in 1764 a fine
mansion house about a mile from and on ground gently elevated above the
village of Johnstown. The hall itself is built of wood, but the
buildings or wings on each side are of stone, pierced with loopholes for
musketry. When Sir William occupied these buildings he had them
surrounded by a stone breastwork. While in possession of the Johnson
family this was a place of resort for the Sachems of the Six Nations,
and all the Mohawks repaired thither to receive their presents from the
British Government.

Sir William Johnson's sons-in-law were both interested in the Indians.
In 1761 Colonel Guy Johnson was appointed one of the Deputy
Superintendents of the Indian Department, and in 1774, shortly before
his death, Sir William wrote the King asking that Colonel Guy be allowed
to succeed him as Superintendent. The request was granted, Colonel
Daniel Claus becoming his brother-in-law's Deputy. The commission held
by Sir William came from the colony of New York and the other colonies
which were leagued together against the Indians. After the Revolutionary
War, however, this commission held by Colonel Guy as Sir William's
successor was dropped, and Sir John Johnson became Superintendent of
Indian Affairs in British North America.

[Illustration: Col. Guy Johnson.]

    Fri. 14th June--I am just returned to Navy Hall after spending a
    month with Mrs. Smith, wife of Lieut. Smith, of the 5th, at the
    Fort. The cold I caught the 9th of May turned to dumb ague (that
    is, but little of the cold fit and a continual fever). With this
    indisposition I found myself extremely inconvenienced by the
    Commissioners' residence in our small house, and I accepted Mrs.
    Smith's friendly invitation to visit her, and her nursing and
    great attention to my health enabled me to recover as soon as I
    have done. Commodore Grant, who commands the vessels on Lake
    Erie, was staying at Major Smith's. The Queen's Rangers have
    left the huts at Queenstown, and are encamped on the mountain
    above. It is a fine, dry, healthy spot, and the tents look
    extremely pretty among the large oaks which grow on the
    mountain.

[Illustration: In Camp near Queenstown, 1793.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--Honorable Alexander Grant, born 1734, was second son of Patrick,
seventh laird of Grant of Glenmoriston, Inverness-shire. He served in
the Royal Navy as a midshipman, and was with Amherst in the Lake
Champlain expedition in the Seven Years' War. Later he was placed in
command of lake vessels from Niagara to Mackinaw, and was known as
Commodore Grant. He was a member of the first Executive and Legislative
Council, and Administrator of Upper Canada from 11th September, 1805, to
24th August, 1806, during the interval between Lieutenant-Governor
Hunter and Lieutenant-Governor Gore. In 1774 he married Therese Barthe,
by whom he had eleven children--one son, Colonel Grant of Brockville,
and ten daughters. His fifth daughter, Archange, married Thomas Dickson
of Queenston. His sixth daughter, Phyllis, married Alexander Duff, of
Amherstburg. His seventh daughter, Isabelle, married Captain Gilkinson
of Brantford, with issue, seven sons including Archibald, County Court
Judge, Picton, and Colonel Jasper of Brantford. Nancy, the eighth
daughter, married George Jacob, of Kent County. The ninth daughter,
Elizabeth, married James Woods of Sandwich, two of their sons being the
late Joseph Woods, M.P. for Kent, and the late Judge R. S. Woods, of
Chatham. Another daughter, Jean Cameron, married William Richardson of
Brantford, and their daughter became the wife of the late Henry Racey of
Brantford, proprietor of the Brantford _Expositor_. Grant's wife was a
sister of the second wife of Colonel John Askin. The Commodore's death
took place in May, 1813, at his residence at Grosse Point, called Grant
Castle, on Lake St. Clair, which was noted for the courtesy of its host
and his open-handed hospitality. Here Tecumseh and his warriors were
frequent guests of the Commodore, who was a man of commanding presence,
a good officer and a general favorite. There are many
great-grandchildren and great-great-grandchildren. A mural tablet to the
memory of Grant was erected by his grandson, the late Judge Woods of
Chatham, in St. John's Church, Sandwich.

    Sun. 23rd--Mr. Talbot went to Sandusky to deliver papers to
    Coll. McKee.

[Illustration: Hon. Alex. Grant.]

Note.--Colonel Alexander McKee, who was Indian Agent at Pittsburg before
the Revolutionary War, was imprisoned at that place during the outbreak
by the Revolutionists. He escaped, however, and later became Deputy
Superintendent-General of Indian Affairs, the Superintendent-General
being Sir John Johnson. Colonel McKee was a Justice of the Court of
Common Pleas at Detroit. He died on 14th January, 1799. His son, Thomas
Alexander McKee (known as Colonel Thomas or Colonel Alexander McKee),
who married Therese Askin, daughter of Colonel John Askin, was one of
the members for Kent in the Second Legislature of Upper Canada,
1796-1800, and one of the members for Essex in the third Legislature. It
is a coincidence that in the Legislature of Ontario from 1894-1902,
William Johnson McKee of Windsor, his great-grandson, and consequently
great-great-grandson of Colonel Alexander McKee, represented the county
of Essex.

    Wed. 26th--The Indian Commissioners went to Fort Erie. Coll.
    Pickering gave me a receipt to make chowder of salmon, sea
    biscuit and pork; it is stewed for twenty minutes.

    Thurs. 27th--We dined alone for the first time since we left
    Quebec. The Governor having no business to attend to, and the
    weather delightful, we crossed the water, and drank tea on a
    pretty green bank, from which there is a good view of Navy Hall,
    and we enjoyed this half-holiday amazingly.

    Fri. 28th--We rode to Queenstown and slept there. The
    thermometer was 86 to-day.

    Sat. 29th--Breakfasted in the camp and rode on to the Falls,
    seven miles; dined there, and went to Burch's Mills, two miles
    above the Falls. We returned to tea in the camp, but the heat
    was so excessive we were obliged to stop on the road and drink
    milk and water, and eat fruit at Mrs. Tice's, wife of Lieut.
    Tice, of the Indian Department, who lived at the Falls. The
    thermometer has been at 96 to-day. We slept in the hut, but I
    determined in future to sleep on the mountain. I saw a stuffed
    rattlesnake, which was killed near Queenstown in the act of
    swallowing a black squirrel. The snake measured five feet six
    inches long, and had seven rattles.

Note.--John Burch had a saw and grist mill near the Falls on lot 174,
township No. 2, in the year 1786. In 1791 he was a member of the Land
Board and in 1795 was Justice of the Peace. In Lundy's Lane Cemetery is
an inscription "In Memory of John Burch, Esq., who departed this life
March 7th, 1797, aged 55." His son, John Burch, Jr., was Grand Secretary
of the Provincial Grand Lodge of Freemasons of Upper Canada at Niagara,
1817-1819.

Gilbert Tice came to Niagara in 1786, where he was a member of the Land
Board in 1791. He is given as Captain Gilbert Tice in the list of United
Empire Loyalists in the Indian Department, with a wife and four
children. He was a veteran of the French War, and, under the patronage
of Sir William Johnson, kept a large inn at Johnstown, N. Y., before the
Loyalist migration.

    Sun. 30th--Returned to Navy Hall in a boat the Commissioners
    left here, which is a very good one, with an awning and green
    curtain. The heat excessively great.

[Illustration: Niagara Falls from the Canadian Side, 1793.

(_From a Water-color by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Tues, July 2nd--Jacob Lewis and Aaron Hill, the two Indians who
    carried mails from Detroit, came here. The latter was well
    dressed and looked very handsome. Lewis' wife was with him; a
    very pretty woman, the only handsome woman I have seen among the
    Indians. We treated them with cherries. The Indians are
    particularly fond of fruit. We have thirty large May Duke cherry
    trees behind the house, and three standard peach trees, which
    supplied us last autumn for tarts and desserts during six weeks,
    besides the numbers the young men eat. My share was trifling
    compared with theirs, and I eat thirty in a day. They were very
    small and high flavoured. When tired of eating them raw, Mr.
    Talbot roasted them, and they were very good.

    Fri. 5th--Francis has been very ill, and the extreme heat of
    this place is thought to be prejudicial to him. It is,
    therefore, determined that I shall take him to the camp on the
    mountain. I shall have an establishment of two marquees, a tent
    and two sentries. The Governor will come to see us whenever he
    has leisure; my dinner is to be sent every day from Navy Hall.
    This day I embarked at one o'clock on board the gunboat with
    Francis and Sophia, and Mr. Mayne, of the Rangers, attended me.
    I left the thermometer at 90, but it is pleasant on the water.
    It requires a strong, steady wind to carry vessels to the
    Landing, as the current runs four knots an hour against them.
    The gunboat, not having top sails, catches but little wind
    between the high banks. It blew fresh when we embarked, but soon
    became calm. Mr. Bouchette, for the honour of his vessel,
    declared we were going on, but as it was not apparent to Mr.
    Mayne and myself that we made the least way, we had the boat let
    down, and proceeded the remaining three miles in it. I was much
    fatigued in ascending the mountain; we reached the camp about
    five o'clock. I dined alone. The Governor came to supper. The
    mosquito net was not brought, and I passed a most wretched
    night. Mr. Talbot returned from the Miami, where a fort had been
    built by order of the Governor-General, Lord Dorchester. The
    Indians have sent a deputation to the Commissioners, to desire
    to converse with them at Niagara before they proceed to the
    Miami, as Wayne's army has advanced nearer to them than they
    expected.

    Sat. 6th--The Governor returned to Navy Hall, as did the
    Commissioners and some Indian chiefs.

    Sun. 7th--The Governor came to supper. The Indians have demanded
    whether the Commissioners have full powers to fix a boundary;
    they are to reply to-morrow. The "Mississaga" arrived with 270
    Indians from St. Regis. They belong to the tribes called the
    Seven Nations of Canada. They speak French, are much civilized,
    and have a good deal of the manners of Frenchmen.

Note.--The term "Seven Nations" is an error. There were the "Six
Nations" but not "Seven." The Mississagas were for a time encamped near
the "Six Nations" and they were called by some people the "Seven
Nations."

    Mon. 8th--Another Indian Council held to-day at Navy Hall, at
    which the Commissioners declared that they had full power to fix
    a boundary.

    Tues. 9th--It was determined in the Indian Council to-day that
    the Commissioners and Indian deputies shall go to Sandusky to
    treat. The Seven Nations having no conductor or officer with
    them, Mr. Talbot, will accompany them to Sandusky. The House of
    Assembly (the second session of the first Legislature) was
    prorogued to-day.

    My marquee commands the most beautiful view of the river and
    lake seen between the finest oak trees, among which there is
    always a breeze of wind. The music tent is at such a distance as
    to sound pleasantly. Mrs. Hamilton and Mrs. Richardson were with
    me in my arbour when we heard so violent a clap of thunder as
    made us all stoop our heads; the lightning followed instantly.
    We ran into the tent, and stayed until a violent torrent of rain
    had abated. On coming out I observed an oak, which had stood
    close to the arbour, was much blasted by the lightning. Mrs.
    Hamilton took Francis home with her, lest he should catch cold
    from the damp of the tents after the violent rain. I drank tea
    and slept at Mrs. Hamilton's.

Note.--The First Legislature of Upper Canada met from September, 1792,
to June, 1796, at Navy Hall, Niagara. The following is a list of the
Sessions with dates of meeting:--First Session, 17th September-15th
October, 1792; second session, 31st May-9th July, 1793; third session,
2nd June-9th July, 1794; fourth session, 6th July-10th August, 1795;
fifth session, 16th May-3rd June, 1796.

Mrs. Richardson, wife of Dr. Richardson, surgeon of the Queen's Rangers,
was Madeleine Askin, second daughter by his first wife of Colonel John
Askin of Detroit. They were married on the 24th of January, 1793, by the
Rev. Robert Addison, who had been sent to Niagara by the Society for the
Propagation of the Gospel, and was afterwards first Rector of St. Mark's
Church there. Although the church was not opened until August, 1809,
parish records were kept from 1792, and one of these shows that on "24th
January, 1793, Dr. Robert Richardson, blr., and Madeleine Askin,
spinr.," were married. Mrs. Richardson became the mother of Major John
Richardson, Canadian novelist, author of "Wacousta."

    Thurs. 11th--I walked to the camp. The Governor went to Navy
    Hall. I drank tea with Mrs. Hamilton, and saw the Seven Nations
    pass.

    Fri. 12th--Mr. Talbot dined with me on his way to Fort Erie.

    Mon. 15th--A wet day, which is very dismal in a tent; but to see
    the light again, and feel the air dry, is such a pleasure that
    none can judge of but those who have felt the reverse.

    Tues. 16th--We dined in the hut, and Mr. Mayne, of the Rangers,
    drove me to Navy Hall in the afternoon in a gig we have had
    made, in which he drove two horses tandem; it is so light that
    we went to Navy Hall, which is seven miles, in three-quarters of
    an hour, and returned to the Landing by eight o'clock. The road
    is good but for the stumps of trees on each side, which it
    requires attention to avoid; but my charioteer left Westminster,
    the school for boys in Dean's Yard, Westminster, last year, so
    you may conclude him to be a steady person. He is a _protégé_ of
    Lord Amherst's. He supplies Mr. Talbot's place when he is
    absent.

    Thurs. 18th--The weather being very hot, we went again to the
    camp. In the evening we rode to Mrs. Tice's, a pleasant
    situation, like some in Epping Forest; it is three miles from
    the camp.

    Fri. 19th--Went to Navy Hall; caught cold by going out this
    evening without a fur tippet, which the great dew renders
    necessary after the very hot days.

    Sat. 20th--Capt. Shaw and 100 men set off in batteau for
    Toronto. Sometimes these batteau sail around the lake by the
    south shore to the head of the lake, and then by the north to
    Toronto, but in fine weather they cross the lake going direct. I
    drank tea at the fort (across the river).

    Sun. 21st--Extremely hot weather. Rode to the camp this evening,
    and found it cooler and less damp than at Navy Hall. The
    mountain is covered with a sweet, purple flower, the roots of
    which, infused in brandy, make a wholesome cordial. It is called
    Oswego bitter. Mr. Russell (Hon. Peter Russell) says it is a
    wild balm of Gilead, and that an oil may be extracted from it.
    The leaves, dried, are good in pea soup or forced meat. By some
    mistake my dinner did not arrive from Navy Hall one day last
    week, but I had some of the excellent New York biscuits, which I
    eat, and said nothing about my dinner, feeling a pleasure in
    being able to be independent.

[Illustration: York (Toronto) Harbor, 1793.

North side of the Bay, near the Old Fort.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Mon. 22nd--We crossed the water to the Ferry House (Lewiston,
    N.Y.), opposite Queenstown, and breakfasted in an arbour covered
    with wild vines and beautifully situated on the bank of the
    river. We rode up the hill to the spot where the French had a
    fort built about 1750. We saw a very extensive view towards the
    head of the lake. On our return we found the arbour so cool and
    pleasant that the Governor sent for his writing-box, and we
    stayed here the whole day. After dinner I ascended the hill
    again and made a sketch. We supped in the camp. The "Caldwell"
    sailed, with Capt. Smith, for Toronto.

        *    *    *    *    *

    Tues. 23rd--Excessively hot weather. The Governor went to Navy
    Hall. Francis is much better, but weak. I see him almost every
    day, but did not choose to pay Mrs. Hamilton so long a visit,
    tho' I feel greatly obliged to her for keeping the child. I have
    just heard that the "Onondaga" is arrived at Navy Hall to take
    us to Toronto. Whether we shall remain there, and the regiment
    build huts for their winter residence, is not yet decided.

    Thurs. 25th--Went this evening to Navy Hall.

    Sat. 27th--I went to church. Drank tea at the fort. My Marvel of
    pine is in great beauty (evidently a plant or shrub).

    Sun. 28th--An experiment of firing shells from cannon was made
    at the Fort by the Governor's orders.

    Mon. 29th--We were prepared to sail for Toronto this morning,
    but the wind changed suddenly. We dined with the Chief Justice,
    and were recalled from a walk at nine o'clock this evening, as
    the wind had become fair. We embarked on board the "Mississaga,"
    the band playing in the ship. It was dark, so I went to bed and
    slept until eight o'clock the next morning, when I found myself
    in the harbour of Toronto. We had gone under an easy sail all
    night, for as no person on board had ever been at Toronto, Mr.
    Bouchette was afraid to enter the harbour till daylight, when
    St. John Rosseau, an Indian trader who lives near, came in a
    boat to pilot us.

Note.--The Governor, it seems, was not one of the passengers on this
occasion, for although Mrs. Simcoe uses the word "we," she continues by
saying that "no person on board had ever been at Toronto." The Governor
had visited Toronto on Tuesday, the 3rd May--his first visit--and was at
that port until the 12th, when he returned to Navy Hall. He was in
Niagara on the 28th July and in York on the 6th of August. There is no
entry in the diary as to the date he left Niagara or of his arrival in
York.

St. John (St. Jean Baptiste) Rousseau lived in 1793 on St. John's Creek,
later known as the Humber. He settled in Ancaster in 1795, where he
built the first grist and saw mill on the site of the present village.
He was a member of Masonic Lodge, No. 10, in the township of Barton,
known to-day as Barton Lodge, No. 6, Hamilton. He died in 1815.

    Tues. 30th--The Queen's Rangers are encamped opposite to the
    ship. After dinner we went on shore to fix on a spot whereon to
    place the canvas houses, and we chose a rising ground, divided
    by a creek from the camp, which is ordered to be cleared
    immediately. The soldiers have cut down a great deal of wood to
    enable them to pitch their tents. We went in a boat two miles to
    the bottom of the bay, and walked thro' a grove of oaks, where
    the town is intended to be built. A low spit of land, covered
    with wood, forms the bay and breaks the horizon of the lake,
    which greatly improves the view, which indeed is very pleasing.
    The water in the bay is beautifully clear and transparent.

Note.--The "rising ground" where the party camped was east of the site
of the present Old Fort, at the Queen's Wharf, Toronto. The "Creek"
known now as the Garrison Creek ran from the north-west, along the east
side of the Fort, but now the creek is drained. Bellwoods Park is a
portion of its old bed. The grove referred to was situated on that part
of Toronto bounded by George Street on the west, Parliament Street on
the east, Queen Street on the north and Toronto Bay on the south. Early
pictures of that part of the city show oak trees along the line of
Palace Street, the present Front Street. The spit of land is the present
island, in 1793 a peninsula.

    Sun. Aug. 4th--We rode on the peninsula opposite Toronto, so I
    called the spit of land, for it is united to the mainland by a
    very narrow neck of ground. We crossed the bay opposite the
    camp, and rode by the lake side to the end of the peninsula.

Note.--The party crossed the bay of Toronto from their camp on the shore
near the site of the Old Fort, and landed at the present Hanlan's Point,
known in the early days as Gibraltar Point. This point is shown in all
the Government maps from 1796 as "Gibraltar Point." When Mrs. Simcoe
writes later on that the "Onondaga" on her way from Kingston to York was
"off Gibraltar Point at York" when passing the present Lighthouse Point,
she wrote in error. The peninsula in 1793 joined the mainland at the
foot of the present Woodbine Avenue. In 1854 the waters of Lake Ontario
broke through and created the present Island. Later the eastern channel
was made, now used by the largest lake boats.

    4th--We met with some good natural meadows and several ponds.
    The trees are mostly of the poplar kind, covered with wild
    vines, and there are some fir. On the ground were everlasting
    peas creeping in abundance, of a purple color. I am told they
    are good to eat when boiled, and some pretty, white flowers,
    like lilies of the valley. We continued our ride beyond the
    peninsula on the sands of the north shore of Lake Ontario till
    we were impeded by large trees on the beach. We then walked some
    distance till we met with Mr. Grant's (the surveyor's) boat. It
    was not much larger than a canoe, but we ventured into it, and
    after rowing a mile we came within sight of what is named, in
    the map, the highlands of Toronto. The shore is extremely bold,
    and has the appearance of chalk cliffs, but I believe they are
    only white sand. They appeared so well that we talked of
    building a summer residence there and calling it Scarborough.

Note.--The party rowed east on Lake Ontario, to the present highlands
known from the name given them by Governor Simcoe as Scarborough
Heights. The summer residence was not built at the Heights, but a couple
of miles up the Don River at the place known as "Castle Frank."

    4th--The diversity of scenes I met with this morning made the
    ride extremely pleasant. The wooded part of the peninsula was
    like shrubbery. The sands towards the lake reminded me of the
    sands at Weymouth, and the sight of the highlands presented a
    totally different country to anything near the bay, tho' I was
    not more than four miles from it. I was very near riding into
    what appeared a quicksand, which, with a little rain and wind we
    met with for half an hour as we rode from the shore to the
    Mississaga, were the only unpleasant incidents that occurred
    this day. After dinner we left the Mississaga, and slept
    to-night in the canvas house.

[Illustration: Cascade on the Severn.

McDonald's Rapids, between Sparrow Lake and Ragged Rapids.

(_From a Drawing by Lieutenant Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--The canvas house was one of three or four large and small tents
that Governor Simcoe bought in London at the sale of the effects of
Captain Cook, the explorer. The original drawings of these tents are
in the British Museum, and facsimiles will appear in my biography of
Governor Simcoe.

    Mon. 5th--The children came on shore; this afternoon we walked
    two miles to the old French Fort, but there are no remains of
    any building there. It rained very hard, and I was as completely
    wet as if I had walked through a river, for being in a shower in
    the woods is quite different from being exposed to it in an open
    country; every tree acted as a shower bath, as the path was just
    wide enough to admit of one person. We passed some creeks and
    unhewn trees thrown across, a matter of some difficulty to those
    unaccustomed to them. I should think it might be done with less
    danger of falling with moccasins on the feet.

Note.--The "old French Fort" was Fort Rouille, erected about 1750 and
named after the French Colonial Minister of that name. It was a stockade
trading post, popularly known as Fort Toronto, but officially as Fort
Rouille, and the site was at the foot of Dufferin Street, Toronto, now
marked by a monument. Mrs. Simcoe's calculation of distance seems to
have been erroneous, for it is less than a mile from the camp, which was
east of Garrison Creek, to the ruins of the French Fort. Probably the
pathway to the ruins was circuitous and as they were walking through the
woods the distance may have led Mrs. Simcoe to the belief that they had
gone two miles.

    Tues. 6th--Having been wet thro' these last two days, I declined
    going with the Governor to see a mill on St. John's Creek, six
    miles towards the head of the lake. The Governor brought me some
    very good cakes. The miller's wife is from the United States,
    where the women excel in making cakes and bread.

Note.--In November of 1678, the Franciscan Friar La Motte and Hennepin
sailed from Fort Frontenac for Niagara. On the 26th they arrived at the
Indian village of Taiaiagon, near Toronto, probably a few miles west of
the mouth of the Humber River, where they ran their vessel for safety
into the mouth of the river, which Parkman says was "probably the
Humber." The site of this Indian village is shown in a manuscript map
sent to France by Intendant Duchesneau and is now in the Archives de la
Marine in Paris. The word "Taiaiagon" means a portage or landing place,
and it is very doubtful if Hennepin in its use intended to refer to the
site of Toronto. There is no certainty as to the derivation or meaning
of the word Toronto. In early maps Lake Simcoe is called "Lac Tarento"
and "Lac Taronthé." Toronto evidently denoted Lake Simcoe and the
surrounding region. In LaHontan's map the Humber River is marked
Tanaouate. By others it was called Toronto River.

In the maps of 1756 the river Humber, two miles west of Toronto, is
given as St. John's Creek. It is, however, given as the Humber by D. W.
Smith, A.S.G., on 31st January, 1798, in a plan of Humber Mills, while
State Papers H. 1, 1798, are entitled "Papers re Humber Mills." They
contain a letter from John Wilson offering to purchase the Government
Saw Mills on the Humber, and "a statement of annual income arising from
the Government Saw Mills on the Humber, commencing May, 1794, and ending
December 31st, 1797," signed by John McGill, Superintendent Saw Mill
Accounts. A map of the Province of Upper Canada describing all the new
Settlements, Townships, etc., with the Counties adjacent, from Quebec to
Lake Huron, compiled at the request of His Excellency Major-General John
Graves Simcoe, First Lieutenant-Governor, etc., by David William Smyth,
Esq., Surveyor-General, London, Faden, 1800, is the earliest map in the
Archives Department, Ottawa, giving the name Humber. The Government Mill
was situated about the site of the ruins of the present "old mill." It
is believed that after the War of 1812-4 it was never used. The
Surveyor-General spelt his name indifferently "Smith" and "Smyth."

    Wed. 7th--I rode on the peninsula from one till four. I saw
    loons swimming on the lake; they make a noise like a man
    hollowing in a tone of distress. One of these birds was sent to
    me dead at Niagara; it was as large as a swan, black, with a few
    white marks on it. At a distance they appear like small fishing
    boats. The air on these sands is peculiarly clear and fine. The
    Indians esteem this place so healthy that they come and stay
    here when they are ill.

    Fri. 9th--Some Indians of the Ojibway tribe came from near Lake
    Huron. They are extremely handsome, and have a superior air to
    any I have seen; they have been living among Europeans,
    therefore less accustomed to drink rum. Some wore black silk
    handkerchiefs, covered with silver brooches, tied right round
    the head, others silver bands, silver arm bands, and their
    shirts ornamented with brooches; scarlet leggings or pantaloons,
    and black, blue or scarlet broadcloth blankets. These Indians
    brought the Governor "a beaver blanket to make his bed," as they
    expressed themselves, apologized for not having done it sooner,
    and invited him to visit their country.

Note.--The territory occupied by the Ojibway nation was the largest in
extent of any Indian possessions of which there is a definite knowledge.
When the Champlain traders met the Ojibways in 1610, their eastern
boundary was marked by the waters of Lakes Huron and Michigan. The
mountain ridge lying between Lake Superior and the frozen bay (Hudson
Bay) was the northern barrier. On the west stretched a forest, beyond
which was a vast prairie. On the south, a valley, by Lake Superior,
thence to the southern part of Michigan. The land within these
boundaries has always been known as the country of the Ojibways.

    Sat. 10th--I went to my favourite sands; the bay is a mile
    across. The Governor thinks, from the manner in which the
    sandbanks are formed, they are capable of being fortified so as
    to be impregnable; he therefore calls it "Gibraltar Point," tho'
    the land is low.

    Sun. 11th--Lt. Smith of the 5th Regiment who is here as Acting
    Deputy Surveyor-General read prayers to the Queen's Rangers
    assembled under some trees near the parade. This evening we went
    to see a creek which is to be called the River Don. It falls
    into the bay near the peninsula. After we entered we rowed some
    distance among low lands covered with rushes, abounding with
    wild ducks and swamp black birds, with red wings. About a mile
    beyond the bay the banks become high and wooded as the river
    contracts its width.

[Illustration: On the Severn River.

McLean's Bay, at the Outlet of Sparrow Lake.

(_From a Drawing by Lieutenant Pilkington, copied by Mrs.
Simcoe._)]

    Lt. Smith has drawn a fine map of the La Tranche River. From
    what has been surveyed, it is proved that Charlevoix, the French
    explorer's map, describes the country with great truth. If the
    line from the road to the river La Tranche was laid down
    according to its true bearings on any map but Charlevoix's, it
    would strike Lake Erie instead of La Tranche.

Note.--The Indian name of the Don River was "Wonscoteonach," signifying
"back burnt grounds," that is, the river coming down from the back burnt
country, which had previously been swept by fire. The term is merely
descriptive and not a proper name. The creek which Mrs. Simcoe states is
"to be called the River Don," was so named by the Governor on this visit
to Toronto. He very often discussed the naming of places in the Province
with his wife. This is gathered from letters at Wolford.

Sir David William Smith, only child of Lieutenant-Colonel John Smith, of
the Fifth Foot, was born 4th September, 1764. He was ensign in his
father's regiment and afterwards captain. He was a member of the
Executive Council and of the three first Canadian Parliaments. He was
also Surveyor-General of Upper Canada. In 1821 he was created a baronet.
He died in England in the spring of 1837.

[Illustration: Sir D. W. Smith.]

    Tues. 13th--An Indian named Wable Casigo supplies us with
    salmon, which the rivers and creeks on this shore abound with.
    It is supposed they go to the sea; the velocity with which fish
    move makes it not impossible, and the very red appearance and
    goodness of the salmon confirms the supposition; they are best
    in the month of June. I brought a favourite white cat, with grey
    spots, with me from Niagara. He is a native of Kingston. His
    sense and attachment are such that those who believe in
    trans-migration would think his soul once animated a reasoning
    being. He was undaunted on board the ship, sits composedly as
    sentinel at my door, amid the beat of drums and the crash of
    falling trees, and visits the tent with as little fear as a dog
    would do. There has been a fever at Niagara. This place is very
    healthy, and I think it probable we shall spend the winter here.
    Mr. Talbot is still in Philadelphia; Mr. Grey at Quebec. He has
    broken his arm there. The Governor has the gout in his foot very
    slightly. He has just received a letter from Prince Edward,
    lamenting his not obtaining leave to go to England.

    Sat. 24th--The Governor has received an official account of the
    Duke of York (1763-1827) having distinguished himself in an
    action in Flanders by which the French were dislodged and driven
    out of Holland. The Governor ordered a royal salute to be fired
    in commemoration of this event, and took the same opportunity of
    naming this station York. There are a few twelve or eighteen
    pounders, which were brought here from Oswegatchie or from
    Carleton Island. The "Mississaga" and "Onondaga" fired also, and
    the regiment.

Note.--It is doubtful whether this refers to Old Oswegatchie, the fort
that was originally built by the French at Ogdensburg in St. Lawrence
County, New York, on the banks of the Oswegatchie River. The name is a
corruption of the Huron word meaning "black water." The fort was
occupied by the French during the Seven Years' War, but was captured by
the British in 1760, when they were en route down the St. Lawrence to
attack Montreal. Directly opposite Ogdensburg is the Canadian town of
Prescott, and northeast of Prescott is the township of Augusta in the
County of Grenville, in which was situated a district known as New
Oswegatchie. Near the present village of Maitland, in 1758, defensive
works were erected by the French, and because timber was easily
procured, a shipyard was established. The original French fort with its
pickets was in existence in 1785. It is more than likely that the guns
came from Carleton Island.

    Sat. 24th--There were a party of Ojibway Indians here, who
    appeared much pleased with the firing. One of them, named "Great
    Sail," took Francis in his arms, and was much pleased to find
    the child not afraid, but delighted with the sound.

[Illustration: Canise (Great Sail).]

Note.--On the 26th August, 1793, was issued over the signature of E. B.
Littlehales, the major of brigade, an official order to the effect that
the Lieutenant-Governor having received information of the success of
His Majesty's arms under H.R.H. the Duke of York, by which Holland was
saved from the invasion of the French, the Governor had determined to
change the name of "Toronto" to that of "York" in honor of the Duke.
This order was effective from 27th August, when the two-cross Flag was
raised and a salute of twenty-one guns fired to commemorate the event.

    Sun. 25th--The Abbé des Jardins and a Monsr. de la Corne arrived
    here. They are sent by some French _émigrés_ to examine whether
    a suitable establishment could be allotted for them in this
    country. The Abbé appears a cunning, clever man, whose manners
    are those of one accustomed to live in the best society in
    Paris. La Corne is a Canadian who has been some time resident in
    France. The Governor received them with great civility; has
    ordered a marquee to be pitched for them. He has recommended
    them to travel towards Burlington Bay, at the head of the lake,
    where the country is open and the climate very mild. The soil
    and local circumstances they may judge of when on the spot.

Note.--L'Abbé Philippe-Jean-Louis Desjardins was born in France 6th
June, 1753. He became a priest in December, 1777, and was one of the
forty-four priests who fled from France during the French Revolution.
Shortly after his arrival in Canada in March, 1793, he was sent to
Niagara. Afterwards he became a director of the Ursuline Convent in
Quebec, where he was a well-known ecclesiastic. It was owing to his
efforts that many valuable paintings were brought to Canada. He died in
Paris on 21st October, 1883.

[Illustration: L'Abbé Desjardins.]

Late in 1792, the British Government selected four persons to go to
Canada to make the necessary preliminary arrangements for settling there
some of the _émigrés_. These envoys were Philippe-Jean-Louis Desjardins,
formerly vicar-general of Orleans; Jean-Marie Raimbeau, priest of the
diocese of Bayeux; M. Gazil, doctor and formerly principal of the
College of Navarre; and the Chevalier François-Josue Saint-Luc de la
Corne, formerly post captain in the French Navy. These gentlemen were
given £200 by the Government and £80 by the Relief committee. They were
instructed to embark on His Majesty's packet for New York, and, having
arrived there, to seek out His Majesty's agent, Sir John Temple, who was
directed to give them all the needful assistance in prosecuting their
journey to Quebec. The envoys reached that city on March 2nd, 1793, and
presented their credentials to the Lieutenant-Governor. On August 3,
1793, M. Desjardins and the Chevalier de la Corne left for the Upper
Province. They were received with great cordiality, were entertained for
several weeks in the capital of the Province, Newark, now called
Niagara, and apparently expressed a wish for land in this vicinity. They
also visited York. As a result the Executive Council set aside for them
a township at the west end of Lake Ontario near Burlington Bay.

[Illustration: On the Severn River.

The Little Chute, near the Entrance to Gloucester Pool.

(_From a Drawing by Lieutenant Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Wed. 28th--I walked with the Governor on Gibraltar Point this
    evening.

    Thur. 29th--The gunboat arrived from Niagara. An officer from
    Detroit came in her, who says the Indian Commissioners returned
    to the States without making peace with the Indians, as they
    refused to give up what the Indians had invariably made the
    terms of accommodation.

    Fri. 30th--The "Mississaga" came from Niagara in four hours. Mr.
    Russell came in her.

    Wed. 4th Sept.--I rode to St. John's Creek (the Humber River).
    There is a ridge of land extending near a mile beyond St. John's
    House, 300 feet high and not more than three feet wide; the bank
    towards the river is of smooth turf. There is a great deal of
    hemlock spruce on this river; the banks are dry and very
    pleasant. I gathered a beautiful large species of Polygala,
    which is a genus of annual and perennial herbs and shrubs of the
    order of Polygalacae.

    I found a green caterpillar, with tufts like fir on its back. I
    accidentally touched my face with them, and it felt as if stung
    by a nettle, and the sensation continued painful for some time.
    It was extremely calm when we set out, but on our return we were
    almost seasick, the water was so rough. A little breeze on this
    lake raises the waves in the most sudden manner.

    Fri. 6th--I have read Alfred's letters. I never expected to have
    been so much entertained by a political book or to have
    comprehended so much of the politics of Europe. Mr. Osgoode, the
    Chief Justice, suspects it to be written by Mr. Burgess. (A
    friend of Governor Simcoe's, whose portrait is at Wolford.)

    I went to-day to ride to Gibraltar Point.

Note.--Three letters (signed Alfred) to the people of Great Britain and
particularly to those who signed the addresses on the late changes of
administration and the dissolution of Parliament. London, 1785.

    Wed. 11th--We rowed six miles up the Don to Coons', who has a
    farm under a hill covered with pine. I saw very fine butternut
    trees. The nuts are better than walnuts; gathered berries of
    cockspur thorns. I landed to see the shingles made, which is
    done by splitting large blocks of the pine into equal divisions.
    We found the river very shallow in many parts and obstructed by
    fallen trees. One of them lay so high above the water that the
    boat passed under, the rowers stooping their heads. It looked
    picturesque, and a bald eagle sat on a blasted pine on a very
    bold point just above the fallen tree. The Governor talks of
    placing a canvas house on this point for a summer residence.
    Vencal rowed--a very intelligent man, born in Sweden.

Note.--Coon's farm, was on the east bank of the Don River about where
Chester is to-day.

    Fri. 13th--Mr. Pilkington coasted the lake from Niagara, and
    arrived here in two days, about 100 miles.

Note.--Robert Pilkington (1765-1834) obtained his commission as second
lieutenant in the Royal Artillery in 1787. He was transferred to the
Royal Engineers in 1789 and was stationed at Quebec; was first
lieutenant in January, 1793, and captain in 1801. He was on General
Simcoe's staff from 1793-6 and built the fort on the Maumee by
instructions of Governor Simcoe. The building of this fort was one of
the causes of friction between Governor Simcoe and Lord Dorchester, the
Governor-General at Quebec. The Governor had advised against the
erection, but was ordered to carry out instructions. Pilkington remained
in Canada until 1803. He became major-general in 1825 and was
inspector-general of fortifications in England in 1830. He died in 1834.
His wife was Hannah, daughter of John Tylee, and by her he had two sons,
one of whom died shortly after birth, and four daughters. The surviving
son, Robert John Pilkington, married Jane, daughter of Andrew Shaw, of
Montreal, a daughter being Mrs. J. W. Molson of that city.

    Sat. 14th--We walked to the spot intended for the site of the
    town. Mr. Aitkin's (the surveyor) canoe was there; we went into
    it, and himself and his man paddled. We went at the rate of four
    knots an hour. I liked it very much; being without the noise of
    oars is a great satisfaction. I gathered purple berries from a
    creeping plant, seeds of lilies and spikenard. To see a birch
    canoe managed with that inexpressible care and composure, which
    is the characteristic of an Indian, is the prettiest sight
    imaginable. A man usually paddles at one end of it and a woman
    at the other; but in smooth water little exertion is wanting,
    and they sit quietly, as if to take the air. The canoe appears
    to move as if by clockwork. I always wish to conduct a canoe
    myself when I see them manage it with such dexterity and grace.
    An European usually looks awkward and in a bustle compared with
    the Indian's quiet skill in a canoe.

Note.--Alexander Aitkin was the Deputy-Surveyor, who by order of
Governor Simcoe, made the first survey and map or plan of the original
town of York (Toronto). This plan was made in June, 1793, after the
Governor had selected the site. The Governor, who retained the plan with
other official documents, sent it to the war authorities in London, on
his arrival in England from Canada in 1796. Many times during the past
century search for this plan was made in the War Office, in the Colonial
Office, and in the British Museum, but without avail. In October, 1900,
however, I discovered it in the Public Record Office, Chancery Lane,
London, just 107 years from the date of its making. Aitkin was a very
active official and was a favorite with Governor Simcoe. During the
latter years of his life he resided in Kingston, U.C., where he died
about 1830.

[Illustration: On the Severn River.

Head of the Big Chute, near Gloucester Pool.

(_From a Drawing by Lieutenant Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Mon. 23rd--I rode on the peninsula. My horse has spirit enough
    to wish to get before others. I rode a race with Mr. Talbot to
    keep myself warm. I gathered wild grapes. They were pleasant,
    but not sweet. Capt. Smith is gone to open a road, to be called
    Dundas Street, from the head of the lake to the River La
    Tranche. He has 100 men with him.

[Illustration: First Official Plan of York (Toronto), 1793.

(_From the Record Office, Chancery Lane, London, England._)]

    Tues. 24th--I hear that they kill rattlesnakes every day, yet
    not a man has been bitten, altho' they have been among them for
    six weeks. Capt. Smith sent two of the snakes in a barrel, that
    I might see them; they were dark and ugly, and made a whizzing
    sound in shaking their rattles when I touched them with a stick.
    We dine in a marquee to-day. It has become too cold in the
    arbour; the canvas house we use as a bedroom, but the other is
    going to be erected for a winter dining-room. I have gathered
    most beautiful white berries, with a black eye, from red stalks.
    I cannot find out its name.

    Wed. 25th--The Governor set out, with four officers, a dozen
    soldiers and some Indians, to visit Lake Huron.

    Sun. 29th--I walked on the sand bank and gathered seeds of
    Toronto lilies.

    Wed. Oct. 2nd--The Governor's horses returned from the
    Mississaga Creek, now the Holland River, from whence he sent me
    some seeds. I received the outside garment sent from England by
    Mr. G. Davison. The ground mice are innumerable and most
    troublesome here. We want the edict published in Spain to
    excommunicate and banish them. I send you a bat remarkable for
    its size, and a beautiful black and yellow bird.

    Fri. 25th--I send a map to elucidate the Governor's journey,
    which was attended with danger as well as with many pleasant
    circumstances. The western side of the lake is drawn from Mr.
    Pilkington's sketches, the eastern from former accounts. Mr.
    Pilkington, who was one of the party, says the scenery was fit
    for pictures the whole way, and from his drawings I should
    suppose so. They rode 30 miles to the
    Miciaguean--Mississaga--Creek, then passed a terrible bog of
    liquid mud.

    The Indians with some difficulty pushed the canoe the Governor
    was in through it. The Governor went to the habitation of
    Canise, the Indian who held Francis in his arms during the
    firing when "York" was named. Canise and his eldest son were
    lately dead, and their widows and children were lamenting them.
    Young Canise gave the Governor a beaver blanket, and made
    speeches of excuse for not sooner having made his bed. The
    Governor went to see a very respectable Indian named "Old Sail,"
    who lives on a branch of Holland's River. He advised him to
    return by the eastern branch of it to avoid the swamp. They
    proceeded about thirty miles across Lac aux Claies, now named
    Simcoe, in which are many islands, which Coll. Simcoe named
    after his father's friends and those gentlemen who accompanied
    him. The river from thence to Matchedash Bay afforded the most
    picturesque scenery, from the number of falls and rapids upon
    it. Some of them were avoided by carrying the canoes on the
    shores; others they risked going down.

Note.--There have been great changes in recent years on the Severn River
owing to the placing of dams at the various waterfalls. McDonald's
Rapids have been almost obliterated by blasting, done by the Dominion
Government and by the Town's power dam at the Ragged Rapids, but in the
recollection of Mr. C. H. Hale of Orillia, who has kindly furnished me
with information regarding the Severn pictures, the principal cascade of
McDonald's Rapids was as shown in the sketch made by Lieutenant
Pilkington in 1793.

Holland's River is named, after Surveyor-General Samuel Holland. The
town of Holland Landing, thirty-eight miles from Toronto, is situated on
this river.

[Illustration: Sparrow Lake Chute.

On the Severn River, below McLean's Bay.

(_From a Drawing by Lieutenant Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Lake Simcoe, originally Ouentaronk Lake, sometimes called Sinion or
Shiniong, afterwards called Lac aux Claies, was given its present name
by Governor Simcoe out of respect for his father.

The three principal islands in Lake Simcoe are now known by the names of
Snake, Georgina and Thorah Islands. Georgina and Thorah Islands were
formerly known as Graves and Canise Islands, respectively, but have come
to be called by the names of the townships to which they are adjacent.
Snake Island, from the time of the earliest white traders down to the
present, has had the name it now bears. There was an attempt more than a
century ago to rename the islands after friends of Governor Simcoe, but
none of the designations came into general use. Smith's Gazetteer,
published in 1799, and in its second edition published in 1813, gives
Snake Island as Darling's Island, named after Captain (afterwards
General) Darling, one of the friends of Simcoe who accompanied him on
this trip to Lake Simcoe and Matchedash Bay. These names, however, had
only a temporary application on paper, and the names in use among the
traders and early settlers were not superseded by the proposed ones.

Matchedash Bay is an inlet at the southeast extremity of Georgian Bay,
Lake Huron--also spelled Machedash and Matadash--and means muskeg or
marshy ground. Waubaushene is situated at its mouth, nearly opposite
where the Severn enters Georgian Bay.

    25th--In passing a rapid an Indian in the Governor's canoe fell
    over, and the canoe passed over him. He rose up on the other
    side and got in again without seeming discomposure. On returning
    one of the soldiers cut his foot near Holland's River. Mr.
    Alexander McDonnell and another gentleman stayed with him, as he
    was unable to travel. The "Old Sail" received them hospitably,
    and shot ducks for them. A small quantity of provisions being
    left with them, and an Indian who carried a large cargo quitting
    the party, reduced the stock so much that the Governor set out
    with only two days' provisions and the expectation of five days'
    march to bring them to York. The Indians lost their way, and
    when they had provisions for one day only they knew not where
    they were. The Governor had recourse to a compass, and at the
    close of the day they came on a surveyor's line, and the next
    morning saw Lake Ontario. Its first appearance, Coll. Simcoe
    says, was the most delightful sight, at a time they were in
    danger of starving, and about three miles from York they
    breakfasted on the remaining provisions.

Note.--The Big Chute is now being developed by the Simcoe Power, Light
and Railway Company, and for many years there has been a lumbermen's dam
at this point. At the right side of the river, going down stream, in the
neighborhood of the Big Chute, there is considerable indentation caused
by the dams raising the water. This indentation was not apparent in
1793, before the inroads of civilization.

    25th--Had they remained in the woods another day it was feared
    that "Jack Snap" would have been sacrificed to their hunger. He
    is a very fine Newfoundland dog who belonged to Mr. Sheehan,
    near Niagara, but has lived at Navy Hall from the time of our
    coming there, and walked to Detroit with Coll. Simcoe. He has
    been troublesome enough on this excursion, as his size was very
    unsuitable to a canoe, but he is a great favourite.

    Coll. Simcoe had the satisfaction of finding Matchadash Bay such
    as gave him reason to believe would be an excellent harbour for
    very large ships. A bay near Prince William is called
    Penetanguishene, a fine harbour. The fever at New York and
    Philadelphia amounts almost to the plague.

Note.--There was a terrific visitation of yellow fever at New York and
Philadelphia in 1791-2 and 1793. Many thousands of persons died of the
pestilence.

    Sun. 27th--A road for walking is now opened up three miles on
    each side of the camp. I can, therefore, now take some exercise
    without going to the peninsula. Mr. McDonell arrived with the
    soldiers from Holland's River. He brought some wild ducks from
    Lake Simcoe, which were better than any I have ever tasted;
    these birds are so much better than any in England from their
    feeding on wild rice. Capt. Smith is returned from cutting the
    road named Dundas. It is opened for 20 miles.

    They met with quantities of wild grapes, and put some of the
    juice in barrels to make vinegar, and Capt. Smith told me it
    turned out very tolerable wine. They killed numbers of
    rattlesnakes every day, but nobody was bitten by them. Capt.
    Smith brought two in a barrel to show me, as I had never seen
    any alive.

Note.--This shows that the road known as Dundas St. was in October,
1793, opened for twenty miles, that is, as far as Port Credit. It was
named after Henry Dundas, who became Home Secretary, 1791, and Secretary
for War, 1794. He was raised to the peerage as Viscount Melville,
December 24th, 1802.

    Mon. 28th--The weather has been very cold for some days and the
    frost very severe, notwithstanding which we feel it quite mild
    in the woods. To-day we walked two miles to a pretty spot by the
    side of a creek, where we had a fire made of many large trees
    and wild ducks roasted by it, and we dined without feeling the
    least cold. Coll. Pickering's, the American Indian
    Commissioner's dish, chowder, is also easily dressed in the
    woods, being prepared in a kettle before we left our house.

Note.--Sparrow Lake Chute, two or three miles below McLean's Bay, has
been considerably affected by dams built on the Ragged Rapids, to such
an extent in fact, that at one time it was navigable by steamers.

Gloucester Pool is an enlargement of the Severn River five miles from
its mouth. The Severn empties into Georgian Bay at Port Severn on the
east side of the Bay at its southern extremity. Civilization has so
completely altered the aspect of this landscape that it is a difficult
matter after a hundred years to identify places.

[Illustration: "By Gloucester Pool," on the Severn River.

(_From a Drawing by Lieutenant Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]




  CHAPTER XIII.

  _BUILDING OF CASTLE FRANK, ON RIVER DON._


It was in the last days of October, 1793, that General Simcoe determined
to select a site for a summer home near York. Frequent excursions by
boat up the Don as far as navigable, and walks through the woods that
skirted its banks, created a love for that part of the country, a
sentiment which was always retained by the Governor and his wife. Years
after their return to England she often spoke of "that pretty spot,
Castle Frank." Mrs. Simcoe made many sketches of her summer home both
from the high ground on which it stood and from the approach up the
river. Two of these drawings have been preserved. She writes:

    Tues. 29th--The Governor having determined to take a lot of 200
    acres upon the River Don for Francis, and the law obliges
    persons having lots of land to build a house upon them within a
    year, we went to-day to fix upon the spot for building the
    house. We went six miles by water from the Fort and east along
    the bay shore to the Don, and up that river, landed, climbed up
    an exceedingly steep hill, or rather a series of sugar-loafed
    hills, and approved of the highest spot, from whence we looked
    down on the tops of large trees and, seeing eagles near, I
    suppose they build there. There are large pine plains around it,
    which, being without underwood, I can ride and walk on, and we
    hope the height of the situation will secure us from mosquitos.
    We dined by a large fire on wild ducks and chowder, on the side
    of a hill opposite to that spot. Our long walk made it late
    before we had dined, so that, altho' we set out immediately
    afterwards and walked fast, it was nearly dark before we reached
    the surveyor's tent. From there we went home in a boat, as the
    stumps and roots of trees in the road were so troublesome to
    walk among in the dark. Mr. Littlehales and some gentlemen lost
    their way in attempting to return to the camp after us. They
    slept in the woods about a mile distant.

The following description of Castle Frank is from Robertson's Landmarks
of Toronto, Vol. 1, p. 3-5.

[Illustration: Modern Plan Showing Site of Castle Frank.

(_From a Drawing in the Crown Lands Department, Toronto._)]

"During the spring of 1794, the Governor built Castle Frank as a summer
residence and named it after his son Francis. It was in the woods on the
brow of a steep high bank overlooking the valley of the Don, at a point
just beyond the fence which is now the north bounds of St. James'
Cemetery. A large portion of the land formerly belonging to Castle Frank
is now part of the burying ground. Below and to the south of the
dwelling was a deep ravine down which between hog-back formations ran a
stream named Castle Frank brook, which flowed into the Don, just above a
small island on the west side. The marshes gave way on the right at this
point to good land covered with elm, butternut and basswood trees. The
site of the building is marked with a stone. The ground on each side of
it has a steep descent on its north side to the Don, and on the south
to the bottom of Castle Frank brook ravine through which the tiny
rivulet runs. The view from the dwelling was hemmed in by the trees that
covered alike the surrounding level land and the steep hillsides that
could only be climbed with difficulty. No prettier spot could have been
selected for a summer home. Some of the white pines that stood there a
century ago are still to be seen, but many look as if they were second
growth. To the east the view was down upon the valley of the Don, and to
the west over the ravine now in the cemetery. The modern entrance to the
ravine is by Castle Avenue and Castle Frank Crescent.

[Illustration: Castle Frank, 1794.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs Simcoe._)]

"Castle Frank was not occupied permanently by the Governor and his
family, but many excursions were made and week ends spent by the friends
who enjoyed pleasant hours in the little settlement during Governor
Simcoe's administration. The building was about fifty feet in depth and
thirty feet in width, the latter being the frontage, which faced south.
The front elevation was not unlike that of a Greek temple. The trunks of
four large, well matched, unbarked pine trees answered for columns
supporting the pediment or the projection of the whole roof. The main
doorway was in the centre of the front, but no windows on either side.
On the east and west sides were four windows with shutters of heavy
double planks running up and down on one side, and crosswise on the
other, and thickly studded with the heads of stout nails. Of a similar
construction was the door. A chimney arose from the middle of the roof.
The walls were built of rather small, carefully hewn logs, of short
lengths, clap-boarded. They presented a comparatively finished
appearance on the outside, but after a time took the weather-stained
color that unpainted wood assumes. Inside the finish was rough, in fact
the interior was never fully completed. A slight attempt at a division
into rooms had been made, but was never entirely carried out. Entering
the front door the visitor found himself at once in an apartment
extending the width of the building and about half its length. On one
side was a big fireplace. At the rear of this was another room of
similar dimensions with a fireplace in the opposite wall. This cleared
space in front of the building was but a few yards across, and from it
to the site of the town ran a narrow carriage-way and bridle-path cut
out by the soldiers and graded, traces of which may still be found.

"Castle Frank received its title from the five year old son of Governor
Simcoe, although the Rev. Dr. Henry Scadding, one of my old school
masters at Upper Canada College and from whom I obtained all the
information here given in regard to the building, points out that there
was a 'Castle-franc' near Rochelle, which figures in the history of the
Huguenots. The Iroquois had honored the Governor with the title of 'De
yonyn hokrawen,' signifying 'One whose door is always open,' and on his
little son, who appears to have been a great favorite with them, as he
sometimes was attired in Indian costume, they conferred the honour of
chieftainship, and named him Deyoken, which means 'Between the two
objects.' A warrior's fate befell the young chieftain, for at the age of
twenty-one, while serving with his regiment during the Peninsular War,
he fell in the breach at Badajoz in 1812. In spite of the unavoidable
discomforts of life at Castle Frank and at York, many were the
compensating pleasures, especially for the soldier pioneers who formed
almost the entire male population. Governor Simcoe's mind was absorbed
with schemes of government and war. Those who were fond of sport might
gratify their desire to the full in the forest which surrounded York,
where bear, deer and wolves and small game abounded. Woodcock and snipe
were plentiful on the peninsula and east and north of the east end of
Toronto Bay. In the early days salmon was speared at night in the Don,
and the bay and Lake Ontario were filled with fish of all kinds. Until
Governor Simcoe's departure in 1796, Castle Frank's rough roof covered
many a gay party, brought up by canoes and rowboats from the Fort, or on
horseback.

"After Governor Simcoe's return to England Castle Frank was occasionally
used by President Peter Russell and his family for a picnic, excursion
party or ball, when the guests were in summer taken up the Don in boats
and in winter by the same route in sleighs. That these trips must have
given great enjoyment to those concerned is evident, for there is a
letter extant from Mr. Russell, written in December, 1796, in which he
says: 'I hope the ladies may be able to enjoy the charming carioling
(sleighing) which you must have on your bay and up the Don to Castle
Frank, when an early dinner must be picturesque and delightful.' Captain
John Denison, an officer in the English militia, came to Canada from
Hedon, Yorkshire, in 1792. He first settled in Kingston, but in 1796 he
moved to York, and during the summer months he lived at Castle Frank by
permission of the Honorable Peter Russell."

Colonel Talbot in a letter to General Simcoe dated July 17th, 1803,
writes of a trip to York and a visit to Castle Frank. He says: "I paid a
visit of duty to Castle Frank, which I am sorry to add is uninhabited
and going to ruin. Some rascals had, a few days before I saw it, broken
off the window shutters and gone down to the lower apartment, where they
broke down the chimney in order to carry away the bar of iron that
supported it."

[Illustration: Near Castle Frank.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

In 1807, Mrs. Simcoe, the widow of the late Governor, wrote to Sir David
W. Smith, Bart., who resided at Alnwick and in 1798-9 was Speaker of the
Legislative Assembly of Upper Canada, concerning the Scarborough lands
of her late husband. Sir David replied that he understood that the
Government long before he left Canada made some entry in the Council
books, and that he considered Castle Frank as making up the residue of
this land. But, added Sir David, the General told me that the person who
made out the deed of the Castle Frank property mistook 'G' for Graves
and called the property, registered in the name of Francis, 'Graves'
instead of 'Gwillim.'

After 1807, Castle Frank was tenantless. The building began to show
further signs of decay, and in 1829 it was accidentally burned through
the carelessness of some amateur fishermen, and so a building that would
to-day be a genuine relic of the olden time passed out. The only relic I
know of in connection with Castle Frank is a Masonic gavel made out of a
piece of ash, and which was presented to me by Orient Lodge A. F. and A.
M., Toronto, in 1892, during my term as Grand Master of the Grand Lodge
of Canada, in the Province of Ontario.

    Wed. 30th Oct.--We have received, from Montreal a birch bark
    canoe, such as is used by the North-West Company to transport
    their goods to the Grand Portage. It requires twelve men to
    paddle, is large enough to contain four or five passengers to
    sit very commodiously in the centre under an awning. An Indian
    woman came to-day with pitch, which is made by the Indians from
    fir trees, to gum the canoe if any part of it is worn off by
    bringing it hither. She held a piece of pitch in her hand, and
    melted it by applying a piece of burning wood. Her figure was
    perfectly wild and witchlike, and a little fire, with a kettle
    on it by her side, in a stormy, dark day, the waves roaring on
    the beach near which she stood, formed a scene very wildly
    picturesque.

    Fri. Nov. 1st--I walked this morning. At eight this dark evening
    we went in a boat to see salmon speared. Large torches of white
    birch bark being carried in the boat, the blaze of light
    attracts the fish, when the men are dexterous in spearing. The
    manner of destroying the fish is disagreeable, but seeing them
    swimming in shoals around the boat is a very pretty sight.

    The flights of wild pigeons in the spring and autumn is a
    surprising sight. They fly against the wind and so low that at
    Niagara the men threw sticks at them from the fort and killed
    numbers; the air is somewhat darkened by them. I think those we
    have met with here have been particularly good. Sometimes they
    fix a bullet to a string tied to a pole, and knock them down.
    Coll. Butler, of the Rangers, was observing that they build
    where there are plenty of acorns, but do not feed within 20
    miles of the place, reserving that stock of provisions till the
    young ones can leave their nests, and then scratch the acorns up
    for them.

    Pigeons have been shot with rice in their craws on the Mohawk
    River. Rice does not grow nearer than Carolina. Therefore, it is
    presumed (considering the supposed time of digestion) that they
    must have flown 200 miles a day.

    Fri. 8th--We have had a week of incessant rain.

    Sat. 9th--I went to-day for the first time in the North-West
    canoe. A beaver blanket and a carpet were put in to sit on. We
    carried a small table, to be used in embarking, for the canoe
    cannot be brought very near the shore, lest the gravel or
    pebbles injure her, so the table was set in the water and a long
    plank laid from it to the shore, to enable me to get in or out,
    the men carrying the canoe empty into the water and out of it up
    on their shoulders. We have less than "boards between us and
    eternity," for the canoe is formed of birch bark fixed on to
    thin ribs of very light wood with the gum or pitch the Indians
    make from fir trees, and of which they always carry some with
    them, lest an accident rub off any, or the heat of the sun melt
    it.

    We dined in a meadow on the peninsula, where I amused myself
    with setting fire to a kind of long dry grass, which burns very
    quickly, and the flame and smoke run along the ground very
    quickly and with a pretty effect. I was delighted with the
    swift and easy motion of the canoe and with its appearance.

    Thurs. 14th--I went again in the canoe until we came in sight of
    the Highlands, but it was so very cold I was very glad to walk
    part of the way back. We dined on the peninsula. I passed a spot
    on the peninsula where it was supposed an Indian had been buried
    lately. A small pile of wood was raised, a bow and arrow lay on
    it, and a dog-skin hung near it. Some Indians sacrifice dogs,
    other tribes eat them when extremely ill.

    Tues. 19th--At this season of the year there is usually a
    fortnight of foggy weather; the air is perfectly dry and hot,
    and smells and feels like smoke; it is called Indian summer. I
    have never heard these smoky fogs well accounted for.

    Wed. 20th--We dined in the woods and eat part of a raccoon; it
    was very fat and tasted like lamb if eaten with mint sauce.

    Thurs. 21st--An owl was sent to me, shot at Niagara; it measured
    five feet from wing to wing when they were extended.

    Fri. 22nd--Mr. Littlehales went on horseback to Niagara.

Note.--This journey was made by travelling west from York along Dundas
Street and then through a track in the woods along the north shore of
Lake Ontario to Burlington Bay, where a stop was made at the government
inn known as "The King's Head." The journey from Burlington Bay to
Niagara was made through the woods, skirting the south shore of the
Lake.

    Fri. 29th--An Indian came here who, by way of being in mourning
    for a relation, was painted black round his face.

    Mon. Dec. 2nd--The "Great Sail," his wife and ten children came
    here; they grouped themselves like Van Dyke's family pictures.
    They brought us deer. Francis handed plates of apples to them.
    He shakes hands with the Indians in a very friendly manner, tho'
    he is very shy and ungracious to all his own countrymen. A
    Mississaga, called the "Man of the Snakes," was here also. The
    Mississagas dress very indifferently.

Note.--Earlier in the autumn, Canise, otherwise known as "Great Sail,"
and his son had died, for on 25th October Mrs. Simcoe writes that they
are "lately dead." She also refers to "young Canise," no doubt a
grandson, "who gave the Governor a beaver blanket and made speeches of
excuse for not sooner having made his bed." The "Great Sail" here
mentioned was in all probability a successor to the chieftainship.

    Sun. Dec. 8th--The "Onondaga" was left under the care of a young
    lieutenant and ran aground. It is feared she cannot be got off
    until the spring, and then perhaps not without injury.

Note.-In 1793, the "Onondaga," 12 guns, 80 tons burthen, an armed vessel
of the Provincial Government went ashore on the west side of Gibraltar
Point, now Hanlan's Point. After being abandoned, the vessel was pulled
off by Mr. Joseph Bouchette. For this act he was promoted second
lieutenant in the provincial navy.

    Mon. 9th--The Governor went to the west shore of the peninsula
    at Gibraltar Point to view the "Onondaga" in such rough weather
    that the waves came into the boat and made everybody wet.

    Thur. 12th--Mr. Grey has just received orders to join Sir C.
    Grey in the West Indies. He is to go by way of New York. The
    Governor and Mr. Talbot set out with him this morning to
    accompany him as far as Niagara. Fine, calm weather.

Note.--The foregoing entry has reference to Lieutenant Thomas Grey, who
had come to Canada with Governor Simcoe, joining his father, Sir Charles
Grey, first Earl Grey, who was in this year (1793) appointed with Jervis
(subsequently Earl St. Vincent) commander of an expedition to the French
West Indies. They reduced Martinique in March, and St. Lucia and
Guadaloupe in April, 1794.

[Illustration: H.M. Schooner "Onondaga."

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Mon. 16th--An exceedingly rough day. At eight o'clock the
    Governor and Mr. Talbot returned. They left Niagara at one
    o'clock yesterday, rowed till four in the morning, slept a few
    hours at Jones' farm at the "head of the lake." They arrived at
    Niagara on Friday in such rough weather that there was great
    difficulty in turning Mississaga Point. (At the mouth of the
    Niagara River.)

    Thur. 19th--I walked to the Don. There are great hopes of
    getting the "Onondaga" afloat.

    Sat. 21st--A hard frost. The bay is half-frozen over. The "Man
    of Snakes" came here.

    Sunday 22nd--The bay is quite frozen over. Mr. Talbot skated to
    the other side. I walked to-day.

    Mon. 23rd--Very cold weather.

    Tues. 24th--Thunder and lightning last night. Extreme hard frost
    this morning.

    Thur. 26th--Wright and Herring returned from Niagara in a boat.
    It is found to be practicable to walk and ride thither
    throughout the winter, therefore we are not in as isolated a
    situation as it was expected we should find it. We received news
    of Admiral Gardner's having taken two 44-gun ships off Sandy
    Hook and some privateers near Halifax.

[Illustration: E. G. S. Wright.]

Note.--Edward Wright emigrated to America before the Revolutionary War.
On its expiration he returned to the old land, where he remained for
several years, but in 1792 came to Canada with the Queen's Rangers. His
son, Edward Graves Simcoe Wright, who in after years kept the Greenland
Fisheries Tavern, north-west corner of Front and John Streets, Toronto,
was the first white child born at York, 1794. Edward H. Rodden, Toronto,
is a great-grandson of Edward Wright of the Rangers.

Richard Herring, also a Queen's Ranger, was a juryman in one of the
three memorable trials that took place in the York Court House in 1818
in connection with the North-West Company and the dispersion of Lord
Selkirk's Red River Settlement.

[Illustration: Admiral Gardner.]

Admiral Alan Gardner was prominent in many naval exploits and was
created a baronet for his services in Howe's victory in 1794. As first
Baron Gardner, he was created a peer of the United Kingdom in 1806.

    Fri. 27th--The weather so cold that some water spilt near the
    stove froze immediately.

    Mon. 30th--I walked to the "Old French Fort" and returned by the
    Creek. I caught cold.




  CHAPTER XIV.

  _A WINTER AT YORK._


Castle Frank, although in an unfinished state, was habitable in 1794,
for early in the year the Governor and his family resided there. In the
spring, however, Mrs. Simcoe returned to Niagara, where life at Navy
Hall was more enjoyable and varied than at York.

    York, Mon., Jan. 6th, 1794--The skin of a cross fox, marked
    yellow, black and white, with a dark cross on the back, was
    brought here and sold for four dollars; sometimes they are sold
    for two dollars.

    I sketched a likeness of the "Great Sail," who came here to-day.
    The Indians call the stars we name Ursa Major, a marten (sable)
    with a broken tail. I received from Detroit a stone carved by an
    Indian into a head, and when it is known that they have no tools
    but the commonest kind of small knife, it is surprising to see
    it is so well done.

    I sketched a Caughnawaga Indian to-day whose figure was quite
    antique. He was from the settlement of that tribe on the south
    side of the St. Lawrence, opposite Lachine. I have often
    observed (but never had more reason to do so than to-day) that
    when the Indians speak, their air and action is more like that
    of Roman or Greek orators than of modern nations. They have a
    great deal of impressive action, and look like the figures
    painted by the Old Masters.

    Thur. 14th--There is a great deal of snow on the River Don,
    which is so well frozen that we walked some miles upon it
    to-day, but in returning I found it so cold near the lake that I
    was benumbed and almost despaired of ever reaching my own house,
    and when I came near the hill was frightfully slippery. Near the
    river we saw the track of wolves, and the head and hoofs of a
    deer. The workmen, who reside in a small hut near the place,
    heard the wolves during the night, and in the morning saw the
    remains of the deer. The Indians do not kill wolves; they seldom
    take trouble that does not answer to them, and the wolves are
    not good to eat and their skins are of little value.

    Sat. Jan. 18th--The Queen's (Charlotte of Mecklenburg-Strelitz,
    Consort of George III.,) birthday. The weather is so mild that
    we breakfasted with the window open. An experiment was made of
    firing pebbles from cannon. A salute of 21 guns and a dance in
    the evening in honour of the day. The ladies much dressed.

[Illustration: Queen Charlotte.]

    Sunday 19th--The weather so pleasant that we rode to the bottom
    of the bay, crossed the Don, which is frozen, and rode on the
    peninsula; returned across the marsh, which is covered with ice,
    and went as far as the settlements, which are near seven miles
    from the camp. There appeared some comfortable log houses,
    inhabited by Germans and some by Pennsylvanians. Some of the
    creeks were not frozen enough to bear the Governor's horse, but
    mine passed very well. He excels in getting over difficult
    places and in leaping over logs, which I like very much.

Note.--Mr. William Berczy was born in Saxony in 1749. He visited England
in 1791 and became agent for an association that were owners of a large
tract of land in Genesee, N. Y. The intention was to settle Germans on
the lands of the association. But owing to differences between Mr.
Berczy and the chief manager of the association in Philadelphia, Berczy
withdrew his people from New York and settled them by arrangement with
Governor Simcoe in Markham, near Toronto. Mr. Charles A. Berczy, son of
William Berczy, was born at Niagara in 1794, and died in Toronto in
1858. He was an acting deputy assistant commissary general during the
War of 1812, and was postmaster of Toronto from about 1840-52. He
married Miss Finch of Greenwich, England, and by her had a large family.
Two of his daughters were noted for their beauty.

[Illustration: John Scadding's Dwelling.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Sat. 25th--Two soldiers went to Niagara. These expresses are to
    go at regular periods by way of a post.

    Sun. 26th--We went to the Don to see Mr. Talbot skate. Capt.
    Æneas Shaw's children set the marshy ground (the marsh at
    Ashbridge's Bay) below the bay on fire; the long grass on it
    burns with great rapidity this dry weather. It was a fine sight,
    and a study for flame and smoke from our house. At night the
    flames diminished, and appeared like lamps on a dark night in
    the crescent at Bath.

    Mon. 27th--I walked below the bay and set the other side of the
    marsh on fire for amusement. The Indians have cut holes in the
    ice, over which they spread a blanket on poles, and they sit
    under the shed, moving a wooden fish hung to a line in the water
    by way of attracting the living fish, which they spear with
    great dexterity when they approach. The Governor wished me to
    see the process; we had to walk a half-mile to the place. There
    was no snow on the ice, and we were without cloth shoes. The
    Governor pushed a large limb of a tree before him which kept
    him steady, and with the assistance of Mr. Talbot I reached the
    spot where they were catching maskalonge, a superior kind of
    pike, and pickerell. I was almost frozen from looking on, tho'
    the apprehension of falling kept me warm while I walked.

    Fri. 31st--One of the horses drawing hay across the bay fell
    into an airhole and was drowned. Mr. Scadding's cottage burned
    down.

Note.--This house was just over the Don at the Queen Street crossing--on
the Scadding farm--site of the Toronto Jail. The Scaddings were one of
the pioneer families of Toronto. They were of Devon origin and resided
near Honiton. John Scadding was the manager of Wolford, the Simcoe
estate, and emigrated to Canada in 1792, a few months after Simcoe's
arrival. A brother, Thomas, living in Honiton, never emigrated. The
brothers married sisters, the Misses Triges.

[Illustration: John Scadding, Jr.]

John Scadding was a man of excellent executive ability and one of the
best informed in England on every branch of farm work. Wolford is an
estate of about 5,000 acres and at one time part of it was divided into
over twenty farms.

He had three sons, John, Charles and Henry. John married Emily Playter,
daughter of John Playter. There was no issue by this marriage. Charles
married Jane Bright, the issue being Henry, William, Edward, Charles,
John and Sophia. Henry, eldest son of Charles Scadding, married
Elizabeth Winder Wedd, daughter of John Wedd, and sister of William Wedd
of Upper Canada College. Of their issue there were Charles, Bishop of
Oregon, and Henry Crawford Scadding, the well-known physician of
Toronto. Henry (Rev.), third son of John Scadding, of Wolford, married
Harriet, daughter of John Spread Baldwin. They had a daughter,
Henrietta, who married the late Robert Sullivan, a son of the late Judge
Sullivan. Mrs. Sullivan lives in Toronto.

[Illustration: Dr. Scadding at 28 years.]

[Illustration: Dr Scadding at 56 years.]

The Rev. Dr. Henry Scadding was more in the public eye than the other
members of the Scadding family, and his familiar face will long be
remembered by the people of Toronto. He was born in Devonshire in 1813
and came to Canada at the age of eleven years. His father after settling
in Canada returned to England and brought out his wife and family. Dr.
Scadding was educated at Upper Canada College and was the first head boy
under Dr. Harris. He graduated at St. John's College, Cambridge, in
1837, and was an intimate personal friend of Mrs. Simcoe, widow of the
first Governor. He was the incumbent of Holy Trinity Church, Toronto,
for many years, and also principal of Upper Canada College. He died in
Toronto on 6th May, 1901.

    Sat. Feb. 1st--I am in great spirits to-day, as the Governor
    talks of going to Detroit in March and spending a month there
    very gaily; but the greatest amusement will be the journey. We
    shall ride to the Grand River, from thence to the La Tranche,
    where canoes will be built, in which we shall go down to Detroit
    in a few days, and we shall take Lake Erie on our return. This
    scheme particularly pleased me, as it will prevent our going to
    Detroit in July, which I had dreaded on account of the extreme
    heat of that season.

    Sun. Feb. 9th--The weather damp, mild and dirty. When will the
    end of March arrive? I am quite impatient to set out for
    Detroit.

    Thurs. 13th--We rode to town. I galloped on the sands several
    times. I saw a Chippawa woman carrying a linen bundle tied up
    like a doll. I was told it was "customary for them to carry
    about this thing for some months after the death of their
    husbands. When an Indian intends to express his determination to
    get thro' any difficulty he says "Garistakaw," and after that
    always pursues the object.

    Fri. 21st--Mr. Bouchette (son of the Commodore) has got the
    "Onondaga" off the shoal, and she is not injured by the ice. Mr.
    Littlehales came from Niagara.

    Sat. March 1st--The news received of the death of the Queen of
    France. Orders given out for mourning, in which everybody
    appeared this evening, and the dance postponed.

Note.--Marie Antoinette was married to the Dauphin of France, afterwards
Louis XVI. After the fall of the Girondists she was condemned to death
by the Jacobins and guillotined October, 1793.

    Mon. March 3rd--The weather extremely cold.

    Tues. 4th--The weather extremely cold. Tho' I wore three fur
    tippets I was so cold I could hardly hold my cards this evening.
    This is the first time we have felt the want of a ceiling, which
    we have not had made in our drawing-room because the room was
    rather low.

    Wed. 5th--Very cold. I divided the room by hanging across it a
    large carpet, which made it warmer. There has so little snow
    fallen this winter that it was scarcely practicable to track the
    deer, in consequence of which the Indians have been almost
    starved. A great many of their women and children come to our
    windows every day for bread, which we cannot refuse them, tho'
    having but a small quantity of flour until the spring supply
    arrives, it is inconvenient to give them what they require.
    There have been apprehensions that the French Republicans at New
    York would attack Lower Canada from Albany this winter, but a
    mutiny on board some of their ships carried them to France. If
    the Americans were to attack this province I should go to
    Quebec. I have just received your (Mrs. Hunt's) letters, in
    answer to which I can only say "Que diable avait elle a faire
    dans cette galere?" What nonsense about the books. Did people
    but consider their happiness, the first point of their creed
    would be, not to consider things as serious which are of no
    consequence.

Note.-"Qu'allait-il faire dans cette galère?" from Molière's "Fouberies
de Scapin." Scapin pretends that his young master Leandre has been taken
prisoner on a Turkish galley, and that the captain claims 500 crowns as
ransom; Geronte, a miser, Leandre's father, half distracted at the idea
of having to lose either his son or his money, repeats seven times
during the scene, "What did he go into that galley for?" a proverbial
French expression.

    Fri. 14th--As I was riding across the bay I felt the horse sink
    under me, and supposing there was a hole in the ice, I threw
    myself off; the horse lay down to roll in the snow, and as I was
    falling I struck him with my whip, and I believe that prevented
    him from rolling over me. I was not hurt, but much afraid he
    would repeat the trick. I dreamt some time since that the
    Governor, Mr. Talbot and I were passing a wood, possessed by an
    enemy, who fired ball at us as fast as possible. I was so
    frightened that I have never since liked to hear a musquet
    fired, and I am quite nervous when I hear of the probability of
    this country being attacked. In a magazine we met with a very
    pretty hymn sung by Sicilian mariners. It sounds charming played
    by a band on the water. The master of the band is a German, who
    boasts of having performed before the King of Prussia in the
    great church at Strasburg.

[Illustration: A View on the Miami River, 1794.

(_From a Drawing by Lieutenant Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Sat. 15th--An express is arrived from Lord Dorchester, who
    orders Governor Simcoe, as soon as the navigation of the lakes
    is open, to go and establish a fort on the River Miami, in a
    country claimed by the Americans some distance below Detroit.

    The Governor thinks the order may be put in execution so much
    earlier if he goes down the La Tranche to Detroit that he
    intends setting out to-morrow for the Grand River. This order of
    Lord Dorchester puts an end to my scheme of going to Detroit,
    which is an exceeding great disappointment to me.

Note.--In September, 1793, Lord Dorchester, the Governor-General, who
had been on leave of absence in England, returned to Canada. He sent
Governor Simcoe to erect a fort on the Maumee River, in that part of the
Indian territory now in the State of Ohio. Simcoe was strongly against
the establishment of this fort, but he had to carry out the instructions
of Lord Dorchester, who was commander-in-chief. Maumee and Miami are, it
is said, the same word differently spelled by English and French
phonetic renderings. Its meaning is "Walkers," the term being applied to
a tribe of Indians who roamed from Wisconsin to Ohio. They preferred to
travel on foot rather than by canoes. Two rivers, at least, also bore
the name, but it is only in recent years that the different spelling has
been used with regard to the rivers. "Miami" designates a river which
joins the Ohio in the southwestern part of the State of that name, while
"Maumee" is a river running into Lake Erie, five miles northeast of
Toledo. Many historians have, however, written the name of the latter
river as "Miami," as did both Simcoe and Dorchester.

[Illustration: Site of Fort Miami (Maumee).

Fortification looking south across the River.

(_From a Drawing in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

Clearly, the fort built by Simcoe was on the north bank of Maumee River,
five miles from its mouth, where the first rapids occur. Mr. Avern
Pardee is of this opinion, and in a paper on "The First Chapter of Upper
Canadian History" in the Ontario Historical Society Papers and Records,
Vol. VII., points out that "There is a general misapprehension as to
the situation of the Fort which Simcoe built in the Indian territory.
Because it was called Fort Miami some have supposed it was on that Miami
River which is a tributary of the Ohio River. The fort was situated on
the Maumee River, not far from Lake Erie, into which the river flows.
The Maumee is called the Miami on some maps of a date subsequent to
Simcoe's operation." "A History of the Maumee Valley," published in
Toledo about sixty years ago, says:--

"The fort was built on the left bank of the Maumee (the Maumee of Lake
Erie) near the lower limits of the present village of Maumee, Lucas
County, Ohio. Indian Superintendent McKee's agency and supply house was
a mile and a half above this fort and near the lowest rapids of the
Maumee. The British also built another fort on Turtle Island just
outside of Maumee Bay, twenty miles or more northeast from their Fort
Miami."

    Sun. 16th--I walked half-way to the town with Mr. Talbot. The
    day very windy; returned before evening prayers. Mr. Pilkington
    walked from Niagara. I copied some sketches he made going to
    Lake Huron. He says the thermometer was 5 degrees below zero the
    5th of this month at Niagara. Are you not shocked at the siege
    of Valenciennes (taken by the Allies in 1793) or any real action
    that has lately occurred, being represented on the stage in
    London? If English minds become hardened by seeing such sights
    as amusements, they will in time be as well able to become their
    friends' executioners as the French have been.

    Mon. 17th--A dance to-night.

    Tues. 18th--The Governor and Mr. Talbot set out at half-past
    seven for Detroit.

    Wed. 19th--This is the month for making maple sugar; a hot sun
    and frosty nights cause the sap to flow most. Slits are cut in
    the bark of the trees, and wooden troughs set under the tree,
    into which the sap--a clear, sweet water--runs. It is collected
    from a number of trees, and boiled in large kettles till it
    becomes of a hard consistence. Moderate boiling will make powder
    sugar, but when boiled long it forms very hard cakes, which are
    better. I saw a number of trees slit to-day as I rode with Mr.
    McGill to his farm.

    In a month's time, when the best sap is exhausted, an inferior
    kind runs, of which vinegar is made. Cutting the trees does not
    kill them, for the same trees bear it for many years following.
    Dr. Nooth, at Quebec, showed me some maple sugar which he had
    refined, and it became as white as West India sugar. The sap of
    birch trees will make vinegar.

Note.--The location of this farm is not known. There is no record of
land granted to McGill in or near York until July, 1809, when he was
granted Park Lot No. 7, one hundred acres extending from Queen to Bloor
Streets and from the west side of Mutual to the east side of Bond
Street. Land has increased in value in Toronto since the days of 1809.
In that year the hundred acres would probably be worth about a pound an
acre. The present assessment of the lot is $2,016,075 for the land and
$2,680,412 for the buildings, or a total assessment of $4,696,487. Add
thirty per cent. and the real present-day value of this hundred acres is
$6,105,433. The McGill Square portion of the lot bounded by Bond,
Shuter, Church and Queen Streets was sold about 1871 to the Metropolitan
Church for $25,000. The land is now assessed for $308,280 and buildings
$138,000, a total assessment of $446,280. These prices show the
extraordinary increase in value of lands that were part of the primeval
forest a century ago. Mrs. Simcoe, up to the time of her death, was much
interested in the progress of York. Some letters in her manuscripts
refer to the development of the town that her husband founded.

    Fri. 21st--The weather extremely warm. Mrs. Richardson spent the
    day with me.

    Sat. 22nd--Abundance of geese and ducks seen, which denotes the
    approach of spring.

    Sun. 23rd--A very hot day.

    Tues. 25th--I had a party at cards this evening. Some white fish
    were sent me to-day from Niagara and dressed for supper; they
    were the best I ever tasted.

    Thurs. 27th--A strong, easterly wind. All the ice went out of
    the harbour in two large sheets, each above half a mile long.

    Fri. 28th--Mr. Gamble, the surgeon of the Queen's Rangers,
    returned from the Mohawk village on the Grand River, where he
    had been to attend Chief Brant. He brought a letter from the
    Governor, who went from the head of the lake to Niagara, sending
    Mr. Talbot to the Grand River to order the canoes to be
    prepared. The Governor expected they would be in readiness for
    him to leave Brant's on the 26th. The ice would not allow them
    to move sooner. Mrs. Richardson spent the day with me.

Note.--John Gamble, born in 1756, was son of William Gamble, of Duross
near Enniskillen, Ireland. He came to America in 1779, serving as
regimental surgeon during the Revolutionary War, after which he settled
in New Brunswick. He resided there until 1793, when he was appointed
surgeon to the Queen's Rangers stationed at Niagara. After the regiment
was disbanded at Toronto in 1802 Dr. Gamble moved to Kingston. He died
in 1811 and his family returned to York in 1820. He married Isabella
Elizabeth, daughter of Dr. Joseph Clarke. One of their sons was the late
Joseph Clarke Gamble, barrister-at-law, Toronto, who married, first,
Mary Sayre, daughter of D'Arcy Boulton, a daughter being Miss Sarah
Gamble of Toronto. He took as his second wife Harriet Eliza, daughter of
Honorable John Henry Boulton, and of their issue the following
survive:--F. C. Gamble, Deputy Minister of Public Works, Victoria, B.C.;
A. W. Gamble, H. Dudley Gamble, K.C., and A. G. Gamble, Manager of the
Sterling Bank, Toronto; Mrs. C. E. Bowker (Elizabeth Sophia), of London,
England; and Mrs. I. F. Hellmuth (Harriet Emily), of Toronto.

    Sat. 29th--Rain and damp weather.

    Sun. 30th--I walked on the sands.

    Tues. April 1st--I rode to the town; a delightful evening.

    Wed. 2nd--I rode.

    Mon. 14th--I rode. I saw a fine eagle.

    Tues. 15th--A boat came from Niagara, where the river is still
    full of ice. I received some excellent white fish from thence. A
    boat arrived from the Bay of Quinte with pork.

    Wed. 16th--Walked towards the old French Fort.

    Fri. 18th--The "Caldwell" arrived from Niagara. She left it the
    16th. The harbour was open on the 10th of this month.

Note.--There is no entry in the diary from Friday, 18th April, until 2nd
May. It was a time of sorrow for the Governor and his wife, for their
little daughter Katherine, born in Niagara on 16th January, 1793, was
buried on the 17th April, 1794. It is rather peculiar that Mrs. Simcoe
makes no reference to the sad event.

    Fri. May 2nd--Governor Simcoe arrived at six this evening from
    Niagara. He rode from the Grand River to the La Tranche, where
    he embarked the 29th of March in canoes, and that day he reached
    the site intended for New London. The 30th he slept at the
    Delaware village; the 31st at the Moravian village; the 1st of
    April at an Indian trader's; the 2nd arrived at Detroit; two
    days the snow fell incessantly, so that they were wet thro' in
    the canoe, which repelled a slight attack of gout the Governor
    was seized with. He saw wild turkeys and eagles, and shot a deer
    which the wolves drove down the river. The Governor stayed four
    days at Detroit, and then went to Captain Elliott's at the River
    au Raisin; from thence rode 30 miles to the River Miami, in
    Ohio, and stayed at Coll. McKee's, of Detroit, a little distance
    from thence.

    On the way they passed an Indian fort, and swam the horses over
    some creeks. At Coll. McKee's there were very good wild turkeys.
    On his return the Governor saw Turtle Island, at the entrance of
    Miami Bay, and was detained some days among the Bass Islands, at
    the west end of Lake Erie, by contrary winds. They went on some
    of the islands, and it being St. George's Day, gave one of the
    islands that name. The Governor killed seven rattlesnakes with a
    small stick on one of the islands, and Mr. Pilkington shot a
    sturgeon. The Governor arrived at Fort Erie the 25th of April.

Note.--Captain Matthew Elliott was Assistant Agent of Indian Affairs in
1790 at Detroit. In 1795 he became Deputy and in July, 1796,
Superintendent. In 1812 when the British entered the fort at Detroit,
the regiment of Indians was led by Colonel Elliott. He was an intimate
friend of Tecumseh and fought at the Battle of the Thames, where the
latter fell. At eighty years of age he took the active command of the
Indians at the assault on Fort Niagara in 1813. His death took place in
1814. One writer said regarding Elliott that "His Majesty has lost one
his most faithful and zealous servants."

    Fri. 9th--At seven this morning we set off in a boat for Niagara
    with the children and Mr. Talbot, intending to reach the head of
    the lake to-night, but a very stiff breeze rising ahead about
    four o'clock, we put on shore 12 miles short of it. The tents
    were pitched and fires made. The Governor and I walked some
    distance on the beach, and Mr. Talbot amused himself by barking
    elm trees as the Indians do, and covering his tent with it, for
    it proved a very wet night. The children and Junk, a nurse,
    slept on the office boxes in the tent.

    Sat. 10th--We rose at daylight, breakfasted and set off, but the
    weather was so misty that I saw less of the country towards the
    "Head of the Lake" than I had expected, and was prevented going
    into Burlington Bay. After some hours of wet weather it blew
    very fresh and cleared up. A wave washed into the boat, of which
    no notice was taken, but Collins, a nurse, laid her cloak on the
    other side. People sometimes cross from the 16-mile creek to
    the 40-mile creek (Grimsby), but the Governor does not like
    meeting those breezes which rise suddenly on this lake.

Note.--These creeks are designated by their distance from Niagara, if on
the south side of Lake Ontario, and from Burlington if on the north
side. Oakville on the north shore is situated at the mouth of the
Sixteen-Mile Creek.

    10th--We coasted to the forty-mile creek, forty miles from
    Niagara, and passed in at three o'clock. The mouth of this creek
    forms a very fine scene; a very bold spur of the high land
    appears beautiful in the distance. It is about three miles off.
    Some cottages are pretty placed on the banks of the river, and a
    saw mill affords a quantity of boards, which, piled up in a
    wood, makes a varied foreground. It was about six before we
    reached the 20-Mile Pond, the mouth of another creek.

Note.--Twenty-Mile Creek runs into Twenty-Mile Pond before it reaches
the lake. Jordan, Ontario, is situated three miles from the lake shore,
on high ground, having on its left a deep valley through which flows the
"twenty-mile creek."

[Illustration: Niagara to the "Forty."

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    10th--A small inlet from the lake carries you into this pond,
    which is two miles long. The banks are very high, of a fine
    verdure, and the summit covered with wood, which was now
    reflected with the deepest shade in the water and had a most
    beautiful appearance, which was soon heightened by the rising
    moon, giving more force to the shadow. Two houses of Coll.
    Butler's, of the Rangers, were distinguished at a distance.

    We had not eaten since eight this morning. I was, therefore,
    desirous to get something for the children, and while some
    salmon we bought of an Indian as we passed Burlington Bay was
    preparing for our supper, we walked half a mile with the
    children to a farmhouse, which we found inhabited by some
    Pennsylvanians, whom Governor Simcoe had assisted last year at
    Niagara; we had here excellent bread and milk and butter. We
    then returned to the tents, and Francis lay down on his
    greatcoat on the grass and went to sleep till his tent was ready
    for him. We supped by starlight amid this fine scenery of wood
    and water; the bright fires of the soldiers below the hill,
    contrasted with a dark sky, now and then brightened by a gleam
    of moonlight, had a beautiful effect.

    Sun. 11th--We left this beautiful spot about eight o'clock. The
    entrance to the Seventeen, Sixteen, Fifteen and Twelve Mile
    Creeks appeared pretty as we passed them. It blew so fresh we
    were afraid of losing the awning from the boat. It was too
    showery for me to venture in the canoe. It was a pretty sight to
    see how swiftly she glided through the water. We arrived at
    Niagara at twelve, and before two I wished to return to York;
    the heat here was so great, and looking on the land seemed to me
    to add to the heat, and was quite disagreeable after having been
    accustomed to look on the bay at York, and the river here, tho'
    half a mile wide, appears narrow after leaving that expanse of
    water.

[Illustration: Waterfall near Burlington Bay, 1794.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--There is no Seventeen-Mile Creek. In all probability Mrs. Simcoe
referred to the Eighteen. There are no villages at the Fifteen, Sixteen
or Eighteen, while what was known as the Twelve-Mile-Creek is now St.
Catharines.

    Tues. 13th--I went to see Major Smith's house he has built on
    this side of the river. It is a very good one. The town here is
    enlarged and called Newark.

[Illustration: Twenty-Mile Creek (Jordan, Ont.), 1794.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--The house referred to by Mrs. Simcoe as Major Smith's (afterwards
Lieutenant-Colonel Smith), was built about 1793, by his son, D. W.
Smith, Surveyor-General of Upper Canada. In his "Tour Through Upper
Canada" in 1795 La Rochefoucauld writes of the house as follows: "In
point of size and elegance, the house of Colonel Smith,
lieutenant-colonel in the Fifth Regiment, is much distinguished. It
consists of joiners' work, but is constructed, embellished and painted
in the best style; the yard, garden and court are surrounded with
railings, made and painted as elegantly as they could be in England." D.
W. Smith owned what is now called Court House Square or Market Square,
Niagara, his house being situated on the west side of King Street
between Queen and Johnson. In 1798 the house was offered for sale for a
free Grammar School, with four acres as endowment, and again in 1800 at
a reduced price. Governor Hunter, however, opposed the purchase on the
ground that the house was in too exposed a position, being opposite Fort
Niagara. Miss Janet Carnochan says it is not known what became of the
house, but its site was occupied in 1812 by the Government House, which
was burned in 1813.

Niagara was called "Newark" by Lieutenant-Governor Simcoe in 1792, but
both names were used either from habit or fancy. In 1798, however, by
Act of the Legislature the name again became "Niagara."

[Illustration: Residence of D. W. Smith, Niagara.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Wed. 14th--Mr. Pilkington goes to-morrow to see and to give
    orders for fortifying the new post at the Miami, the fort
    Governor Simcoe built by order of Lord Dorchester. He gave me
    some sketches taken on Lake Erie.

    Thurs. 16th--Some ladies dined here from the Garrison. After
    they went I drove out in the open carriage towards the Landing.
    The apprehension of the war with the United States engages my
    attention very disagreeably; at the same time I reflect that I
    should not have less anxiety in any other part of the world. Had
    we remained in England probably the Governor would now be going
    on the European continent, where campaign follows campaign
    without a prospect of peace, and here, if a war takes place, the
    result must be speedily decisive.

    Fri. 16th--Drove this evening, after dining at Mr. Peter
    Russell's, the Receiver-General's, towards the two-mile creek;
    the road horribly bad.

Note.--Two-Mile Creek and Pond, where Honorable Peter Russell lived, is
two miles from the mouth of the Niagara River, due west, and has been a
favorite resort for sportsmen. The new military quarters lately
purchased by the Canadian Government are close to it.

    Sat. 17th--So cold an east wind that I had a fire; a large party
    at dinner. The new merchant vessel, called the "Governor
    Simcoe," arrived. She sails remarkably well.

Note.--The schooner at first known as the "Governor Simcoe" and latterly
simply as the "Simcoe," was built at Kingston in 1794 and was of only
eighty-seven tons burthen. She was at first intended for the North-West
Company's lake trade, but in the end her career appears to have been
purely local and confined to Lake Ontario, as she is frequently referred
to in the Gazettes of 1797 and 1798 as plying between Kingston and
Niagara, the latter place being at that time of considerably more
business importance than the capital of the province, the town of York.
The "Simcoe" was so constructed that in case of necessity she could be
armed with eight four-pounder guns and a similar number of swivels. The
"Simcoe" was the first vessel built for trade on Lake Ontario. Her first
captain was Captain Murney. John Clarke says in his "Memoirs" (Vol.
VII., Ontario Historical Society Papers), with regard to Captain
Murney:--"I recollect a Captain Murney building a schooner in the County
of Prince Edward, of red cedar, in the year 1800 or 1801, which vessel
was named the 'Prince Edward.' I was on board the following year, and
crossed from Kingston to Niagara. He was a noble captain of a staunch,
good ship. I believe Captain Murney married a Miss Smith of Kingston.
The captain was father of the late Honorable Mr. Murney, of Belleville.
In the year 1812 this schooner was in good condition, and was employed
as a Government armed vessel on Lake Ontario."

    Sun. 18th--Very cold.

    Mon. 19th--The wind changed and the weather warm.

    Tues. 20th--I am always glad to have large parties at dinner,
    for when I sit alone I do nothing but think of the threatened
    war in this country. After the ladies leave me, Mr. Talbot
    drives me in the gig towards the Landing, the weather being
    usually too warm to walk, and the Governor employs two or three
    hours on writing in an evening. This evening a cow was lying in
    the road, and Mr. Talbot did not turn out of the way, expecting
    she would, and, before he was aware of it, one wheel went over
    her back, but as she lay quite still the carriage did not
    overset.

    Wed. 21st--A large party at dinner.

    Thurs. 22nd--The Governor and I dined alone. We fished near the
    wharf at Niagara.

    Sat. 24th--We rode in the morning, and were prevented going to
    the garrison in the evening by a great fog.

    Sun. 25th--I persuaded the Governor to ride this evening. We had
    not ridden a mile before there came so violent a shower that we
    were wet through in three minutes, and the claps of thunder were
    so loud as to make the horses start. After changing our clothes
    we sat down to tea, and agreed with Mr. Talbot that the rain had
    been the pleasantest mode of taking a shower bath, and the
    extreme violence with which it fell rendered us less liable to
    catch cold than we should have been under a gentle shower.

    Wed. 28th--All the ladies from the garrison, the fort on the
    east side of river, and Newark, drank tea here previous to the
    ball which is to be given on the 4th of June.

    Thurs. 29th--The "Mississaga," the "Caldwell" and the gunboats
    arrived, bringing some of the members of the House of Assembly
    from the lower townships. Capt. John McDonell, of Glengarry, the
    Speaker, etc., etc., dined with us.

    Mon. June 2nd--The House of Assembly met to-day. We went to the
    garrison in the evening and drank tea with Mrs. Smith. The
    "Mississaga," "Caldwell" and gunboats sailed. Capt. Brooking,
    of the 17th Regt., went in the "Mississaga."

    Tues. 3rd--The Governor goes to the fort on the east side of the
    river almost every day, to see the works which the Engineers are
    repairing. I am glad to take the opportunity of crossing the
    water (and glad he is induced to take this little exercise) and
    walking on the common behind the fort, as I consider the air so
    near the lake, and where the ground is high, to be much
    healthier than our side of the water. The Governor stayed so
    late with the Engineer this evening that it was dark, and
    Francis fell asleep on the common before he returned to us.

Note.--Fort Niagara on the east side of the Niagara River was not handed
over by the British, to the Americans until 1796.

    Wed. 4th--The ball was held in the Council Chamber. The Governor
    and I and Mr. Talbot went into the room after all the company
    were assembled. There were 22 couple. I did not dance. The
    ladies were all well dressed. We supped at twelve in a room as
    large as the ballroom, and we came away at two o'clock. The
    whole was extremely well managed, as Mr. Talbot ordered it
    himself.

Note.--There is no information extant as to the location of the Council
Chamber. It is believed, however, that it was in a building which was an
addition to Navy Hall.

    Thur. 5th--I was tired by sitting up late, and went to take an
    early dinner at the Fort with Mrs. Smith. The Governor had a
    large party of gentlemen to dinner. Mr. Talbot came for me in
    the evening, and it was so cold we were obliged to wrap
    ourselves up in great coats and tippets.

    Fri. 6th--The Governor went to the Fort Chippawa, and returned
    at night wet through. Mrs. D. W. Smith, wife of the
    Surveyor-General, has added a boy to her family to-day.

    Sat. 7th--Francis' birthday was not kept yesterday, as the
    Governor was from home. To-day the little cannon Mr. McDonell
    gave him fired a salute of 21 guns, and tho' they are not two
    inches long, made a loud report and pleased him much. Being
    three years old, he was dressed in a rifle shirt and sash, which
    gave him somewhat the air of an Indian. He found a dead snake,
    and gave it as a present to one of the gentlemen with us. I went
    to the Fort this morning, and walked in the evening. Mr. Talbot
    went towards the Queenstown Landing in his canoe.

    Tues. 10th--Some Seneca Indians came here from the northern part
    of the State of New York. Francis went to see them dance, and
    afterwards imitated their dancing and singing surprisingly well.

    Wed. 11th--I rode in the morning, and went to the Fort in the
    evening, to walk on the common.

    Fri. 13th--Mrs. Smith, Commodore Grant and I went to the Landing
    in a boat and dined with Mrs. Hamilton; we carried Francis with
    us. Mr. Talbot came to meet us in his canoe in the evening.

    Sat. 14th--The "Mississaga" arrived from Kingston. Mr. Brooking
    came in her.

    Mon. 16th--Company at dinner. The "Onondaga," 12 guns, sailed
    for Kingston. Capts. Fitzgerald and Cleddowe went in her, by
    whom I wrote letters.

Note.--Captain Augustine Fitzgerald had rank in the regiment, 13th July,
1791, and in the army the previous January.

    Tues. 17th--Capt. Charlton, of the 5th Regt., went in the
    "Mississaga."

Note.--Captain Edward Charlton of the 5th is given in the army list as
having rank in the regiment 21st July, 1783. He received rank as major,
1st March, 1794.

    Thur. 19th--I went in a boat this evening.

    Sun. 22nd--Capt. Talbot sailed in the "Governor Simcoe." I dined
    at the Fort, and rode on horseback after I came home.

    Mon. 23rd--A large party of the members of the House of Assembly
    dined here.

    Tues. 24th--Mrs. Mason, wife of Mr. J. M. Mason, of the 5th, and
    a party from the Fort, dined here. We went on the water in the
    evening.

Note.--John M. Mason, ensign in the 5th, became lieutenant on 18th
October, 1793.

    Wed. 25th--A large party to dinner, and on the water in the
    evening. Mrs. Mason saw a rattlesnake in her garden under some
    radish leaves.

    Fri. 27th--I dined at the garrison.

    Sat. 28th--Mrs. D. W. Smith dined with me.

    Sun. 29th--A rattlesnake seen under the wharf not 100 yards from
    our house, and it is supposed that there is a nest of them
    there.

    Thurs. July 3rd--Mr. Tukel arrived from England.

    Sat. 5th--We dined at Major Smith's, and his grandchild was
    christened.

    Mon. 7th--The House of Assembly (the third session of the first
    Legislature) prorogued. General Wayne, of the United States, has
    insinuated to the Six Nations that the western nations poisoned
    those of their chiefs who died at the meeting at Sandusky last
    year.

Note.--Mrs. Simcoe must have been in error as to the date of the
prorogation of the third session of the first Legislature, for official
records show that it took place on the 9th July and not on the 7th.

    Wed. 9th--Went this evening to the Fort. Mr. Darling stuffed a
    bird for me called a Recollect. The appearance of red wax on its
    brown wings and the tuft of feathers on its head make it very
    pretty. (Probably a waxwing.) The Indians shoot small birds with
    such blunt arrows that their plumage is not injured.

    Sun. 13th--Mr. C. Justice Osgoode sailed for Quebec. The
    Governor dined at the mess.

    Mon. 14th--A large party at dinner.

    Tues. 15th--Rowed in a boat towards the Four-Mile Creek. Mrs.
    Smith and Mrs. Mason went with me.

    Wed. 16th--The weather very hot. We went out in a boat. While we
    were walking in the garden this evening about 50 Indians, men
    and women, landed from their canoes and encamped outside the
    paling, brought on shore their luggage and made fires; they were
    met by a party of Senecas, who sat round their fire. All this
    passed with so little noise or bustle that we scarcely heard
    there were people near us. What a noise would the encampment of
    50 Englishmen have made! But "Rien de trop" should be the motto
    of these people. Those who draw best and make no smoke without
    producing a marked effect may be compared to Indians who never
    appear to make one motion that does not effect the purpose they
    intend. We sent some bread and meat to this party. There is
    always an appearance of distinctions among these savages; the
    principal chiefs are usually attended by apparently inferiors,
    who walk behind them. I call them aide-de-camps. I observe none
    but the chiefs shake hands with the Governor.

    Thur. 17th--We dined in a boat a half-mile from hence, under a
    steep rock on the shore of the Niagara River, which affords
    shade, and to which the boat is fastened. Down the side of the
    rock a fine spring pours rapidly and as clear as crystal.

    The Governor was walking on the hill this evening when his
    shoulder and finger were struck by a shot fired by a soldier
    belonging to the guard tent, who fired at an Indian dog which
    had taken away some pork. A shot remained in the Governor's
    finger, and was very painful. A gentleman walking with him was
    struck and the dog severely wounded, which caused great concern
    to the Indian women. An Indian was also struck by the shot. The
    Governor immediately gave him the soldier's gun to appease him,
    and reprimanded the soldier.

    Fri. 18th--Major and Mrs. Smith dined under the rock with us.

    Sat. 19th--The weather still excessively hot, tho' some rain
    fell.

    Sun. 20th--A cold, east wind. I breakfasted at the garrison.

[Illustration: The Servos House, Niagara, 1783-1911.

(_From a Drawing by Owen Staples, in the J. Ross Robertson
collection._)]

    Sat. 26th--As I much wished to visit the Forty-Mile Creek, the
    Governor allotted two or three days for this party of pleasure.
    Mr. Mayne was chosen to accompany us, and Francis was one of the
    party. At two o'clock we embarked with a fresh east wind, which
    fell almost immediately, but has occasioned so much surf that we
    could not go on shore at the Four-Mile Creek; about two miles
    further we landed and dined (Mr. Servos has a house at the mouth
    of the creek). We passed Mr. McNab's house at the Eight-Mile
    Creek, and beyond the Twelve-Mile Creek we encamped on a point
    without noticing that the field abounded with a coarse weed,
    which is such a harbour for mosquitos that the tent was filled
    with them, and we were glad to rise and breakfast at half after
    three in the morning.

[Illustration: The Fifteen-Mile Creek, 1794.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--The oldest house in Niagara Township is that owned by Miss Mary
Servos, daughter of the late Colonel Peter Servos. It is built on an
eminence commanding a view of the Four-Mile Creek, now known as Virgil.
The house has been altered, but the principal room, with its heavy
rafters, dates back to 1783. This room was used at one time as a
Government store. The Servos family were of Prussian origin. Some of
the sons were present at the siege of Niagara (1759) while grandsons
served in Butler's Rangers. Four generations of the Servos family have
served in capacities as ensign, lieutenant, captain and colonel. In
1779, Governor Haldimand gave Daniel Servos a commission as lieutenant
in Colonel Johnson's company of North American Indians, and in 1788 he
received a commission from Lord Dorchester, to be captain of the first
regiment of militia in the District of Nassau. Mrs. Jarvis, wife of
William Jarvis, Provincial Secretary, 1792-1817, writes of the Four-Mile
Creek, "There is a great mill upon it, and the family that it belongs to
are Dutch."

[Illustration: Interior View of Servos House.

(_From a Drawing by Owen Staples, in the J. Ross Robertson
collection._)]

Allan Macnab, born 1768, was ensign in the 71st Regiment and afterwards
lieutenant in the 19th Hussars. He served with General Simcoe in the
Revolutionary War, at the conclusion of which he settled in Canada. He
was subsequently Sergeant-at-Arms in the House of Assembly. His wife was
Anne, daughter of Peter William Napier. Macnab died in 1830. The late
Colonel (the Honorable Sir) Allan Napier Macnab of Hamilton, Ont., who
was the first Queen's Counsel appointed in Canada, was a son of Allan
Macnab. The name Eight-Mile Creek has been replaced by that of Macnab.

    Sun. 27th--The weather misty, damp and disagreeable. Francis
    caught cold, and was so ill that we went on shore at the
    Eighteen-Mile Creek and stopped at Sail's, the Indian's house,
    half an hour.

    We stopped at the Fifteen-Mile Creek, and took a sketch of the
    mouth of that river. We dined on the beach at the Twenty-Mile
    Creek, and went across the pond to one of Coll. Butler's houses,
    where we slept, after taking great pains to smoke the house and
    fix the mosquito net well, for this place abounds so much with
    mosquitos that the farmer does not sleep in his house from June
    till September, but sleeps in his barn to avoid them. The pond
    is full of wild rice, a marshy weed. The N.E. wind has filled up
    the inlet so much that the boat was obliged to be drawn over
    sand.

    Mon. 28th--We rose at six, left Francis with a servant, and set
    off for the Forty-Mile Creek. By the time they had drawn the
    boat over the sand into the lake, a strong N.W. wind sprung up,
    which was exactly ahead of us and prevented our getting to the
    Forty till two o'clock, tho' with a fair wind we should not have
    been two hours; the fog excessively thick, and perfectly
    counteracted our schemes of seeing the country. However, we
    walked thro' the village and beyond Green's Mills a little way
    up the mountain, far enough to see where the stream dashes over
    very dark rocks, surrounded by hemlock, spruce and other
    picturesque trees. Green ground the corn for all the military
    posts in Upper Canada. His mill stood five miles east of
    Hamilton, on the Stoney Creek road.

    A mile further is a mill and small waterfall, and at a season
    when the water is higher the scenery must be wonderfully fine;
    at present it is well worth seeing. I drank tea at Green's, and
    unwillingly left this fine scenery, of which I had so slight a
    view. We were no sooner in the boat, expecting a rapid passage
    up the Twenty-Mile Creek, when the wind veered and came right
    ahead, so that it was ten o'clock before we arrived at the
    inlet. It was quite dark, and we were another hour getting the
    boat over the sand and rowing to the house. Mrs. Green advised
    me to give Francis crow's foot boiled with milk till it becomes
    red and thick, which she said would cure the present complaint
    in his stomach.

    There are 100 people settled at the Forty, and there have been
    but seven graves in five years. The Governor promises that I
    shall ride on the mountain above the Forty this season.

[Illustration: The Gorge near Forty-Mile Creek (Grimsby), 1794.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--In writing of the Forty-Mile Creek, where Green's Mills were
situated, Rochefoucauld, who visited the place in travelling through
Canada in 1795, says:--"Forty-Mile Creek was one of the chief objects of
our tour. This stream, which intersects in a straight line the range of
mountains extending from Queens' Town, flows, with a gentle fall, into
the plain, and affords some wild, awful, yet very pleasing prospects
among the mountains. Before it empties itself into the lake, it turns a
grist mill and two saw-mills, which belong to a Mr. Green, a Loyalist of
Jersey, who six or seven years ago (1788-9) settled in this part of
Upper Canada. This Mr. Green was the constant companion of the Governor
on this journey (along the shore of Lake Ontario). He is apparently a
worthy man, and in point of knowledge far superior to the common caste
of settlers in this neighborhood. His estate consists of three hundred
acres, about forty of which are cleared of wood. He paid one hundred and
twenty-five dollars for forty acres, through which the creek flows that
turns his mill, on account of the greater value they bear for this
reason, the common price being only five shillings ($1) per acre. Land
newly cleared yields here, the first year, twenty bushels of corn. The
soil is good, though not of the most excellent quality. They plough the
land, after it has produced three or four crops, but not very deep,
and never use manure. The price of flour is twenty-two shillings ($4.40)
per hundredweight; that of wheat from seven to eight shillings ($1.60)
per bushel. The bushel weighs fifty-two pounds upon an average.
Labourers are scarce and are paid at the rate of six shillings ($1.20) a
day."

    Tues. 29th--Embarked at nine, rowed a little up the creek among
    the wild rice, and then turned to the lake, the wind exactly
    contrary and so very fresh that we were obliged to go on shore
    at the Seventeen-Mile Creek, where we dined and walked to
    Schram's farm, where the women were making straw hats. I
    gathered crow's foot. Mr. Mayne had a fit of the ague--in short,
    everything went _au contraire_ during the expedition. We arrived
    at Niagara before eleven. A fine, clear evening now we are
    returned from our tour.

    Fri. Aug. 1st--The weather insufferably hot at Niagara. We
    walked to Mr. Smith's and supped there, which was very pleasant,
    as the rooms are so much larger than ours at Navy Hall. Mrs.
    Smith now resides on this side of the water, for the change of
    air for a sick child.

    Sat. 2nd--The heat extreme. We dined in the boat under the rock.
    A thunderstorm drove us into Mrs. Smith's house.

    Sun. 3rd--The Governor went early this morning to the Tuscarora
    village, which is about two miles above Lewiston, N.Y.; dined on
    the water and returned early. The thermometer 96.

    Mon. 4th--The thermometer 96, but Mr. Vandeleur, who is just
    arrived from Detroit, calls it cool weather. The thermometer was
    101 in Fort Lernoult (Detroit). The heat and mosquitos do not
    affect me in the violent manner they used to do.

    Tues. 5th--A storm and cold wind.

    Thurs. 7th--Rode in the evening. The whortle berries of this
    country are larger than in England, quite black, and if dried in
    the sun make as good puddings as Levant currants, quite as
    sharp. The Indians live in the woods where they grow at this
    season of the year, and boil quantities of them into cakes.

    General Washington was seen last year at the theatre at
    Philadelphia; lights were carried before him to the stage box,
    where he sat in a front row, Mrs. Washington and the
    aide-de-camps on the seats behind him, the music playing "God
    Save George Washington," to the tune of "God Save the King." The
    gentlemen who gave this account went to the theatre this year
    and discovered General Washington in a back row of the front
    boxes, without attendants, the Vice-President and Mrs.
    Washington in the same bench, and no notice taken when he came
    into the theatre. The next day a paragraph in the papers
    asserted that if Washington did not take the fort at Presqu'ile
    he ought to be guillotined.

Note.--The projected expedition of the Six Nations to clear out the
settlers at Presqu' Isle was abandoned as the President of the United
States interposed to prevent further encroachments by the Pennsylvanians
in that quarter.

    Fri. 8th--The "Onondaga" called, with Mr. Vandeleur on board.
    The "Mississaga" arrived, with the Bishop of Quebec, his
    brother. Mr. Mountain, and his son, who is the bishop's
    chaplain. Mr. Lemoine arrived in his decked boat from Kingston
    across the lake. She left Kingston on Wednesday.

Note.--The Bishop of Quebec to whom Mrs. Simcoe referred was the Right
Rev. Jacob Mountain, D.D. (the name was originally Montaigne), first
Protestant Bishop of Quebec. He belonged to a French Protestant family
who settled in England, in Norfolk County, upon the revocation of the
Edict of Nantes. He was educated at Wyndham and Norwich, and afterwards
went to Cambridge. At the time of his selection for the see of Quebec he
was examining chaplain to the Bishop of Lincoln. In 1793, George III.
erected the Canadas into a diocese of the Church of England, and Dr.
Mountain was appointed to take charge. He arrived in Quebec 1st
November, 1793. The outlook was anything but encouraging, for there were
but six clergymen in Lower Canada and three in Upper Canada. However, by
indefatigable diligence and energy, obstacles were overcome, and Bishop
Mountain may well be called the father and founder of the Anglican
Church in Canada. He labored here for thirty-two years, his death taking
place on 16th June, 1825, at Marchmont, near Quebec, the seat of the
late General Sir John Harvey, Bart. Three of Bishop Mountain's sons
followed the profession of their father.

[Illustration: Bishop Mountain.]

In the register of St. Mark's Church, Niagara, an entry on 5th June,
1793, records the marriage of Ensign Lemoine to Susan Johnson, who was
Susannah, the seventh daughter of Molly Brant and Sir William Johnson.

    Sun. 10th--I went to church. The Bishop preached an excellent
    discourse, Romans 1, 16 v., "I am not ashamed of the Gospel of
    Christ, for it is the power of God unto salvation to everyone
    that believeth, to the Jew first, and also to the Greek."

    Tues. 12th--An express from Detroit. It is now decided that I am
    to go to Quebec next month. The hostile appearance Gen. Anthony
    Wayne's conduct bears makes the continuance of peace with the
    United States very doubtful.

    Thurs. 14th--The Governor went with the Bishop to see the Falls
    of Niagara.

    Fri. 15th--The Bishop sailed for Kingston. I wrote to Mrs.
    Caldwell to take a house at Quebec for me. Should the French and
    Americans assault Quebec this winter I shall find more comfort
    in Mrs. Caldwell's society than in that of most others, as such
    a scene would not be new to her. She was in the town when
    besieged by Montgomery, 1775. Coll. Caldwell was one of the most
    active of the defenders of it.

    Sat. 16th--I went to the garrison this evening.

    Sun. 17th--An express from Detroit.

Note.--This means that the Government messengers had arrived with
letters and official documents.

    Mon. 18th--The Governor and myself have colds, which is very
    unusual. Notwithstanding, we crossed the water and rode to the
    Landing at Lewiston. I had not ridden on that side of the river
    before. We dined in the boat opposite Mr. Hamilton's, at whose
    house we drank tea, and returned to Navy Hall in the boat.

    Tues. 19th--The Governor had the shot extracted from his finger.
    It was so near the joint that it is feared the finger will
    always be stiff; it was a large shot.

[Illustration: Spray of the Falls of Niagara, as seen from the Chippawa
River.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Wed. 20th--A wet day. Mr. Hamilton dined with us; the cannon
    sent to Fort Erie.

    Thurs. 21st--Mrs. Hamilton and Mrs. Richardson here.

    Sun. 24th--Mr. Crooks' new vessel, named "The York," sailed for
    Kingston, and Mr. LeMoine's decked boat accompanied her.

Note.--Mr. Crooks was the brother of the Honorable James Crooks of the
Legislative Council, and a member of the firm of W. and J. Crooks, West
Niagara. His vessel "The York" was afterwards wrecked at the Genesee
River.

    Mon. 25th--Capt. David Shank arrived with the detachment from
    York, to go to the Miamis.

[Illustration: Gen. Shank.]

Note.--David Shank was gazetted lieutenant in the Queen's Rangers,
March, 1777, obtaining his captaincy October, 1778. He served throughout
the Revolutionary War, and when his corps was disbanded in 1783, he was
placed on half pay. In 1791, he was recalled to full pay, when he joined
the Light Infantry battalion, which was also given the name of Queen's
Rangers, raised in that year in England for services in Canada under
Colonel Simcoe. Shank became brevet-major, 1st March, 1794, and on
Simcoe's returning to Europe assumed command of the troops in Upper
Canada in the summer of 1796. He became lieutenant-colonel in January,
1798, and took command of his regiment in the following April. He
remained in the corps until it was disbanded at the Peace of Amiens. On
September 3rd, 1803, he was appointed to the command of the Canadian
Fencibles. He became major-general, 1811, lieutenant-general, 1821, and
died in Glasgow, 16th October, 1831. He acquired in York a large tract
of land in what is now the north side of Queen Street, Toronto, near
Trinity College. The portrait is from the original oil painting at
Wolford.

    Tues. 26th--I received the finest red water melons from York I
    ever saw.

    Wed. 27th--More detachments from York for the Miamis.

    Thurs. 28th--Mr. Sheaffe returned from Oswego with news that
    Lord Howe has taken seven sail of French ships.

[Illustration: Gen. Sheaffe.]

Note.--Mr. Sheaffe was Lieutenant Roger Hale Sheaffe of the 5th
Regiment. He was born in 1763 in Boston, and was a son of Mr. William
Sheaffe, Deputy Collector of Customs at that port. He entered the army
as an ensign in 1778 and rose to the rank of lieutenant in 1780. He
served in Canada from 1787-97, and did important work. Under
instructions from Dorchester and Governor Simcoe, Sheaffe was entrusted
with a mission in connection with settlements by Americans on the south
shore of Lake Ontario. Both the Governor-General and Governor Simcoe
protested against these settlements. Sheaffe was made a captain in 1795.
In 1811 he became major-general. In recognition of his services at
Queenston Heights he was made a baronet in 1813. He was in command at
York in April, 1813, and was severely and, in the opinion of many,
justly criticized for his conduct in not remaining in York and assisting
the local militia, just before the attack of the Americans. He was made
a general in 1828. In 1810 he married Margaret, third daughter of Mr.
John Coffin of Quebec, cousin of Admiral Coffin. Sheaffe died in
Edinburgh in 1851, and his wife a few years later.

    Fri. 29th--An express from Detroit announces that General
    Anthony Wayne has retired from the Miami Fort after having
    summoned it to surrender. He came within shot of it, and found
    it stronger than he expected and that there was cannon. The
    match was lighted to have fired if he had not retired. Major
    Campbell, who commanded, showed great discretion and propriety
    of conduct. If the Governor had waited until the opening of the
    navigation of the lakes to have gone to the Miamis, as Lord
    Dorchester proposed, the fort would not have been rendered
    defensible enough by this time to have intimidated General
    Wayne, and war would not have commenced with the United States.

[Illustration: Gen. Wayne.]

Note.--After the battle of Fort Recovery, General Wayne, "Mad Anthony,"
marched to within thirty miles of Fort Miami, recently built by Governor
Simcoe, and on August 20th drove away the Indians who, to the number of
two thousand, had gathered nearby under the command of Little Turtle.
After this engagement, Major Campbell, who commanded the fort, wrote to
Wayne expressing surprise at the appearance of an American force at a
point almost within sight of the British guns. General Wayne in reply
denounced the erection of the fortress on American territory as the
highest act of aggression. Then he set fire to and destroyed everything
within sight of Fort Miami.

Governor Simcoe proceeded with Captain Brant and 150 warriors to
encourage the Indians, but they had no relish for another brush with
General Wayne's forces. Finally in October, 1794, the United States
Secretary Randolph communicated with the legation in the United States
and matters were arranged satisfactorily by a withdrawal of the troops
and the abandonment of the fort.

Major William Campbell, who commanded at Miami, was of the 24th
Regiment. He had rank in the army 1st December, 1778, and in the
regiment, 31st May, 1781. He became lieutenant-colonel in 1795.

General Wayne was brevetted major-general in 1783 and in 1792 was
appointed major-general and commander-in-chief of the army in the United
States.

    Mon. Sept. 1st--The merchants gave a dinner to commemorate Lord
    Howe's victory of the 1st of June. The Governor and the officers
    of the garrison dined with them. Mrs. Smith and some ladies
    dined with me.

Note.--Lord Richard Howe obtained a decisive victory off Ushant, 1st
June, 1794, for which he received the thanks of Parliament, and two
years after he was made admiral of the fleet.

    Thurs. 4th--The militia officers dined with the Governor. I
    dined with Mrs. Smith.

    Mon. 8th--Mr. Mackenzie, who has made his way from the Grand
    Portage to the Pacific ocean, is just returned from thence, and
    brought the Governor a sea otter skin as a proof of his having
    reached that coast. He says the savages spear them from the
    rocks, as the Indians here do sturgeon. These animals are
    amphibious, but generally in the sea. Mr. McKenzie went down the
    River of Peace near two degrees north of Lake Superior, and came
    to the Rocky Mountains, on which rise some rivers that fall into
    the Atlantic, and others which empty themselves into the Pacific
    ocean. He went down a river which falls into the latter and
    rises not 700 yards from the River of Peace. He afterwards
    travelled 17 days by land. There are a kind of large sheep on
    the Rocky Mountains, their horns the size of a cow's. The
    Indians near the coast live on fish, which they are very
    dexterous in catching; they dry salmon in boxes in a kind of
    upper story in their huts. They prepare the roes, beating them
    up with sorrel, a plant with acid taste, till it becomes a kind
    of caviare, and, when the salmon are dried, boil and mix them
    with oil. These savages never taste meat, and think if any was
    thrown into the river the fish would go away. One of Mr.
    McKenzie's men having thrown the bone of a deer in the water, an
    Indian dived and fetched it out, nor would they suffer water to
    be ladled out in a kettle in which meat had been boiled. Are
    these not veritable fish eaters? Mr. McKenzie observed those
    Indians who inhabited the islands on the coast to be more savage
    than the others. The otter skins are sold at a great price, by
    those who trade on the coast, to the Chinese.

[Illustration: Sir Alexander Mackenzie.]

Note.--Sir Alexander Mackenzie was born in Inverness, Scotland, about
1755. He emigrated to Canada in his youth and became a clerk in the
North-West Fur Company. From 1781 to 1789, he traded with the Indians at
Lake Athabasca, and in the latter year discovered the river which bears
his name, and traced it from its source to its entrance into the Arctic
Ocean, where he arrived in July, 1789. In 1792, he led another exploring
party westward to the Pacific. On his return to England in 1801, he
published his "Voyages from Montreal to the Frozen and Pacific Oceans."
He died in 1820.




  CHAPTER XV.

  _MRS. SIMCOE VISITS QUEBEC._


There was always war or rumor of war in these pioneer days in Canada.
Peace between the United States and Canada had been declared years
before, when the War of the Revolution gave independence to the American
people. But disquieting rumors were always floating in the air, and
Niagara was a centre where the pros and cons were always a ready subject
of conversation. Mrs. Simcoe had her fears. She had resolved upon a
visit to her friends in Quebec, and while she felt that she might return
to Upper Canada, she was not too certain, for if the question of peace
or war was not speedily settled it would be too late for her to return
without considerable discomfort and possibly danger.

However, she said good-bye to her friends, the ladies of the garrison at
Niagara, whom she had invited to tea a day or two before she determined
to sail, but owing probably to adverse winds it was not till the morning
of the 13th September, 1794, that the anchor of the Government schooner
"Mississaga" was weighed and Mrs. Simcoe and her family left Niagara
wharf.

    Tues. Sept. 9th--Mrs. Smith and the ladies of the garrison drank
    tea with me. The Governor sets off for Detroit to-morrow, and I
    shall sail for Quebec the next day. If I hear, with official
    certainty, at Quebec that peace with the United States is agreed
    on in England, I may return here this autumn, but if that news
    does not arrive very speedily it will be too late for me to
    return.

    *    *    *    *    *

  Key To Illustration following.

    No. 1.--The building on the right represents a building on
    Ontario Street, near the piano factory, foot of Princess Street
    (Store Street).

    No. 2.--A building on the site of the late ex-Mayor Gaskin's
    residence, south-east corner Ontario and Princess Streets.

    No. 3.--The old Macaulay House, now a butcher shop, standing on
    south-west corner of Princess and Ontario Streets, west side of
    Ontario Street, and south side of Princess Street.

    No. 4.--The Protestant Church, back of Masonic Hall of 1792,
    opposite the present Market-place.

    No. 5.--In front is a building now in Market-square, and on the
    site of General Bradstreet's batteries.

    No. 6.--Indian storehouse, near the water's edge, now the site
    of Folger and Richardson's wharves.

    No. 7.--Beyond is vacant space, at present occupied by the
    Kingston and Pembroke R.R., and in front of the City Hall. West
    of vacant space are buildings on Ontario Street.

    No. 8.--Site of Swift's wharf at the foot of Johnson Street,
    near the Grand Trunk Railway depot.

[Illustration: Kingston, U.C., in 1794. (See p. 244.)

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Fri. 12th--The Governor set off this morning for Detroit. Mrs.
    Smith came to take leave of me. The "Mississaga" is to sail as
    soon as the wind is fair; that not being the case this
    afternoon, I was dissuaded from going on board, but having so
    often seen a wind lost by not embarking before it had risen, I
    determined to go on board and wait for it, which I did at six
    o'clock. Capt. McGill accompanies me, in order to see that the
    batteau are properly prepared and attended.

    Sat. 13th--On board the "Mississaga." At six this morning we
    weighed anchor. The Fort and Newark looked very pretty under a
    rising sun as we left Niagara River. The wind is fair, and we
    keep the south shore, so I hope to discern the entrance to the
    Genesee River. At twelve the wind changed, and we kept the north
    shore. Orders were given for my accommodation that no person
    should have a passage to Kingston in the "Mississaga," but I
    relented in favour of Brant's sister, who was ill and very
    desirous to go. She speaks English well, and is a civil and very
    sensible old woman.

Note.--About 1748, Colonel Johnson (Sir William) contracted an Indian
marriage with Miss Mary Brant, "Miss Molly," sister of Thayendanegea
(Joseph Brant), and by her had eight children, Peter, Elizabeth,
Magdalene, Margaret, George, Mary, Susannah and Anne. Elizabeth married
Dr. Robert Kerr, an eminent surgeon, who settled at Niagara. Susannah,
as already stated, became the wife of Lieutenant Lemoine of the 24th
Regiment, while three other daughters married Captain Farley of the 16th
Regiment, John Ferguson of the Indian Department and Captain Earle of
the Provincial Navy. The records of the first Protestant Church
(afterwards St. George's), Kingston, show that on 16th April, 1796, Mary
Brant was buried by Rev. John Stuart, but no mention is made of the
place of burial.

Mrs. Grant in her entertaining book speaks of Molly, and says that Sir
William "connected himself with the daughter of an Indian sachem, who
possessed an uncommonly agreeable person and good understanding and
whether ever formally married to him according to our usage or not,
continued to live with him in great union and affection all his life."
Colonel Johnson, in his private diary, always mentioned Molly kindly. By
thus forming an alliance with the family of an influential and powerful
chief, Colonel Johnson evidently aimed at a more extended influence over
the Indians. Nor did the result disappoint him.

In his will, Sir William ordered the remains of his "beloved wife
Catherine" to be deposited in his burial-place, and provided most
liberally for his "prudent and faithful house-keeper, Mary Brant" and
for all her children, whom he calls his "natural children." He divided
the remaining part of his money and lands between Colonel Claus and
Colonel Johnson and their wives, his estate at Fort Johnson going to his
son, Sir John Johnson.

    Sun. 14th--We have had a very rough night and a head wind, and
    nothing but being on deck the whole day prevented my being very
    sick. In the afternoon, being in the centre of the lake, I
    discerned both the N. and S. shores. I also discerned a high
    point on the south shore, called the Thirty-Mile Creek from
    Niagara, in sight of the Duck Islands, a few miles off Point
    Traverse (in Prince Edward County) and N.E. of it.

Note.--These are two islands, known collectively as The Ducks. The
larger island is the further to the east in the lake and is called the
Main Duck, while the smaller island, close to the south-eastern
extremity of Prince Edward County, is called the False Duck. Sailors
frequently speak of the islands as the "Main Ducks" and "False Ducks,"
but the name should not be pluralized. The two are properly spoken of as
The Ducks. They are so named either from their shape--at a distance they
roughly resemble ducks in the water--or from the fact that wild ducks
formerly abounded in the vicinity. The trip was slow and must have been
rough, for the vessel did not reach Kingston until 8 a.m. on the 15th,
or fifty hours from Niagara to Kingston, a distance of nearly 200 miles.

    Mon. 15th--A very rough night. At eight this morning we anchored
    in Kingston harbour. Capt. McGill went on shore and engaged the
    only King's batteau which was there, and hired one of the
    merchant's for my baggage. Capt. Porter came on board to know my
    commands, and some ladies called upon me. At twelve we got off
    in the batteau, which had a comfortable, low awning of twisted
    osiers or willow whose twigs are used for making baskets, which
    was more convenient at this season, when the weather becomes
    cold, than the high wooden awnings. In less than half an hour it
    began to rain, and continued the whole day. We went only 18
    miles to Gananowui. Carey's house being shut up, we went to
    Fairfield's, close by the mill. Mr. (Colonel) Joel Stone, a
    Loyalist, who settled in Gananowui about 1790, is building at
    the mouth of the Gananowui River. Capt. McGill slept in the
    boat. Fairfield accommodated me with a room.

Note.--Captain Richard Porter of the 60th was captain from 26th
November, 1784, and major from 1st September, 1795.

A coincidence in the history of the 60th Regiment in North America is
that the 2nd and 3rd battalions, as part of the _first_ English garrison
at Quebec, were present in September, 1759, when the British ensign was
hoisted over the captured city by an officer of the Royal Artillery; and
in November, 1871, one hundred and twelve years later, a detachment of
the 1st battalion of the 60th, the remnant of the _last_ English
garrison of Quebec, consigned the Imperial flag to the keeping of
another artillery officer, whilst the flag of the Dominion of Canada was
hoisted in its stead.

William Fairfield, a U. E. Loyalist, was one of the pioneers of
Ernestown, in all probability settling there about 1788. In 1794 he
appears to have been in the vicinity of Gananoque, where he had a grist
mill. He was not the original holder of the land at Gananoque, but must
have rented it from Sir John Johnson, whose grant of land was on the
east side of Gananoque River. The first document registered in the
Registry Office at Brockville was on the 13th December, 1797, at eight
o'clock in the evening, S. Sherwood, Deputy Registrar. There could be no
deed of land until 1796 or 1797 because the first patents were issued
then. William Fairfield was for many years on the Commission of the
Peace and was a member of the Provincial Parliament. He died in
Ernestown in 1816.

Joel Stone, a U. E. Loyalist, afterwards known as Colonel Stone, was
born in Guilford, Conn., 7th August, 1749. He was a descendant of
William Stone, one of the emigrants who sailed from London, Eng., in
May, 1639, landing at New Haven, Conn., in July. He served under Sir
William Howe in the Revolutionary War and remained in New York until the
evacuation of the British in 1783. In July of that year he sailed for
England to recover a legacy to which his wife was entitled. His stay
there was prolonged, for he did not return until 1786, arriving in
Quebec on 6th October. In 1792, he settled at the junction of the
Gananoque and St. Lawrence Rivers, the Crown having given him a grant of
land on the west side of the Gananoque River. He founded the town of
Gananoque. In 1793, his wife died, and in 1799, he married a second
time. Stone was the first Collector of the Port, and on 2nd January,
1809, he was appointed colonel of the 2nd Regiment of Militia, County of
Leeds. He did not remain long in command, feeling obliged on account of
declining years to resign. This he did in 1812. His death took place in
Gananoque on 20th November, 1833.

[Illustration: Col. Joel Stone.]

By his first wife, Leah Moore, Colonel Stone had a son and a daughter;
the former died unmarried, but his daughter, Mary, married Charles
McDonald, of Gananoque (an elder brother of the Hon. John McDonald), and
of this marriage one of the descendants, a grandson, is Mr. Charles
McDonald of Gananoque, Civil Engineer.

Stone's second wife was Abigail Coggswell, widow of Abraham Dayton.
There were no children by this marriage, but Henrietta Maria Mallory, a
grand-daughter of the Colonel's second wife, became a member of the
family, and in due course married John McDonald (afterwards Hon. John
McDonald). He was a member of the Legislative Assembly of Upper Canada,
and, at the Union in 1841, was called to the Legislative Council of the
new Province of Canada. Of this marriage the sole male representative of
the name of McDonald is Judge Herbert S. McDonald of Brockville, Ont.
Herbert M. Mowat, K.C., of Toronto, and John McDonald Mowat of Kingston
are grandsons on their mother's side.

    Mon. 15th--The baggage boat was not arrived at Gananowui, and my
    boudet or canvas stretcher being in it, I was at a loss what to
    sleep on, till I recollected some planks I had in the boat. I
    laid one of these, supported by a small box at each end, and put
    a carpet over it, on which I slept admirably. Collins had a
    small room within mine for herself and the children. Fairfield
    built the little vessel I saw lying in Kingston Harbour. She
    contains 120 barrels, and is gone for flour to the Bay of
    Quinte. Fairfield told me he had been 36 miles back in the
    country towards the Ottawa River; the Gananowui runs within half
    a mile of a river that falls into the Ottawa. The Indians carry
    over that portage. He saw many lakes eight or ten miles long.
    He went to catch whitefish, but having no means of taking them
    but spearing he only killed 23. They are very difficult fish to
    spear, and he had not nets. The land above this house is
    considerably higher than any in this part of the country, and
    falls every way from this height. Here are abundance of ground
    squirrels, but the men do not take the trouble of skinning them
    when killed, tho' the fur is beautiful. Mr. Stone is building a
    saw mill here, opposite Sir. J. Johnstone's. It will work 15
    saws at once. Stone's grant of land is on the west side of the
    river and Johnstone's is on the east side.

[Illustration: House and Mill, near Gananoque, 1794.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--Judge McDonald, of Brockville, is under the impression that this
view is on the St. Lawrence and not on the Gananoque River, 1794, as it
would appear that the latter is shown at the right, where it enters the
St. Lawrence, and yet there could not have been a mill on the bank of
the St. Lawrence, there being no water from that source. It is just
possible that the buildings shown were erected by Colonel Stone along
the bank of the St. Lawrence at this spot, and that there is an error in
calling one of them a mill.

    Tues. 16th--This morning Mr. Stone sent me excellent cream and
    butter. We did not embark till ten. This morning was so wet that
    the Canadians were unwilling to move. The sun shone a little
    while, but the afternoon proved wet, and it was dark before I
    came to Capt. Cowan's, opposite Oswegatchie. Here I had a large
    room with six windows in it.

    Wed. 17th--We embarked at six. The tea kettle was boiled, and I
    breakfasted in the boat; showery weather. Passed the rapid
    called Les Gallettes (Gallops rapids off Pointe Galloppe in
    Edwardsburgh). The waves, dashing against the bottom of the
    boat, sounded as if she struck on rocks, and their appearance
    more agitated than those we see in a shipwreck on the stage. A
    mile before we came to the Long Sault there was a violent storm
    of thunder, lightning and rain, and as we were about to descend
    the rapid another violent storm arose, which was a good
    accompaniment to a terrific scene. This rapid is very long, but
    it did not appear to me so frightful as Les Gallettes, tho' the
    current is so strong for the space of some miles that we went
    nine miles in the hour without sailing. One man steers; the rest
    row occasionally, but the Canadians are so accustomed to the
    navigation that with empty boats the man who steers is often the
    only one awake.

    I dined in the boat; at three stopped to deliver a letter at
    Glengarry House, where Major McDonell lives. At four a
    thunderstorm occasioned us to stop at the boat-house on Lac St.
    Francis, in that part of the St. Lawrence which widens above
    Coteau du Lac, where Mr. McGill was for staying the night; but I
    thought it too early, and sailing across the lake a good way
    from shore a violent gale of wind arose when we were in a line
    with Pointe Mouille. It thundered, rained, and became perfectly
    dark; the boat tossed violently, the children crying and Collins
    sighing. The wind blew so strong off shore that I feared being
    driven out into the lake and lost, or driven to the United
    States shore. Capt. McGill thought there was some difficulty, as
    he promised the men rum if they exerted themselves to get to
    the shore, which they at last did, and I waited half an hour,
    intending to sleep in the boat rather than proceed in such
    weather five miles to the Pointe au Bodet. There was no house
    nearer. The weather then clearing up and growing calm, I
    consented to proceed, provided they kept close to the shore,
    which they did, and about ten we arrived at Pointe au Bodet. Mr.
    John McDonell, the Adjutant-General of Militia of Upper Canada,
    had arrived there, and he gave me up his rooms, in which were
    large fires, very comfortable after the cold, rough evening I
    had been out in.

Note.--Mr. J. A. Macdonell of Glengarry states that John Macdonell "was
appointed by Lieutenant-Governor Simcoe to be first adjutant-general of
militia in Upper Canada, and was the founder of our militia system."

I find among my Simcoe manuscript an account of part of the journey, in
the handwriting of Mrs. Simcoe, though the heading is not written by
her. It reads:--

    A Simcoe Relic.

    "A Short Journal, with Rough Sketches contained in a letter
    addressed by Mrs. Simcoe to her husband, the
    Lieutenant-Governor, in 1794, when on her way in a covered boat
    from Kingston to Montreal and Quebec."

It is in the form of a letter to Governor Simcoe written on the 17th
September, 1794, and really a more extended account than what appears in
the diary proper for the 15th-17th September. The first paragraph is
undated. It refers to Mrs. Simcoe's friends who were evidently visiting
Kingston and who desired to go east to Montreal, and states that:

    "Miss M'Donell, Miss Bouchette, Capt. Porter and Mr. Salmon came
    on board the 'Mississaga.' Capt. Bouchette wanted to refuse the
    ten guineas. He say'd it was too much. I believe he was very
    well satisfied."

    Mon. Septr. 15th--Left Kingston at half-past twelve in a boat
    with a comfortable awning of hoops and oil cloth, accompanied by
    another batteau with the baggage; a fine and strong wind,
    delightful sailing. At four the wind came ahead, and we were
    obliged to row. In half an hour after we left Kingston it began
    to rain hard, and continued to rain the whole night.

    Cary's house shut up, as he was gone to Kingston. Rained too
    hard for me to pitch the tent or sleep in the batteau. Slept at
    Fairfield's house, close by the mill at Gananoqui. He is the
    farmer's son who built a small vessel at Gananoqui. She is now
    gone for a load of flour to the Bay of Quinte. I think I saw her
    in the harbour at Kingston. She has carried 120 barrels; looks
    not much larger than the "Onondaga." Mr. M'Gill stayed in the
    batteau.

Note.--The vessel which Mrs. Simcoe mentions as having been built by
Fairfield was no doubt built by him for Colonel Joel Stone. This
contention is borne out by the fact that a letter dated 2nd February,
1793, at Gananoque, written by Stone to Governor Simcoe, says:--"Permit
me to inform your Excellency that I have recovered my health some time
in November last from a fever I took at the head of Lake Ontario last
July, since which I am commissioned to build a schooner of 40 tons
burthen, on my premises here. She is to sail out of this river and is to
be called the 'Leeds Trader,' and I expect will sail by the first of
July next." As all the land on the west side of the Gananoque River,
near Gananoque, was granted by the Crown to Colonel Joel Stone and that
on the east side to Sir John Johnson or his heirs, it would appear that
Fairfield must have been a "squatter" or an employee, and therefore may
have been captain of Colonel Stone's vessel.

[Illustration: Fairfield's House and Mill.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Fairfield say'd he had been 35 miles back from his present house
    to catch whitefish, but having no means but spearing, and they
    are remarkably swift and difficult to spear, he took but 23. Was
    out two nights. There are many lakes eight or ten miles long.
    The land at Gananoque is very bad between, fit for nothing, but
    twelve miles back becomes very good.

Note.--Mr. Charles Britton, a resident of Gananoque for many years,
fixes the site of Fairfield's mill on the east side of the river on lot
1027 in the village of Gananoque back of Skinner and Company's factory.
The Gananoque River runs northwest from the St. Lawrence and a mile
north of the town it inclines east and continues northeast from
Kingston.

[Illustration: View from Fairfield's House.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Tues. 16th--A very wet morning after a night of incessant rain;
    the Canadians would not stir, so I waited to breakfast. Mr.
    Stone, who is building a mill opposite Fairfield's, came, and
    was extremely civil; brought butter and milk. About nine the
    rain ceased. I walked to look at the mill, and embarked. Gave a
    dollar to the people. Mr. M'Gill said Stone was too much of a
    gentleman to offer anything to. The mill he is building is to
    have 15 saws. He says there is a portage of only half a mile
    from the Gananoqui to the Rideau. The Indians carry over it,
    that is, 50 or 60 miles to the Grand River. He say'd the hill
    behind Fairfield's house is the highest ground anywhere about
    the country, the land descending from it every way. Fairfield
    say'd there is a fall 30 miles up the Gananoqui 50 feet high,
    and many slight rapids. About twelve the day grew fine and
    pleasant. Our Canadians are old and do not sing; however, I made
    them sing "Trois Filles d'un Prince," tho' indifferently.

    Capt. Porter say'd to Mr. M'Gill the "Sophia" might be two weeks
    in one trip to Oswegatchie. Rain in the afternoon. Got on to
    Capt. Cowan's, just opposite Fort Oswegatchie, an admirable
    large room, six large windows in it, 12 feet high. Capt. Cowan
    spoke much of the weakness and unprovided state of the
    inhabitants in case of war with the States; he particularly
    mentioned as dangerous the circumstances of settlers who call
    themselves residents under the King's Government (but some whose
    loyalty is very doubtful), building saw mills on the opposite
    shore. One, Honeywell, in particular, who had been a notorious
    rebel, and since his residence under the King's Government was
    once confined at Kingston for improper behaviour. This man has a
    saw mill directly opposite this house, with many thousand boards
    cut. Capt. Cowan says these mills afford ample provision for
    rafts, on which the Americans might pop over and ravage this
    country. A well-known road thro' the woods from Oswegatchie to
    Crown Point, in Lake Champlain, or to Lake George, is so
    passable that 30 or 40 head of cattle pass with ease in eight
    days.

Note.--Captain David Cowan, R.N., was one of the early settlers of this
part of the country. His home "opposite Fort Oswegatchie" (Ogdensburg),
would be Prescott, in the County of Grenville. In 1819 he lived in the
Township of Charlotteville, County of Norfolk, but owned some 450 acres
of land in the Township of Pittsburg, six miles west of Gananoque, which
was granted him in recognition of his services during the War of 1812.
He was an uncle of Mr. Alexander Cowan of Pittsburg Township, Frontenac
County, U.C. Miss Margaret Cowan, a daughter of Mr. Alexander Cowan,
married the late George B. Holland, of Toronto, whose descendants live
in Toronto, Gananoque and Brockville.

An interesting mention is made of Captain Cowan in the Memoirs of John
Clark, of Port Dalhousie, in Volume VII. of the Ontario Historical
Society Papers and Records. It reads:--

"There were two worthies amongst us equal, if not superior, to Beau
Nash, in the old times. These were Captain Cowan, of the navy, and
Staff-Surgeon Fleming of the army. They in every particular were the
essence of politeness. The Chippewa (_sic_) Bridge in that day was
nearer the mouth of the Chippewa (_sic_) River than the present bridge,
consequently was of greater span. One fine morning these two gents being
at Chippewa, were crossing the bridge at opposite ends, and both being
somewhat halt in their legs, when they stepped on the bridge, commenced
to bow to each other and did not stop bowing till they met each other in
the centre when they took a most cordial grip and passed on. So much for
Captain Cowan and Dr. Fleming of bygone days' politeness."

    Wed. 17th--Embarked at six; fine wind, showery. Passing the
    first rapid at Chimney Island the water is very frightful. A
    little below John's Town saw a deer crossing the river, a canoe
    trying to overtake it. The deer swam up the stream and got
    ashore. At half-past nine passed Matilda township and the Rapid
    Plat, 20 miles. At half after three Mr. M'Gill wanted to give a
    message from you to the Speaker (John Macdonell), so we stopped
    for him to deliver it, and I take the opportunity of sending
    this book, that you may know we got safe and well so far and had
    a pleasant journey. Pray give this book to Mr. D. W. Smith, to
    send back to me immediately, for I mean to make some pretty
    drawings from these rough sketches.

    I should not have sent you this rough one, but that I know you
    will be glad in any way to know myself and the children are
    well, and as comfortable as is possible to be anywhere in your
    absence.

    We have had a good deal of thunder and rain to-day. A
    thunderstorm was hardly passed when we entered the Long Sault.
    Had it continued, what a fineward element. The Long Sault Rapid
    was less alarming than I expected, but very grand and fine, and
    nothing but reason would keep one from being afraid. Your sight
    must be terrified, tho' knowledge makes you rest satisfied.

  Ever most attachedly yours,

  E. Simcoe.

    The going down the river is so fine a thing altogether I wish
    for you every moment. I should be in ecstasies if you were here
    to partake of them.

    Thurs. 18th--Embarked at six, and reached the Cedar Rapids,
    opposite the village of that name, at ten; from thence I went in
    a calèche to the Cascades between Grand Island and Isle Perault,
    from whence I was two hours going in the boat to La Chine, eight
    miles above Montreal. I waited there two hours for a calèche,
    and set out in it with Francis, but the road was so rough and
    the carriage so indifferent that I was obliged to stop and take
    Collins with me to hold the child, or we should have been shaken
    out. I was so fatigued with this eight miles to Montreal that I
    determined never to go in a post calèche again. The carriage was
    driven tandem, the first horse tied to the other by a rope,
    which did not in the least confine him. The horses generally
    went different ways and at a great rate.

    I went to Mr. Gray's at Montreal, but his house being under
    repair, Mr. Frobisher, another merchant, requested me to be at
    his house, where I should be better accommodated, and indeed it
    is elegantly fitted up. He sent his carriage for me.

Note.--Edward William Gray was a man well known in military, civil and
social circles in Montreal. He was born on the 4th December, 1742, in
England and came to Montreal in the autumn of 1760 in the "Vanguard,"
man-of-war, and was initiated into Freemasonry on 2nd October, 1760,
when the ship was in the St. Lawrence, in front of Quebec. His Masonic
certificate is in the Archives Department at Ottawa, and it is the
earliest certificate known to the craft in Canada. In the Masonic
institution there were in the olden time three kinds of warrants given
to lodges. A civil warrant was for a lodge composed of citizens of a
certain place. Another warrant was known as a "sea warrant," for members
on board a British man-of-war, while a third warrant was known as a
"field warrant" given to soldiers in a British regiment. It is
permissible to hold these lodges either in the quarters of a regiment or
on board a man-of-war "in the most convenient place adjacent to the
ship." In January, 1760, a warrant was issued for a lodge on board the
"Vanguard," man-of-war, of which Thomas Dunckerley was W.M. The lodge on
the occasion of this initiation was held no doubt in a lodge room in the
city of Quebec, for there were a number of military lodges stationed in
the fortress, that possessed Masonic warrants. William Gray was
postmaster of Montreal for many years, and sheriff of the District of
Montreal. His Commission as Deputy-Provost-Marshal, corresponding to
that of sheriff, is dated 15th June, 1765. He was appointed Deputy
Public Appraiser and Vendue Master on 11th August, 1766, and was
promoted to the office of Provost-Marshal on 1st May, 1775. He was
appointed major of a corps of volunteers raised amongst the merchants of
Montreal at the time of the American invasion, and for services rendered
was afterwards given the rank of colonel, commanding the English militia
in the city and suburbs of Montreal. He died on 22nd December, 1810.

    Fri. 19th--Mrs. Frobisher came from her country house to dine
    with me. I saw the large sheep's horn Mr. Mackenzie, the
    North-West explorer, brought from the Rocky Mountains. Major
    Duke called to enquire whether I would have men from the 26th to
    row my batteau, but I preferred the Canadians. Mr. Smith, of the
    7th Fusiliers, brought me letters from England.

Note.--Major George Duke's first commission in the 26th is dated 10th
September, 1779, with rank of captain. In October, 1793, he was in
command, as major, at St. John's and Isle-aux-Noix, Lower Canada. In the
army list his name is given also as "Charles" Duke, with the statement
that he "sold out," though the date is not given.

The 26th, or Cameronian Regiment, was formed in 1689, deriving its
popular designation of "Cameronians" from the sect (named after one of
its first preachers, Richard Cameron). The regiment was formed at the
time when the religious persecution by the Stuart family led many of
their subjects of the Presbyterian persuasion in Scotland to take up
arms. In 1787 the regiment was stationed at Quebec, in 1789 at Montreal,
and in 1790 at Niagara, and at various other stations in Canada until
1800, when it returned to England. The unfortunate Captain John Andre,
who joined the 26th from the 44th Regiment, was commissioned on 18th
January, 1777. He was executed on 2nd October, 1780. Andre was a
personal friend of Governor Simcoe.

    Sat. 20th--A very wet day, so I stayed at Mr. Frobisher's.

    Sun. 21st--I left Montreal at nine, with a good many buffalo
    skins in the boat, as the weather grows very cold, and every ten
    leagues I feel it more so; the weather very windy and
    disagreeable; an unpleasant squall near Varennes, on the river
    near Montreal. We afterwards passed St. Sulpice, on the north
    shore of the St. Lawrence, and La Valtrie, a pretty village
    among oaks, and reached D'Autray, thirteen leagues from
    Montreal, at six o'clock. I walked the last half-mile to warm
    myself. I had a good fire at the Post House, and wrote till
    eleven. I was charged six shillings for rooms, fire and milk. I
    carried tea, cold tongue and fowl, or herrings, which composed
    our supper.

Note.--Dautrey, spelled Dautré on old maps, is on the north shore of
River St. Lawrence, about half-way between the village of Lanoraie and
the River des Chaloupes.

    Mon. 22nd--Set out at six; passed Berthier, a village on the
    north shore, at twelve; came to N. York, missed the house we
    were directed to go to, stopped at another while the men lighted
    their pipes; previous to passing Lake St. Pierre had a distant
    view of Maskinonge, in the county of that name, Rivière du Loup
    (the county town of Maskinonge) and Machiche; at seven arrived
    at Three Rivers, one of the oldest towns in the province,
    founded in 1618, and had a good fire at the Maison de poste, and
    very cheap (a much better house than the inn kept by an
    Englishman, where, instead of two dollars, I might have paid
    eight).

Note.--The MSS. reads N. York. The map drawn by Mrs. Simcoe shows "N.
York" on Lake St. Peter. There is no trace of the name now.

[Illustration: Montreal East to Point du Lac, 1794.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    After drinking tea (or supper) and the children are gone to bed,
    I dress my hair, which I have not time to do in the morning,
    change my habit, and lay down on a boudet (or folding bed)
    before the fire, covered with a fur blanket. I do not undress
    when I have not my bed, which is the case at present. I came 21
    leagues to-day, and felt it very cold, but the children mind it
    so little that Francis will not keep on his gloves.

    Tues. 23rd--Left Three Rivers after breakfast. In the afternoon
    the weather was particularly fine, and the scenery between
    Grondines and Cap Santé was peculiarly beautiful, illuminated by
    the setting sun. The churches of Deschambault and Cap Santé are
    very picturesque objects among the wood, and the high ground
    near the latter is of the finest verdure, covered with large,
    detached trees, has a very fine appearance; indeed, going down
    the St. Lawrence affords the most delightful scenery, whether it
    be between Kingston and Montreal, among the numberless wooded
    islands of all sizes, or the woody, rocky shores bordering the
    rapids, and the transparent clear waters.

Note.--Deschambault, a village in Portneuf County, P.Q., on north shore,
forty miles above Quebec. Cap Santé is 31 miles from Quebec. During the
French _régime_ it was a French post and after the Battle of the Plains
the army was quartered in the vicinity for several months.

    Tues. 23rd--From Montreal to Quebec the country is more
    diversified by villages and houses, and is very pretty,
    excepting a part of it in passing Lake St. Peter, which is flat
    and low, but from Deschambault it again becomes fine. The
    opposition of a strong current makes the voyage up the river
    very tedious, but the velocity with which the boat passes down
    affords incessant variety of objects, and nothing can be
    pleasanter. I cannot tho' but regret leaving the climate of our
    upper country (Upper Canada), the warmth of which gives an idea
    of comfort to the most uninhabited scenes.

    We came 19 leagues to-day, and arrived at six at Cap Santé, and
    I found myself at the house where I had met with so much
    civility on my way from Quebec. The woman recognized and
    welcomed me with her usual French politeness; by great industry
    she had saved some money to make the miserable cottage it had
    been formerly fit for the reception of travellers. She said my
    calling there accidentally had made her think of so doing. Her
    husband is quite uncivilized, but she had been educated at a
    convent. An orchard full of fine apples was in great beauty,
    just ready to be gathered. I had much satisfaction at seeing the
    progressive state of improvement making here. I was made happy
    in receiving a letter to-night from Mrs. Caldwell, pressing me
    in the kindest manner to reside with her till my house at Quebec
    could be prepared for me.

[Illustration: Map of Route from Three Rivers to Quebec.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Wed. 24th--The tide prevented my leaving Cap Santé till nine
    o'clock. Fine weather. Passed the mills at Jacques Cartier;
    landed at a romantic spot named Cap Rouge, three leagues above
    Quebec. I walked a mile to the Maison de Poste, dressed myself,
    and went in a calèche four miles to Belmont, where I met with
    the most friendly reception that was possible.

    Thur. 25th--I received a great many visits from my acquaintances
    at Quebec, who all appeared glad to see me.

    Fri. 26th--Many more visitors. Coll. Caldwell and Miss Johnson
    dined at St. Foix (St. Foye), but I could not prevail on Mrs.
    Caldwell to leave me, and I could not accept Lady Dorchester's
    invitation, as my clothes had not arrived.

    Mon. 29th--The Bishop's family and Coll. and Mrs. Despard dined
    here.

Note.--Mrs. Despard was the wife of Lieutenant-Colonel John Despard of
the 7th Regiment who had brevet rank as colonel from 13th July, 1791.

    Tues, 30th--Coll. Caldwell proposed my taking his house at "Sans
    Bruit," which I felt disposed to do. I went to see it to-day.
    The weather was very cold and some snow fell, which gave me an
    unfavourable idea of Sans Bruit, and I did not like the thoughts
    of so cold a place. I called on Mrs. Mountain, wife of the
    Bishop, at Powell Place, and on Mrs. Despard at Woodfield. It is
    said that peace is settled between Great Britain and the United
    States, but as I have not heard it officially (or even in that
    case could I tell how Gen. Wayne may previously have acted at
    the Miami) I cannot venture to return with Mr. McGill to
    Niagara. He sets out to-day. Some snow fell.

    Wed. Oct. 1st--Coll. and Mrs. Caldwell went to their mill. Miss
    Johnson and I drove to Quebec.

    Thurs. 2nd--I breakfasted with Mrs. Murray, and went to the
    house offered me in Palace Street, which I liked very well.
    Coll. and Mrs. Caldwell returned to dinner. We drank tea at Mr.
    Nathaniel Taylor's, Deputy Commissary General.

Note.--Mrs. Murray was the wife of Richard Murray, who is given in the
list of Protestant house-keepers as a Justice of the Peace in 1794.

    Tues. 7th--We dined at the Bishop's; a very large party there,
    and Coll. and Mrs. Despard.

    Wed. 8th--Miss Johnson and I went to Quebec.

    Sun. 12th--Coll. Beckwith and several friends dined here. Coll.
    Caldwell, having found that I was the daughter of his old
    friend, Coll. Gwillim, who fought at Quebec under Wolfe, and
    with whom he stayed some time in London after the death of Genl.
    Wolfe, is now doubly kind and interested about all my concerns.

Note.--(Colonel) George Beckwith was Acting Adjutant-General at Quebec
in 1794.

    Mon. 13th--I took possession of my house in Palace Street. Dined
    at the Chateau.

    Thurs. 16th--Quebec--I have bought a covered carriole, but until
    the snow falls I cannot use it. Coll. Caldwell sends a calèche
    for me to go to Belmont, as it does not seem worth while to buy
    one for so short a time as I suppose it will be possible to use
    it.

    Fri. 17th--Dined and slept at Belmont.

    Sat. 18th--Came home; 22 visitors this morning.

    Wed. 22nd--Dined and slept at Belmont.

    Thurs. 23rd--Came here; a great many visitors this morning. The
    certainty of peace relieved me from so much uneasiness that I
    scarcely seem to feel the banishment from the upper country as
    much as I expected to have done. Yet at times I have doubts
    whether an American mob may act in opposition to their executive
    government.

    I have been amused by a play called "Carthusian Friar," written
    by a lady, an emigrant. Coll. Caldwell calls almost every day to
    know whether I want anything, and is so attentive to all my
    business that whatever offers of service other people make, they
    premise with saying, "If Coll. Caldwell has not done it
    already." Coll. Beckwith has been very civil. I have added a
    horse, a cow and a cat, and a Canadian driver to my
    establishment. Patras drives admirably. I have heard from the
    Governor, but the letter was dated Fort Erie, six days after he
    left Niagara.

    Sun. 26th--Dined at M. Bàby's (Hon. Francis Bàby). Baron de Rue,
    M. D'Anoilt and many others there. The office ordered to be shut
    on Sunday.

    Thurs. 30th--Dined at the Chateau.

    Tues. Nov. 4th--I have heard that all was well at Detroit on the
    13th of October, and Governor Simcoe returned to Niagara.
    Instead of the usual frost and snow at this season, we have
    damp, mild weather, which disagrees with everybody. I have a
    cold, which keeps me at home. The wind is east, and has
    prevented the Fusiliers sailing for Halifax; they have been on
    board ship for a week. An east wind at this season is most
    extraordinary.

    Thurs. 6th--The "Eweretta" and convoy sailed to London this
    morning.

Note.--Ship "Eweretta," Alex. Patterson, master, sailed to and from
London.

    Tues. 11th--I attempted to go to Belmont in my carriole, but the
    roads were too bad. I drank tea at the Chateau.

    Wed. 12th--Dined with Madame Bàby.

    Thurs. 13th--Spent the evening at Mrs. Ogden's, wife of Isaac
    Ogden, Judge of Admiralty.

    Fri. 14th--Dined at Mrs. Winslow's.

    Sat. 15th--The weather so bad I put off going to Powell Place.

    Sun. 16th--Some snow. Francis and I went to Belmont in an open
    carriole.

    Tues. 18th--Drove from Belmont to Powell Place; went to Quebec
    at four; dined and went in the evening to the Chateau. When I
    left it, called at home for my great-coat, and went with Miss
    Murray in an open carriole at ten o'clock at night to Belmont; a
    little snow, but very mild.

    Thurs. 20th--Letters have been received from Governor Simcoe
    dated Niagara, Oct. 30th.

    Tues. 25th--A heavy fall of snow and the thermometer five
    degrees below. I dined at Mr. Ainslie's, Collector of Customs.
    Baron de Rue there; he was promised letters of recommendation by
    Coll. Harping (at Quebec, Nov., 1794), who died. The Dauphin,
    eldest son of Louis of France, is dead.

    Fri. 28th--I dined at Mr. Dunn's. The stoves so heated that the
    thermometer in the room must have been at 90. Ice and fruit were
    in great request.

Note.--Honorable Thos. Dunn was a member of the Executive Council, Lower
Canada. As senior member he was administrator on two occasions, first in
1805, on the departure of Sir Robert Shore Milnes, and again during the
interval between Governor Craig and Sir George Prevost.

    Sat. 29th--A violent snowstorm, and very severe, cold weather;
    but in Miss William's room, daughter of the Clerk of the
    Executive Council, where I dined, the thermometer must have been
    at 86.

    Sun. 30th--I dined at Belmont; returned in the open carriole.

    Tues. Dec. 2nd--Dined at the Chateau; supped at Mr. Taylor's.

    Wed. 3rd--I dined at Belmont.

    Thurs. 4th--I dined at the Chief Justice's (Osgoode); a pleasant
    French party there.

Note.--Chief Justice Osgoode had, after leaving Upper Canada, been
appointed Chief Justice of Lower Canada. Chief Justice Smith had died
3rd December, 1793.

    Fri. 5th--Went to breakfast at Belmont; drank tea with Madame
    Bàby.

    Sat. 6th--Dined at Thomas Grant's, of the Surveyor's Office. I
    have had letters from Governor Simcoe, tho' nearly a month after
    the time I ought to have received them. Mr. Gray kept them at
    Montreal till he had an opportunity of sending them by a
    gentleman, in order to save the postage of so large a packet.
    The Governor proposed my meeting him at Pointe au Bodet, which
    is the boundary of this province, in January or February, as
    soon as the ice is good. As I had not thought of moving till the
    weather communication was open, this scheme is doubly delightful
    to me as being an unexpected pleasure, and I think I shall like
    travelling _en carriole_ very much. Mr. Mayne, of the Rangers,
    is to meet me at Montreal. I desired he may not come further.

[Illustration: Lady Dorchester.

(_From a copy of a miniature in England._)]

    Lady Dorchester was so obliging to insist on sending me one of
    her open carrioles--mine, being a covered one, was disagreeable
    in a morning--and this will greatly add to my amusement;
    indeed, she and Lord Dorchester have been uniformly polite and
    obliging to me; she is one of those few who appear to act upon
    principle, and with a consistency which is not to be moved. I
    think her a sensible, pleasant woman, and I like the parties at
    the Chateau excessively, for there are forty or fifty people in
    an evening, and I think it is very amusing to walk about the
    room and have something to say to everybody without a long
    conversation with any.

Note.--The following interesting incident in connection with the
marriage of Sir Guy Carleton and Lady Maria Howard is given in the Life
of Dorchester, Morang's "Makers of Canada":--

"Almost immediately on the passing of the Quebec Act Carleton sailed for
Canada and landed on September 18th, 1774. During his long stay in
England he had married the Lady Maria Howard, daughter of the Earl of
Effingham, who with her two children born of the marriage accompanied
her husband across the Atlantic. The lady was less than half Carleton's
age, which was now forty-eight. A family tradition attributes the fact
of Carleton's remaining so long unmarried to an early disappointment in
a love affair with his cousin, Jane Carleton. The circumstances of his
marriage were somewhat singular, and were given to me by the present
representative of the family. Lord Howard of Effingham, then a widower,
was a great personal friend of Carleton's, and of about the same age. On
this account and also foreseeing for him a distinguished career, he
cordially accepted his overtures for the hand of his eldest daughter,
Lady Anne. She and her younger sister, Lady Maria, had seen a great deal
of Sir Guy at their father's house, and doubtless regarded him as a
benevolent uncle rather than a potential lover. In time, however, they
became aware that other schemes were abroad, and on a certain occasion
when Carleton arrived at the house and was closeted with his Lordship it
seems to have been pretty well understood what he had come for. The two
young ladies were sitting together in another apartment with a relative,
a Miss Seymour, and when a message came to Lady Anne that her presence
was required by her father its purport seems to have been well known.
When this young lady returned to her friends her eyes were red from
tears. The others, waiting impatiently for her news, were the more
impatient as well as perplexed at her woe-begone appearance. 'Your eyes
would be red,' she replied to their queries, 'if you had just had to
refuse the best man on earth.'

"'The more fool you,' was the unsympathetic rejoinder of her younger
sister, Lady Maria. 'I only wish he had given me the chance.'

"It appears that Lady Anne was already in love with Carleton's nephew,
whom she afterwards married, and who served under his uncle in Canada.

"There the matter rested for some months till Miss Seymour one day
confided to Sir Guy what Lord Howard's younger daughter had remarked on
hearing of his discomfiture. This so much interested the middle-aged
lover, who, no doubt, had recovered from a perhaps not very violent
passion, that in due course he presented himself as a suitor for the
younger daughter, who proved herself as good as her word. Miss Seymour,
who lived to old age, used to tell the story to members of the
Dorchester family who only passed away in comparatively recent years.

"Lady Maria was small and fair, upright and extremely dignified, and was
ceremonious to a degree that in her old age almost amounted to
eccentricity. She had been brought up and educated at Versailles, which
may be held to account for her partiality for the French at Quebec, and
may possibly have influenced her husband in the same direction."

    Tues. 9th--I drank tea at the Chateau.

    Wed. 10th--Went to Belmont and to Powell Place, where I dined
    and slept.

    Fri. 12th--Went to Belmont.

    Sat. 13th--Lord and Lady Dorchester called upon me. Mr. D. W.
    Smith writes me word from Niagara that the Governor went to York
    on the 13th of November, and was to proceed immediately from
    thence to Kingston in a boat coasting by the Bay of Quinte.

    Tues. 16th--At the Chateau. I am also sure to meet Madame Bàby
    there, who is one of the most agreeable people at Quebec.

    Wed. 17th--At Mr. Craigie's (John Craigie).

Note.--Honorable John Craigie, brother of Lord Craigie, Lord of Session
in Scotland, was Commissary-General and Provincial Treasurer. He married
Susannah, second daughter of John Coffin, a descendant of Tristram
Coffin, and a Loyalist who left Boston in 1775, and settled with his
family in Quebec.

    Thur. 18th--The last ship that sailed, the "Bridget," is lost.
    The August packet is taken by the French, and three officers of
    the 4th Regiment who were on their way hither in her. One of
    their wives desired to preserve a book of drawings, and the
    captors immediately threw it into the sea.

    Fri. 19th--I supped at Mr. Plenderleath's.

Note.--John Plenderleath, afterwards lieutenant-colonel of the 49th
Regiment, was assistant storekeeper-general at Quebec in 1794. He served
in the War of 1812, receiving many wounds while in action. He returned
to England in later years, where he died.

    Sat. 20th--Wed. 24th--At home on account of Francis' illness,
    which Dr. Nooth cannot define, whether it was worms, gravel or
    plum stones, or what.

    Thurs. 25th--I heard an admirable sermon preached by the Abbé
    des Jardins at the French church, and afterwards an excellent
    one by our own Bishop.

    Fri. 26th--Mr. Coffin gave a dinner and ball on the marriage of
    Mr. (Herman Witsius) Ryland, Lord Dorchester's secretary. He had
    been engaged to the lady ten years, but pecuniary circumstances
    would not allow them to marry before he left England last year
    with Lord Dorchester; those difficulties being removed, she had
    had dependence enough on him to come this winter under the
    conduct of his friend, Mr. Finlay (Dep. P.M.G.). I was so
    fatigued with having sat up with Francis for some nights that I
    did not enjoy the ball.

Note.--Herman Witsius Ryland was born in England in 1770. He took part
in the American War, returning to England with Sir Guy Carleton. On the
latter's appointment as Governor-General, Mr. Ryland, as Civil
Secretary, accompanied him to Canada, filling the position not only
while Dorchester was in office, but during the terms of succeeding
Governors. He resigned in 1811, continuing to fill, however, his
position as clerk of the Executive Council until his death in 1838. His
son, George Herman Ryland, then held the office until the union of the
Canadas. Mrs. Henry J. Low, of Montreal, and Mr. Herman Ryland, of
Quebec, are grandchildren of Herman Witsius Ryland, and Mr. H. Ryland
Low, of Montreal, is a great-grandson.

[Illustration: Herman W. Ryland.]

    Mon. 29th--Met Lord and Lady Dorchester at Mr. Grant's, so I did
    not go to the concert.

    Tues. 30th--Drove in my open carriole to Belmont; returned after
    dinner and went to Mr. Ainslie's; won five rubbers at whist,
    having been braced and brightened by the cold drive this
    afternoon.

    Wed. 31st--Drove to Fort Louis Gate, and walked on the plains
    with Lady Dorchester; supped at Mrs. Ogden's.




  CHAPTER XVI.

  _RETURN TO UPPER CANADA._


Mrs. Simcoe, satisfied that the war trouble she feared was not imminent,
determined to return to Upper Canada notwithstanding her aversion to a
winter journey west, as expressed in some of her letters. She resolved
to make the trip by the only available route, a land journey along the
north side of the St. Lawrence.

Her stay at Quebec had been a round of pleasure and gaiety. Those in
official circles, as well as the leaders in the social life of the
ancient city, had welcomed her return, and as her diary shows, had paid
her respect and kindly courtesy, for every day functions, some of the
major character and others of a minor, occupied her time. Mrs. Simcoe
was a most affectionate wife, and every express to Upper Canada carried
letters to the Governor telling him of her daily doings at Quebec. She
left Belmont on the afternoon of 6th February.

Late in the fall of 1794 the Governor had left Niagara for the purpose
of making a personal inspection of different parts of the province. He
visited York and from thence proceeded to Kingston, where he arrived on
4th December. The journey, owing to the lateness in the season, was
stormy and hazardous, but was accomplished, however, without mishap. His
time in Kingston was fully and actively employed, and the early part of
February found him at Johnstown, a hamlet east of Prescott. Here he laid
plans for a road to the forks of the Rideau, for the establishment of
settlements previously surveyed, and for personally investigating the
water communication with the Ottawa. All schemes were perforce set
aside. In March Mrs. Simcoe joined her husband at New Johnstown
(Cornwall), and after spending a few days at Johnstown they repaired to
Kingston, where the Governor became very ill and was unable to travel
for several weeks. On the 15th May they left for York.

    Thurs. Jan. 1st, 1795--I dined at the Chateau. There were about
    forty persons. In the evening there was a rout or assembly, for
    introducing strangers. These routs used to be held frequently,
    but since Mr. Carleton's death, which is many months since,
    there has not been any.

Note.--Thomas Carleton, a son of Lord Dorchester, born in 1774, died in
1794.

    My having dined at the Chateau without having been formally
    introduced is a compliment not usually paid. There were 63
    ladies this evening. I won a rubber at whist; there was but one
    card table. The people are unaccountably formal when they come
    to the Chateau, tho' Lady D. proposes cards and wishes them to
    be amused.

    Fri. 2nd--At Madame Bàby's; the thermometer ten degrees above. I
    preferred coming home in the open carriole.

    Tues. 6th--I went with Lady Dorchester in her carriole beyond
    Woodfield. The carriole was large and pleasant, and a seat in
    front for children. Her drivers are Canadians and, therefore,
    will not wear liveries. The Canadian coats, with capots and
    sashes, look very picturesque. I drank tea at the Chateau, and
    Miss Carleton danced.

Note.--Miss Carleton was a daughter of Lord Dorchester.

    Wed. 7th--I dined _en famille_ at the Chateau, carrying the
    children. Supped at Mrs. Taylor's.

    Thurs. 8th--I went to Belmont.

    Fri. 9th--I went to Powell Place in a snowstorm, and returned to
    Belmont at night.

    Sun. 11th--Coll. Beckwith mentioned Governor Simcoe having the
    rank of Major-General. (He received this rank in October, 1794.)

    Mon. 12th--Dined at Madame Bàby's; went to the concert.
    Thermometer 10 degrees below.

    Tues. 13th--Dined at the Chateau; a "rout" in the evening. Miss
    Carleton is very ill and Lady Dorchester the picture of misery.

    Wed. 14th--I went to Belmont in the open carriole; dined and
    returned in time to go to Mrs. Le Maistre's, where I played
    cards and supped. Spent two or three days at Powell Place.

    Tues. 20th--A ball at the Chateau, as the 18th was Sunday. The
    ladies much dressed. Miss Williams the most so. Miss Carleton
    stayed a very short time in the room, having been excessively
    ill for this last week.

    Thurs. 22nd--Mild weather and a S.E. wind, which occasions a
    good deal of illness, and also inconvenience, for the meat,
    bought as usual in large quantities in the autumn, will not
    keep.

    Sat. 24th--I walked on the plains with Lady Dorchester, and have
    learned to wrap myself up enough to defy the cold, but the
    weight of clothes is very fatiguing. Dined with Mrs. Taylor.
    Drank tea at the Chateau.

    Sun. 25th--At Belmont.

    Mon. 26th--Drank tea with Miss Mountain. Lord Dorchester sent
    his dormeuse, a travelling carriage adapted for sleeping, that I
    might see whether I should like that sort of a carriage to
    travel in to Upper Canada. It is like an open carriole, with a
    head made of sealskin, and lined with baize; a large bear or
    buffalo skin fixes in front, which perfectly secures you from
    wind and weather, and may be unhooked if the weather is fine or
    mild; a low seat, and feather bed to keep one's feet warm. I
    drove a mile or two in it and like it much, and bespoke one to
    be made the same.

    Tues. 27th--I dined at the Chateau. Francis is ill.

    Wed. 28th--I dined at Mr. George Longmore's. Francis is worse. A
    letter from the Governor.

Note.--Mr. George Longmore was an apothecary on the Hospital staff, and
a surgeon in the Ordnance Department.

    Thurs. 29th--Dined at the Chateau, and carried the children
    there.

    Fri. 30th--Dined at Mr. Taylor's; supped at Mr. Coffin's.

    Sat. 31st--Lady Dorchester came to see me. I dined at the
    Chateau and supped at Madame Bàby's. Mr. Mayne is arrived at
    Montreal, and the Governor on his way to Coll. Gray's to meet
    me. Sent off my baggage on a traineau, a sled used for that
    purpose, to Montreal.

    Sun. Feb. 1st--Dined at Mr. Taylor's. Drank tea at the Chateau.

    Mon. 2nd--Dined at Mr. Taylor's. Went to Miss Williams'. It was
    her birthday, and there was a ball. Danced with Capt. Archdall,
    of the King's Own Regiment of Foot.

Note.--Captain Archdall received his rank in the 4th, or King's Own,
Regiment of Foot on 2nd September, 1795.


    Tues. 3rd--Dined at the Chateau.

    Wed. 4th--Drove to Powell Place, drank tea with Mrs. Craigie;
    went with her to the concert; returned; played three rubbers at
    whist and supped.

    Thurs. 5th--Lady Dorchester called to take leave of me. I slept
    at Belmont.

    Fri. Feb. 6th--I left Belmont at two o'clock; the children,
    Collins and a great deal of baggage in a heavy dormeuse or
    carriole, with a head built after that of Lord Dorchester's. I
    went six leagues to Pointe aux Trembles. It was quite dark
    before I arrived there; a tolerable Post House.

    Sat. 7th--I set off at seven; the weather bright and pleasant,
    tho' the wind E. At Jacques Cartier the ice was so rotten I was
    obliged to go a league higher to cross the river with safety;
    when I came to Ste. Anne's the sun shone so bright I thought I
    should have time to go two stages further to Cap Madeleine, near
    Three Rivers, where I was advised to sleep if I went further
    than Ste. Anne's; but when I came to the next stage, Champlain
    (75 miles S.W. of Quebec), I was frightened at the ice cracking
    on the river, and when I stopped at the Post House it was so
    perfectly dark that I could not reconcile myself to going
    further.

    Sun. 8th--The house at Champlain was wretched, and the people
    said that travellers never slept at it, but on my repeating a
    request for a room they gave up their sitting-room, which
    appeared so dismal that I could not sleep, tho' I lay down on a
    boudet. In the night a great dog crept in from under the stove,
    and people were talking continually. The children went to bed. I
    would not allow them to stay to breakfast in a place I had
    wished to quit from the moment I entered it. The people looked
    as if they belonged to the cave dwellers. When I came to Cap
    Madeleine I had the expectation of passing very bad ice within a
    mile, which intimidated me so much that I would not stay to
    breakfast. We went two leagues above the usual place of
    crossing, and even there saw water on each side of the carriage.
    We were driven by so very old a man that they sent another to
    take care of him over the most dangerous part of the road. I
    wanted to detain him the whole stage, but he would not stay to
    affront the old man; he said he had driven over 60 years. He was
    very near overturning us before we came to Three Rivers. It was
    Sunday and the streets filled with people, so I would not go out
    to breakfast, but kept Collins (who never liked losing a meal)
    without her breakfast till five in the afternoon, when we
    arrived at a very comfortable Post House at Maskinonge, a
    village on the north shore, where I had a very good dinner and
    stayed that night. We had travelled twenty leagues and a half.

    Mon. 9th--The Dep. P.M.G. at Quebec having sent orders to all
    the Post Houses on the road to keep horses ready for me, and
    told the courier to pay for them, I had not the least trouble of
    waiting or paying. "Labadie (the courier) paye tout," and they
    ask me no further questions. The weather has been delightful
    to-day. I thought the expanse of miles of ice from Pointe aux
    Trembles to Montreal looked very formidable, but it was good
    ice, and we arrived at Mr. Edward Gray's at five o'clock, having
    travelled twenty-four leagues and a half since we left
    Maskinonge at five this morning. The post horses are very good;
    they drive tandem, and change every three leagues.

    Tues. 10th--I set off at eight this morning in my dormeuse. Mr.
    Mayne followed in a carriole, and servants in a third. When I
    was told we were to go with the same horses to Pointe au Bodet,
    63 miles, I thought we should have a very tedious journey, but
    it was far from being so; the ice was excellent.

    It was a delightful drive across the wild part of the St.
    Lawrence below its junction with the Ottawa to the Cedars, where
    we rested the horses two hours, and they brought us to the
    Pointe au Bodet by six o'clock. When we were on Lake St. Francis
    my driver left the carriage and walked behind with the other
    drivers; every half-mile he came and whipped the horses
    violently, and I saw no more of him till we had gone another
    half-mile, the horses steadily pursuing a slight track on the
    snow; but had there been air holes in the track they pursued, as
    sometimes happens on the ice, what would have become of us? It
    put me in mind of the reindeer, who travel self-conducted. The
    Governor came half-way to Pointe au Bodet to meet me to-day, and
    returned to Coll. James Gray's, as I was not arrived.

    Wed. 11th--I set out by seven, and by eleven had the pleasure to
    see the Governor quite well at Coll. Gray's, where we stayed.

    Fri. 13th--Mr. Mayne returned to Montreal. The Governor and I
    set out towards Kingston; stopped an hour at a good inn, where
    the sessions are held--the last house in Stormont; went about 35
    miles to Mr. Patterson's at the Rapide Plat, where we slept--a
    damp room. The roads to the west of Montreal are excellent,
    because they drive the horses abreast and make the carrioles
    wider.

Note.--Mr. Patterson was a son-in-law of the Honorable John Munro and
lived in what has been known for more than a hundred years as "The Old
Blue House," about four miles east of Iroquois. It stood on a bluff of
the river at "Flagg's" at the head of Rapide du Plat, but has been moved
twice within the past twenty years, and now stands on the north side of
the road. It is only half the original size, a wing having been removed
and the front altered in changing the old house from place to place.
Within its walls were entertained almost every noted man of the first
forty years of the history of Upper Canada.

    Sat. 14th--Came to dinner at Johnstone, opposite Oswegatchie,
    fifteen miles from the Rapide Plat.

    This place was laid out for a town, but there are but a few
    houses built; one of them is intended for an inn. The Governor
    has been residing at it for a fortnight, expecting me here. I
    intend to stay here ten days. Major Littlehales is with him, and
    they keep a very good house, promising to give me turkeys and
    venison every day. There are two comfortable rooms, and what I
    most desire are the stoves in them. The weather is severely cold
    and bright. We play at whist in the evening. The journey has
    quite established Francis' health, tho' he was so ill when we
    left Quebec.

Note.--Johnstown is just east of Prescott, the scene of the Battle of
the Windmill of 1837. It is not to be confused with "New Johnstown," the
name by which Cornwall was first known.

    Thurs, 19th--I had not been here two days when I felt the
    violent effects of a cold I caught by sleeping in a damp room at
    the Rapide Plat; it has particularly fallen into my eyes and
    affected them, so much so that I think I shall never recover
    totally. I was obliged to-night to throw off most of the
    wrappages I had bound about my eyes and head, and go to a ball
    given by the inhabitants of the province to the Governor; people
    came 40 miles to it in carrioles. I was really so ill I could
    scarcely hear or see, and possibly neglected the very people I
    meant to be most civil to.

    Fri. 20th--Drove seven and a half miles to dine at Mr. Jones';
    returned by nine o'clock.

Note.--Ephraim Jones, ninth son of Colonel Elisha Jones, was a United
Empire Loyalist who settled in the township of Augusta, county of
Grenville. He is stated in Lord Dorchester's list to have been a
Commissary. After the Revolutionary War Mr. Jones had charge of the
supplies granted by the British Government to the settlers in Upper
Canada. He was a Justice of the Peace and a member of the first House of
Assembly. In 1790 he received a grant of three hundred acres of land in
the township of Augusta, now owned by Thomas Murdock.

    Sat. 21st--Dined at Mr. T. Frazier's (Fraser).

    Sun. 22nd--Dined at Mr. W. Frazier's (Fraser).

    Mon. 23rd--Thurs. 26th--A great deal of snow fell these days,
    and the inhabitants endeavoured to persuade the Governor not to
    set out till the snow was beaten; but a gentleman residing with
    us had business at Kingston, and assured the Governor it would
    be excellent travelling. So we set off at eight, and met two Mr.
    Jones', who were coming to request the Governor not to undertake
    the journey yet. When they found him determined to proceed, they
    said they would go also, to beat the way and to hasten our
    journey; they took us into their lighter carriages, or we never
    should have got on, the snow was so heavy. We stopped at another
    Jones', where there was the largest wood fire I ever saw; he
    also set out to beat the road, and so did several other people.
    One gentleman came some miles below Oswegatchie for that
    purpose, and with this assistance we went 19 miles to Mr.
    Jessup's house in the woods, where we slept, but the people who
    so civilly travelled with us had to go back again, as there was
    no accommodation for them and their horses. It was six before we
    arrived. It was the coldest day remembered in Upper Canada. Mr.
    Jones' finger was slightly frost bit; he was speaking of a very
    pretty pond near one of his mills. I asked him of what size. He
    said 300 acres.

Note.--Mr. Jessup was Major Edward Jessup, born in Stamford County,
Conn., in 1735. After the failure of the Burgoyne expedition in 1781 the
provincials were re-organized, and the corps known as the Loyal Rangers
was formed. Major Edward Jessup was in command. He spent several years
in England and on returning to Canada settled in Grenville, in the
township of Augusta, the pioneer town of Prescott having been begun on
his property. His son, Lieutenant Edward Jessup, was elected as member
for Grenville in the second Legislature. The son died in Prescott in
1815, while the father died at the same place in the following year. The
site of Major Jessup's house is now occupied by the entrance to Fort
Wellington, Prescott. The surviving descendants of Major Edward Jessup
are Mr. Edward Jessup, until recently Collector of Customs at Prescott,
and Misses Clarendon and Zaire Jessup.

    Fri. 27th--We left Mr. Jessup's at nine, drove nine miles
    through the woods to a small cottage; then proceeded 18 miles to
    Cary's, beyond the Gananowui. We went four miles on the ice
    before we came to that river, at the mouth of which the ice is
    very bad, so we drove as fast as possible, as that is thought
    the safest way on rotten ice. I was very much frightened, for it
    was dark, and I knew that if they did not keep exactly the right
    track, which could scarcely be seen, we were in the greatest
    dangers.

    When we arrived at Cary's we heard that Mr. Forsyth had lost
    both his horses three days ago at the mouth of the Gananowui, by
    keeping too far from the shore; they saved the carriole by
    cutting the traces, but neither he nor his companions were
    dexterous enough to save the horses. The people of the States
    are particularly expert in saving horses from drowning; they
    travel with ropes, which they fasten round the horses' necks if
    they fall into the water; pulling it stops their breath, and
    then they float and can be pulled out; then they take off the
    rope as quickly as possible, and the horse travels on as well as
    before.

    When Governor Simcoe was driven by Swayzie to Detroit he carried
    these "choke ropes," and had occasion to use them. A "choke
    rope," or check band, is a small strap of rope or leather by
    which the bridle is fastened around the neck of a horse.

    Sat. 28th--Cary's an indifferent house, but warm. We left Cary's
    at nine, drove near the mills at Gananowui; stopped at a farm at
    Howland's, half-way to Kingston, where we arrived at six
    o'clock, having travelled 20 miles thro' woods. I was amused by
    observing the various barks of trees--the most deeply indented
    and light coloured white ash, the rugged shag bark hickory, the
    regular marked iron wood, the perpendicular ribbed cedar, the
    bass wood, the varieties of white and black oak, the maple,
    chestnut, etc; the strong lines on the pine, particularly the
    Norway, which is of a yellow brown, and when cut approached to a
    bright orange colour; among all this the smooth bark of the
    beech looked as naked as a frog, and had a very mean appearance
    amongst the rest of the trees.

The following verses were found in the MSS. of the diary. They are dated
"Kingston, January 1st, 1795," and were evidently composed by Governor
Simcoe in anticipation of his wife's return to Upper Canada.

  "Kingston, January 1st, 1795.

  "Twice six revolving years have run their course thro' yonder azure plains, diffusing joy.
  Gladness and light has discontinuous mov'd,
  Since thou, Eliza, overflowing source of happiness domestic, dost employ
  My wedded thoughts, most honour'd, most belov'd.
  And if the gathering clouds of fleeting life
  Besides, thy presence soon illumines the scene,
  And pleasure draws from elemental strife;
  And now when Night and Absence intervene
  O may my wishes wing thy speedy way;
  Return, thou source of joy; return, thou source of day."

    Sun. March 1st--We are very comfortably lodged in the barracks
    at Kingston. As there are few officers here, we have the mess
    room to dine in and a room over it for the Governor's office,
    and these, as well as the kitchen, are detached from our other
    three rooms, which is very comfortable. The drawing-room has not
    a stove in it, which is a misfortune, but it is too late in the
    winter to be of much consequence. We have excellent wood fires.
    I went to church to-day and heard an excellent sermon by Mr.
    Stuart.

Note.--The barracks where Mrs. Simcoe stayed were the Soldiers' or the
old Tête du Pont barracks, located on almost the same site as the
present barracks, Kingston. There are none of the buildings standing
now, but on the square are the remains of the foundations of the
buildings erected towards the latter part of the eighteenth century.

    Tues. 3rd--A thaw. Mr. Frazier, who drove my carriole, set out
    yesterday to return home.

    Sat. 7th--Dined at Mr. Stuart's, the Rector of Kingston.

    Sun. 8th--An express from York.

    Mon. 9th--We are desirous of seeing the Bay of Quinte; the ice
    is as smooth as possible and, I am told, very pleasant to drive
    upon, and possibly the change of air may abate the violent cough
    I still have. We therefore determined to set out to-day. We
    called at Mr. Booth's farm, 11 miles distant; the next 11 miles
    brought us to Mr. Macdonell's, where we dined and slept.

Note.--The "King's Sawmills," subsequently known as Booth's Mills, were
situated on Lot No. 18 in King's Township.

    Tues. 10th--Set off and drove four miles on this delightful ice
    to Mr. Fisher's, in Hay Bay. He was not at home. We proceeded 15
    miles further to Mr. Cartwright's mills, on the Appanee River,
    and slept at his house, a romantic spot.

Note.--Hay Bay is in the township of Fredericksburg, running S.W. into
East Bay, making the fork of the north channel of the Bay of Quinte. Mr.
Fisher of Hay Bay was probably Judge Fisher, who lived in that district
at the time.

The Appanee River is in Lennox County, Ont. The original spelling was
"Appanee," or variations, such as "Appanea," "Appanie." On a map of 1815
it is to be found "Apannee." In the Clark Becord book it is given twice
as Napanee, once in 1788 and again in 1789. On the original Crown Lands
map the river is named "Appannee," and the following legend on the map,
"Mills built on the Appinnie Biver under the sanction of
Lieutenant-Governor Hamilton," locates the site on the left bank in
Fredericksburg Township. Since Naw-paw-nay is the Indian (Mohawk) for
"flour" this is sometimes given as the origin of the name, but since the
original name has not the initial "N," and as the name was there before
the flour mill was erected, we must look elsewhere. An intelligent
Indian student suggested that it is related to "opining," which means
"potato." The suggestion has also been made by a student of Canadian
history, Mr. W. S. Herrington, K.C., of Napanee, that the Indian name
for flour (Naw-paw-nay) may have been derived from or may have
originated from the name Napanee after flour milling began at the Falls.

[Illustration: Mill on the Appanee River, 1795.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Mr. Robert Clark was instructed by the Government to build a saw and
also a grist mill at the Falls on the Napanee River, the work being
under the direction of Honorable Richard Cartwright. Mr. C. C. James,
Deputy Minister of Agriculture, states that in a record book in his
possession the first entry, "Appenea Falls, 8th November, 1785," marks
the beginning of construction. The saw mill was set up March, 1786, and
the grist mill on 25th May, 1786. The latter is the mill shown in Mrs.
Simcoe's picture. Grinding wheat began in December of 1786, or early in
1787. For some years the mill was in charge of a Government officer
named James Clarke, who, by the way, was in no way related to Robert
Clark, the builder. In August, 1799, the Government transferred the mill
and lots 18 and 19 in the 7th concession of Fredericksburg to Honorable
Richard Cartwright. The mills were situated on the left bank of the
river just below the Falls. Until recent years the old Joy sawmill
occupied, in all probability, the exact site of the original sawmill,
and the Ross grist mill, just below it and situated under the hill,
which was in operation some years ago, was the successor of the original
grist mill. Whether it occupied the exact site cannot now be determined,
but if it was not the original mill reconstructed, it must have occupied
approximately the same site.

Richard Cartwright, great-grandfather of Sir Richard Cartwright, was
born in 1720. He came to America and settled in New York about 1742,
removing to Canada after the Revolutionary War. His son (Honorable)
Richard Cartwright, who owned the mills at Napanee after 1799, was born
2nd February, 1759, and died 1815. He served in Butler's Rangers 1778-9
and was a member of the Legislative Council of Upper Canada from 1792.
He was also a Justice of the Common Pleas.

Two of the sons of Honorable Richard Cartwright were Robert David and
John Solomon. Reverend Robert David married Harriet, daughter of Conway
Edward Dobbs of Dublin, Ireland, a son being Sir Richard Cartwright, and
a grandson A. D. Cartwright, secretary of the Railway Commission,
Ottawa. John Solomon married Sarah Hayter Macaulay, daughter of Dr.
James Macaulay of the Queen's Rangers. James S. Cartwright, K.C., Master
in Chambers, and John R. Cartwright, K.C., Deputy Attorney-General, are
surviving sons.

    Wed. 11th--We are now half way up the Bay of Quinte. Had we set
    out a week sooner we might have gone 50 miles further, but a
    general thaw is so soon expected that we do not venture. We are
    now travelling on a coat of upper ice formed about a fortnight
    since, and between that and the original ice is two feet of
    water. The rapidity with which a thaw comes on is incredible;
    from the ice being excellent, in six hours it is sometimes
    impassable.

    We set out at eleven and drove 14 miles to Trumpour's Point, so
    named from a man of that name who lives there. He was formerly
    in the 16th Dragoons, and lives by selling horses; his wife gave
    me some good Dutch cakes, as I could not wait to eat the
    chickens she was roasting in a kettle without water. This house
    commands a fine view. We passed a village of Mohawk Indians at
    Mohawk Bay, opposite the Appanee River.

    From Trumpour's we went to Mr. McDonell's and slept there. This
    bay is about a mile across, thickly inhabited on the north side.
    The farms are reckoned the most productive in the province. The
    journey has been of great benefit to my health.

Note.--Paul and Haunts Trumpour, who were brothers, appear to have been
the only pioneers of this family in the Bay of Quinte District; and the
latter, it would seem, came direct to Prince Edward County, while the
former settled at Adolphustown. There is no record of Haunts having
lived at the latter place, but the name of Paul is to be found in the
"Annual Return of the Inhabitants of Adolphustown," continuously from
1794 to 1812.

The Mohawk Settlement was on the Bay of Quinte, west of Richmond, and
between the river Shannon and Bowen's Creek.

    Thur. 12th--Left Mr. McDonell's, called at Booth's, and arrived
    back at Kingston at three o'clock.

    Sun. 15th--An express by land arrived from Niagara, and went by
    York and the Bay of Quinte, for the navigation is not yet open
    across the lake. Mr. Mayne arrived from Montreal; he says the
    roads are now very good. Mr. Stuart preached one of the most
    impressive and best sermons I have ever heard, the text--"Now is
    the accepted time, now is the day of salvation."

    Wed. 18th--An express went to Niagara. A person lately crossing
    Lake Champlain passed a large hole in the ice and an infant,
    alive, lying by the side of it. By tracks it appeared that a
    sleigh had fallen in, and it was known that a heavy-laden
    sleigh, with families in it, left the country on the opposite
    shore the day before; probably the mother threw the child out as
    the sleigh went down. The gentlemen carried the infant to
    Montreal, where a subscription was raised for her maintenance--a
    good circumstance this for the commencement of a heroine's life
    in a novel.

    Fri. 20th--A severe frost. Mr. Mayne drove me on the harbour,
    and Lt. Frasier, of the 60th Regiment, drove the Governor. A
    large party to dinner.

    Sat. 21st--The Governor so ill to-day he could not leave his
    room to dine with Mr. Breakenridge.

Note.--James Breakenridge settled in Bennington, Vt. He was lieutenant
of militia; born in 1721, died 1783, leaving issue, besides others, two
sons, David and James, who were officers in the Royalist Army (Roger's
Rangers), in the Revolutionary War, at the conclusion of which they came
to Canada. Mr. Breakenridge of whom Mrs. Simcoe writes was James,
colonel of militia and lieutenant of County of Leeds, who settled in
Elizabethtown. The late Mr. Walter B. Read, K.C., Toronto, son of the
late D. B. Read, K.C., was a great-grandnephew of James Breakenridge of
Elizabethtown.

    Tues. 31st--Capt. Parr came to take command of the garrison; he
    relieves Capt. Porter, of the 60th Regiment.

Note.--Captain Parr was the son of John Parr, Governor of Nova Scotia in
1782. Rochefoucauld, in writing of a visit to Kingston in July, 1795,
says that he and his party "had a letter from General Simcoe to the
commanding officer in Kingston, who, at our arrival, was Captain Parr of
the 60th Regiment. Six hours after, the detachment commanded by that
gentleman was relieved by another of the same regiment, under the orders
of Major Dobson. This circumstance, however, did not prevent Captain
Parr from giving us the most obliging proofs of civility and kindness.
He is the son of the aged Governor of Nova Scotia."

    Fri. April 24th--The Governor has been so ill since the 21st of
    March that I have not left his room since that day. He has had
    such a cough that some nights he could not lie down, but sat in
    a chair, total loss of appetite, and such headaches that he
    could not bear any person but me to walk across the room or
    speak loud. There was no medical advice but that of a horse
    doctor who pretended to be an apothecary. The Governor, out of
    consideration for the convenience of the staff-surgeon, had
    allowed him to remain at Niagara, and his not being made to
    attend his duty has caused me a great deal of anxiety to see the
    Governor so ill without having proper attendance. Capt. Brant's
    sister prescribed a root--it is, I believe, calamus, a genus of
    palm, one species of which yields a resin called dragon's blood,
    the root of which is the sweet flag--which really relieved his
    cough in a very short time.

    Sat. 25th--Walked out this morning.

    Sun. 26th--I went to church. It rained. My umbrella was
    forgotten, and the wet through my sleeves gave me a cold, which
    perhaps I was more susceptible of from not having been out of
    the house so long.

    Mon. 27th--I had a fit of the ague. The first boats went down to
    Montreal.

    Wed. 29th--I had a fit of the ague.

    Fri. May 1st--The first boats arrived from Montreal to-day. The
    unusual mild weather occasioned Lake Champlain to freeze very
    late. Mr. Frobisher's sleigh was lost in crossing it; it
    contained many bags of dollars and valuable things.

    Sun. 3rd--The ague again.

    Mon. 4th--As I am going away so soon, I am obliged to invite the
    ladies to dinner, but I am ill and weak. I was obliged to sit in
    the drawing-room while they went to dinner.

    Tues. 5th--The ague.

    Wed. 6th.--Ladies dined here. I walked in the evening.

    Thurs. 7th--Very ill indeed.

    Mon. 11th--I drank tea with Mrs. Stuart, and much fatigued by
    that drive--only a mile.

    Tues. 12th--I went on board the "Onondaga," the Government
    schooner, but the wind coming ahead, we could not sail.

    Thurs. 14th--I saw "The Mohawk" launched, a Government boat of
    80 tons. She is the size of the "Mississaga." She came with such
    rapidity that it appeared as if she would have run down the ship
    we were in, which was at anchor ahead of her. I went on shore,
    and walked on Point Frederick and the hill above it. Miss
    Bouchette, daughter of Commodore, dined on board with me. I have
    not had the ague since I have been in the ship.

Note.--Point Frederick is between Kingston Harbour and Haldimand Cove.

    Fri. 15th--We weighed anchor at twelve. After sailing five miles
    a head wind and a stiff gale arose; we returned to the harbour.
    At two the wind changed and we sailed again; a wet afternoon.

    Sat. 16th--Unpleasant, cold weather, little wind.

    Sun. 17th--About 5 p.m. we were off Gibraltar Point at York. It
    blew extremely hard from the shore; the Captain chose to turn
    the Point without shifting a sail; he was supposed to be not
    sober, and the Governor ordered the English lieutenant to give
    orders, and he brought us safely into York Harbour. We were
    certainly in great danger, for the "Onondaga" is so built that
    she would overset sooner than carry away anything. I was
    unusually frightened, having dreamt twice following the other
    night that I was lost in the "Onondaga." My servant came several
    times to tell me we were going to the bottom. I told her to shut
    the door and leave me quiet, for the motion of the ship made me
    sick.

    Mon. 18th--At one o'clock we went on shore.

    Thurs. 21st--A moor-hen--a kind of water fowl, which lives on
    rushes in marshy ground--was brought to me to-day, and
    repeatedly pecked at the reeds represented in the tapestry, not
    touching any other part.

    York, Sun. 24th--Some ladies dined with me. Walked in the
    evening. The weather damp and cold.

    Mon. 25th--I went with the Governor to the mill (the Government
    mill) on the Humber, and gathered a beautiful species of
    polygala or milk wort. I was slightly attacked by the ague.

    Wed. 27th--The ague.

    Mon. June 1st--I went in a boat to Francis' estate, Castle
    Frank. I drank tea at Playter's.

Note.--Immediately beyond the Castle Frank woods, on the property later
known as Drumsnab, was the estate of Captain George Playter, and
directly across, on the opposite side of the river, that of his son,
Captain John Playter, both of whom emigrated from Pennsylvania after the
Declaration of Independence. Official records show that Township Lot No.
20, in the 2nd Concession on east side of Yonge and north side of Bloor,
was granted to Captain George Playter on 20th August, 1796. Captain
George Playter's house stood on the present site of Mr. A. E. Kemp's
residence, No. 2, Castle Frank Crescent. This residence was built in
1902, and when the excavations were being made the laborers came upon
the stone foundation of Captain George Playter's residence of 1795.

One of Captain George Playter's sons was James Playter, who had a son
James. His children are Edgar Manning, manager of a branch of the
Canadian Bank of Commerce, Queen and Bathurst Streets, Toronto; Nelson,
of Toronto; Catherine Louisa and Mary M. Playter, while Mrs. Barlow
Cumberland of Port Hope is a direct descendant of Captain George Playter
of early York, through his daughter Mary, who became the wife of Thomas
Ward, a barrister at York, afterwards of Port Hope, Ontario.

    Thurs. 4th--Company at dinner, and a ball in the evening as
    usual.

    Sat. 6th--Francis gave a dinner on his birthday to the soldiers'
    children. The Shaws dined with him at an upper table.

    Tues. 9th--We sent the children and servants in the "Onondaga,"
    and intend going ourselves to-morrow in the canoe. Dined at
    Commissary McGill's.

    Wed. 10th--The weather so bad we could not move.

    Thurs. 11th--The weather continues adverse to our quitting York.
    We had a dance this evening.

    Mon. 15th--We set out in a canoe at seven, dined at the
    Sixteen-Mile Creek, and arrived at Jones', three miles beyond
    Burlington Bay, at seven in the evening. I was delighted with
    the canoe, the motion so easy, so pleasant, so quiet, like what
    I should suppose being in a palanquin. We sat on cushions in the
    bottom of the canoe. The Indians brought us strawberries not
    quite ripe. Jones' sister put them in a saucepan with water and
    sugar, and boiled them, and I thought them very good with my
    tea.

Note.--Mr. Augustus Jones was Deputy-Surveyor. The family emigrated from
Wales to America, and settled on the Hudson River. He was recommended to
Governor Simcoe by Mr. Cobden and at the Governor's request came to
Canada and practised his profession as surveyor in different parts of
the province. His house was built on the shore near Stoney Creek,
presumably the site of what was known as the "Salt Works Farm." Augustus
Jones and Brant were friends, and owing to the proximity of their homes,
exchanges of hospitality were frequently made, and many pleasant hours
spent together.

    Tues. 16th--We left Jones' at seven, dined near the Twenty, and
    arrived at eight o'clock at Navy Hall.




  CHAPTER XVII.

  _VISIT OF DUKE DE LA ROCHEFOUCAULD._


In 1795, Mr. Hammond, the British Ambassador at Washington, had informed
Governor Simcoe in an official letter that the Duke de la
Rochefoucauld-Liancourt, who was on a visit to the United States,
proposed paying a visit to Upper Canada and to Niagara. Letters to the
same effect came from the Duke of Portland, who was a personal friend of
Rochefoucauld's.

The Duke was an eminent man in France. He was born in 1747 and lived
beyond the allotted span, for he was eighty years of age when he died in
1827. His loyalty to the unfortunate Louis XVI. was his undoing, for he
was compelled to seek other climes while his native France was in the
throes of revolution. He spent several years in England and America, but
returned to France under the Consulate. There he resumed the active part
he had played in education, benevolence and reform.

[Illustration: Duke de la Rochefoucauld.]

The Duke was welcomed by the Governor in June, 1795, and accepted his
invitation to "remain with him, to sleep in his house and consider
ourselves as at home." The visit of the Duke and what he wrote
concerning his visit to Upper Canada are not pertinent to the contents
of this volume, and will be found in the biography of Governor Simcoe,
now in course of preparation. Suffice it to say that the Duke wrote a
work on his travels in North America, the contents of which were
severely criticized. He seemed to have no appreciation of the fact that
he and his party were guests, and he violated all the rules of
hospitality by relating private conversations and gossip, coloring and
garbling and distorting incidents and conversations as if his purpose
was to sow the seeds of discord and ill-feeling. He apparently had no
consideration of personal delicacy, and instead of writing in a friendly
manner he seemed to regard himself when writing concerning the British
Government as a "foreigner and a foe," as the English translator of his
volume admits. The Duke was in Canada from the 20th June until the 22nd
July, 1795. The Governor, Lord Dorchester, had doubts as to the
advisability of his visit, and refused to permit the Duke to descend the
St. Lawrence and visit Lower Canada. His remarks about Mrs. Simcoe show
he lacked the predominant characteristic of a French gentleman and that
he forgot that he was the guest not only of the Governor but of his
charming wife, who, with true British hospitality, were both doing all
they could to make his visit a pleasant one. He says:--

"Mrs. Simcoe is a lady of thirty-six years of age. She is bashful and
speaks little; but she is a woman of sense, handsome and amiable, and
fulfils all the duties of the mother and wife with the most scrupulous
exactness. The performance of the latter she carries so far as to act
the part of a private secretary to her husband. Her talents for drawing,
the practice of which she confines to maps and plans, enable her to be
extremely useful to the Governor."

As an "Anglo-Canadian" (D. W. Smith), who reviewed that part of the
Duke's work referring to his visit to Upper Canada, wrote after the
death of General Simcoe in 1806, "Was it well done of the _ci-devant_
Duke de la Rochefoucauld (while he was fostered by an English Governor,
in a country where he was received with as much attention as if he had
then actually enjoyed his honours and his prosperity) to publish to the
world that this exemplary lady performed the duties of a wife with so
much scrupulous exactness as to act the part of a private secretary to
her husband? Was she thus to be metamorphosed into a clerk because she
sometimes copied her husband's confidential despatches? Fye, sir--you
should have respected the lady's delicate feeling; although you had none
such for her lord. But Mrs. Simcoe is well known to all who loved and
followed the General's fortunes, and no reflection on her conduct,
whether powerful or puerile, can shake their attachment to the relict of
their friend, or induce the world to believe or form any opinion on the
Duke's assertions, except that of ill-nature and ingratitude in his own
breast."

Dr. Scadding in his work of "Toronto of Old" writes that the Duke in his
statement about Mrs. Simcoe might have added "that her skill, facility
and taste were attested by numerous sketch-books and portfolios of
Canadian scenery in its primitive condition, taken by her hand, to be
treasured up carefully and reverently by her immediate descendants, but
unfortunately not accessible generally to Canadian students."

Mrs. Simcoe was not favorably impressed with her visitors. She thought
"their appearance is perfectly democratic and dirty," and this
conviction was evidently a settled one, for she writes, "I dislike them
all."

    Mon. 22nd--The Duke de Liancourt arrived, strongly recommended
    by the Duke of Portland, Mr. Hammond, etc.; therefore Genl.
    Simcoe is obliged to pay every attention to him. He is attended
    by Mr. Gilmard, an Englishman, a French naval officer named
    Dupetit-Thouars, and M. de Blacons. Their appearance is
    perfectly democratic and dirty.

    Wed. 24th--Monsr. Blacons returns immediately to the United
    States, where, I hear, he keeps a shop. Monsr. Dupetit-Thouars
    and Gilmard are going to visit York.

    Mon. 29th--The Governor took the Duke de Liancourt to see
    Forty-Mile Creek. I dislike them all.

    Thur. July 2nd--The Governor returned. Mrs. McGill came to stay
    a few days with me during the Commissary's absence.

[Illustration: Mrs. Tice's House, near Queenstown, where Mrs. Simcoe
Spent Part of the Summer of 1795.

(_From a drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Sun. 12th--The thermometer 95 in the shade.

    Tues. 21st--Mrs. McGill returned to York.

    Fri. 24th--Coll. and Mrs. Campbell, from Detroit, dined with me.

    Sat. Aug. 1st--Excessive hot day. Coll. and Mrs. Campbell went
    in our boat to Queenstown; we rode. From thence they drove up
    the mountain, and we dined in the arbour by the side of the
    river, from which we were driven by a violent shower. We drank
    tea at Mrs. Hamilton's, and came home in the boat.

    Wed. 5th--We went to the Queenstown landing with Mrs. Macaulay,
    and dined by the rock which Hennepin mentions; a very pleasant
    day.

Note.--Father Louis Hennepin, a missionary, arrived at Quebec in 1675,
and joined the party of La Salle in 1678. When they reached the Illinois
River La Salle was forced to return and Hennepin proceeded without him
in 1680, exploring the Upper Mississippi. His picture of the Falls of
Niagara is the earliest picture of the cataract known. He mentions a
rock at Niagara, and calls it "le Gros Rocher." It is between the two
falls.

    Mon. 10th--The House of Assembly (the fourth session of the
    first Legislature) prorogued to-day.

Note.--It is true that York was now the official capital, but there was
no building in York that would accommodate the Legislature, so it
continued to be held at Niagara.

    Tues. 11th--We rode to Judge Powell's; dined at Mrs. Tice's, and
    obtained her consent to our staying a fortnight at her house.
    She is to give us two rooms, and we are to have a tent pitched
    for the servants. The situation is peculiarly dry and healthy,
    on the mountain five miles from the Falls of Niagara. There is a
    shed or gallery before the house, and some oak trees close to
    it. Therefore there is always shade and cool air here when we
    were suffering from intense heat at Navy Hall. We rode home in
    the evening.

[Illustration: Chief Justice Powell.]

[Illustration: Mrs. Powell.]

Note.--Chief Justice William Dummer Powell was born in Boston in 1755.
The grandfather of the Chief Justice came from England as Secretary to
Lieutenant-Governor Dummer. The family was an old Welsh one, their
estate in Wales being known as Caer-Howell. When a lad of nine, William
Dummer was sent to England to be educated, and from there went to
Holland to acquire a knowledge of French and Dutch, and in 1772 returned
to Boston. In 1779 he was called to the bar by the Middle Temple, and in
1789 appointed a Commissioner of the Peace of the Province of Quebec. In
this year he left Montreal with his family for Detroit, which was still
in possession of the British. In 1791 he was appointed Commissioner of
Oyer and Terminer and Jail Delivery for Quebec, and in 1792 to the same
office in Upper Canada. Up to the War of 1812, Powell had been a Puisne
Judge, but in 1815 was promoted to the Chief Justiceship. The Chief
Justice married in 1773 Ann, daughter of Dr. J. Murray of Norwich,
England, of the family of Murray of Philiphaugh. He retired from the
Bench in 1825, and died in Toronto nine years later. The living
descendants of the Chief Justice bearing the Powell name are the
families of John Bleecker Powell, Collector of Inland Revenue, Guelph;
Arthur Wellesley Powell of Montreal, and Dr. Robert Winyard Powell of
Ottawa, Ont. Brindley Powell and William Dummer Powell reside in the
United States.

    Wed. 12th--We sailed in the boat to the Queenstown landing, and
    arrived at Mrs. Tice's to dinner. In the evening we walked to
    the whirlpool.

    Thur. 13th--The Governor drove me in the carriage for the first
    time; we went to the Falls and returned by starlight, tho' the
    road has many stumps of trees on the sides, of which I was a
    little afraid.

    Fri. 14th--We breakfasted at six and called on Mrs. Hamilton
    (wife of Capt. Hamilton) at the Chippawa. On our return stopped
    at Canby's Mill. From thence the rapids above the Falls appear
    very grand. Near this mill, about a year ago, a burning spring
    was discovered, which, if a candle is held to it, will continue
    flaming a great while.

[Illustration: Captain Hamilton.]

[Illustration: Mrs. Hamilton.]

Note.--Captain James Mathew Hamilton, son of Rev. Nicholson Hamilton of
Donoghadee, County Down, Ireland, born 1768, was ensign of the 5th
Northumberland Regiment of Foot in 1786. He received his lieutenancy on
16th July, 1794, and his captaincy on 11th August, 1799. He served with
his regiment in Canada, being stationed at Mackinac for some time. While
there he married Louisa, daughter of Dr. David Mitchell, surgeon-general
to the Indian Department, who performed the ceremony, there being no
minister of any denomination in that part of the country in those early
days. They were remarried by Rev. Robert Addison at Niagara. In St.
Mark's Register the marriage is third on the list, and is thus quaintly
recorded: "August 24th, 1792, Captain James Hamilton to Louisa Mitchell
his wife. They had been married by some commanding officer or magistrate
and thought it more decent to have the first repeated." From the time of
Rev. Robert Addison's arrival he kept the register, which became the St.
Mark's Church register in 1809, when the church was opened. In 1795,
Captain Hamilton was in command at Chippawa and about 1800 he returned
to England, where he sold his commission. His wife died in 1802, and he
remarried, his second wife being Louisa Jupp. He returned to Canada
about 1828. Ann Elizabeth, eldest daughter of Captain James Hamilton by
his first wife, married Thomas Gummersall Anderson. One of their
daughters is Mrs. W. H. Rowe of Toronto.

[Illustration: Fort Chippawa, on the River Welland, 1795.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Mr. Basil G. Hamilton of Wilmer, B.C., is a grandson of Captain
Hamilton, being descended from the latter's second wife.

Between the village and the falls of Chippawa there were three mills;
the lower for the manufacture of flour; the two upper mills, which were
near to each other, and adjoining to the road, were for the purpose of
sawing timber into boards, and for manufacturing iron. The latter mills
are referred to as Canby's and Burch's, as Benjamin Canby and John Burch
had mills in this locality.

About three miles from Chippawa, in the township of Willoughby, there is
a spring of water whose vapor is highly inflammable, and is emitted for
a time with a considerable degree of force. If collected within a narrow
compass, it is capable of supporting combustion for nearly twenty
minutes, and of communicating to water placed over it in a small
confined vessel the degree of boiling temperature.

    Fri. 14th--I went to see it to-day, but it has not been cleared
    out for some time, and the cattle having trod in it and made it
    muddy, it did not deserve the name of the burning spring. We had
    our small tent and some cold meat hung under the carriage. We
    pitched the tent near the Falls and dined, after which, being
    fatigued by the heat, I lay down in the tent and slept, lulled
    by the sound of the Falls, which was going to sleep in the
    pleasantest way imaginable. After tea we had a very pleasant
    drive home.

    Sat. 15th--The Governor drove the children to the whirlpool, and
    I rode part of the way; we carried our tent and provisions as
    yesterday, and dined on a point from whence the whirlpool and
    the opposite bank of the river, on which is a mill, form
    altogether a very fine scene; the mill appears like a part of
    the perpendicular flat rock on which it stands. In the bay (or
    whirlpool), formed by two immensely high points of land, are now
    a number of logs collected by Canby at his saw mill above the
    Falls; the dam which confined them having given way in a flood,
    the logs came down the Falls and were stopped here by the
    various strong eddies in this agitated pool, where they whirl
    about, and probably will continue so till the end of the world,
    for they never appear to go beyond the circle of a certain
    distance, and sometimes are set quite upright by the currents;
    it is a curious scene.

    Sun. 16th--A most excessive hot day. The Governor went to Navy
    Hall.

    Mon. 17th--The weather extremely warm; the Governor returned at
    eleven. This evening we drove to a farm inhabited by Painter. It
    is just opposite the Fort Schlosser Fall. I was so delighted
    with the sight of the Falls from this spot, just above what is
    called the "Indian ladder," which gives so different a view of
    them from what I saw at the Table Rock that I am determined to
    return here again. The road is tolerable for a carriage. It was
    quite dark before we got home.

Note.--The Indian Ladder was on the Canadian side, and a second ladder
was made near it for Mrs. Simcoe more easily to descend. The ladder
consisted of a tall cedar with the branches lopped off about a foot from
the trunk and placed against the face of the cliff. By some it was said
to be about half a mile below, or north of Table Rock, by others a
mile. It is said there was also an Indian ladder on the American side.
Colonel John Clarke in his Memoirs (Ontario Historical Society Records,
Vol. VII., 1906) says "I, however, remember the Indian Ladder (so
called), having often gone down on it, being only a long pine tree with
the branches cut off, leaving only enough to place your foot on, to hold
to, when ascending or descending."

    Wed. 19th--At home all day--a thunderstorm.

    Thurs. 20th--A wet morning. The Governor went to Navy Hall. A
    cold evening. Mr. Pilkington called.

    Sat. 22nd--The Governor drove towards the Falls in the evening.

    Sun. 23rd--In the evening we rode to the mill near the
    whirlpool. I made a sketch, in which a large, living birch tree,
    suspended by the roots, with the head downwards, hanging between
    a bold rifted rock near a cascade, if well drawn, would have a
    most picturesque appearance. The miller who lives here has a
    project of finding means to drag these logs on shore, in which
    case it will answer him to build a saw mill here, for it is not
    unusual for floods to bring down a quantity of logs from Canby's
    mill, and the timber is not at all injured by having passed the
    great Fall.

    Mon. 24th--Mr. Pilkington, having been desired to put one or two
    short ladders to make the descent easy from rock to rock by the
    side of the "Indian Ladder," which is a notched tree, we set out
    to-day, determined to make our way to the bottom of the rocks
    below the Falls. We stopped near Painter's house to look at the
    Fort Schlosser Fall, and then descended the hill, which I found
    much easier than had been represented, and very little more
    difficult than the usual way to the Table Rock, altho' it
    carried us so many feet below it. I rested half-way, and
    sketched the rock and ladder above me. The view from the margin
    of the water is infinitely finer than from the Table Rock. We
    were near a mile distant from it. The Governor walked with a
    guide nearly underneath it, but as the path over the rocks was
    bad and not one picturesque scene to be gained by it, I did not
    attempt going, but sat endeavouring to sketch the scene till my
    paper was quite wet by the spray from the Fort Schlosser Fall.
    The quantity of cypress and cedar with which the sides of the
    rocks are covered adds greatly to the beauty and richness of the
    scenery. We dined on the rocks beneath the overhanging cedars. A
    man speared a large sturgeon this afternoon near where we were
    working. As we ascended the hill again, when near the top of it
    I stopped to observe a most picturesque view of the Falls, seen
    in parts thro' the rough spreading branches of hemlock spruce
    trees, which formed a noble foreground, and the setting sun
    added richness to the scene. I rested myself at Painter's house,
    where they prepared, besides tea, those cakes, baked in a few
    minutes on an iron before the fire, which the people of the
    States make so well; eggs and sweetmeats, and bacon or salt
    fish, they usually offer with tea. I believe it is a more
    substantial meal with them than their dinner, which is slight.

    I came home by moonlight after a most pleasant day. All the time
    I have been at Mrs. Tice's has been filled up with seeing the
    most delightful scenery, and nothing to interrupt the pleasure
    of dwelling on the sights. The waggons arrived to carry the
    General's baggage to Fort Erie. He is going as far as Long
    Point, on Lake Erie.

    Tues. 25th--The Governor and I and Francis went in the carriage
    to Fort Chippawa, but finding the baggage had not arrived, could
    proceed no further; dined and slept at Capt. Hamilton's, who
    commands here.

    We walked this evening, and I made some sketches. Weather
    excessively hot; the Governor very ill. We slept in a room in
    the Block House, where the logs were some distance apart.
    Without this contrivance, used as loopholes in the case of
    attack, as well as for admitting air, I think the heat would
    have been insufferable; as it was, I left my bed and lay on the
    floor.

[Illustration: Mouth of the Welland River, at Chippawa, Ont.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Wed. 26th--Went out early in the boat with Capts. Darling and
    Smith. The latter brought me a thermometer I had been long
    wishing for, and the Governor bought it of an officer going to
    England; almost immediately it fell out of my hand and was
    broken, to my great vexation. The Governor set out on horseback,
    but finding himself very ill, made signs to come ashore, which
    we did half-way between the Chippawa and Fort Erie, and at a
    very good farmhouse he stay'd the whole of the day till six in
    the evening, when we proceeded in the barge to Fort Erie. We
    ordered dinner and made ourselves quite at home here, supposing
    it an inn, and afterwards found we were mistaken. It was not an
    inn, but the home of a very hospitable farmer. The whole of the
    shore we passed to-day is flat and uninteresting. About Fort
    Erie the verdure is greater than I have seen in Canada, and,
    being unaccustomed to green without being enriched by warm brown
    tints, it gave me such an idea of damp and cold that I
    immediately put on a fur tippet and thought it quite
    comfortable, tho' there was no particular change in the weather,
    but only in the tints. I saw some of the vessels which are built
    on this lake and rigged like scows, a large, flat bottomed boat.
    They are better painted, and have a more respectable appearance
    than those on Lake Ontario.

    We slept in an indifferent house, two miles beyond the Fort,
    kept by very dirty people, but it has the advantage of being
    very near the lake.

Note.--Fort Erie is in Welland County, on Lake Erie. It was first
fortified during the French occupation and greatly strengthened during
the War of 1812. Since then it has gone gradually to decay and has long
been dismantled.

    Thurs. 27th--An excessive hot day. We pitched the tent among
    some trees near the beach, which is a very pleasant spot, and
    the house is too dirty to stay in. I dined in my tent, the
    Governor at the Fort. The beach is covered with flat rocks,
    among and upon which are cray fish in very shallow pools of
    water. I amused myself by catching them. The lake is narrow
    here, and has not the sea-like appearance of Ontario. The
    opposite shore is seen and some rising land beyond it, but a
    flat horizon, without fine-shaped or pointed hills.

    Fri. 28th--The heat intense; if my thermometer had not been
    broken I might have ascertained it. I sat in my tent; the flat
    rocks and shallow water extend a prodigious way into the lake.
    One of the servants went to the lake to wash his clothes.
    Francis followed him up to his knees in water and sat on a rock
    by him; presently an Indian went to wash his clothes, and the
    group looked very picturesque. Francis came back completely wet
    to fetch a loaf of bread he desired to give to the Indian.
    Commodore Grant arrived to-day from Detroit in the "Chippawa,"
    the largest of the King's vessels on this lake. There was an
    Indian council to-day. The Governor had company at dinner. I
    dined in my room.

    Sat. 29th--Breakfasted in the tent. The Governor went to an
    Indian council; he returned to an early dinner, intending to go
    this evening to Point Abino on his way to Long Point. I
    accompanied him in his carriage to Fort Erie, from whence I went
    in a boat to the Chippawa. Mr. Bing, having just arrived from
    Detroit, went with me. I slept at Capt. Hamilton's, who is
    commandant at the Chippawa, where we arrived about nine. Mr.
    Bing went on to Niagara.

Note.--Fort Chippawa was dismantled after the War of 1812.

Point Abino, or Bertie, or Ridgeway, is in Welland County, nine miles
from Buffalo. It was here that the Fenians crossed into Canada West in
1866. Mr. Bing was probably the man who afterwards became major-general
and who fought against Bonaparte.

    Sun. 30th--The weather was so hot I gave up my intention of
    riding to Mrs. Tice's, but having no gentleman with me I was
    obliged to drive the carriage myself, which I had never done,
    and the roads were excessively rough till after passing by the
    Falls. I tied Francis into the carriage and drove him very
    safely, altho' he complained of being much bruised and shook. A
    violent rain began just as I arrived at Mrs. Tice's.

    Mon. 31st--A Moravian woman, married to a farmer near here,
    brought me a loaf of bread so peculiarly good that I could not
    but enquire about it. She said that it was made with rennet and
    whey, without yeast or water, and baked in wicker or straw
    baskets, which is the method taught at the Moravian School at
    Bethlehem (on the Lehigh River, in Pennsylvania), in the States,
    where she was educated. The bread was as light as possible and
    rich, like cake. This woman brought a wild turkey here during my
    absence; another has been seen. Mrs. Tice has the finest melons
    imaginable. I prefer water melons, and eat two or three every
    day. The Indian corn is just now in proper state for boiling or
    roasting; it begins to turn yellow. Francis and I dine upon it.
    All the vegetables are particularly good, and I eat little else.
    The Asiatics eat no meat in the summer, and I daresay they are
    right, and the heat here nearly approaches to that in the east.
    The people here in the summer live chiefly on vegetables and a
    little salt pork. Now the wild pigeons are coming of which there
    are such numbers that, besides those they roast and eat at
    present, they salt the wings and breasts of them in barrels, and
    at any time they are good to eat after being soaked. There is a
    pond before this house where hundreds of them drink at a time;
    it is singular that this pond rises and falls as a river does,
    tho' it is such an immense height above it. The May apples are
    now a great luxury; I have had some preserved, and the
    hurtleberries are ripe. Baron La Hontan says the root of the May
    apples (or, as the French call them, _citrons sauvages_) is
    poisonous.

    Tues. Sept. 1st--I rode to the little mill near the whirlpool;
    while I sat sketching, the trees around were covered with
    pigeons.

    Wed. 2nd--A very wet day; notwithstanding, I rode in the evening
    to drink tea with Mrs. Powell, wife of Chief Justice Powell, who
    was alone. She is a very sensible, pleasant woman. It was very
    dark and wet coming home. Elderflower leaves take off the pain
    of the gout or rheumatism.

    Fri. 4th--Dined at Mrs. Powell's; met Mrs. Richardson, wife of
    Dr. R.

    Sat. 5th--Capt. Hamilton called. No news from Fort Erie yet.

    Sun. 6th--I walked to Mrs. Powell's this evening.

    Mon. 7th--I walked a mile this evening to the spring from whence
    this house is supplied with drinking water. I gathered two kinds
    of yellow flowers, which are sweet after sunset. I believe it is
    salep. Cat mint in tea is a good stomatic, and sweet marjorie
    tea for the headache. Sweet briar and boiling water poured over
    it, put into jars, milk pans or anything that is to be washed
    out, purifies them sooner and better than anything else. Mrs.
    Tice uses it constantly in her dairy.

    Tues. 8th--Mrs. Smith dined with me. I walked in the evening to
    Mrs. Powell's. I was feverish, and felt great relief from a
    saline draught taken in the effervescent state, a little salt of
    wormwood water and two teaspoonfuls of lemon juice. I hear the
    people in the Lower Settlement (Queenstown) are suffering
    severely by the ague. There are a great many sassafras trees in
    the woods near Navy Hall, and they are very beautiful and sweet.
    There are also a great many sumach shrubs by the river. I
    gathered the branches of flowers of the sumach last year and
    poured boiling water upon them, which tastes like lemonade; it
    has a very astringent, hard taste.

[Illustration: A Glimpse of the Lake and Beach near Fort Erie.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Wed. 9th--I walked this evening into a field which was clearing,
    to see the immense large fires.

    Thurs. 10th--I dined with Mrs. Powell, whose company is very
    pleasant to me.

    Fri. 11th--I walked two miles thro' the woods below the
    mountains to see a spring which has been lately discovered,
    which is said to cure lameness, blindness and every disorder.
    The water tasted like ink and looks very dark. It smells very
    sulphurous, and so does the earth all around it extremely strong
    of brimstone.

    Sat. 12th--The Governor returned, and is far from well. He was
    pleased with Long Point, which he called Charlotteville; the
    banks on the lake 150 feet high; on the shore grew weeping
    willows, covered with vines; he gathered some grapes already
    sweet. He returned up the Grand River, from thence crossed a
    short portage into the Welland, which he descended to Fort
    Chippawa. He went part of the journey on horseback, and was much
    annoyed by passing wasps' nests. The wasps stung the horses
    terribly.

Note.--Years before a settlement was made at or near Long Point
Lieutenant-Governor Simcoe proposed to found there a military
establishment to aid in the defence of the new province of Upper Canada,
for he claimed that at Long Point was "the only good roadstead on Lake
Erie" and "admirably adapted for settlements." Here he laid out a site
for Government buildings and called it "Charlotte Villa," and the
township of Charlotteville was named in honor of Queen Charlotte. The
township fronts on Long Point Bay. Lord Dorchester, however, objected to
this founding of a military settlement. In 1812 Fort Norfolk was built
at Charlotteville, but nothing except the trenches remain.

    Mon. 14th--We walked to the mineral spring.

Note.--Along the boundaries of the River Niagara, and behind the Falls,
the elevated and rocky banks were everywhere excavated by sulphurous
springs, the vitriolic acid uniting with the limestone rock, and forming
plaster of paris, which was here and there scattered amid the masses of
stone composing the beach beneath. These excavations extended in many
places to a distance of fifty feet underneath the summit of the bank.
With reference to the mineral spring, an old resident of
Niagara-on-the-Lake states that it was near the old military hospital,
which information he gives on the authority of the doctor of the Royal
Canadian Rifles at Niagara-on-the-Lake in 1850-6. The military hospital
was formerly the Indian Council House marked on a map of 1799 as well as
on later maps. The Council House was converted into a hospital in 1822.
It lies on the common near Butler's Barracks almost a mile from Navy
Hall, and on the line between the two.

    Tues. 15th--The Governor much worse. The heat excessive. I fell
    thro' a trap-door in my room into a cellar, but was not very
    much bruised.

    Sat. 19th--We walked to Mrs. Powell's.

    Tues. 22nd--We walked with Francis to the school, where he goes
    every day, a mile from this house. He carries some bread and
    butter or cheese for dinner with him, and returns in the
    evening.
    Thurs. 24th--Rode to the mill. The Governor very ill. His
    disorder is bilious fever.

Note.--This mill was in all probability the Servos mill, situated on the
Four Mile Creek.

    Fri. 25th--Very hot weather. Rode to Lutes' farm this evening.
    Mrs. Tice has a number of standard peach trees; some produce
    small fruit, others large, quite green, but very well flavoured,
    tho' they look unpromising.

Note.--This farm near Niagara was owned by Samuel Lutes, or Lutz, as it
is also spelled. In the first census of Niagara in 1782 Samuel Lutz is
given as having cleared eighteen acres of land, and in the list of farms
on the Niagara River and back from it, near St. David's, mention of
three farms belonging to Samson Lutes is made.

    Sun. 27th--A wet day and very cold.

    Thurs. Oct. 1st--Mrs. Powell drank tea with me.

    Fri. 2nd--Left Mrs. Tice's; went to Navy Hall; a very cold
    night.

    Sat. 3rd--A sultry day.

    Thurs. 15th--A most violent storm on Lake Erie. Mr. Tukel lost.

    Sun. Nov. 1st--A little snow fell.

    Wed. 4th--Fine weather. We breakfasted with Mrs. Hamilton.

[Illustration: Bass Island, West End of Lake Erie.

(_From a Drawing by Lieutenant Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]




  CHAPTER XVIII.

  _VISIT TO NEW CAPITAL OF UPPER CANADA._


Late in the autumn of 1795 Mrs. Simcoe again went to York, leaving Navy
Hall on 13th November. The trip across the lake occupied nine hours and
was made in the schooner "Governor Simcoe," which was considered a fast
sailer. Although the Governor is not mentioned as one of the party, he
was at York on 1st January, 1796, and apparently recovering from an
illness, for Mrs. Simcoe writes on that day, "The Governor infinitely
better, can walk four or five miles without fatigue."

There are no entries in the diary between November 13th and the 1st
December, while record of happenings, was kept with irregularity until
the following March. Indeed, it would appear that the diary was only
kept at intervals when Mrs. Simcoe was away from Navy Hall. This visit
to York was a prolonged one. It covered five months, for Mrs. Simcoe did
not return to Navy Hall till the 29th of April, 1796.

She writes on leaving Navy Hall in November:--

    Fri. 13th--We left Navy Hall at eight o'clock in the "Governor
    Simcoe," and arrived at York at five: drank tea with Mrs.
    McGill. Mr. Lawrence is come with us; he is lately from the
    States. The Hessian fly has destroyed much of the crops in the
    Bay of Quinte.

Note.--A biographer writes:--"John Brown Lawrence of New Jersey was a
member of the Council, and a distinguished lawyer. He was born in
Monmouth County. His inclination was to take part in the Revolution;
but, suspected by the Whigs from the first, because of his official
relations to the Crown, he was finally arrested and imprisoned in the
Burlington jail for a long time. Accused of treasonable intercourse with
the enemy, he was tried and acquitted. His imprisonment proved a
fortunate circumstance. Lieutenant-Colonel John G. Simcoe, commander of
the Queen's Rangers, was a fellow prisoner, and when exchanged, said at
parting, 'I shall never forget your kindness.' He did not; and when
appointed Lieutenant-Governor of Canada, he invited Mr. Lawrence to
settle there. The invitation was accepted, and, favored by the Governor,
he acquired a large tract of Crown land. . . . Mr. Lawrence died, I
conclude from circumstances, in Upper Canada about the year 1796."

    Tues. Dec. 1st--A summer day.

    Tues. 8th--Mr. Lawrence says the tough skins from the inside of
    wild pigeons' gizzards, hung up to dry, and grated to a fine
    powder, is an infallible cure for indigestion.

    Fri. 18th-Francis brings all the wood I burn in my stove from
    the woodyard; I think the exercise is of service to him. He has
    to-day a little sledge to draw it upon. Mr. Jones, the
    surveyor, says seven hundred rattlesnakes were killed near
    Burlington Bay this summer. They live in caves, and in very dry
    weather go down to the lake to drink; they are sluggish, and, as
    they move in numbers at a time, probably would be easier
    destroyed than many other reptiles. The man is quite recovered
    who was bitten by one last August.

    Sun. 20th--A boat going to the "Head of the Lake" with letters
    lost her bottom near the River Credit, but the men were saved,
    being near the shore.

    Tues. 22nd--I walked towards the town; the snow deep enough to
    drive a sleigh.

    Fri. 25th--A frost. Mrs. Shaw dined with us.

    Sun. 27th--A slight shock of an earthquake was felt this morning
    about five o'clock by the Governor and almost every person in
    the garrison but myself. The weather is calm, and there is no
    appearance of the lake having risen. An express from Kingston.

    Mon. 28th--Walked to the town. A party began to-day to cut a
    road from hence to the Pine Fort, near Lake Simcoe. Mr. Jones,
    the surveyor, says the Indians killed over 500 deer in a month
    within a fence of seven miles; they cut down trees and laid them
    in a circle of that extent; the deer were afraid to pass the
    apparent fence and were easily shot.

Note.--At the Holland River was the Pine Fort called Gwillimbury, after
"Gwillim," Mrs. Simcoe's maiden name. In 1799, Yonge Street ended at
this Pine Fort.

    Fri. Jan. 1st, 1796--The Governor infinitely better, can walk
    four or five miles without fatigue, probably owing to the cold
    season of the year. An express from Kingston. Mrs. Macaulay came
    to see me and we had a dance. There are ten ladies here, and as
    they dance reels we can make up a ball.

    Mon. 18th--A ball and firing, as usual on this day (Queen's
    birthday). A very cold night.

    Tues. 19th--I walked with Mrs. Macaulay; a bear killed by "The
    Man of the Snakes." I do not like the meat. It is like pork. Mr.
    McGill drinks tea made of hemlock pine. It is not pleasant, but
    thought wholesome.

    Sat. 23rd--We walked on the ice to the house which is building
    on Francis' 200 acre lot of land. It is called Castle Frank,
    built on the plan of a Grecian temple, totally of wood, the logs
    squared and so grooved together that in case of decay any log
    may be taken out. The large pine trees make pillars for the
    porticos, which are at each end 16 feet high. Some trees were
    cut and a large fire made near the house, by which venison was
    toasted on forks made on the spot, and we dined. I returned home
    in the carriole. Several people were fishing on the River Don
    thro' holes cut in the ice; the small red trout they catch are
    excellent. I gathered black haws; the roots of the trees,
    boiled, are a cure for complaints in the stomach.

Note.--This entry shows that Castle Frank was used as a camp not only in
the summer, but also in the wintertime. The building was not completed
till June, 1796.

    Sun. 24th--A very cold day. I walked to Major Smith's lot, on
    which I gathered keys of the sugar maple and partridge berries.
    They are scarlet, growing on a creeping plant like stone cress.

    Mon. 25th--Very cold weather; the bay frozen across.

[Illustration: Site of Charlotteville, at Long Point, 1795.

(_From a Drawing by Lieutenant Pilkington, copied by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Thurs. 28th--Drove again to Castle Frank, and dined again in the
    woods on toasted venison. The ice is excellent. The berries of
    the mountain tea or winter green are now in great beauty,
    their bright scarlet berries peeping thro' the snow and the rich
    colour of their green leaves; they taste like orgeat (or barley
    syrup), but are of a very warm nature and raise the spirits.

    Fri. 29th--Excessive cold weather. I walked to the town; the
    Governor drove round the bay to Gibraltar Point.

Note.--The route was east along the present Queen Street to Woodbine
Avenue, thence over the peninsula to the site of the lighthouse. There
were too many small lagoons for pleasant walking north of this to the
actual spit of land known as "Gibraltar Point."

[Illustration: Skinner's Mill, Don River.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Tues. Feb. 2nd--Mrs. Richardson went with me to Castle Frank; it
    is not yet floored; the carpenters are building a hut for
    themselves. I gathered fox berries. They grow like small red
    currants on a delicate plant. The water elder berries are here
    called tree cranberries, and are less bitter than in England. We
    had an immense fire to-day, and dined on toasted venison.

    Wed. 3rd--We drove on the ice to Skinner's Mill, a mile beyond
    Castle Frank, which looked beautiful from the river. The ice
    became bad from the rapidity of the river near the mill. At the
    mouth of the Don I fished from my carriole, but the fish are not
    to be caught, as they were last winter, several dozen in an
    hour. It is said that the noise occasioned by our driving
    constantly over this ice frightens away the fish, which seems
    probable, for they are still in abundance in the Humber, where
    we do not drive; 15 dozen were caught there a few days ago. The
    Governor finds great benefit by driving out this cold weather,
    and likes my dormeuse very much. The children sit in front of
    it.

Note.--Timothy Skinner's grist mill was on the east bank of the Don
River. To reach it one had to drive down the old Don Mills Road, a
continuation of Broadview Avenue. The mill is just below Todmorden. It
was built in 1794, on Lot 13, township of East York, for lots 13 and 14
belonged to the Skinner family. Parshall Terry, a member of the first
Legislature, helped to build the mill, which was operated by Mr. Timothy
Skinner for some years, and then by Mr. Colin Skinner, who took Mr. John
Eastwood into partnership, and they used the building as a paper mill.
It is claimed that the first paper in Upper Canada was made in this mill
in 1826. Skinner and Eastwood both married into the Helliwell family,
and on Mr. Eastwood's death the property came into possession of Thomas,
Joseph and William Helliwell. In 1847 it passed into the hands of the
Taylor Bros. During their time it was twice destroyed by fire, and once
during the ownership of the present owner, Mr. Robert Davies. The walls,
which were of stone, stood, however, and a new roof and floors made the
building as it was first built.

    Thurs. 4th--We drove three miles to the settlement below the
    town (across the Don River), and at Mrs. Ashbridge's saw
    calabashes, the fruit of the calabash tree, a vessel made of a
    dried gourd or shell--a gourd plant, which have holes cut in
    them as bowls to ladle out water, having a natural handle. I
    brought away some of the seeds, which are to be sown in March,
    in rich ground. Might not the use of these calabashes, which are
    in shape like skulls, have given rise to the story of the
    southern Indians drinking out of the skulls of their enemies? I
    saw Mr. Richardson's infant laid in a box, which he held by a
    cord, and was skating up the bay; this gave the child air and
    exercise.

Note.--George Ashbridge emigrated from Yorkshire, England, to the United
States and settled in Pennsylvania near Philadelphia in 1698. He had
several sons and daughters. His eldest son, John, born in 1702, married
Hannah Davies, of Pennsylvania. Their eldest son, Jonathan, born 1734,
married Sarah James. After Jonathan Ashbridge's death his widow and
family settled in York. She died 13th June, 1801. There were two sons,
John and Jonathan, and several daughters, two of whom were Sarah, who
married Mr. Heron of Niagara, and Mary, who married Mr. Parker Mills, of
York. The descendants of Jonathan Ashbridge are Jesse Ashbridge and Miss
Hannah Lambert of Toronto, Jonathan of Scarboro and W. T. Ashbridge of
British Columbia. Of John's descendants in Toronto there are Albert J.
Ashbridge and Mrs. R. Short, also Mrs. Hagerman of Victoria Square. The
original Ashbridge home was on Township lots 8 and 9 in the First
Concession from the bay, now No. 1470 Queen Street East, just west of
the corner of Morley Avenue and Queen Street, Toronto.

    Fri. 5th--Mrs. McGill, Miss Crookshank and a large party drove
    with me in carrioles to dine on toasted venison by a large fire
    on the beach below the settlements. We sat under the shelter of
    the root of an immense pine, which had been blown up by the
    wind, and found it very pleasant, and returned six miles in 32
    minutes. Had a card party in the evening.

    Sat. 6th--The ladies did not catch cold, and were delighted with
    the novelty of dining in the air in winter, so to-day we went to
    Castle Frank. Mrs. Macaulay joined the party. The ice was not
    quite so good, and the snow melted. It was so mild we could not
    wear great-coats. Francis has a small sleigh, which the servants
    have taught a goat to draw; he is the handsomest goat I ever
    saw, and looks very well in harness. It is a very pretty sight
    to see Francis drawn in this car. They used the animal to draw
    the sleigh by making him draw it full of wood. At first he was
    very untractable.

    Mon. 8th--We set out on the ice with three carrioles brought
    from Quebec, but driving too near a large crack in the ice near
    the shore the horses in the first carriole broke in, but being
    quickly whipped, recovered their footing on the ice and drew the
    carriole over the crack. We got out of our carriage, and Mr.
    Givins thought he would drive better and pass safely, but the
    horses plunged much deeper and could not extricate themselves.
    With difficulty the harness was unloosed, and they were set free
    without injury, the water not being above five feet deep.

    We walked over to Mr. Macaulay's lot and dined in that part of
    the woods, and in the evening I walked home; but the carrioles
    went very safely across the bay, keeping further from the crack,
    and perhaps the night air made the ice harder. John Macaulay,
    who is but four years old, cut through some large pieces of wood
    with an axe, which made Francis emulous to become an axeman
    also; he is going to begin to-morrow.

Note.--On September 1st, 1797, by patent from the Crown, Dr. James
Macaulay became the owner of Park Lot No. 9, consisting of a hundred
acres having a frontage of 660 feet on Lot (Queen Street) from Yonge
Street west and extending from Lot Street to Bloor, a distance of 6,600
feet on the west side of Yonge. On the same date David W. Smith,
Surveyor-General, became the owner of Park Lot No. 10, lying to the west
of the Macaulay lot, with the same frontage and depth. On October 16th,
1797, Mr. Smith traded his lot, No. 10, to Chief Justice John Elmsley in
return for other lands which are not named.

The Chief Justice was anxious to have a frontage on Yonge Street, and on
May 30th, 1799, he traded the south half of his lot to Dr. Macaulay for
the north half of Lot No. 9. Thus Dr. Macaulay became the owner of the
entire block of property extending from the northwesterly corner of Lot
Street to the present College Street and from Yonge Street to a point
132 feet west of Elizabeth Street. On the front portion of this block
fronting on Lot Street Dr. Macaulay laid out a plan of 41 lots, which he
called "Teraulay." On this plan James, Teraulay and Elizabeth Streets
are shown running from Lot Street north 380 feet to Macaulay Lane, now
Albert Street. The entire block owned by Macaulay gradually became
settled and was given the local name of Macaulay Town. This property at
the issue of the patent was worth a few hundred dollars. To-day it is
worth about $30,000,000.

The youthful axeman to whom Mrs. Simcoe refers was John Simcoe Macaulay,
born in October, 1791, eldest son of Dr. Macaulay.

The dwelling of Dr. Macaulay in Toronto was a commodious colonial
cottage, known as "Teraulay Cottage," where Holy Trinity Church now
stands. Sir James B. Macaulay, second son of Dr. Macaulay, built about
1843 a fine brick residence on the south side of College Street near
Yonge. The site is now occupied by the Bishop Strachan School for girls.

[Illustration: Lieut. Givins.]

Lieutenant James Givins, afterwards Colonel Givins, was Superintendent
of Indian Affairs. He married Angelique, daughter of Captain Andrews, of
the Lake Ontario armed fleet, and he had six sons and three
daughters--Henry; James, who was a Judge in London, Ont.; Saltern, who
was at one time Rector of St. Paul's Anglican Church, Bloor St.,
Toronto; Adolphus, Halton and George, of the Medical staff in India;
Caroline, who married Colonel Hillier; Cecil and Elizabeth. Judge Givins
had five sons and four daughters, James, Warren, Hillier, John and
Henry. James and Hillier had commissions in the British Army. Captain
Hillier and Henry are the only surviving sons of the late Judge Givins.
Of the four daughters, Eliza of Elgin, Ill., the eldest, and Maude, the
youngest, of Toronto, are living. The only living descendants of the
Rev. Saltern Givins, the third son of Colonel Givins, are Robert C.
Givins, his son Robert, and Charlotte C. Givins of Chicago, Ill.

[Illustration: Capt. Andrews.]

    Tues. 9th--A strong easterly wind; a vast quantity of ice driven
    by it out of the bay--half a mile of ice that we drove over last
    night is totally gone. A Mohawk, named Jacob, and his wife came
    here. They are handsome and well dressed. She works any pattern
    given her in beads remarkably well; they brought Francis a
    present of cranberries.

    Wed. 10th--A wet day. The post arrived from Niagara.

    Thurs. 11th--A wet day.

    Fri. 12th--There is very little ice left in the bay. Fine
    weather.

    Sat. 13th--Mr. Pilkington, of the Engineers, arrived from
    Niagara. The sudden thaw obliged him to wade across the inlet at
    the "Head of the Lake."

Note.--This means that Mr. Pilkington walked around the Burlington Beach
and waded across the original entrance to Burlington Bay, which had been
known as Geneva Lake or Macassa Bay up to 1792, when by proclamation on
16th June of that year the name was changed to Burlington Bay. In the
"Topographical Description of Upper Canada," issued in London in 1813,
under the authority of Sir Francis Gore, it is stated with regard to
Burlington Bay that it was "perhaps as beautiful and romantic a
situation as any in the interior of America, particularly if we include
with it a marshy lake which falls into it, and a noble promontory that
divides them." The picture, which is the only one known of the entrance
to the bay, shows the original entrance at the extreme north end of the
beach. It was almost landlocked in 1796. It was about a mile and a half
north of the present canal begun in 1825 and opened in 1832.

[Illustration: Original Entrance to Burlington Bay, 1796.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Wed. 17th--The thermometer 15 degrees higher than it was
    yesterday.

    Thurs. 18th--We walked to the town, and from thence drove on the
    ice to dine at Castle Frank; the ice was good. I made a small
    sketch of the house. The winter express arrived from Quebec. The
    party who went to cut the road from hence to Lake Simcoe, called
    the Yonge Street, are returned after an absence of seven weeks.
    The distance is 33 miles and 56 chains; they brought two trout
    from Lake Simcoe weighing about 12 pounds each, but they are not
    as good as the smaller trout. There are plenty of black bass,
    maskalonge and whitefish in that lake. I heard an anecdote of
    black bass which, if true, renders it probable they remain in a
    torpid state during the winter. An old hollow tree, which lay on
    the margin of the lake, half under water, being stopped and
    taken out, 30 black bass were taken out of it. Mr. Lawrence, who
    went with the party from motives of curiosity, speaks well of
    the apparent quality of most of the land; 20 miles from hence,
    near Bond's farm, he saw two small lakes near each other, from
    whence many fish were taken. He saw no wild animals.

    Mr. Lawrence met with some Indians, who invited them to feast on
    bear's meat. They appeared to use many ceremonies on this
    occasion, which he did not understand. The head is always
    presented to the chief of the party, and they make a rule that
    all that is dressed of bear's meat must be eaten at the feast.
    Mr. Lawrence brought me two wooden bowls and spoons; they are
    made by the Indians from the knots or excrescences growing on
    pine and other large trees; they are stained red by the juice of
    the inner bark of the hemlock pine, of which they make a
    decoction on purpose. The children will use these bowls as
    basins at breakfast when travelling.

Note.--William Bond was a sergeant in the Queen's Rangers. He had a farm
on Yonge Street near the Oak Ridge (Lots 62, 63), 1st Concession
Whitchurch, east side of Yonge Street. On this property is a
crescent-shaped sheet of water called Bond Lake. He had the first
nursery garden in York.

    Fri. 19th--Mr. Pilkington went in a boat to the "Head of the
    Lake." We dined in the woods on Major Shanks' farm lot, where an
    arbour of branches of hemlock pine was prepared; a band of music
    stationed near. We dined on large perch and venison. Jacob, the
    Mohawk, was there. He danced Scotch reels with more ease and
    grace than any person I ever saw, and had the air of a prince.
    The picturesque way in which he wore and held a black blanket
    gave it the air of a Spanish cloak; his leggings were scarlet;
    on his head and arms he wore silver bands. I never saw so
    handsome a figure.

    Mon. 22nd--I went to Castle Frank. The ice on the river was
    good.

    Tues. 23rd--A boat crossing the bay to the storehouses on
    Gibraltar Point was driven among the ice by a strong east wind,
    and could not be extricated until eight at night, when a boat
    carried planks to lay where the ice was rotten, and assisted the
    men on shore.

    Last Sunday I rode to Mr. McGill's lot, above three miles from
    here, where I was surprised to see the land rise so suddenly; a
    narrow pine ridge was on a steep ascent; a quantity of good
    building stone near it. The weather very cold. It snowed fast.

Note.--The blockhouse at the Point stood exactly on the spot where the
Toronto Water Works crib stands, just north of the north dock of the
Toronto Ferry Company. The formation of the old Gibraltar Point
(Hanlan's) has, of course, been entirely changed during the last forty
years. At that time the beach was a hundred feet to the east of the
Ferry cribwork, and in 1792-1818 there was a large area of beach on
which was built the blockhouse. The "storehouses" stood about five or
six hundred feet south of the blockhouse, and on the west shore of
Blockhouse Bay--hence the name of that stretch of water.

As to the McGill property, some pioneers to the fore forty years ago
claimed that McGill had in addition to a hundred acres bounded by Queen,
Mutual, Bloor and Bond Streets, land north of Davenport Road. This
height of land was originally crowned by a pine grove along its entire
face, and portions of the original pine growth still stand west of
Bathurst Street and at the head of Dufferin Street.

    Thurs. 25th--I went with a party of ladies to Castle Frank. The
    ice is still good, tho' the weather is warm and hazy like an
    Indian summer. The young Shaws dined with us.

    Fri. 26th--Mild weather. We regret losing the cold, clear air. A
    boat arrived from the "Head of the Lake" in four hours.

    Tues. March 1st--A card party to-night.

    Wed. 2nd--The weather very cold. I gathered partridge berries.

    Thurs. 3rd--Frost and snow.

    Sat. 5th--The winter express set off for Quebec. An Indian and a
    Canadian came from Matchadash Bay in five days, and said they
    could have travelled the journey in four. We rode up the Yonge
    Street and across a pine ridge to Castle Frank.

    Sun. 6th--Rode to Castle Frank.

    Mon. 7th--Very cold weather.

    Sat. 12th--Mrs. Macaulay came; a dance in the evening.

    Sun. 13th--Geese and blackbirds seen, which denotes the approach
    of spring.

    Mon. 14th--Rain.

    Tues. 15th--Thaw and rain.

    Fri. 18th--A great deal of snow.

    Sat. 19th--A thin ice covered the bay.

    Sun. 27th--Easter Day. The ice went out of the bay this morning,
    driven by a strong east wind; in the evening the wind changed to
    the west and drove it back, and as it beat against the shore in
    a floating surface of very small pieces it made an uncommon and
    fine sound, which I listened to a great while from the terrace
    before the house.

    Wed. 30th--Wild pigeons arrived.

    Thurs. 31st--Walked to Castle Frank and returned by Yonge
    Street, from whence we rode. The road is as yet very bad; there
    are pools of water among roots of trees and fallen logs in
    swampy spots, and these pools, being half frozen, render them
    still more disagreeable when the horses plunge into them.

    Sat. April 2nd--The "York" packet sailed for Niagara and the
    Genesee River.

    Sun. 3rd--Some Indians brought maple sugar to sell in birch bark
    baskets. I gave three dollars for 30 pounds.

    Mon. 4th--Capt. Mayne arrived from New York in 18 days. Some
    Indians brought some excellent wild geese from Lake Simcoe, and
    several kinds of ducks, which were very pretty as well as very
    good. The large black duck is esteemed one of the best. The
    abundance of wild rice, off which they feed, makes them so much
    better than wild ducks in England.

    Sun. 10th--A little snow. A man arrived from Kingston. He left
    it the 1st of April; the bay was then entirely frozen. We walked
    to Castle Frank and rode home. The air was full of pigeons. I
    think they are fatter and better here than at Niagara.

    Sat. 16th--Commissary McGill went to Kingston.

    Sun. 17th--Mrs. McGill dined with me. We walked to Mrs.
    Macaulay's in the evening. Came home by nine o'clock.

    Mon. 18th--Francis has not been well. We therefore set off to
    Castle Frank to-day to change the air, intending to pass some
    days there. The house being yet in an unfinished state, we
    divided the large room by sail cloth, pitched the tent on the
    inner part, where we slept on wooden beds.

    It is quite a summer's day. Mosquitos arrived at three o'clock.
    A large wooden canoe was launched here to-day, built by one of
    the men who ought to have been busy working at Castle Frank.

    Tues. 19th--A letter from Major Littlehales, dated Niagara, 17th
    of April, mentions the river being full of ice.

    Wed. 20th--The porticos here (Castle Frank) are delightfully
    pleasant, and the room cool from its height and the thickness of
    the logs of which the house is built; the mountain tea berries
    in great perfection. Francis is much better, and busy in
    planting currant bushes and peach trees. There is an insect
    which is not to be got rid of; it bores into the timber and is
    heard at night; it is like a very large maggot. I have seen them
    taken from under the bark of trees to bait fishing hooks.

    Sat. 23rd--A strong east wind. Went to the garrison in the
    evening, as we are soon going to Niagara.




  CHAPTER XIX.

  _A TRIP ACROSS LAKE ONTARIO._


Governor Simcoe had not good health during his term of office in Canada.
While he was most careful in his living, yet he had never fully
recovered from the strain of the American campaign when he led the
Queen's Rangers in its most active work as one of the gallant regiments
in the British service. Frequently throughout this diary there are
references to his illnesses, as on the occasion of his leaving York for
Niagara he was "too ill to go on board." The trip too was a severe one,
for the cold was extreme. Yet it was five hours shorter than when Mrs.
Simcoe crossed the lake in the "Governor Simcoe" in November; for on
that occasion it took nine hours to make a trip that was covered on
April 29th in less than four hours. The visit to Niagara extended to the
7th of June, when a return was made to York.

    Fri. April 29th--The wind and weather unfavourable for the
    canoe. Therefore we determined to sail in the "Mohawk." The
    Governor was too ill to go on board before two o'clock. The wind
    blew very hard N.N.W. We reached Navy Hall in 3 hrs. ¾. It was
    so excessively cold I could not remain on deck, and so rough
    that I was sick in the cabin, and wished I had gone in the
    canoe.

    Sat. 30th--Still very cold and snow. The vessel lately built on
    Lake Erie, and named by Lord Dorchester the "Francis" (after
    Mrs. Simcoe's son), is arrived at Fort Erie.

    Tues. May 3rd--"The Ottawa," a government boat, left Detroit the
    27th of April and came to Fort Erie in 36 hours. Commodore Grant
    say'd peas were stuck at Detroit, tho' not sown here; but
    probably that snowstorm which fell as "The Ottawa" left the
    Detroit River, killed them. It does not answer here to sow seeds
    in the gardens till May, for tho' the weather may have been long
    good, when ice comes down from the Upper Lakes in April it
    occasions the air to be so cold that gardens near the river
    suffer very much. Major Dodgson made those soldiers who would
    otherwise have kept a cur keep a sporting dog, by which means he
    was enabled to hunt hares and deer last winter at Kingston.

Note.--Peas in the garden were probably of sufficient height to be
trained on sticks, which is quite a common custom.

Major Richard Dodgson of the 60th was captain from 14th July, 1790, and
major from 1st March, 1794.

In 1755, Parliament authorized the raising of a regiment of foot in
British North America, and the 60th or King's Royal Rifle Corps,
formerly the 62nd or the Royal American Regiment of Foot, was formed in
1756. It fought in 1758 at Louisbourg and in 1759 at Quebec, and in 1760
at Montreal. Some of the battalions of the regiment were in various
stations in North America and the West Indies from 1760-1876. In 1794
rifles were introduced into the English army, and were first issued to a
battalion of the 60th Royal American Regiment of Foot. In 1852, one
sergeant and forty privates were lost in the wreck of H.M. troopship
"Birkenhead."

    Thurs. 5th--Sultry weather.

    Sun. 8th--A very cold night; we always feel the N.E. wind
    severely, being so much exposed to it. At York we are only open
    to the north. Snow fell last night. Mr. and Mrs. Hamilton dined
    here.

    Mon. 9th--A wet, cold day.

    Thurs. 12th--Received a cap from Miss Bond from Philadelphia.

    Sunday 15th, Whit-Sunday--Coll. Butler buried (His Majesty's
    Commissioner for Indian Affairs).

    Mon. 16th--The House of Assembly opened.

Note.--This was the fifth session of the first Legislature.

    Tues. 17th--Rode before breakfast. Felt agueish.

    Sun. 22nd--Went to the garrison. Mr. Todd dined here. Miss
    Russell, sister of Hon. Peter Russell, has preserved some winter
    cherries which are very good.

Note.--Miss Russell was Honorable Peter Russell's sister, Elizabeth, who
lived with him at Niagara and at York after the latter place was
selected by Governor Simcoe as his capital. Their residence was known as
"Russell Abbey" near the bay shore on Palace (Front) Street, at the foot
of what is now Princess Street, Toronto. Miss Russell, who was her
brother's heiress-at-law, survived him by several years. She was a most
charitable woman and respected by all who knew her.

    Tues. 24th--I rode with Mr. and Mrs. Jarvis to the mountain, to
    call on Mrs. Powell. I gathered sassafras, a shrub in bloom. I
    have been drinking the buds in tea, and it has removed the
    symptoms of ague. Mrs. Powell mentioned about the weather at
    Detroit, that it was not unusual to see caliches on dusty roads,
    carrioles on the ice, and ships sailing at the same time.

[Illustration: William Jarvis.]

[Illustration: Mrs. Jarvis.]

Note.--William Jarvis, fifth son of Samuel Jarvis and Martha Seymour,
was born in Stamford, Conn., on 11th September, 1756. He was a cornet in
the Queen's Rangers, and was engaged during the Revolutionary War. In
1789, he was commissioned as a lieutenant in the Western Regiment of
Militia of the County of Middlesex, and on 1st January, 1791, received
the commission of captain in the same Regiment. In July, 1792, he was
appointed Secretary and Registrar of the Records of the Province of
Upper Canada. William married in England in 1785, Hannah Owen Peters,
daughter of Samuel Peters, D.D., of Hebron, Conn. Peters was a Loyalist
and was spoken of as first Bishop of Upper Canada, but was appointed
Bishop of Vermont. He did not take office however, as he was such a
dyed-in-the-wool Loyalist that he would not live in the United States.

There were seven children by the marriage of William Jarvis and Hannah
Owen Peters:--1. Samuel Peters, who died in childhood. 2. Maria Lavinia,
married George Hamilton, the founder of the city of Hamilton. 3.
Augusta, married Thomas McCormick. 4. Samuel Peters (2) after whom
Jarvis Street, Toronto, was named, married Mary Boyles Powell, daughter
of Chief Justice Powell. 5. William Munson, Sheriff of Gore, married
Anne Racy. 6. Hannah Owen, married Alexander Hamilton. 7. Ann Elizabeth,
married W. B. Robinson, a brother of Chief Justice Robinson.

One of the children of Samuel Peters Jarvis and Mary Boyles Powell was
William Dummer Powell, who married Diana Irving, a sister of Sir Æmilius
Irving, and had four children:--Mary Æmilia, William Irving, Augusta
Lavinia and Edward Æmilius, who is of the firm of Æmilius Jarvis & Co.,
Toronto. Portraits in oil of Secretary Jarvis and his wife, from which
these pictures are taken, are in possession of Mr. Æmilius Jarvis, of
Toronto.

    Wed. 25th--Walked in the woods. May apples, ladies' slippers in
    bloom, and a beautiful shrub here called dogwood; it is more
    like a gum cistus, which yields laudanum.

    Sat. 28th--A wet day; the Governor ill.

    Wed. June 1st--News received of the Treaty being ratified
    between Great Britain and the United States.

[Illustration: Chief Justice Jay.]

Note.--The treaty referred to was Jay's Treaty. A writer says:--"Alarmed
at the rising spirit of hostility towards Great Britain, Washington
determined to make a great effort for peace, and, with the consent of
the Senate, sent Chief-Justice John Jay to London, with the offer of a
treaty of amity and commerce. Jay undoubtedly did the best that could be
done, and on 19th November, 1794, signed a treaty of amity and commerce,
which the President and Senate approved in July, 1795. The treaty
provided that the pre-revolutionary debts owed to British subjects
should be paid by the United States, and that the British Government
should indemnify Americans for losses sustained by illegal captures. A
large sum of money was afterwards paid on this account. The treaty was
assailed in the United States by the party favorable to France. But
Alexander Hamilton defended the treaty and it carried by a vote of
fifty-eight to fifty-one." Under its terms the fort at the east side of
the Niagara River was given up to the United States.

    Fri. 3rd--The House of Assembly prorogued. I went with some
    ladies to hear the Governor's speech on the dissolution. Miss
    Russell has a collection of plants dried by merely shutting them
    in books; I wish I had thought of doing so.

[Illustration: The Twenty-Mile Creek, Jordan, Ont., 1796.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--The function at which Mrs. Simcoe was present on 3rd June, 1796,
was the prorogation at the end of the fifth and last session of the
first Legislature. The dissolution would follow afterward by
proclamation.

    Sat. 4th--Mr. Pilkington has erected a temporary room adjoining
    our house for the ballroom to-night. It is 60 feet long, and the
    end ornamented by colours. We danced 18 couple and sat down to
    supper 76.

    Sun. 5th--Mrs. Smith dined here. I rode in the evening as far as
    Mr. Sheehan's.

Note.--A Captain William Sheehan married Miss Anne Butler in Gosport,
England, about the middle of the 18th century. He was an officer in the
British army. The only issue of this marriage was Walter Butler Sheehan,
who was clerk in the Indian department at Niagara and was in 1793
Sheriff of the County of Lincoln. He married a Miss Andrews, a daughter
of Captain Andrews of the Lake Ontario Navy during the War of 1812-4,
the issue of this marriage being Walter Butler, Henry Ford, George Hill,
James Muirhead, and William, and one daughter, Anne. Walter Butler
Sheehan, the eldest son of the sheriff, was Collector of Customs at
Dunnville, where a number of his descendants still reside.

[Illustration: Francis G. Simcoe.]

    Mon. 6th--Francis five years old to-day. Mr. Pilkington drew his
    picture. The Governor drove me to the Queenstown landing, to
    take leave of Mrs. Hamilton; it was very cold returning. I drank
    tea at Mrs. Smith's, and met Mrs. Montigny, wife of Capt.
    Montigny, on the staff at Detroit, and Miss Hay, a relative of
    Lieut. Henry Hay, serving at Detroit.

    Tues. 7th--We left Navy Hall at ten o'clock in the canoe,
    followed by a boat. Dined at Twelve-Mile Creek.

    Some heavy showers in the afternoon induced us to put into the
    Twenty-Mile, where, after being tolerably wet and climbing up a
    hill covered with wet grass, we found an empty house. We had a
    fire made, dried our clothes and beds, drank tea, and slept well
    without mosquitos, but the smell of muskrat skins, which had
    been drying in the house, was disagreeable. Some strawberries
    ripe, and the fields covered with blue lupines, a kind of gay
    flowering pulse.

    Wed. 8th--We set off at seven, but the men paddled as idly as
    they did yesterday, so that we did not reach the Forty-Mile
    Creek (nine miles) till twelve o'clock. I was out of patience
    that the canoe was so disgraced. We encamped on the Point, where
    the boards are piled that are brought from the saw mill; the
    plank afforded a shed for the tent. We walked to John Green's,
    and as a room was prepared for us we slept there, but dined at
    the Point. They eat pumpkin pie, which, with lemon juice, was
    very good. Francis dipped in the lake. Breakfasted at seven and
    set out.

Note.--This house stood about three-quarters of a mile from the lake on
what is now Patton Street, being a part of Lot 10, Con. 1, of the
township of North Grimsby. It was built north and south, and the wings
were added to the main or centre part ten years after the first
erection. The north wing was within the past ten years removed to a
fruit farm, two miles west of Winona, while the south wing and centre
were used later as a waiting room for the Hamilton, Grimsby and
Beamsville Railway. The building was subsequently torn down and the site
is now occupied by the Presbyterian Manse and the residence of H. H.
March.

The Green brothers owned a grist and saw mill which stood on the west
side of the road, almost midway between John Green's dwelling and Lake
Ontario, the grist mill being on Lot 10 and the saw mill on Lot 9. The
frame of the old grist mill is now used as a planing mill in connection
with a lumber yard, while the saw mill was demolished about fifty years
ago.

[Illustration: John Green's Dwelling at the "Forty."

(_From a Drawing by William Forbes, Grimsby, Ont._)]

    Thurs. 9th--I saw very grand rocks in going towards the mountain
    and passed three water falls, the first sombre and beautiful
    from the water falling from various directions over dark, mossy
    rocks. The second was pretty from the fine scenery of tall
    trees, thro' which it shone--the third, just below an old saw
    mill, falls smoothly for some feet, and is a bright copper
    color, having passed through swamps; it then rushes into white
    foam over regular ledges of rocks spreading like a bell, and the
    difference of color is a fine contrast. The course of this river
    is a series of falls over wild rocks, the perpendicular banks on
    each side very high, covered from top to bottom with hemlock,
    pines, cedars and all forest trees of an immense height. By
    camping near the bank the water is seen below. There are stones
    in this water which appear like petrified shells, but Green was
    not at home and I could not get any fetched to me. Returning we
    noticed a scene of rocks, the lake below towards Burlington
    Bay, and half a mile to the east an extensive distant view
    towards the Genesee River and overlooking the country from hence
    to Niagara. I saw a cream-colour'd hawk, with back-tipp'd wings
    and a scarlet tail.

[Illustration: View from the King's Head Inn, 1796.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    We saw a rift in the rocks, a narrow pass where wolves descend
    from the mountain to commit depredations on the sheep below. The
    woods are full of sarsaparilla. I gathered some wild flax at
    Green's. In his garden he has quantities of melons near the
    river, and last year cut 800 pumpkins from three-quarters of an
    acre of land; they are esteemed excellent food for cows, making
    the butter particularly good. We dined to-day at our encampment
    and slept at Green's.

    Fri. 10th--A very wet night. I rode to-day towards Anderson's,
    and dined at one at the encampment, and sent the children and
    servants to the "Head of the Lake" in the canoe. Mrs. Green went
    as a guide to conduct us on horseback across the mountain. Green
    has lately, at the Governor's request and expense, cut a road
    thro' the wood, making it passable for me to ride. The Governor
    thinks the country will derive great benefit by opening a road
    on the top of the mountain (where it is quite dry) from Niagara
    to the "Head of the Lake," instead of going a most terrible road
    below, full of swamps, fallen trees, etc. We crossed the creek
    by the old saw mill at the head of the waterfalls I mentioned
    yesterday after leaving the Forty-Mile Creek, and found the
    whole of the way very dry and good; stopped frequently on the
    edge of the bank to look over the extensive wooded plain below
    us, which is bounded at four miles distance by Lake Ontario, and
    the opposite north shore with Flamborough Head discernible.

Note.--This is the bend of the mountain north of Burlington, and is
quite a feature in the northern horizon, looking from Burlington Beach.

    The steep cliffs of the mountain, on the top of which we were,
    are rocky, covered with wood, the view enlightened by fleeting
    gleams from a setting sun, the view to the west terminated by
    Burlington Bay.

    The spot that most engaged our attention was named by Green "the
    Tavern," because when cutting the road the men generally met
    there to dine, and more wood being here cut down, the view was
    less obstructed by the trees; from hence we observed the canoe
    with the children in it. After we had passed these nine miles it
    grew dusky, and Mrs. Green rather misled us, but at last we
    found a way, tho' a very steep one, to descend the mountain. A
    mile before we came to this descent we passed Stony Creek, seven
    miles from the "Head of the Lake," so named from the stony
    nature of its bottom. It's a small stream that falls 97 feet in
    an amphitheatre of bare red rocks, which looked as if they ought
    to have been covered by a falling lake instead of so small a
    stream. At the foot of the mountain we came to Adam Green's
    Mill.

    It was eight o'clock, and we had five miles of that terrible
    kind of road where the horses' feet are entangled among the logs
    amid water and swamps, to ride by moonlight, rather in the dark,
    for in the woods the glimmering of the moon is of little use,
    but rather throws shadows which deceive the traveller, tho' to a
    picturesque eye they are full of indistinct and solemn beauty,
    but little serviceable to horses who plunge to their knees in
    mud pools half full of loose logs.

    By daylight I much fear these roads, and had particularly
    dreaded this, but not being able to see or try to avoid the
    danger, and my nerves braced by this cold and dry night, I went
    thro' it not only well but with a degree of pleasure, admiring
    the unusual brightness of the stars, and the immense apparent
    height given to the trees by the depth of shade. I was so
    engaged by the scene that I did not much advert to the cold,
    which was very great in passing the swampy grounds.

    After three miles we came into good galloping ground on fine
    turf by the side of the lake, till we came to the "King's Head
    Inn," at the "Head of the Lake."

    Here Walbekanine and a number of his tribe, who are encamped a
    mile distant, were assembled to compliment the Governor, and
    fired muskets in our horses' faces, their usual mark of respect,
    which frightened me and my horse very much; he started and I
    shrieked, but the sound was lost in the whoops of the Indians.
    They gave us the largest land tortoise I ever saw.

    Sat. 11th--At the King's Head Inn. This house was built by the
    Governor to facilitate the communication between Niagara and the
    La Tranche, where he intended to establish the seat of
    government, and its situation was not without reference to a
    military position.

[Illustration: The "Head" of Lake Ontario.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--The King's Head stood near the southeast or southerly end of
Burlington Bay, near the present filtering basins of the Hamilton
Waterworks, and north of the pumping house. The house was two miles
south of the Burlington Canal, 200 feet from the bay shore, and its
front faced north or northwesterly looking towards the Brant homestead.
It stood at the junction of the Hamilton and Stoney Creek road on the
west side, between Burlington Bay and Lake Ontario. In connection with
the King's Head Inn and its situation, "Topographical Description of
Upper Canada" says:--"At the head of Lake Ontario there is a smaller
lake, within a long beach, of about five miles, from whence there is an
outlet to Lake Ontario, over which there is a bridge. At the south end
of the beach is the King's Head, a good inn, erected for the
accommodation of travellers, by order of His Excellency Major-General
Simcoe, the lieutenant-governor. It is beautifully situated at a
small portage which leads from the head of a natural canal connecting
Burlington Bay with Lake Ontario, and is a good landmark."

[Illustration: Coote's Paradise, near Burlington Bay, 1796.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Another inn was intended to be built at the Grand River. There
    are eight rooms in this house, besides two low wings behind it,
    joined by a colonnade, where are the offices. It is a pretty
    plan. I breakfasted in a room to the S.E., which commands the
    view of the lake on the south shore, of which we discern the
    Point of the Forty-Mile Creek, Jones' Point and some other
    houses. From the rooms to the N.W. we see Flamborough Head and
    Burlington Bay. The sand cliffs on the north shore of Burlington
    Bay look like red rocks. The beach is like a park covered with
    large, spreading oaks. At eight o'clock we set out in a boat to
    go to Beasley's, at the head of Burlington Bay, about eight
    miles. The river and bay were full of canoes; the Indians were
    fishing; we bought some fine salmon of them. When we had near
    crossed the bay, Beasley's house became a very pretty object. We
    landed at it, and walked up the hill, from whence is a beautiful
    view of the lake, with wooded points breaking the line of shore
    and Flamborough in the background. The hill is quite like a
    park, with large oak trees dispersed, but no underwood.

[Illustration: The King's Head Inn, Burlington Bay.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--The location of this point of land was on the north shore of the
lake, east of Burlington, Ont.

Richard Beasley was an Indian trader. He was the first settler at the
"Head of the Lake." He owned the land now known as Dundurn Park. It is
stated by the Beasley descendants that the house of Richard Beasley was
west of the present site of Dundurn Castle and that the building was
afterwards incorporated in the present castle, but this is not at all
likely as the first dwelling must have been built of logs. The so-called
castle is a substantial residence, built of brick and well proportioned.
The late Senator McInnes, the last owner, informed me that the stone
building at the western part of the castle, now used as a gymnasium, was
built prior to the main structure. It shows indications of having been
incorporated in the main building. The descendants of Beasley's family
state that Richard Beasley moved to his house at Dundurn immediately
after his arrival at Hamilton, or more properly speaking, Barton
Township, and that his sons, Richard, George, David C., and Henry
Beasley were born in the house, the latter in 1793. Without documentary
evidence it is believed that Richard Beasley's, the U. E. Loyalist's,
first house, was at Dundurn, and that his elder sons were born in a
house on this site.

[Illustration: King's Head Inn, from the South-east.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Sat. 11th--We walked two miles on this park, which is quite
    natural, for there are no settlements near it. Beasley's, the
    Indian trader, can scarcely be called such, trading being his
    only occupation; but the country appears more fit for the
    reception of inhabitants than any part of the province I have
    seen, being already cleared.

    The Governor says the country on the banks of the La Tranche is
    like this, but the plains infinitely more extensive. Further
    west of this terrace we saw Coote's Paradise, so called from a
    Capt. Coote, who spent a great deal of time in shooting ducks in
    this marshy tract of land below the hill we are upon. It abounds
    with wild fowl and tortoises; from hence it appears more like a
    river or lake than a marsh, and Mordaunt's Point in the distance
    takes a fine shape. I was so pleased with this place that the
    Governor stay'd and dined at Beasley's. A strong east wind
    prevented our sailing back. We therefore arrived late, and found
    a salmon and tortoise ready dressed for our dinner. Walked on
    the beach in the evening. Beasley gave me a weed, somewhat like
    a milkwort, a small white flower with a long root, which tastes
    hot and aromatic, which he called rattlesnake plantain. I think
    it is what Charlevoix calls senega. There are several different
    plants called rattlesnake, from being supposed to cure the
    bite of that snake. (Senega or seneca, snake root, antidote for
    bite of rattlesnake.)

[Illustration: Lake Ontario and Original Entrance to Burlington Bay,
1796.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--Captain Coote, formerly of the 8th Regiment of Foot, was so keen
a sportsman and spent so much of his time in the marsh shooting ducks
that it was called Coote's Paradise. The marsh was between the head of
Burlington Bay and Dundas, Ontario.

    Sun. 12th--Riding near Jones' house (Augustus Jones, the
    Surveyor) and pond, we saw three deer, I suppose going to the
    pond. They stood still some time. We went to Adam Green's. He
    showed us a spring of salt water, which look'd thick and blue as
    it fell into a tub, from whence I tasted it. He and his daughter
    guided us to see the Fall of Stoney Creek from the bottom.

[Illustration: The Shore at the "Head of the Lake."

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--Stoney Creek is a village in Wentworth County, on Lake Ontario,
six miles east of Hamilton. This place was the scene of a battle between
the British and Americans in 1813, in which the latter were defeated.

    Sun. 12th--We went through pathless woods over rocks, logs--and,
    in fact, the most difficult walk I ever took, and if the girl
    had not preceded me I should have given it up. We came too near
    the fall to see it in a picturesque view. I crossed the river on
    stones. A man climbed a considerable height up part of the red
    amphitheatre to get me a piece of the stones. He had no apparent
    footing, it was so perpendicular. He formed a singular
    appearance.

    This part of the mountain is said to abound with rattlesnakes,
    and why I did not meet them in these unfrequented places I do
    not know. I gathered a great many plants. Green gave them all
    names, and I stopped at his house to write them down. Ginseng,
    a root highly valued as a tonic, which the merchants tell me
    they send to England, and in some years has sold at a guinea a
    pound; sarsaparilla, golden thread--the roots look like gold
    thread. When steeped in brandy they make a fine aromatic
    tincture and liquorice; consumption vine, a pretty creeper.
    Green's daughter was cured of consumption by drinking tea made
    of it. Poison vine, in appearance much like the former, but
    differs in the number of leaves; one has five, the other seven.
    Madder, toothache plant, a beautiful species of fern; sore
    throat weed; dragon's blood; Adam and Eve, or ivy blade, very
    large, which heals cuts or burns; droppings of beach;
    enchanter's night shade (a slender, erect herb, with small white
    flowers, inhabiting cool, damp woods); dewberries; wild turnip,
    which cures a cough--it is like an aram.

    They prepared me some refreshment at this house, some excellent
    cakes, baked on the coals; eggs; a boiled black squirrel; tea,
    and coffee made of peas, which was good; they said coffee was
    better. The sugar was made from black walnut trees, which looks
    darker than that from the maple, but I think it is sweeter.

    Green's wife died a year ago and left ten children, who live
    here with their father in a house consisting of a room, a closet
    and a loft; but being New Jersey people, their house is
    delicately clean and neat, and not the appearance of being
    inhabited by three people, every part is so neatly kept. I sent
    a boy to gather a flower I forgot to bring from the mountain,
    and he met a rattlesnake. We rode back to the "King's Head" to
    dinner.

    Mon. 13th--The wind being against our going to York, we rode on
    the beach, and had a sweet view of Burlington Bay. We passed the
    Indian encampment. Their huts and dogs among the fine oak trees
    they were under, formed a picturesque appearance. Afterwards we
    sailed to the north shore of Burlington Bay and pitched our
    tents near a house, where we had the tea kettle boiled, but we
    found the sand flies very troublesome. I found a pretty small
    tortoise, but boiling it took off the polish from the shell.

    Tues. 14th--The wind is high and contrary; we could not attempt
    going to York. This place is so delightful I do not regret it.

    Wed. 15th--Capt. Brant (Thayendanegea) the Indian Chief, called
    on horseback on his way to Niagara, but left his sons and
    attendants here till the wind proves fair for them to proceed.
    The boys are going to school at Niagara. They are fine children
    about ten years old. They dined with us and gave Francis a boat.
    Francis gave the Mohawks a sheep for their dinner, and
    afterwards they danced and played at ball. A violent east wind
    and terrific surf--a prodigious sea this evening. I stood for
    some time under an umbrella to admire its grandeur. It proved a
    very wet night. Brant's sons slept in our house, and the Indians
    found shelter under a number of planks; these are here to finish
    the house.

    Thurs. 16th--Rode to the inlet and embarked in the boat, for the
    continued east wind had raised such a swell we thought the canoe
    would not be pleasant. The wind was light. It soon became calm
    and continued so until 12 o'clock, when it rose violently from
    the west, which coming against the late swell formed a
    terrifying sea.

    The motion of the sea was disagreeable and my fears awoke also,
    till we landed at 3 o'clock at the River Credit, 12 miles from
    York. We were surprised to see how well the canoe made her way
    through this heavy sea. She rode like a duck on the waves. After
    dinner we walked by the River Credit. Numbers of Indians resort
    here at this season to fish for salmon, and the Governor wishing
    to go some way up it, which our boat was too large to do, he
    made signs to some Indians to take us into their canoe, which
    they did; there were two men in her, which with ourselves and
    Sophia completely filled the canoe. They carried us about
    three miles, when we came to rapids and went on shore.

[Illustration: The River Credit, near York, 1796.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    The banks were high, one side covered with pine, and a pretty
    piece of rocky country on the other. On our return to the canoe
    a small snake was in it, and the Indians took it out with
    caution and abhorrence. They hate snakes, which they seem to
    dread more than the Europeans do. We returned to our boats,
    where, not having any provision left, or money, the Governor
    made signs to know that they should be recompensed for their
    trouble if they came to York. There is abundance of salmon
    caught in this river. About five, the weather being calm, we set
    out and arrived at York at nine.

[Illustration: The Beach near the King's Head Inn.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--The "Rapids" near the mouth of the river Credit still exist,
being situated at Streetsville. They are, however, now greatly reduced
in volume as compared with what they were even sixty years ago. These
rapids were to a certain extent navigable, as venturesome lumbermen from
the earliest days of the province used to run their timber rafts down
them during the spring. The Credit River empties into Lake Ontario,
thirteen miles west of Toronto.




  CHAPTER XX.

  _LEAVETAKINGS OF FRIENDS._


The 16th of June, 1796, was not a very favorable day for a water trip
along the north shore of Lake Ontario, but the Governor having waited
for a favorable wind since the 13th, determined to make an effort to
reach York on the 16th. The party were in a sailboat while a canoe
followed, and by three o'clock in the afternoon they landed at the River
Credit. The trip was varied by an excursion three miles up that river in
a large canoe which had room enough for the Governor, his wife and
daughter, and two Indians. The weather calming about five o'clock, a
start was made for York, which was reached by nine o'clock.

The Governor had early in the year determined upon returning to England.
His relations with Lord Dorchester had not been of a harmonious
character, and his opinions so differed from those of the
Governor-General, especially on the subject of the building of Fort
Miami, that Governor Simcoe preferred to ask for leave of absence. This
request was answered about the middle of July, for on the 14th the
official letter came to York stating that the frigate "Pearl" would be
at Quebec to take him home in the beginning of August.

Wednesday, July 20th, was the last day at Castle Frank and on the 21st
Mrs. Simcoe said good-bye to her friends, but "was so much out of
spirits" that she was unable to dine with Mrs. McGill, and to make
matters worse she "cried all day." At three o'clock on the afternoon of
the 21st the "Onondaga" weighed anchor, and the guns at the Fort saluted
the Governor as the Provincial vessel started on its journey around the
peninsula and east on the lake to Kingston.

Of these last days at York Mrs. Simcoe writes:--

    Fri. 17th June--Very warm day. Mrs. McGill and Mrs. Macaulay,
    wife of Dr. Macaulay, dined with me.

    Mon. 20th--Part of the regiment (Queen's Rangers) embarked for
    Niagara.

    Sat. 25th--We intended to have gone to the Humber in the canoe,
    attended by music, and spend a pleasant day there, but Francis
    being ill with fever prevented it.

    Wed. 29th--Very ill and feverish, having been alarmed about
    Francis.

    Thurs. 30th--Sent the children to Castle Frank in a boat. We
    rode there through those pleasant shady pine plains, now covered
    with sweet scented fern. There is no underwood under the pines,
    so it is good riding.

    Fri. 1st July--A large party from the garrison to dinner. A boat
    with music accompanied them; we heard it in the evening until
    they had passed the town. It sounds delightfully.

Note.--The favorite route by water from the garrison or Fort was from
the Fort through Toronto Bay to its east end and then up the Don River.

[Illustration: The Garrison at York (Toronto), 1796.

Showing First Houses in the Fort and Magazine on the Shore.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Sun. 3rd--The Governor went to the garrison and returned to
    supper. Some heavy thunder showers fell this evening and the
    mosquitos more troublesome than ever. It is scarcely possible to
    write or use my hands, which are always occupied in killing them
    or driving them away. This situation being high does not at all
    secure us from mosquitos or gnats.

    Mon. 4th--I descended the hill and walked to Skinner's Mill
    through the meadows, which looked like meadows in England.
    Playter was haymaking. Going down the hill some dragon's blood
    seed fell out as I passed, which I collected.

    Wed. 6th--I passed Playter's picturesque bridge over the Don; it
    is a butternut tree fallen across the river, the branches still
    growing full leaf. Mrs. Playter being timorous, a pole was
    fastened through the branches to hold by. Having attempted to
    pass it, I was determined to proceed, but was frightened before
    I got half way.

Note.--This was the first bridge over the Don River at York at the foot
of the present Winchester Street, Toronto, placed there about 1794.

    Thurs. 7th--The weather excessively hot and we find the
    underground room very comfortable; the windows on the side of it
    are cut through the side of the hill.

    The winter we were at Kingston, deer were continually seen about
    here, but the noise made by the carpenters at work upon the
    house last winter, prevented them from coming. A fine eagle shot
    at the town.

    Sun. 10th--Rode very pleasantly through the pine plains;
    gathered tea berries. I saw mosquito hawks' nests, at least the
    eggs and young birds lying on pieces of bark on the ground.
    Query, whether the mosquito hawk is not the "whipper will"
    (whip-poor-will), so called from the resemblance of its notes to
    the words--which makes such a noise every night. We had company
    at dinner. I walked down the hill in the evening and gathered
    dragon's blood, a plant or dragon root, from which you get resin
    of darkish red color; Lychnis de Canada, a plant with scarlet
    flower; tryliums, which resemble lilies; toothache plant, like
    toothache grass. It has a pungent taste. Licorice, wild lilies,
    etc.

    Mon. 11th--A very wet day and the mosquitos so numerous that
    smoke would not drive them away; when it grows dark I take my
    candle and sit to read on my bed under the mosquito net, which
    is the only protection from them.

    Tues. 12th--We rode to the town by the new road opened by the
    Government farm, and through the town; it is the shortest way in
    point of time. The road is so much better than Yonge Street.
    Dined with Mrs. McGill. Returned to Castle Frank.

    Wed. 13th--The Governor rode to the garrison this morning. In
    the evening we went in a boat, caught a sun fish.

    Thur. 14th--Walked through the meadows towards Coon's farm on
    the Don-saw millions of the yellow and black butterflies, New
    York swallow tails, and heaps of their wings lying about.
    Gathered wild gooseberries, and when they were stewed found them
    excellent sauce for salmon. In the afternoon the Governor
    received his leave of absence, and information that the frigate
    "Pearl," Capt. Ballard, is at Quebec, and is to take him to
    England. She sails August the 10th.

    Fri. 15th--Rode to the Garrison and slept there.

    Sat. 16th--Hot and sultry weather.

    Mon. 18th--Rode to dine at Castle Frank; so heavy a shower of
    rain that we were obliged to quit the lower room, the windows of
    which are not glazed--slept here.

    Tues. 19th--Mrs. McGill and Mrs. Macaulay breakfasted here. I
    returned to the garrison with them in Mr. Bouchette's boat, and
    rode back to dine at Castle Frank. Mr. Pilkington came in the
    evening. It was very damp and cold. I was glad to stand by the
    fire.

    Wed. 20th--Took leave of Castle Frank, called at Playter's,
    dined with Mrs. McGill. Mentioned my spinning wheel. Slept at
    the garrison.

Note.--Mrs. Simcoe had brought with her to Canada a spinning wheel which
was made by order of Queen Charlotte, consort of George III., for the
Marchioness of Buckingham, and given by her to Mrs. Simcoe, who on
leaving Canada in 1796 gave the spinning wheel to Mrs. McGill, aunt of
Mrs. Stephen Heward, Toronto.

[Illustration: Mrs. Simcoe's Spinning-Wheel.

(_From original in possession of Mrs. Stephen Heward, Toronto._)]

    Thur. 21st--Took leave of Mrs. McGill and Miss Crookshank. I was
    so much out of spirits I was unable to dine with them. Mrs.
    McGill sent me some dinner, but I could not eat; cried all day.
    The Governor dined with Mr. McGill and at three o'clock we went
    on board the "Onondaga," under a salute from the vessels. Little
    wind, soon became calm.

    Fri. 22nd--Light wind and contrary.

    Sat. 23rd--We were opposite the 50-mile creek from Niagara.

Note.--Probably about in line with Cobourg harbour.

    Sun. 24th--Opposite Presqu-isle head.

Note.--Near the Carrying Place from Lake Ontario to Bay of Quinte.

    Mon. 25th--A side wind towards evening, fair and fresh; at half
    past eleven at night we anchored in Kingston harbour.

After a stay of about eighteen hours the King's bateaux were ready and
the Governor and his family on the 26th commenced their journey to
Montreal, at which place they arrived on the evening of the 30th. The
trip was much like the trip up the river in 1792, and to Mrs. Simcoe it
had many charms, so that the notes in her diary are most interesting.
She writes:--

[Illustration: Playter's Bridge over the Don River, at York.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Tues. 26th--A cold day. The Governor breakfasted on shore; at
    eleven we embarked in a batteau; at six stopped at a rocky
    island six miles from Gananowui, where we made a fire and boiled
    a tea kettle; there is a pretty bay here. I called the island
    "Isle au trippe," from gathering _trippe de roche_ on the rocks.
    It is a kind of liverwort plant good for diseases of liver,
    which the Canadians going to the Grande Portage boil and eat on
    very hungry days, but it is bitter and not wholesome. We
    proceeded three miles to a beautiful rocky island (as we
    thought, but it proved to be the main shore) among the thousand
    Islands. I called it "Bass Island," for the number of black bass
    I saw swimming in shallow water near the shore. We supped at
    ten, the stars shining unusually bright. We placed the beds on
    the trunks in one of the batteau, which was covered with sail
    cloth over the awning. We slept extremely well and so cool that
    we determined to keep that batteau so fitted up for the rest of
    the voyage rather than go into houses, now the Governor is so
    unwell, and suffers from the heat, besides the fresh breeze on
    the water keeps away the mosquitos. We heard a wild kind of
    shriek several times in the night; we thought it was loons,
    which scream in that way. An American said he guessed it was the
    painters (so they call panthers), as the sound came from the
    shore of the United States, where those animals abound.

[Illustration: Castle Frank in the Summer of 1796.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Wed. 27th--We breakfasted and set off at seven--it rained.
    Passed Toniata Isles and the river of that name, then the Isles
    au Baril, on one of which we landed. The wind and sea so high we
    had difficulty in turning the Point, from whence we had a pretty
    view of the islands. Dined here and gathered hurtleberries. We
    afterwards came to Capt. Jones', the prettiest point on the
    river; he has a fine farm and garden, and water melons, though
    so much to the N.E. Here we waited until the tea kettle was
    boiled, and then proceeding, passed Commissary Jones' saw mill,
    E. Jones' windmill and Mr. Cowan's pot ashery, near Johnstone.

Note.--Toniata Island is five leagues from Pointe au Baril near the
present village of Maitland, now known as Grenadier Island. In a map
William Chewett made for Governor Simcoe and enclosed in a despatch to
the Duke of Portland, 29th July, 1795, Toniata Island is shown opposite
Leeds County, about ten miles west of Grenville River. Pointe an Baril
is near the present village of Maitland between Brockville and Prescott.

[Illustration: Kingston from the Harbour, 1796.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

  Key to Illustration.

    No. 1--Is Cartwright's wharf and storehouse, built on the Horn
    which turned in toward the ground now occupied by the Montreal
    Transportation Company's shipyard, there being formerly a bay on
    the site of the shipyard and extending in close to the present
    site of the Haymarket. It is now occupied partly by the military
    stables on the south side of the road leading to and across the
    Cataraqui bridge, partly by the road itself and partly by
    Knapp's boathouse. It is on the north side of the road and close
    to the end of the bridge.

    No. 2--These buildings were storehouses, formerly occupied by
    the Quartermaster-General's department. They have long since
    been swept away, their site being occupied by officers' quarters
    within the walls of the barracks. The foundation walls are still
    visible in the barrack square.

    No. 3.--This is Forsyth's wharf, now called the Queen's Wharf,
    in the barrack yard, on the south side and on the line of
    Barrack Street.

    No. 4--The flag on Fort Frontenac, probably the S.E. bastion,
    where there was a round tower, the foundations of which are
    visible in the barrack square.

    No. 5--Probably the gable of the present Central Hotel, corner
    Queen and Ontario Streets.

    *    *    *    *    *

    Stopped for the night at Pt. au Cardinal, just below Les
    Geolettes (the Gallops, seven miles above Iroquois), which
    terrifying rapid we passed in a minute. Here Mr. Hugh Munro is
    building a mill. The timbers are uncovered and it has the
    appearance of a sketch of a ruin in Italy. Some merchants'
    batteaux were drawing up round the point with the greatest
    labor, exertion and difficulty, and the velocity with which a
    boat appeared flying downwards with great rapidity formed a
    contrast well worth seeing. We supped at ten on a fine piece of
    dry ground under a plum tree and sheltered by some boards
    belonging to the mill; a cold windy night. A stiff breeze astern
    kept off the mosquitos. I was only afraid the cable of our boat,
    which was tied to a tree, should by this fresh breeze get loose
    and leave us drift down the rapids.

[Illustration: Bridge over the Don River at York, 1796.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    Thur. 28th--We breakfasted at seven. I made a sketch and
    embarked. Passed Frazier's farm and Pt. Iroquois, where the
    Indians formerly fought a battle, Pt. aux Pins, a fine place for
    a fortification, Pt. Acolo, where Mr. Munro's sawmill stands
    near the Rapid Plat, Capt. Duncan's, Grosse Point, Pointe au
    Gobelet and then we came to the Long Sault, which extends nine
    miles.

[Illustration: Point Iroquois, Dundas County.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

[Illustration: The River Below Point Iroquois.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

Note.--Point Iroquois, a beautiful point of land jutting out into the
St. Lawrence from the Township of Matilda, is now incorporated in the
village of Iroquois, Dundas County. When General Williamson passed down
the river with the United States army in November 1813 (shortly before
the battle of Chrysler's Farm) he met with obstruction upon reaching
Point Iroquois, as a picket of about a dozen men, among whom were Jacob
and Peter Brouse, were posted at this point, which commands an extensive
view of the river. The first Methodist Church in Dundas was built in
1797 upon Point Iroquois. Croil in his "History of Dundas" writes:--"A
more beautiful site could not have been chosen. The point upon which it
stood was the highest and most picturesque headland upon the St.
Lawrence between Brockville and Montreal, and is said to have been a
favorite spot with the Indians when holding their councils of war in
days of yore. It commanded a view of the river above and below for many
miles." Below Point Iroquois is situated Point aux Pins, the narrowest
part of the river; and Rapid du Plat is in front of the township of
Williamsburg, above Morrisburg.

Honorable John Munro's mill was built on a magnificent scale for those
days. It was on the point below Flagg's, just opposite the first rough
water in the Rapid du Plat.

[Illustration: A Bend in the River St. Lawrence.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    We descended the Long Sault in an hour without sailing and
    seldom rowing, though near particular currents they rowed with
    great exertion. The most agitated part is towards the end of the
    rapids, where the river becomes wider; here I had an opportunity
    of seeing the boats which followed us; they appeared to fly. I
    compared them to race horses trying to outrun each other. The
    velocity was extreme; sometimes the whirlpool turned them round;
    at others the head of one and stern of another boat appeared
    buried under the waves. I sketched the boats. These rapids did
    not appear formidable to me last year. I suppose my mind was
    then more engaged by the cause of my voyage, and the Governor's
    situation at the Miami; then I thought not of myself; now I had
    nothing to think of but the present danger, and was terrified.

    In the entrance of Lake St. Francis we went to a small island
    south of our course; we had the tea kettle boiled and walked
    about for some time; there were many wild vines, nut,
    gooseberries and sumach trees; one of the latter we carried away
    to make chessmen of it, as the wood is said to be beautiful. The
    weather immoderately hot, and no wind since we left the rapids.
    The clouds foretell rain.

    We stopped at Pointe Morandiere, which stretches a great way
    into the lake; we were agreeably surprised to find it a stony,
    dry piece of land; the swamps are to the north of it.

Note.--Pointe Morandiere is on the St. Lawrence, east of Cornwall, on
the northwestern end of Lake St. Francis.

    Thur. 28th--I was very hungry and impatient for supper, but much
    afraid from the dark appearance of the sky that I would have to
    leave the ducks untasted, for I must have retired to the boat
    immediately if the rain began, for I never could have passed the
    slippery rocks I had to cross after they were wet. However, the
    sky cleared, we supped and sat admiring the stars till after
    eleven o'clock. A prodigious number of moths or flies here,
    which burnt themselves and lay in the fire in large heaps, but I
    did not see mosquitos.

    Fri. 29th--Breakfasted at six in the morning and set off with a
    fair wind; passed Pte. au Bodet at nine; then Pte. au Foin, a
    very pretty spot; passed the rapids near the Coteau du Lac;
    passed Pte. au Diable near the Long Sault, and stopped at Pte.
    au Biron, on a hill from whence the view towards Coteau de Lac
    is very pretty.

[Illustration: Isle aux Soeurs, now Nun's Island.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

    There is a good Seigneurie House falling to ruins. We saw
    batteaux drawing round this point where the current is
    particularly strong. They used great exertion in poling and
    drawing with a tow line and pushing the boat, being above their
    knees in water. We embarked after dinner, and notwithstanding
    the immoderate heat they insisted on taking off the awning to go
    down the Rapids of the Cedars. The preparation seemed formidable
    but the ensuing journey more so. People usually go from hence in
    calèches four miles to the cascades, but the Governor wished to
    see all the rapids and would not go on shore.

    This rapid is much more frightful than the Long Sault. I cannot
    describe how terrifying the extent of furious, dashing white
    waves appeared, and how the boat rose and plunged among them,
    the waves sometimes washing into the boat. Our keeping rather
    too near the shore made it worse. There is a place called "the
    run" near the locks, which is like going down the stream of an
    overshot mill, and I really thought we never should have risen
    out of it. The men rowed with all their might, and in passing it
    called out "Vive le Roi." We passed a rock which really seemed
    to fly from us. The children called out "How fast it runs." We
    did not leave this agitated and agitating scene till we came in
    sight of Pointe Claire and Isle Perrot and had seen the junction
    of the transparent St. Lawrence with the dirty waters of the
    Ottawa.

    We slept to-night at the Isle aux Soeurs. The island consists of
    a table-shaped hill of fine turf, from whence are three fine
    views: To the north-west, looking over the immense width of the
    St. Lawrence, which is like a lake, is seen the Isle au Paix,
    Isle Perrot, Pointe Claire--in the distance Lac des deux
    Montagnes (the Lake of Two Mountains), the country about the
    Rideaux and Ottawa rivers, and some distant blue highlands. To
    the north-east, a rich, woody foreground with a pretty sandy
    beach, and the blue mountain of Montreal in the distance.

Note.--The Isle aux Soeurs was the French name for Nun's Island, now St.
Bernard's Isle, at the mouth of the Chateauguay River, and is washed by
the Chateauguay on two sides and by the St. Lawrence on one.

    To the south, the village and river of Chateauguay (on the river
    of that name and 24 miles south of Montreal) winding along woods
    and cultivated country to a great distance, the Seigneurie
    House, and the river falling into the St. Lawrence forms the
    near view. This island and a house on it belong to the nuns, who
    reside at Montreal, and here they take care of insane persons.
    We pitched the tent at the foot of the hill and near the house.

Note.--Bouchette in his Topography states that the Seigniory at
Chateauguay belonged in 1815 to the Grey Nuns. It was originally
granted, in 1673, to Le Moyne, Sieur de Longueuil. In connection with
the house Bouchette uses the word "Mansion," for it could not be
designated a convent, as there were only two nuns. Being the owners of
the Seigniory, the nuns resided in the Manor House.

    Sat. 30th--A little rain. I walked to the Seigneurie House,
    which looks like a Flemish building, examined a raft lying in
    the Chateauguay River and thought its construction very curious.

    At nine we embarked, and at eleven stopped at La Chine (Lachine)
    to take a pilot to conduct us to Montreal thro' the rapids,
    which extend almost the whole way, and are thought to be most
    dangerous of any, as the water is so shallow; the great width of
    the river adds terror to the scene, which presents miles of
    foaming waves. We stopped a little while, that we might not
    overtake or run foul of an immense _radeau_ or raft that was
    going down. However, she struck on a rock and we passed her. It
    was a wild accompaniment to the scene we were in. The distant
    view was fine; on one side the mountain of Montreal and the town
    extending below, the island of St. Helen's opposite the east end
    of Montreal, and near to us that of St. Paul's, with some ruins
    of burnt houses upon it. On the other side the town of La
    Prairie (on the south shore seven miles from Montreal), with the
    blue hills of Chambly and Beloeil Mountain in the distance.

    The Governor desired me to sketch the rapids of La Chine. I
    believe he wished to take off my attention from the rapids. I
    was more disposed to have cried than to have talked; reason told
    me there was no danger, because Canadians pass the rapids safely
    so many times every year, but one has to resist all that can
    affright the senses of seeing or hearing, so the pilot, to make
    himself appear brave, was perpetually reminding us of the great
    danger, which only his knowledge could save us from. We arrived
    at Mr. Gray's, at Montreal.

    Sun. 31st--Went to church in Lieut.-General Christie's coach.

Note.--General Gabriel Christie, born 1722, died in Montreal, 1799; he
was a brevet-major under Amherst in 1759, and commander-in-chief in
Canada, 1798. He was also a Justice of the Peace and a member of the
Legislative and Executive Councils.

[Illustration: General Christie.]

    Francis' surprise at a room on wheels was great. He had never
    been in any carriage but an open one. This house of Mr. Gray's
    is very pleasant, from Venetian blinds being fixed into all the
    window frames, which throws such a sombre light that all the
    women who have called have looked handsome, tho' they were not
    so in broad daylight; _et je me sentit valoir dix fois plus
    qu'un autretemps_ (and I feel worth ten times more than at other
    times).

    We drank tea at Mr. Frobisher's country house. It commands a
    noble view towards La Prairie, St. Helen's, Chambly and Beloeil,
    the town of Montreal, and a cultivated country in the near view.
    Francis, being accustomed to sentinels, asked, when he saw Mr.
    Frobisher's dogs' houses before the door, whether the people
    here kept dogs as sentinels. Mrs. Frobisher has an excellent
    garden; there was strawberry spinach, which she showed me as a
    pretty but very poisonous plant. I assured her I had often eaten
    it in Upper Canada. I have not caught cold the whole of the
    journey, which I attribute to living so totally in the air. At
    Kingston my trunk fell into the water in taking it from the
    ship, so I have had none but damp clothes to wear since, and no
    opportunity of airing them, as I have met with no fire but where
    the men were cooking.

    Mon. Aug. 1st--I dined at Mr. Frobisher's; immoderate hot
    weather and a little rain.

Note.--The stay in Montreal was not prolonged. The Governor had official
matters, as a record says, to attend to, and he was anxious to leave the
affairs of his Province in good order. The accounts of the Province in
connection with the military expenditure were all sent in duplicate to
the authorities at Quebec, and some of these had to be adjusted. So
after three days had been spent in Montreal the bateaux were on the 2nd
of August in readiness, and on the fifth of the month the party landed
at Cap Rouge, nine miles from Quebec, and after a strenuous journey in
calèches, arrived at Belmont, near Quebec, the residence of Colonel
Caldwell, where they were received by their friends, who were delighted
to see the Governor and his wife again.

Mrs. Simcoe writes:--

    Tues. Aug. 2nd--Left Montreal at eight; passed Long Pt. (N.E. of
    Montreal and on the island), Pointe aux Trembles (three leagues
    from Montreal and on the island), Varennes (on the south shore,
    six leagues below Montreal), St. Sulpice (on the north shore,
    eight leagues below Montreal), with a strong, fair wind; dined
    in the boat near La Valtrie (on the north shore, N.E., and
    twelve leagues from Montreal). Soon afterwards fell a heavy
    thunderstorm. They furnished the boat at Montreal with so
    miserable an awning that it let the water through, and sent very
    inexperienced batteau men, who scarcely knew how to manage the
    boat. We were quite wet, but being near D'Autray, went on shore
    and determined to sleep there. Having been there twice already,
    I knew we should be well accommodated. A very cold night. The
    Maitre de Poste, La Fontaine and his wife, very old people, were
    perfectly Flemish figures. They supped in the room next to ours.
    I observe they eat onion broth, fat bacon, and finished by
    drinking sour milk; after supper they played a game at cards
    they called "le grand Brisque," which they seemed to be much
    amused by.

    Wed. 3rd--Left D'Autray at eight, wrapped up in that fleecy
    hosiery which has been the companion of all my travels. At five
    this evening we came to Pte. du Lac St. Pierre, which is a
    widening of the St. Lawrence, a league from Three Rivers (30
    leagues below Montreal), where the batteau men wished to go; but
    the Governor, being determined not to lodge in a town, insisted
    on their going into this little bay, which, doing unwillingly,
    they struck us against rocks; it was very shallow water, as they
    had said. We found the beach very pleasant, and walked from
    thence to a rising ground, where are the remains of Pte. du Lac
    barracks, built by Sir F. Haldimand in 1789. Gathered very fine
    wild raspberries. We were overtaken by a thunder shower that
    wetted me thro', but what was worse, on our return found the
    canvas and awning of our boat had not been properly fixed and
    that the beds were quite wet; there was no remedy, so I sat by
    the fire and dryed my habit, eat my supper, and slept in my
    clothes on the damp bed, without catching any cold.

    Thur. 4th--Drew a plant of wild rice which was in blossom;
    gathered cardinal flowers, a beautiful purple flower, sand
    cherries and some raspberries. We went out of the bay without
    touching a rock, stopped five minutes at Three Rivers to speak
    to Mr. Mountain. At five this afternoon we went on shore at a
    most beautiful point, St. Pierre les Becquet. It is a very steep
    ascent from the beach to the village, among wood and rock. We
    went to the Cure's, who very civilly shewed us his house and
    garden and the church, which is very neat. From the garden is an
    extensive view. The mouths of the rivers Batiscan and St. Anne
    are seen on the opposite shore, with distant blue hills. This is
    the finest point on the river and a good military position.
    Madame Bàby (wife of Hon. François Bàby, of Quebec) has lands
    here.

Note.--Mr. Mountain was the Bishop's elder brother, Dr. Jehoshaphat
Mountain, formerly rector of Peldon in Essex. He and his wife, with
their son and two daughters, were amongst the party who accompanied the
Bishop to Canada in 1793.

Batiscan River rises in the county of Quebec and falls into the St.
Lawrence at Batiscan Bridge. St. Anne River is in Montmorency County,
Que., and falls into the St. Lawrence at the east corner of the parish
of St. Anne.

    Thur. 4th--Descending the hill, we gathered nuts and wild
    fruits. Farther down the river the view of Richelieu (in
    Rouville County, about seven leagues S.E. of Montreal and south
    of the St. Lawrence), Deschambault (a village on the north shore
    of St. Lawrence, 14 leagues S.W. of Quebec), Grondines (a
    village in Portneuf County, on the north shore of the St.
    Lawrence and about 15 leagues above Quebec), in the distance,
    with bright lights from the setting sun very beautiful. We slept
    at Grondines in a room belonging to Mr. McCord, of Quebec. (He
    represents this village in the Parliament at Quebec.) We could
    not sleep on the water, as the tide obliged the boat to be
    brought on shore. A very cold night; we supped upon the beach.

    Fri. 5th--We set off at seven; I was extremely delighted with
    the high banks and beautiful scenery in passing Deschambault,
    Richelieu and Cap Santé on the north shore, opposite to which
    is Pt. Platon (on the south shore 13 leagues above Quebec),
    where we went on shore and admired the situation, which is fit
    for a fine house; there is a good farm belonging to the Convent
    des Ursulines at Quebec.

    We dined in the boat opposite the pretty village of St.
    Augustine (four leagues from Quebec), and then went ashore at
    Cap Rouge (three leagues from Quebec). The Commissary at
    Montreal ought to be ashamed of sending such batteau men. They
    frequently asked me how far we were from Quebec, and many such
    questions. The only man at all accustomed to the way was dying
    of ague and of no use. From the St. Lawrence we walked a mile
    (the tide being out) over wet ground like marsh, interspersed
    with rock, which brought us to a house where we got a calèche,
    which carried us a mile to a kind of Post House, where we
    dressed and set out in a calèche, ascending a prodigious steep
    but winding road among red rocks and wood, and four miles
    brought us to Belmont, where we found our friends well and happy
    to see us. They have just finished an addition to their house,
    which makes it very comfortable.

    As a proof of how much the Governor has suffered from the
    illness he had last autumn (the fever lasted from August till
    November), he was excessively fatigued by the exercise of
    driving four miles in the calèche.




  CHAPTER XXI.

  _HOMEWARD BOUND._


The Governor on his arrival at Quebec found that the "Pearl" had gone on
a cruise, and was expected back on the 10th of August; but, as the stay
at Quebec after his business had been transacted was, as he said in a
private letter, "a very pleasant one," he was glad to do nothing more
than await the arrival of the ship on which he and his wife were to sail
to England.

Lord and Lady Dorchester had left Quebec on 9th July, 1796, for England,
in the "Active" man-of-war, but unfortunately this ship was wrecked off
Anticosti on the 15th July. Simcoe was afraid that the "Pearl," which
had gone down the Gulf to save the stores, would be ordered to take the
Governor-General to England and so cause further delay. The "Pearl,"
however, arrived in Quebec on the 6th September, and on Saturday, the
10th, sailed for England with Governor Simcoe and his family, and after
a somewhat eventful voyage anchored off the Downs on the 13th of
October.

Mrs. Simcoe writes:--

    Sat. 6th--A wet morning. Mrs. and Miss Prescott called on me.
    Bishop Mountain's youngest child died last night; they sent a
    very polite message requesting us to use their house at Quebec
    and their carriage. The Bishop's family are going immediately to
    Three Rivers, to visit his brother.

Note.--Mrs. and Miss Prescott were the wife and daughter of General
Robert Prescott, who succeeded Lord Dorchester. The latter did not know
he was to be recalled until Prescott's arrival in Quebec in June of
1796. Although Lord Dorchester left for England in July of 1796, he
retained office until the following April, during which time Prescott
performed the actual duties of Governor. General Prescott then formally
became Governor-in-Chief, remaining in Canada until 1799, when he was
recalled. He died in England in 1815.

    Mon. 8th--Went to Quebec; called on Miss Mountain; dined at the
    Chateau; returned to Belmont in Mrs. Prescott's carriage. A
    heavy thunder shower when we were at dinner, but the weather
    still sultry. The country about Quebec is charming. The
    Governor, not having seen it in summer, is surprised at its
    beauty; the distant mountains appear more grand when the wooded
    country below is discerned, interspersed with the villages of
    Charlesbourg (four miles from Quebec), Montmorency (six and a
    half miles) and Lorette (eight miles). The "Pearl" frigate has
    gone on a cruise, but expected here on the 10th.

Note.--Miss Mountain was one of the Bishop's sisters who came to Canada
with him.

    Tues. 9th--The Governor went with Coll. Caldwell to his mills,
    and returned much fatigued.

    Wed. 10th--General and Mrs. Prescott dined here. I am very ill
    from the heat. I never felt the air so oppressive in Upper
    Canada.

    Thur. 11th--Left our hospitable friends at Belmont and went this
    evening to reside at the Bishop's house at Quebec, where we are
    very comfortably lodged. Our obligation to Bishop Mountain is
    great, for there are no tolerable accommodations here for
    travellers, and no lodgings to be hired but what are very
    miserable, as Mrs. Prescott experienced before the Château was
    vacant.

    Fri. 12th--There is a fog like our Indian summer, with
    insufferable heat. In the evening we walked upon Cape Diamond
    and to our favorite walk on the terrace. There is a cherry or
    grape tree in the Bishop's garden, as large as an apple tree.
    The fruit is the size of a large currant.

    Sat. 13th--We dined at Chief Justice's Osgoode. Met Mrs.
    Prescott.

    Sun. 14th--Went to church. Sat in the Governor's seat. Called on
    Mrs. Dalton and saw her beautiful drawings. I read a poem called
    "Caissa" in Jones' collection of Asiatic poems.

Note.--"Caissa," a poetic introduction to the game of chess, by Sir
William Jones (1746-1794), the celebrated Oriental scholar.

    Mon. 15th--Walked to Cape Diamond before breakfast.

    Tues. 16th--News arrived of the "Active," Capt. Leveson Gower,
    on the way to England, being wrecked off the Isle of Anticosti.
    The crew got safe on shore, and Lord and Lady Dorchester were
    taken from hence to Gaspé in a schooner which, fortunately for
    them, was passing Anticosti a day or two after they were
    wrecked. From Gaspé they were to go to Halifax, probably in the
    "Pearl," which detains her from being here.

Note.--Captain Leveson Gower was born in Maryland in 1750. He served in
the Revolutionary War, and died in 1818.

    Wed. 17th--Dined at Belmont; sultry weather.

    Thur. 18th--The ship "Adriatic" arrived from Halifax. Dined at
    the Château; thermometer 88. We were under great anxiety lest
    Lord Dorchester should take the "Pearl" to carry him to England
    from Halifax.

    Fri. 19th--So ill I could not dine with Madame Baby.

    Sat. 20th--So ill I could not dine with Mrs. Dunn.

    Sun. 21st--So ill I did not go to church. Mrs. Prescott called.

    Mon. 22nd, Tues. 23rd--Dined at home; the heat insufferable. The
    only hours which are tolerable are from eight till ten at night,
    when we walk upon the ramparts.

    Wed. 24th--Drank tea with Mrs. Winslow; in the night the wind
    changed and it became very cold.

    Thur. 25th--The Bishop and Mrs. Mountain called on their return
    from Montreal, where they had spent the last fortnight. I drank
    tea with Mrs. Smith. It was too cold to walk with pleasure in
    the garden.

    Sat. 27th--Madame Baby obtained the Bishop's order for our
    admission to the Convent of Ursulines. The nuns were very civil,
    and pleased at my recollecting those I had seen before.

    Mon. 29th--Dined at Woodfield. Two ships of those destined to go
    under convoy of the "Pearl" sailed to-day. Tired of waiting for
    her.

    Tues. 30th--Dined at the Château.

    Wed. 31st--Dined at Belmont.

    Thur. Sept. 1st--We dined at Mr. Finlay's, the Deputy
    Postmaster-General, at Woodside. It is a very pretty situation.
    Quebec and Charlesbourg are good objects from it, but the
    weather was hazy. I walked thro' pretty grounds in the
    afternoon.

Note.--A residence on the St. Louis Road, built on part of the land of
the old country seat of Thornhill.

    Fri. 2nd--A wet day.

    Sat. 3rd--Drank tea with Miss Mountain. The "Pearl" arrived from
    Halifax in 14 days.

    Sun. 4th--Coll. and Mrs. Caldwell dined with me.

    Mon. 5th--Dined at Woodfield. Walked in the evening towards
    Sillery and saw a beautiful view of Cape Diamond, the Isle of
    Orleans, etc., under setting sun.

Note.--Sillery was originally a mission founded in 1637, named after
Commandeur Noël Brûlart de Sillery, Prime Minister of Louis XIII., who
gave 12,000 livres (or pounds) for the purpose. The old Sillery
settlement was within the limits of the parish of St. Foye. The mission
was about four and a half miles from Quebec, on the north shore of the
St. Lawrence.

[Illustration: The Recollet Church, Quebec.

(_From an Engraving in the J. Ross Robertson Collection._)]

    Tues. 6th--As I was getting into the carriage to go to the
    Château the street was full of smoke, which we supposed to be
    from a chimney on fire. Soon after we arrived at Mrs. Prescott's
    the gentlemen were informed that the fire, which had begun in a
    barn of hay, was raging furiously in St. Louis Street and
    approaching the Bishop's house. Gen'l. Simcoe immediately went
    there and remained the whole afternoon, giving directions to
    some of the crew of the "Pearl," by whose exertions the Bishop's
    house and houses adjoining were saved, tho' they several times
    caught fire. Mrs. Prescott and I were looking out from the upper
    window, when we saw a spark alight on the Recollet Church, and
    in a few minutes the whole building was in a blaze.

    The churches and houses, being covered with shingles (wooden
    tiles), burnt rapidly, and the shingles being light, were also
    easily blown by the wind, which was high, and had it not changed
    probably the whole town would have been destroyed. The ships in
    the river weighed anchor. Some papers were blown to Pt. Levy, on
    the opposite side of the river. Our trunks being sent to the
    Chief Justice's, I went there to change my clothes, for we were
    all in full dress, as Mrs. Prescott was to have had a ball in
    the evening. I was terrified in passing the Parade. The heat was
    so great from the Recollet Church, engines kept playing on the
    Château, which was in great danger. I afterwards took the
    children into Palace Street, and sat with Mrs. Roslyn, of the
    Fifth Regt., till eight o'clock, when Gen'l. Simcoe came to
    fetch us to the Chief Justice's, where we slept, for tho' the
    danger was at an end the sight of everything still burning
    around the Bishop's house made me wish not to sleep there.

    Wed. 7th--Drank tea with Mrs. Taylor and supped at the Chief
    Justice's, our baggage being sent on board the "Pearl."

    The ruins of the Recollet Church, brightened from within by
    fire, not yet extinguished, had an awful, grand appearance as we
    walked home in a dark night; the effect of colour was very rich.

    I sent an enquiry after the health of the Ursulines since their
    alarm and the exertions they had made in carrying water to the
    top of their house, which was endangered by the fire; I received
    a very polite note from the Superieure and a basket of plums
    from their garden.

    Thur. 8th--Breakfasted at Woodfield; returned to Quebec with
    Mrs. Caldwell and dined with Coll. Barnes.

    Sat. 10th--At eleven embarked on board the "Pearl." The cabin is
    larger than that in the "Triton," but the guns are very
    incommodious. I was busy arranging my trunks, and kept as few as
    possible with me, because I was informed if we met French ships
    we must clear for action, and all the baggage would be tossed
    below in confusion. I met with one trunk of the Bishop's
    clothes, but had an opportunity of a boat passing to send it to
    Quebec.

    I find nothing missing but a very pretty Indian basket, in which
    were shoes. Capt. Leveson Gower, H.M.S. "Active," takes his
    passage to England with Capt. Ballard, and four of his
    lieutenants--Mr. Bond, Mr. Merriott, Mr. Worth, Mr. Deighton,
    master of the "Active." Capt. Gower lives in the cabin. About
    five we struck ground. The sensation was unpleasant, but we were
    instantly off. We anchored at night.

    Sun. 11th--Weighed anchor at five. At nine passed a brig going
    to Quebec. Passed the Kamouraskas, rocky islands in the St.
    Lawrence, opposite mouth of Kamouraska River; and Pilgrim
    Islands, four islands, only rocks, near the south shore of the
    St. Lawrence (below L'Islet).

    Mon. 12th--The wind west, fair, but obliged to lay to for the
    merchantmen under our convoy. There are ten. The "Brook Watson"
    and "Earl of Marchmont" are very bad sailers.

    Tues. 13th--Fair wind and cold. We cannot carry sail enough to
    keep the ship steady, on account of those bad sailing
    merchantmen.

    Wed. 14th--Wind south-east. Standing for the Bird Islands, north
    of the Magdalens.

    Thurs. 15th--A head sea, hauled close to the wind. I was unwell
    all day.

    Fri. 16th--A very wet morning after a rough night, and hauled
    close to the wind. It cleared up at twelve. At six the Captain
    spoke with the merchantmen and agreed to bear away from the
    Straits of Belle Isle, about 50 leagues off. We are now in sight
    of St. George's Bay, on the coast of Newfoundland, and a fine
    leading wind.

    Sat. 17th--A fine wind; passed Scaring Islands at twelve. Rather
    sick; I found myself better by eating orange marmalade. A great
    swell to-night.

Note.--Between Cow Head and Shallow Bays, on the western coast of
Newfoundland.

    Sun. 18th--During the night I heard the officer on watch tell
    Capt. Ballard there was a sail in sight, and he ordered
    ammunition to be got ready. I got up, and tho' it was dark,
    contrived to collect my things and lock them up in the trunk,
    as I thought we might be suddenly called upon and the cabin
    cleared. I then went to sleep again. The next morning I heard
    that the sail was a brig from Quebec which had overshot her
    port. Capt. Ballard said we had been in great danger during the
    night. It was very calm, and a very heavy swell set us on the
    breakers, which we were quite near; everybody was quite alarmed
    and went upon deck, and a sudden breeze springing up from the
    breakers saved us from going upon them. We had entered the
    Straits of Belle Isle and passed an island of ice. At nine I saw
    an island of ice at a great distance. It was near Green Island,
    Newfoundland, about nine leagues from Cape Norman.

Note.--Green Island is between North and South Heads in the Bay of
Islands.

    At twelve we passed Portreau Bay. I looked at it through a glass
    and made a sketch of it. The country appears to be ledges of
    rocks, with a few scrubby pine, scarce able to grow on so harsh
    and dismal a soil. I discerned two waterfalls near the coast.
    After passing Portreau Bay, at entrance to Strait of Belle Isle,
    near Green Island, a fishing boat with Jersey men came alongside
    to inform the captain that two days ago three large vessels,
    supposed to be French, went into Temple Bay on the southern
    coast of Labrador, and about forty miles distant, opposite Belle
    Isle. The boat brought fish, and while we lay to some exceeding
    fine cod were caught. A slight breeze and excessive cold
    weather. This afternoon we sent the trunks below, and the cabin
    was partly cleared to prepare for meeting the French.

    Mon. 19th--A head wind all night; towards morning a heavy gale
    and great fog. We were driven back between Portreau Bay and
    Green Island. At one time it cleared, grew calm and the wind
    fair, but a very great swell.

    Tues. 20th--This morning at eight we were opposite Temple Bay,
    but it was too hazy to see any distance. A fair wind. At eleven
    we were abreast of Belle Isle, which is one entire dismal,
    barren rock. At twelve two French frigates and a brig were seen.
    They soon took six of our merchantmen, who, not having obeyed
    the "Pearl's" signals, were a great way ahead of us. We cleared
    for action. Capt. Gower conducted me down two flights of steps
    into the bread room, which just held me, the children and my
    servant; there I spent six hours in perfect misery, every moment
    expecting to hear the guns fire, as we lay for the enemy. Never
    having been in real danger before, I had no idea what it was to
    be so frightened. Some refreshment was sent me, but I could not
    eat. The sailor who brought it said, "You had better take it
    now, for there is no knowing when you may be able to get any
    more." I presently was informed that "The Progress," in which
    Genl. and Mrs. England were, was taken. At six o'clock Capt.
    Malcolm, of the Marines, very obligingly offered me his room,
    tho' only six feet long and four wide. I lay down with an
    excruciating headache, which essence of peppermint relieved.

    Wed. 21st--As this room, cabin or cupboard is below decks, I
    heard people talking all the night, and could not help
    listening, even to the cabin boys. I heard half-sentences and
    supposed the rest, and it seemed inevitable for us to escape
    being taken. However, the next day at twelve I was persuaded to
    go into the gun room (the cabin being cleared and bulkheads
    thrown down), and I found that a more cheerful place, and the
    officers of the "Active," having no duty, played at backgammon
    or cards with me all day long, for it was the only relief I
    found. Some gentlemen were continually coming down from deck,
    and various were the opinions; some thought the French would
    come up with us, others did not. The French were following at
    three leagues distance. We are now a mile to the northward of
    Belle Isle, between that and the Labrador coast. Islands of ice
    were passing all the day, which made the air very cold. I
    wished to see them, but did not have spirits to go upon deck,
    and I was told we should probably see them for some days to
    come.

    It is supposed the "Ephron" got away from the enemy after she
    was taken, but she has not joined us. A fine breeze towards
    evening. The "Pearl" took the "Brook Watson" in tow twice, and
    her master let the hawser go. I was glad when we got rid of her.
    The "Adriatic" is with us, and the "London" was this morning,
    but guns were heard to-night off the north shore, and it is
    feared she is aground. Mr. Deighton, the master of the "Active,"
    says he knew a ship which had her bottom knocked off by the ice,
    and yet she came safe into port. I played at backgammon and
    cards till half after ten.

    Thurs. 22nd--A fine day, but very cold. We are still in the gun
    room, where the motion is so little felt that I like it much
    better than the cabin. I played backgammon or cards, which
    tranquilizes my mind, but it will be a great while before I
    recover from my fright. It is supposed the French ships are
    commanded by Citizen Barney, a famous rebel during the late
    American War. He drinks nothing but water, and as he lives hard
    we suppose he will fight hard. The New York paper mentioned his
    cruising off this coast.

Note.--Joshua Barney, born in Baltimore in 1759, was an American naval
officer in the Revolutionary War. He became lieutenant in 1776, was
captured by the British in 1777 and again in 1781. Having command of the
"Hyder Ali," he captured the "General Monk" in 1782. In the autumn of
that year he was sent to France with despatches for Franklin, and
subsequently received a commission in the French service, resigning in
1800. He commanded a flotilla in Chesapeake Bay in 1813, was wounded at
the battle of Bladensburg in 1814, and died at Pittsburg 1st December,
1818.

[Illustration: Joshua Barney.]

    Fri. 23rd--I slept more quietly last night, as it is thought we
    are safe from the pursuit of the French. We breakfasted in the
    cabin. It seems a fortnight since we left it, so much has the
    agitation of mind apparently lengthened the time. The cabin
    appears dull. It is excessively cold. We are in Lat. 53-54. We
    ran 150 miles since yesterday in the latitude of Cape Charles
    (at the entrance to the Strait of Belle Isle). If we are still
    driven on to the northward by these winds we shall soon get to
    Greenland. Mr. Hill, one of the lieutenants, went to the North
    Sea, and was obliged to eat salt pork raw, for if it was boiled
    it presently became a cake of ice. This man relates so many
    terrifying adventures that I scarcely feel safe to be in the
    same ship, for it seems impossible he can perform any voyage in
    a quiet way.

    Sat. 24th--A south wind. At three o'clock hazy weather, raw, but
    rather less cold; Lat. 54-55. I copied the action of the 1st of
    June from Capt. Ballard's drawings, taken on the spot.

    Wind S.W. An exceedingly heavy gale all night, and this day put
    in the dead lights, the weather so bad. Meat could not be
    roasted, but we had a pork pie, and tho' I dislike pork on
    shore, it is very good on board ship, and an excellent salt-fish
    pudding. The fish, having been boiled the day before, was now
    chopped up with potatoes, parsnips, herbs, pepper, salt, and
    boiled in a bag.

    Mon. 26th--A sail in sight, which proved to be the "London." A
    fresh breeze still sending us northward. Wind S.W. I copied nine
    plans of the action of the 1st June.

Note.--Every search has been made for these drawings. It is supposed
that they were given away by Mrs. Simcoe on her return to England, for
there is no trace of them in the portfolios at Wolford.

    Tues. 27th--A head wind; damp, disagreeable weather.

    Wed. 28th--A dreadful night; a very heavy gale. We did not
    breakfast till twelve o'clock. The forestay sail split; a heavy
    sail all day. Lat. 56-10.

    Thurs. 29th--Drank raspberry vinegar instead of tea and slept
    better. A great sea, little wind, very cold.

    Fri. 30th--Lat. 55-56.

    Sat. Oct. 1st--Lat. 54-55.

    Mon. 3rd--Wind north.

    Tues. 4th--Wind N.W., squally; in the long. of the Western
    Isles.

    Wed. 5th--A very rough night; wind N.E.; from 5 p.m. it blew
    N.W. and an immoderate gale. The windows of the ports were
    broke, and the sea came into the cabin without measure.

    Thurs. 6th--The gale continued all night, the sea washing in at
    the ports, and deep water under the beds and until six o'clock
    p.m. this day. They did not give us any breakfast, and we got up
    to dinner at two; the dead lights and doors to the quarter
    galleries put up. We have run 300 miles in the last 24 hours.
    Last night went 13 knots an hour under bare poles; parted with
    the "London," "Adriatic" and "Brook Watson" in the gale.

    Fri. 7th--A sail seen this morning; they began to clear the
    ship, but the vessel proved to be the "Hope," of New London;
    these are the first American colours I have seen. A calm after
    one o'clock; wind S.S.W. this evening.

    Sat. 8th--The ship in soundings on the Great Sole Bank, off the
    English coast. At eight the wind changed and blew fresh from the
    N.W. Some ships seen. The cabin was begun to be cleared, but
    this having happened two or three times, and no further ill
    consequences ensued, I now see this preparation with
    indifference, which had before inspired me with so much terror.
    I had continued drawing as long as they left a table in the
    room. The ships were soon discovered to be India-men. In the
    evening we passed another, to whom we spoke. She was from
    Jamaica; had parted from her convoy in a dreadful gale of wind
    four days since, in which her top sails were split. We ran nine
    knots an hour under bare poles.

Note.--Great Sole Bank lies in latitude 49° 23' north, longitude 10°
16', and continues 30 miles northeast by east. It is 7 miles long by 7
miles wide and lies 120 miles southwest of the Fastnet Light and 130
miles west of the Scilly Islands Lights. Its greatest depth is 70
fathoms.

    Sun. 9th--We spoke to a West India vessel, called "The Lioness,"
    and took her under convoy. She parted company from 130 sail in
    the late gale. A fair wind to-day, and we ran eight knots an
    hour. I went on deck to-night to see the lead heav'd and the
    ship lay to. It was a terrific sight when she turned her side to
    the wind. The waves seemed as if they would overwhelm the ship,
    and the noise was frightful.

    Mon. 10th--Passed the Islands of Scilly this morning; three or
    four sail seen; we spoke to one under Danish colours; the Land's
    End seen at one o'clock.

    Tues. 11th--We stood close for Berry Head, on south coast of
    Devon, intending to go on shore at Tor Bay. This landing would
    have been more convenient for Gen. Simcoe, as he desired to go
    to Exeter. But the wind freshened so much it was impossible to
    get on board the fishing boats, which we saw at a little
    distance. Two hours sooner it might have been done, but we lay
    to for two or three hours in the morning to press men out of the
    India-men, and since that the wind has risen. Sophia wishes to
    be on shore, but Francis, never having been sick, thinks it a
    pity to quit the ship he is so fond of, and leave Beau and Bell,
    the captain's dogs, who are his constant playfellows. He is
    determined to be a sailor.

    Wed. 12th--A fine day and fair wind, but we lay to so long for
    the convoy that we did not pass Dover till late. We anchored in
    the Downs, off the coast of Kent, at eight o'clock. It is
    difficult to go on shore here if the weather is not very calm,
    notwithstanding the extreme skilfulness of the Deal boatmen. We
    passed Beachy Head, where the cliffs are white, and Hastings, a
    brick town, this morning. In the afternoon the "Diamond" and
    "Melampus," frigates, passed us. It was a very fine sight to see
    those large frigates cut thro' the waves with so much swiftness,
    and they are handsomer objects than a line of battleships, which
    are heavier; they were painted black and yellow, with white
    figure-heads. A pretty, light, small vessel followed them,
    supposed to be Russian built.

    Thurs. 13th--We anchored very near a large Indiaman. I was waked
    in the night by hearing a sailor call out that we should be
    aboard the Indiaman, and having heard of such accidents in the
    Downs, I did not like the alarm.

    This morning I was much pleased with seeing the number of
    vessels in the Downs. The "Ville de Paris" got under weigh and
    passed close to us, but being under jury masts she looked
    extremely heavy and clumsy and of an immense size. I liked the
    frigates better. A wet morning; we landed at one o'clock. Capts.
    Ballard, Gower and some officers of the "Pearl" dined with us at
    the inn at Deal.

    We took a friendly leave of men in whom we were much interested,
    having lived so much in their company for seven weeks; they both
    offered their best services for Francis. From my experience of
    people, I am as anxious he should be a sailor as he is to be
    one. Francis came downstairs in the inn backwards, as he used to
    descend the ladder on board the "Pearl." I felt it a great
    happiness to find the rooms steady, and not roll like the ship.

    Fri. 14th--Genl. Grinfield came to breakfast with us, and
    invited us to dine at Dover with Mrs. Grinfield, which place we
    set out for after breakfast, and drove eleven miles thro' a
    bleak, barren country, and when I came to the hill at Dover I
    was amazingly struck with the grandeur of the scene, the grand
    appearance of the castle on those very high cliffs, part of the
    building in good and habitable preservation, the rest in ruins;
    a grand site and a building adapted to it. The bold cliffs, the
    town and beach beneath, form a charming picture, and the horizon
    of the sea was terminated by the fleet, which sailed yesterday,
    the "Ville de Paris" towering above the rest; we sailed round
    her before we came on shore, but a large frigate, such as the
    "Diamond," is a finer sight to my taste. The fresh east wind has
    probably sent them back.

    We walked round the works, which are enlarging about the castle.
    Capt. Bruyere, of the Engineers, went with us; he has been long
    in Canada, to which country he was much attached, therefore I
    was delighted to talk with him.

    We noticed the Roman brick very visible in one of the towers
    which is in ruins. We distinguished the coast of France, a part
    of which looks like Beachy Head. I was shown the church at
    Calais and the entrance of Boulogne harbour. Saw the brass
    cannon given to Queen Elizabeth by the Dutch; it is 24 feet
    long, beautifully carved with figures of Britannia and the "God
    of the Scheldt." We went thro' the communication lately cut
    underground thro' the hill from the castle to the town; it is a
    handsome stone staircase of twelve hundred steps; at the bottom
    of every two or three hundred feet it is lighted by a passage
    and window at the extremity of the rock; we descended with a
    lanthorn; it cost £700. I was much pleased with Capt. Bruyere,
    for he talked with delight of Canada. He married a sister of
    Mrs. Selby's, of Montreal.

    It was extremely cold walking on the hill. We spent some hours
    very pleasantly with Mrs. Grinfield, and at seven at night set
    off for Canterbury. A very violent rain this morning. Canterbury
    is fifteen miles from Dover. We arrived in the dark, very much
    fatigued.

Note.--William Grinfield, colonel of the 8th Regiment of Foot, 16th May,
1787, became major-general, 13th June, 1793, and lieutenant-general,
January, 1798.

Captain Bruyere of the Royal Engineers was one of the military Land
Board at Niagara in 1791. He died of exposure in the War of 1812. Mrs.
Selby, wife of Dr. George Selby, of Montreal, was formerly Miss Dunbar,
daughter of Major Dunbar. Dr. Selby, who was born in England and
educated at the College of St. Omer, came to Canada about 1781. He died
in 1835.

    Sat. 15th--Damp, raw weather. Went to see the cathedral, which I
    greatly admired; the style of building is peculiarly grand and
    simple, and the ascent to the choir by steps has a grand effect.
    There is a monument of Edward, the Black Prince, in brass, in
    great preservation. The armour, helmet and gloves he wore at
    Cressy are hung over it.

    A head of Dean Watson carved in stone, done in Italy, is a fine
    piece of sculpture, and there are many pieces of stone work
    curiously executed; there is a great deal of painted glass; a
    good picture of a Pope, but it has been shot thro' during the
    civil wars in Cromwell's time.

    Thomas à Becket's tomb is plain. The stone around is deeply worn
    by having been knelt upon, as is said. There is a good monument
    of Henry IV. and his Queen. The ship called the "Great Harry,"
    with four masts, built in Henry V.'s reign, is represented in
    stone. This cathedral has the advantage of Salisbury in not
    having been modernized.

    The country from Canterbury to Dartford (18 miles below London
    on the Thames) is woody and beautiful; some views of the Medway
    and Thames.

    The weather is damp, raw and unpleasant. I could not but
    observe, as we passed many houses, that those mansions appeared
    very comfortable habitations, in which people might live very
    happily, but it could not be supposed they could ever be induced
    to go out of them in such a damp climate, for the fields looked
    so cold, so damp, so cheerless, so uncomfortable from the want
    of our bright Canadian sun that the effect was striking, and the
    contrast very unfavourable to the English climate. We slept at
    Dartford.

    Sun. 16th--A beautiful country from Dartford to London. On the
    road I passed a remarkable fine Cedar of Lebanon. Arrived at the
    hotel in Cork Street, London, at ten o'clock.




  CHAPTER XXII.

  _AGAIN AT WOLFORD--SIMCOE'S DEATH._


Mrs. Simcoe's sojourn in Canada was always regarded by her with
pleasurable recollections. She had made many friends in the land across
the sea. Her husband had had the honor of establishing the first
Provincial Government when Upper Canada was marked upon the map as the
western Province of the old Province of Canada.

Nor did she forget the kindness and courtesy that had been so gracefully
accorded to both herself and her husband, from the day in October, 1791,
when they landed at Quebec, till that day in September, 1796, when they
were homeward bound from the same port. True, she had two of her
children with her, but there were four others at home. She longed to see
them, for although their daily lives were recorded by monthly letters
from Mrs. Hunt, yet her desire for her little ones gave her hours of
depression. Then she remembered with tears the green knoll in the
military burying ground at York that covered the little one, the first
Katherine, who, born at Navy Hall, Niagara, in January, 1793, died and
was buried at York (Toronto) in April, 1794.

When the "Pearl" anchored in the Downs, within sight of the white cliffs
of England, Mrs. Simcoe realized that she was not far from the home of
her childhood. She spent a few hours at Deal, a day with friends in
Dover and Canterbury, a couple of days in London, and then proceeded
southwest by coach to Exeter.

Glad was the welcome at Wolford. A letter written from Quebec in July
had informed Mrs. Hunt that probably at the end of August the General
and his wife would sail for England. Then a second letter in August said
that they would sail about the end of the first week in September so as
to arrive in England about the middle of October; and almost within a
day of the promised time did the family carriage and pair, which had
been sent down to Exeter to meet the home-comers, drive up to the door
of Wolford.

Never was there a happier meeting. Mrs. Hunt and her daughter were as
eager to see them as were the children, who waited eagerly for their
father and mother and for the brother and sister whom they had not seen
for five long years. The delight was mutual. The old home looked bright
and cheerful on that October afternoon, and the day closed with worship
read by the master surrounded by his household. The countryside knew of
the General's return and the County families, glad to renew their
friendships, were not long in calling at Wolford.

The old home life was quietly resumed. Much of the General's energy was
thrown into the improvement of his estate, for but little along that
line had been done during the years of his absence. The family were
early risers, always up with the lark. The General was usually around
with Mr. Scadding as early as six o'clock in the morning, and Mrs.
Simcoe and one of her daughters frequently took a five-mile ride before
breakfast.

Eliza Simcoe was now a girl of twelve years of age, while her sister,
Charlotte, was eleven. Both girls showed extraordinary interest in their
studies. They were lovable children, and as their governess said
"excellent examples in every way" for Henrietta and Caroline and Sophia,
who were nine, eight and seven years respectively.

Then the little ones from Canada were a welcome addition to the family
circle which had been broken for five years. Francis Gwillim was a
sturdy little fellow of five years, who in his own esteem was most
important, for he had "talked to the Indians" and his sister, Sophia,
who was two years his senior, did not forget to tell those who came her
way that she too had shared the honor of being introduced to the "great
red Chief Brant" when he came to see her father at Navy Hall.

In December of 1796, the General determined to accept the appointment of
Commander-in-Chief at San Domingo. The announcement came as a shock to
Mrs. Simcoe, who felt that her husband was not a robust man and the
climate of the West Indies would not improve his health.

This was emphasized in a letter that the General wrote to the
authorities at the end of the year, asking an assurance from the
Government that it would provide for his family in case he should
"perish in the mission which he was about to proceed upon." He had
pointed out that twice in his life he had been "obliged to quit a
Southern climate even without contagion to preserve life" and asked for
the consideration of his claim.

That it was acceded to is shown by a letter written on December 6th,
1796, to the Honorable William Pitt, thanking him for giving the
guarantee that in case of death his family would be provided for.

In January arrangements were made for his departure for San Domingo in
the following month; and his new and arduous duties commenced when in
March of 1797, he landed at Port au Prince. The climate of San Domingo
was not propitious; for the scourge of yellow fever had played havoc not
only with the inhabitants, but with many men in the British forces. But
the General, as is shown in his biography, did much in a short time to
re-establish the British character in an island that was rank with
revolution and insurrection, and returned to England in September of
1797 to secure a force sufficient to make paramount the authority of
British arms.

His reception at Wolford was a welcome long to be remembered. Mrs.
Simcoe was delighted to see her husband again in the family home. She
was anxious that his health, which had not been improved by residence in
a West Indian clime, should be thoroughly recuperated by the balmy air
of Devon and the regular life at Wolford, and it came about as she had
wished.

Just two years had passed when another son was born at Wolford, in July,
1798--John Cornwall, the second son of the household.

Wolford was a centre from which all sorts of enjoyment radiated. In the
years that followed, the calling days were more like miniature court
receptions, and a score of carriages of county people at the one time
was not an unusual sight in front of Wolford Lodge.

A letter written in 1800 by a Devon lady says, "The drawing-room at
Wolford on a reception day is most enjoyable, for it is filled with
well-dressed men and women, for the county people always liked the
Simcoes." Another letter states that "going to Wolford was like going to
Court."

Though small in stature, Mrs. Simcoe was proud and somewhat autocratic
in manner, most dignified, and commanding respect. Her daughters
recognized these characteristics in their mother. They had been early
taught that absolute obedience was a pre-requisite and that what the
father and mother ordered was a law unto all concerned. Even on entering
a room if their mother was present they would not dare, so states a
Wolford chronicler, who knew Mrs. Simcoe, "to sit down without
permission."

In October, 1798, Major-General Simcoe was gazetted a lieutenant-general
and in 1801 was appointed to the command of the garrison at Plymouth in
the absence of the Governor and of Lieutenant-General Grenville. This
new charge took him away from Wolford, but as he returned frequently his
wife, anxious that he should have every opportunity of building up his
health, did not look with disfavor on this new appointment.

In the year 1800 a third son was born, Henry Addington, and for him Mrs.
Simcoe had always a particular affection. The afterlife of this pattern
among men bore silent testimony to the tender care and upbringing by a
Christian mother. This gifted son was born at Plymouth, where the
Governor and his wife had been resident during December of 1799 until
February of 1800.

Family responsibilities again increased in 1801, when the second
Katherine was born at Wolford, and in 1804 Anne was born. She always
declared that she remembered her father, although she was less than
three years of age when he passed away.

But from 1800 until 1806, the daily routine of Mrs. Simcoe's life was
not very varied. She occasionally visited London and was generally
accompanied by one of her elder daughters. A favorite residence in town
was at 53 Welbeck Street, fashionable lodgings patronized by leading
Devon families when visiting town.

The General's position as commander of the Western Military District,
which consisted of Dorset, Somerset, Devon and Cornwall, brought many
people to Wolford. The threatened invasion of Britain by France had
given special importance to his District, and all orders were issued
from Wolford.

As John Bailey, an old servant who wrote an account of the General and
his family, says in his narrative, "there were often ten or fifteen
carriages there in a day, as all the head gentry in Devonshire visited
Wolford and so many officers came on duty for orders. I have known three
or four Lords staying at Wolford at one time."

The activities of the day at Wolford always opened with family prayer,
at which all the household were present. The general read the service.
"It was somewhat imposing," as a visitor of a century ago remarked, "to
see the maid-servants headed by the housekeeper, and the men-servants,
headed by the butler--seventeen in all--file into the dining-room morn
and eve and hear the master or the mistress of the house read and
comment on the chapters selected for daily worship." To-day the daily
routine is the same--just as it was a hundred years ago when the general
and his wife read the Holy Writings and knelt at God's altar with their
household.

It is a matter of surprise that the General did not seem to know of the
condition of his health when he was appointed in July of 1806 as
commander-in-chief in India. If he did, he said nothing to his wife
about it. The General had hardly accepted the position of
commander-in-chief in India when orders came from Downing Street for him
to proceed to Portugal, to act with the Earl of Rosslyn and the Earl of
St. Vincent on a special mission to the Court of Lisbon; for the British
Government had been informed of the intention of France to invade
Portugal.

This caused Mrs. Simcoe to delay her preparations for India. The General
had sailed for Portugal and had arrived at Lisbon on the 26th of August,
1806. Here he was taken ill, but he was not thought to be in a serious
condition until the third week in September, when he was ordered to
return to England by his physicians.

Mrs. Simcoe in the meantime proceeded about the end of September to
London to purchase her outfit for her voyage to the East. She was
accompanied by her daughter Eliza. But they had hardly got settled in
London when a letter came from Exeter, stating that the General had
returned from Portugal and was seriously ill at Archdeacon Moore's house
in the Cathedral Close at Exeter. A hurried departure was made and in
less than twenty-four hours by coach the mother and her daughter had
covered the distance between London and Exeter, arriving at the
Archdeacon's house a day or so before the General's death.

The story of the journey from Lisbon, his landing at Topsham, his
arrival and death at Exeter and his burial when the shades of evening
had fallen at the chapel at Wolford, will be told in another volume. It
was as a bolt out of the blue for Mrs. Simcoe and her family. The
daughters Eliza, Charlotte, Henrietta, Caroline and Sophia, were old
enough to give some comfort to their widowed mother, and cheering too
was the declaration of Francis Gwillim, then fifteen, that it would
always be his aim to take pattern from the life of his father. John
Cornwall, the second son, born in 1798, had died in infancy. The other
surviving son, Henry Addington, was but five years of age as he stood
with his sisters and held the hand of Katherine, his four-year-old
sister, at the burial in the twilight of that November evening at
Wolford.




  CHAPTER XXIII.

  _MRS. SIMCOE AND HER CHILDREN._


The death of General Simcoe brought to Mrs. Simcoe many expressions of
sympathy. Those high in position, military and civil, paid to her their
sad tributes for the great loss she had sustained. The rich and poor
knew that in the passing away of the General they had all lost a kindly
and generous friend.

The old-time visitors who had spent pleasant days and weeks at Wolford
manifested in their letters of sympathy the deep regard in which they
had held the General and how much grief they felt for the widowed mother
and her children.

But deep and genuine as was the sympathy, it did not lessen the sorrow
at Wolford. From what I have been able to learn from those who knew Mrs.
Simcoe, the death of her husband marked a great change in her life.

She had the younger children to bring up and educate, and occupied her
time in looking after the welfare of her family. Her deep interest in
those who lived on her estate was constant. She was continuous in good
works and her endeavors in that direction earned for her the respect,
regard and love of all those who lived in the country surrounding
Wolford.

Francis Gwillim, whose ambition had been to follow in the path of his
late father and enter the army, was educated with that intent, and
secured a lieutenancy in the 27th Regiment of Foot in 1811, when he was
in his twenty-first year.

His regiment was ordered to the Continent under the Viscount Wellington,
but the service of young Simcoe was not a lengthened one; for he was
killed in April, 1812, at the siege of Badajoz, and was buried upon the
field of battle.

For some years Mrs. Simcoe did not journey far from Wolford. Once or
twice she visited her birthplace, "Old Court," near Whitchurch, in
Herefordshire; but from about 1825 her favorite touring spot was North
Wales, which she generally visited once a year.

Sometimes her daughter Caroline accompanied her, and in all these
excursions she was attended by her faithful servant, John Bailey, whose
narrative gives so many incidents and experiences in travelling with his
mistress.

After her son, the Rev. Henry Addington, had reached manhood's estate
and married and had purchased the ancient manor of Penheale in Cornwall,
Mrs. Simcoe paid him regular visits; but the house was not large, the
guest chambers were few, so that Mrs. Simcoe spent her day with her son
and stayed at Launceston, four miles from Penheale, every night.

[Illustration: Rev. H. A. Simcoe.]

His first wife was Anne, daughter of Rev. Edward Palmer of Moseley,
County Worcester. After her death he married Emily, daughter of Rev.
Horace Mann of Mawgan, County Cornwall. A daughter by this second
marriage is Emily, known as Mother Emily Clare, Superior of the Wantage
Sisters Mission, Poonah, India.

[Illustration: Mother Emily Clare.]

Penheale Manor is mentioned in the Doomsday Book. It was improved by
Mrs. Simcoe about 1830. The dwelling was in two distinct divisions with
a courtyard, dividing two parallel wings, which were, in fact, two
houses of different periods and of architecture. It is probable that at
the time of Mrs. Simcoe's visits only one part of the house was in use.
But after the improvements the Rev. Henry Addington Simcoe used both
parts. He had a printing press in the part they called "across."

[Illustration: Penheale Manor.

(_From a Picture in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

Mr. John Henry Vowler-Simcoe, eldest son of the late J. N. Vowler of
Parnacott, Cornwall, who married Mary Northcote, second daughter of the
Rev. Henry A. Simcoe, has assumed by Royal License the additional
surname and arms of Simcoe, and succeeded on the death of his uncle, Mr.
Samuel Simcoe, to Penheale Manor, Cornwall.

John Bailey's description of the tours with Mrs. Simcoe and her
daughters in North Wales would do credit to the pages of a modern travel
book. His drive of forty-two miles when Miss Harriet desired to go from
Beddgelert, on the borders of Carnarvonshire, to Bala in Merionethshire,
and his return on foot, shows how devoted he was to his mistress and her
family.

Cheltenham in Gloucestershire was another favorite place of Mrs. Simcoe
and her daughters. It was the only place where she made lengthened stay
from Wolford. Bath was a popular resort in the thirties and forties and
the daughters of the family always favored it. Eliza, the eldest
daughter, and Caroline, the third daughter, resided there about 1852,
and both died there.

[Illustration: Dunkeswell Abbey Church.

(_From a Drawing by Miss Harriet Simcoe._)]

Mrs. Simcoe had strong opinions upon the marriage question. She herself
had not hesitated to enter matrimony when she was sixteen years of age,
but when it came to a question as to the marriage of any of her
daughters, for some reason or other she always opposed it. It must be
remembered that all the daughters were clever, prepossessing and
well-educated women.

One suitor who pressed his claim without success was the late Sir Thomas
Dyke Acland of Devonshire, a man of admirable character; and two members
of the nobility from other counties shared a similar fate. Mrs. Simcoe
was obdurate. Her word was law, and her daughters, rather than incur her
displeasure, accepted the situation, and all, with one exception, died
unmarried. Some years after Mrs. Simcoe's death Anne married a Mr.
Alford, who resided in Herefordshire, but left no issue.

The three daughters, Eliza, Caroline and Anne, were not only proficient
in domestic economy, but they inherited a good deal of the commonsense
that was a feature in the character of both their father and mother. In
parish work they were indefatigable. Each daughter had her own
parish--one that of Dunkeswell Abbey, another Luppit and the third that
of Dunkeswell. Every parish had its schoolhouse and its teachers, and
many of the generations that surround Wolford to-day, although their
lives have fallen into the sere and yellow leaf of old age, remember
most gratefully what "the young ladies" did for them when the primer and
the slate pencil were essentials in their early training.

[Illustration: A Restful Spot at Penheale.

(_From a Picture in the J. Ross Robertson collection._)]

"Holy Trinity," Dunkeswell Abbey Church, was built by Mrs. and the
Misses Simcoe in 1842. It is in the Early English style, and with the
burial ground occupies the site of the ancient abbey, which was founded
by Lord de Brewer in 1201 for Cistercian monks, who were endowed with
the manor and other lands. Only a fragment of the Abbey now remains. The
interior of the church is very handsome, with several stained glass
windows and columns, the capitals of which were carved by the Misses
Simcoe. The altars are of carved stone by these ladies.

The Rev. Henry Addington Simcoe, of Penheale Manor, the heir to the
estate, made frequent visits to Wolford. For him his mother had a most
affectionate regard. His loving disposition, his exemplary character and
his earnestness in carrying on Christian work in Egloskerry, were most
gratifying to her. During the last years of his mother's life his
delight was to spend a few days at Wolford, when parish work would
permit his absence, and when her end came he was with her. As John
Bailey in his quaint way writes, "So her last day came and she died in a
good old age--full of days, riches and honour."

During the last years of her life Mrs. Simcoe did not make any prolonged
tours. She had always favored Cheltenham, but in 1848-9 she preferred
Sidmouth on the South Devon coast, thirteen miles from Wolford, and
these trips were not prolonged ones. At Wolford during the last summer
of her life, when the weather was fine, an hour's drive on the estate
and its neighborhood refreshed her.

In the autumn of 1849 her strength began to fail. If weather permitted
she enjoyed an hour in a wheel chair guided by the faithful Bailey, but
as the old year passed out and the new year entered, her family began to
see that that day which never changes must soon come to her who had
sixty-eight years before stood at the altar in Buckerall Parish Church.

On the 17th of January, 1850, at the age of eighty-four years,
twenty-four of which were in married life and forty-four in widowhood,
Elizabeth Posthuma Simcoe passed away.

The announcement of her death was not unexpected in the county. It
brought many messages of sympathy from the large circle of family
friends and expressions of grief and sadness from the tenantry on the
estate, and from the people of the parish, all of whom had the deepest
regard and respect for the family of Simcoe. The funeral was attended by
the leading families of the county.

The clergy of the neighboring parishes, the tenantry on the estate, the
laborers from the farms and the household servants, formed in line as
the coffin, carried from the main entrance of Wolford, followed by the
seven surviving children, Eliza, Caroline, Sophia, Henry, Katherine,
Charlotte and Anne, was borne through the garden walks to the private
chapel.

The impressive service for the dead was read by the Rev. Mr. Muller, the
Vicar of Dunkeswell, the clergyman who had been most attentive to Mrs.
Simcoe during her last illness, after which the silent gathering
re-formed and followed the coffin to the east end of the chapel, where
in a grave close by that of her husband the body was buried.

Mrs. Simcoe was a genuine Christian. She took a deep interest in all
matters pertaining to religion and endeavored to practise in her daily
life the works that are characteristic of a Christian woman. She
constantly thought not of her own happiness but of the happiness of
others, and the deep regret in the country-side at her passing away
justified the expression that she was indeed much loved as the Lady of
the Manor.

Her daughter, Anne, in writing to the present Mrs. Simcoe, shortly after
her mother's death, said:--

"A prominent factor in my mother's character was humility--humility
before God and man. Her retrospect of life would only have led her more
gratefully to rest all on Christ, feeling she owed all to Him. As she
says, 'I could not offer a prayer or praise that would be accepted but
through Jesus Christ our Lord. May I feel daily more and more trust in
this Saviour, and may He quicken and support me at the hour of death and
on my approach to death.' And again, 'Strengthen me, Lord, for my dying
hour; may the strength of the Lord be my support in that hour of trial.'

"But for inability now to fathom the unpacked boxes of books, I should
like to have given some extracts shewing still more strongly her
feelings on the approach of death, and how entirely she merged all
feeling of self-reliance on her Saviour, and how completely she
renounced all goodness and righteousness but His, in whom was all her
hope."

After the death of Mrs. Simcoe, the daughters continued to reside there
for a few months, after which Eliza, Caroline, Sophia and Katherine took
up their residence at Bath. Charlotte went to Leamington and Anne
remained at Wolford.

The Rev. Henry Addington Simcoe, the only surviving son of General
Simcoe, inherited Wolford, but never lived there. He let it from
1851-66.

The Rev. Henry Addington Simcoe died in November, 1868; and as his
eldest son, Henry Walcot, died in 1848, Captain John K. Simcoe, his
second son, inherited Wolford. He died in 1891, without issue. His
widow, who resides to-day at Wolford, is the only one of the name
related to this family, living.

[Illustration: Capt. J. K. Simcoe.]

[Illustration: Mrs. Simcoe.]

In 1867, when Captain John Kennaway Simcoe, R.N., the second son of the
Rev. Henry Addington Simcoe of Penheale, married Miss Mary Jackson,
second daughter of Colonel Basil Jackson, of Glewstone Court,
Herefordshire, and an officer of the late Royal Staff Corps, Wolford
once more had a Simcoe as the master of its household, for after his
marriage Captain Simcoe rented the estate from his father for one year.
At the time of his marriage, Captain Simcoe retired from the Navy and
settled down as a country gentleman, generous in his hospitality, with a
large circle of friends. Miss Eliza Simcoe had previously left £30,000
for the upkeep of Wolford.

The estate on the death of Mrs. Simcoe, widow of Captain John K. Simcoe,
passes into the possession of Mr. Arthur Linton, who is descended from
the Rev. H. A. Simcoe's eldest daughter, Anne Eliza, who married Sedley
Bastard Marke, of Woodhill. Their daughter, Olive Ann, married Rev.
George Linton, Vicar of Corsham in Wiltshire. Their eldest son, Arthur
Henry Linton, is heir of the late Captain John Kennaway Simcoe, and will
succeed to the estate. A condition of the inheritance is that he has to
take the name and arms of Simcoe.




  CHAPTER XXIV.

  _LOVING WORDS FROM THE PULPIT._


Sunday, the twenty-seventh of January, one thousand eight hundred and
fifty, was a day that was never forgotten during the lifetime of the
children of Mrs. Simcoe and of the parishioners who made up the
congregation in the parish church of Dunkeswell, when loving testimony
was paid to the life and works of her who had so recently passed away.
Every family in the parish was represented, in fact every parishioner
was present. It was on the occasion when the Rev. John Blackmore, A.M.,
the rector of Culmstock in Devon, an old and esteemed friend of the
family, preached a sermon entitled "The Christian in Life and Death," on
the death of Mrs. Simcoe. It was an appreciation well deserved and most
acceptable to so many--not only to those in her family circle but to the
people of the parish, who were devoted in their esteem for the late Lady
of the Manor.

[Illustration: Dunkeswell Parish Church Before Restoration.

(_From a Drawing by Mrs. Simcoe._)]

The sermon was (subsequently) privately printed at the Penheale Press,
Launceston, by Mrs. Simcoe's only surviving son, the Rev. Henry
Addington Simcoe.

The text was:

    "Blessed are the dead which die in the Lord from henceforth;
    yea, saith the Spirit, that they may rest from their labours;
    and their works do follow them." Rev. xiv., 13.

[Illustration: Interior Dunkeswell Parish Church Before Restoration.

(_From a Drawing by Miss Harriet Simcoe._)]

The preacher said:

    "I feel, and doubtless you will feel with me, that the occasion
    of my standing in this holy place to-day is one of a deeply
    solemn and affecting character, the death--the departure
    rather--of a friend esteemed, revered, beloved--most justly
    esteemed, most justly revered, most justly beloved by us all.
    Well indeed may we mourn the loss of such a friend. But it is
    our privilege, through the grace and mercy of God, 'not to mourn
    as those without hope'; oh, no; we think of the departed, we
    look back at the piety of her life, and see the humble Christian
    living 'in the Lord'; we look at the peacefulness of her death,
    and see the trusting Christian dying 'in the Lord'; and we look
    at the volume of God's unerring Word, and we hear 'a voice from
    heaven' proclaiming, 'Blessed are the dead which die in the
    Lord.' 'Blessed are the dead which die in the Lord!' Oh,
    brethren, it is at such seasons as this that the heart feels the
    unspeakable preciousness of such a message from heaven. When the
    thoughts have been dwelling with some departed one in the
    sufferings of sickness, the solitude of the coffin, the silence
    of the grave, with what a sweetness and power of consolation
    does this 'voice of the Spirit' break upon the soul. 'Blessed
    are the dead which die in the Lord; even so, saith the Spirit,
    that they may rest from their labours'--their labours in the
    Christian warfare, their labours of faith and love--'and their
    works do follow them'--widening the reality of their faith and
    the sincerity of their love. Here is comfort, instruction,
    encouragement for us all; comfort respecting the dear friend
    whom we lament, in the assurance that 'our loss is her eternal
    gain,' that from sojourning with us in the flesh she has passed
    to a blessedness such as mortal 'eye hath not seen, nor ear
    heard, nor heart conceived'; instruction and encouragement
    respecting ourselves still left for awhile pilgrims in this
    earthly wilderness, instruction as showing how we may attain the
    same heavenly blessedness, and encouragement in the certainty
    that we shall attain it if we seek it rightly 'in the Lord.'

    "And may the power of the Spirit apply this Word of the Spirit
    effectually to each of us for comfort, instruction and
    encouragement! May the Almighty Spirit be to each of us, as He
    was to our 'blessed' friend, a Spirit of light and life and
    holiness and, peace! 'Awake, awake, and arm of the Lord, put
    on'--put forth--'thy strength'; if there be souls here
    spiritually 'dead in trespasses and sins,' by Thy life-giving
    energy 'raise them from the death of sin to the life of
    righteousness,' and those whom Thou hast thus raised vouchsafe
    to strengthen, establish, sanctify more and more; and grant that
    we may all know, in our own eternal experience, how 'blessed are
    the dead which die in the Lord.'

    "'In the Lord.' How much is implied in these three
    words!--baptism and the great change, and the living faith, and
    the mighty blessings signified and sealed by Christian baptism.
    We find the expression used in the New Testament Scriptures to
    denote the Christian's union with Christ as signified and sealed
    by baptism. Thus Christians are spoken of as 'baptized into
    Christ,' the word 'into' denoting their entering and being
    admitted into that state, being used in connection with baptism,
    and Christians so baptized are spoken of afterwards as being 'in
    Christ,' 'in the Lord.' But the expression implies also the
    reality--through the inworking power of the Holy Ghost--the
    reality of that 'death unto sin and new birth unto
    righteousness' of which the baptismal rite is the figure, the
    reality of that cleansing by the blood and Spirit of Christ, of
    which the application of the water is the sign; the reality of
    that faith in Christ, as the Son of God, the Prophet, Priest and
    King of His people, of which baptism is the profession, the real
    acting out of that living faith in Christ through which the
    believer cleaveth to Christ and followeth Christ 'in newness of
    life,' according to His Word; that faith through which 'the
    inner man,' receiving 'nourishment' from Christ, bringeth forth
    'the fruits of the Spirit' of Christ, even as the branch in the
    vine, receiving living sap from the vine, produces the fruits of
    the vine. Thus was our departed friend 'in the Lord,' baptized
    with water, and with the Holy Spirit, having not only the sign,
    but also 'the thing signified,' showing not only the possession,
    but also the possession and the power of true faith. And thus,
    living 'in the Lord,' she died 'in the Lord,' and 'in the Lord'
    she 'liveth for evermore.'

    "In thus speaking of the departed I speak not to her praise, but
    to the praise of that 'grace of God' by which she was what she
    was; praise while living she would have disclaimed and
    deprecated; praise when dead she needeth not; in the sight of
    God and in the memory of man 'her works do follow her.' And oh,
    how utterly less than nothing must be all praise or dispraise
    from man when the blessed spirit has heard from the adorable
    Redeemer, the everlasting Judge, 'Well done, good and faithful
    servant, enter thou into the joy of thy Lord.'

    "But I would direct your attention to a few particulars
    respecting her, the consideration of which may tend, with God's
    blessing, to promote an object which lay near her heart while
    she lived, and which, if the spirits above can take any interest
    in things below, she would now desire most especially to have
    promoted, namely, the welfare--the spiritual and eternal
    welfare--of her fellow-creatures. And for this purpose I shall
    speak not of her powers of mind, or soundness of judgment, or
    decision of character (natural endowments given perhaps in the
    same measure but to few), but rather of those 'fruits of the
    Spirit' to which, through the same Divine Spirit, all Christians
    should aspire, and in seeking, cherishing and manifesting which
    we are all called to 'follow her good example.' The subject
    indeed is large, important, holy and glorious; and I feel myself
    utterly unequal to it, unable to do anything like justice to it;
    but I would desire to look humbly to Him whose 'strength is made
    perfect in the weakness of man,' and who alone can work in any
    of us that 'power of godliness' which we are privileged to
    contemplate in remembering our honoured friend.

    "You know that the grand leading feature in her character was
    religion--true, practical godliness. In the ordering of her
    affairs, the management of her household, the employment of her
    means, the habits of her daily life, might be seen the guiding,
    governing influence of religion; there was evidently a higher
    principle and a nobler object than merely temporal things could
    supply, evidently a looking to something beyond the applause of
    man, the gratification of sense, the possessions of earth; a
    looking to things spiritual, invisible, eternal; a regard for
    the will, the favour, approval and glory of God in Christ Jesus,
    flowing forth in works of piety towards God, and of benevolence
    and beneficence to men, 'adorning the doctrine of the Saviour,'
    and the church of which she was a faithful member. I believe
    that the finest type, the highest exemplification, of the
    Christian character is to be found in the true, sound,
    consistent member of the Protestant Church of England, and such
    was our revered friend, a true Church of England woman and, as
    such, a true Christian in principle and in practice, in faith
    and in works. Her works, her practice, you all know, approve,
    admire; trace them to their sources, the principles from which
    they sprung; and let us remember, it is only as we have the same
    principles that we can have the like character on earth, the
    like blessedness in heaven. These principles, then, in her case
    were those religious principles which are called evangelical. On
    this point we have her own testimony. I am privileged to hold
    here a statement, written by herself more than thirty years ago,
    by which 'tho' dead she yet speaketh' for our instruction and
    profit; and a most valuable testimony it is, not only to the
    fundamental importance of those scriptural truths which the
    world so often despises, but also to the soundness of her own
    faith and the unquestionable certainty of her present and
    eternal blessedness. Hear her words: 'Now while my senses are
    perfect, I will declare that I trust and expect to die in those
    evangelical principles which form the happiness of my life, and
    I trust and hope will do of my death.' Observe this remarkable
    declaration made, as from a special regard to God's glory,
    'while her senses'--all her powers of mind and judgment--'were
    perfect'; intellectual faculties there were of a high order, the
    tastes of an elegant, cultivated and accomplished mind, ample
    means for their gratification, the possession of earthly
    affluence, the enjoyment of domestic life, the affection of
    dutiful children, the attachment of numerous friends, the
    respect and esteem of all the neighbourhood, the consciousness
    of a life spent in the paths of honour, virtue, integrity and
    usefulness; yet none of these things are spoken of as especially
    constituting her happiness, but those religious principles which
    are called evangelical. Nor are we left in doubt as to what she
    meant by 'evangelical principles'; her own statement is in
    substance this: 'By evangelical principles I mean a humiliating
    estimate of our moral condition as radically corrupt, and of
    ourselves unable even to think a good thought; a condition also
    that the death of Christ is an all-sufficient sacrifice and
    atonement for our sins, whereby those who believe in Him are
    saved from the curse of God's broken law, and have His
    righteousness imputed to them; and a conviction that by the
    power of the Holy Spirit we are alone enabled to feel any good
    desires, or to do those works which are the evidences to
    ourselves that our calling is sure, and that we have been
    blessed by divine grace with a living faith.' These 'evangelical
    principles,' comprehending (be it remembered) a deep, heartfelt
    conviction of three great truths, namely, our utterly corrupt
    and lost state by nature, justification through the atoning
    sacrifice and perfect righteousness of Christ, and
    sanctification by the regenerating power of the Holy
    Ghost--these are the very principles revealed in Holy Scripture,
    maintained in the Articles and Homilies of our reformed Church,
    and inwrought into the substance of all our Church services.
    Wherefore? Doubtless that by God's blessing they might be
    inwrought in all our hearts, and become the substantial elements
    of our character. God grant they may be so more and more! The
    following language of our dear friend, respecting the individual
    she was then addressing, just expresses what, I am sure, would
    have been her desire for us all: 'I earnestly pray that the
    power of God may (for no other power can) make you to taste of
    these principles.'

    "And now observe the effects, the actual manifested influence,
    of these principles in our departed friend, whose heart and mind
    were impressed with them and made, in her own expressive
    language, 'to taste of them.' You know her habitual happy
    cheerfulness of mind, her happy freedom from carking care and
    disquieting anxieties. Mark, then, the source and support of
    that happiness. You remember her own words, that her
    'evangelical principles formed the happiness of her life, and
    her hope and trust were that they would form the happiness of
    her death.' Nor was that a vain hope, that trust was not
    disappointed; those divine principles, which dissipated the dark
    clouds and let in the full, cheerful sunshine on her pathway of
    life, shed a bright and beautiful radiance along 'the dark
    valley of the shadow of death'; 'the Lord,' her well-known and
    beloved 'Shepherd,' who for many a year with unfailing care had
    'fed her in the green pasture and led her forth beside the
    waters of comfort,' He was still with her, and gave her to know
    and feel the truth of those words which she had often uttered
    with the lips in this place, and which we have heard again this
    morning--

  'I pass the gloomy vale of death,
    From fear and danger free,
  For there His aiding rod and staff
    Defend and comfort me.'

    But observe her testimony further on this point: 'Before these
    principles were, by the blessing of God, impressed on my mind, I
    thought of death with terror, and was never composed in my mind
    respecting either temporal or eternal concerns.'

    "There may possibly be persons here who make light of what are
    called 'evangelical principles,' speaking of them perhaps, as I
    have heard them spoken of, with a sort of scornful contempt as
    indicating weakness of mind. Consider this remarkable testimony.
    You know something of the mind which gave it--a mind
    distinguished by superior acuteness, clearness, strength,
    solidity, soundness, soberness--yet, according to its own
    deliberate and unquestionable testimony, 'until these
    evangelical principles were, by God's blessing, impressed on
    it,' that mind was 'never composed respecting either temporal or
    eternal concerns, and never thought of death but with secret
    feelings of terror.' And that was perfectly natural and
    reasonable; such were reasonably the feelings of the human heart
    knowing something of its sinfulness and of the holiness and
    justice of the Almighty Judge. And if you think at all seriously
    of your sins, and of the infinite holiness and justice of Him
    who is coming to be your Judge, such would be your feelings. I
    am speaking perhaps to some whose feelings are such; disquieted
    midst the uncertainties of life, shrinking with secret dread
    from the prospect of death. The time was when our 'blessed'
    friend felt even so; but she found relief, deliverance, from
    such tormenting fears, and composure, peace, happiness, were her
    portion in life and in death. How? From the power of those
    religious principles which are called evangelical. And it is
    only from the influence of the same principles that you can find
    the like deliverance, the like 'rest for your own soul.'

    "We read in the 13th Chapter of the Book of Numbers that among
    the Israelites in the wilderness of Paran were exhibited a
    large, magnificent cluster of rich grapes, and beautiful
    pomegranates and figs; but they did not grow in that wilderness;
    a Caleb and Joshua had been in the promised land, and plucked
    them in the valley of Eschol, and brought them to stimulate and
    cheer and encourage their brethren in the wilderness with such
    earnests of the goodness of that land: so the happiness,
    cheerfulness and peace which adorned our dear friend's earthly
    course were not of earthly origin; they sprung, not from the
    natural stock of mental endowments or moral virtue, but from the
    spiritual root of evangelical principles; her faith had laid
    hold on the Saviour, and through Him had penetrated the land of
    promise and gathered of the heavenly fruits, and showed them as
    beautiful specimens of the richness and blessedness of that
    inheritance. Wherefore? That we might be stimulated and cheered
    and encouraged to 'press toward the prize of our high calling in
    Christ,' to seek and cherish a 'like precious faith with her,'
    that we also might be 'filled with peace and joy in believing.'
    Oh, seek that faith; seek the living power of those 'evangelical
    principles' of the blessedness of which we have seen such
    delightful evidence; seek more and more, from the teaching of
    God's Word and Spirit, a humbling conviction of your utterly
    corrupt, lost and helpless state through sin, a realizing
    knowledge of the fulness and freeness of salvation 'by grace
    through faith in Christ,' and an experimental acquaintance with
    the enlightening, renewing, sanctifying power of 'the Spirit of
    life in Christ Jesus.'

[Illustration: Dunkeswell Parish Church as Restored, 1867.

(_From a Picture in the J. Ross Robertson Collection._)]

    "If you are a stranger to these things, if your 'mind has not
    been impressed,' if your heart has not been made in any measure
    'to taste of these principles,' what hope have you? What peace,
    what happiness in prospect of death, judgment and eternity? I
    may possibly be speaking to some who know nothing practically of
    these principles, living just as they might have lived if Christ
    had never died for them, having, it may be, 'the form of
    godliness, but denying the power thereof; while some perhaps are
    altogether careless, thoughtless, indifferent, worldly; and some
    perhaps outwardly and openly ungodly--oh, as a minister of that
    Saviour who hath loved you and given Himself for your
    redemption, let me speak a word to you, and may the Holy Spirit
    enable me to speak 'a word in season'; may the Spirit carry the
    word with power to the heart, to the soul, to the conscience,
    that there may be an awakening, an alarm, a conviction of
    danger, a fleeing to the Saviour, a 'laying hold upon the hope
    set before us in Christ.' You know that you have a soul, an
    immortal soul, which must either be saved or lost; you know that
    you must live forever in the perfection of happiness, or in the
    perfection of agony; and doubtless you sometimes think of this
    when some friend or neighbour dies, when you see the grave open,
    or hear the bell tolling for the funeral of another, then
    perhaps the thought arises that you also must die, that your
    turn will come, that the hour is drawing near--how near you
    cannot tell--when death will lay his hand on you, when your
    limbs will become cold, motionless, stiff in death, your heart
    cease to beat, your breath cease to be drawn, your ears be
    closed, your eyes dimmed and darkened in death; when your body
    will be wrapped in the shroud, nailed up in the coffin, buried
    in the grave, and your soul will have returned to God, the Judge
    of all. And then come thoughts of the resurrection day and the
    final judgment day, the outbursting of the divine glory in the
    heavens, the appearing of the Lord Jesus in the clouds,
    'revealed in flaming fire,' and the showing of the heavenly host
    and the 'trump of the archangel,' and above all the mighty voice
    of the Lord Himself penetrating the depths of earth and sea; and
    the opening of the graves, and the rising of the dead--the
    rising of your body reunited to the soul, and yourself standing
    before 'the great white throne,' and 'the books opened,' and
    'every secret thing brought to light,' and the eye of the Judge
    fixed on you, and the sentence of the Judge pronounced on you,
    and your eternal portion declared, assigned, entered on--where?
    With the saved or lost? With the blessed or the damned? Oh, when
    such thoughts arise, when such solemn events are present to your
    mind, do you not feel that the one thing, the one great object
    which above all others most deeply concerns you, is to escape
    the damnation of hell, to attain the blessedness of heaven?
    Shall it be so? Then, 'by the blessing of God,' must your 'mind
    be impressed with,' your heart 'made to taste of,' these great
    'evangelical' truths; then, as a humbled, guilty, penitent
    sinner must you flee to Christ for refuge, and find forgiveness
    and acceptance through His atoning blood and perfect
    righteousness, and become 'a new creature' in Him, renewed,
    sanctified by the Spirit of life in Him. So our departed friend
    fled to Him, sought Him, was found of Him, and blessed with
    salvation by Him. And He is willing to be found of you and to
    bless you, if only you seek Him and come to Him with humble,
    believing, praying, submissive hearts. Hear His own gracious
    words (Matt. 11: 28), 'Come unto me, all ye that labour and are
    heavy laden, and I will give you rest; take my yoke upon you and
    learn of me, and ye shall find rest for your souls.' And again
    He says (John 6: 37), 'Him that cometh unto me I will in no wise
    cast out.' Oh, be persuaded, be encouraged to come to the
    Saviour while He thus invites you, while He yet 'waits to be
    gracious.' Oh, 'be wise, consider your latter end, and seek the
    Lord while He may be found,' that your latter end may be like
    hers whose death, you know, was full of peace, and whose
    resurrection will be full of glory.

    "Let me remind you further that 'those evangelical principles
    which formed the happiness of her life' and 'of her death,'
    separated our friend from the vain pursuits, pleasures and
    amusements of the world. You know that she walked not in such
    ways; not because she had naturally no taste for such things,
    not because as a Christian she cut herself off from all
    pleasure, but because her principles raised her to higher and
    greater and better pleasures; her faith laid hold on nobler and
    loftier objects, and found delight in them. The toys of
    childhood delight the child; but the man, as the apostle
    expresses it, 'puts away childish things,' not because he has no
    pleasures, but because he has other and higher pleasures; so the
    toys of the world may delight 'the children of the world,' but
    the Christian, realizing in faith the great truths of the
    Gospel, leaves such things, because he finds delight in other
    and heavenly things; as St. Paul tells us (Rom. 8: 5), 'They
    that are after the flesh do mind the things of the flesh, but
    they that are after the Spirit the things of the Spirit.' Hear
    our Christian friend's testimony. Referring to the great truths
    of the Gospel, she says: 'If an individual really believed these
    things he could not pass so much of his time in the anxieties
    and disquietudes' (and doubtless she would have added, the
    vanities) 'of earthly things, and spend comparatively so little
    thought upon the things of eternity.' In faith her 'thoughts'
    dwelt much 'on the things of eternity,' not with feelings of
    doubt, disquietude and dread, but with an assured hope and
    expectation of a blessed inheritance there through that Saviour
    whose love she knew, and whom she loved, and that, be it
    remembered, not from any natural superiority or amiableness of
    disposition, but from the influence of the divine Spirit. Hear
    her again: 'Until a right spirit be implanted in us, which
    worketh by love, that we should love Him who died for us, we
    shall not delight in piety, but perform works of piety from duty
    rather than from pleasure; until we feel a love of Christ and
    communion with God through Him, what delight can we feel in the
    expectation of meeting our God?' This is an important and
    precious passage; it opens to us the source and substance of her
    especial pleasure and delight in 'piety and the works of piety,
    in communion with God, and in the expectation of meeting her
    God'; and that from 'a right spirit implanted'-not inborn,
    observe her language, but 'implanted,' produced by the power of
    the Holy Ghost in connection with the 'evangelical' truths
    before referred to. Now consider how blessed must have been her
    state of mind; and think not that religion--true, evangelical
    religion--would make you gloomy and melancholy, and cut you off
    from all enjoyment of pleasure; it would separate you from vain
    pleasures, but only to give you other pleasures, better, higher,
    purer, permanent, substantial, eternal. Oh, seek to have that
    right spirit implanted, sustained, strengthened, more and more
    in you, that you may 'delight yourself in the Lord' and in the
    ways of the Lord, and when called to 'meet God' you may 'rejoice
    and be glad in Him' as your God and Father in Christ Jesus.

    "Nor were these the only effects of 'evangelical truth' in that
    'blessed' disciple of whom I am now speaking; her faith was that
    'which worketh by love,' and it showed its reality and power in
    a readiness 'to every good work.' Her good works need not be
    spoken of by me in this place, they are known to you all, felt
    and remembered by you all; you know that wherever among
    yourselves or your neighbours might be suffering or sorrow, want
    or woe, there was a kind friend (and, thanks to the Giver of all
    good, her mantle descends, her spirit rests on others who bear
    her honoured name), a friend whose heart was ever touched with
    compassion, whose hand was ever open to help and relieve. Nor
    were her labours of love confined to the neighbourhood; by
    various means, through private individuals and public
    societies, her bounty flowed forth to our country, our colonies,
    and to the heathen world, contributing to lessen the mass of
    human misery, and to bring Jews and Gentiles to the knowledge
    and love and service of her Saviour.

    "Time would fail me to speak of the manifold fruits which
    clustered richly and beautifully on the faith of this devoted
    follower of Christ; but I would just advert to her great
    humility. Year after year she grew in grace, in holiness, in the
    enjoyment of the power and peace of true religion; and that was
    accompanied and widened by growing humility, a sure
    accompaniment of a real work of grace in the heart; there was
    not the 'stand by, for I am holier than thou,' nor 'my tower is
    so strong that I shall never be moved,' but a humbling
    remembrance of her own continual weakness, arising from an
    enlightened knowledge of her heart's deceitfulness and proneness
    to unbelief. As the divine light showed her more and more of her
    God, her Redeemer, and her Sanctifier, it showed her more and
    more her own sinfulness in the sight of God, her constant need
    of the Saviour's cleansing blood, and of the Holy Spirit's
    renewing and upholding power. And so it will be with the true
    Christian; as he advances in holiness, he will become more and
    more sensible of his own unholiness. You may have observed in a
    room that where a beam of sunlight shines with peculiar
    brightness little particles of dust, before invisible, are seen
    floating in the air; the light does not cause them to be there,
    but shows that they are where all before seemed pure. So, as the
    light of truth and holiness shines more and more brightly in the
    heart, evils will be discerned which were not perceived before;
    and, viewing and examining himself in that light, the Christian
    will be kept lowly on his knees at the foot of the Cross. So it
    was with our departed friend. Hear her words once more: 'Those
    who most thoroughly examine their own hearts best know the
    difficulty and extent of belief' (the true working realizing
    faith in God's word), 'how prone man is to do otherwise'
    (otherwise than act out Christian faith in all its various
    bearings and applications), 'how deceitful is our heart in this
    case.' And doubtless the following language expressed her own
    experience, for the great enemy would not have left such a
    servant of God untried: 'Satan uses every means to shake our
    faith in Christ, knowing it to be our only source of happiness
    here, and that the stronger our faith is the freer we are from
    his yoke and influence.' How true is this! The Christian's
    spiritual life, strength, holiness, happiness, depend on his
    'faith in Christ.' And she adds: 'Let our daily prayer be--Lord,
    I believe; help Thou mine unbelief.' There spake her humility
    and her faith, looking in prayer to the Lord as able to help her
    unbelief and to keep her from falling. And observe where was her
    strength, her help, her defence, only 'in the Lord.' The
    corruption, deceitfulness, unbelief of her heart she knew, and
    who can tell the manifold struggles and conflicts of her
    protracted Christian warfare? But she knew with the Psalmist,
    'Unto whom to lift up her eyes for help,' and with the Psalmist
    she found that 'the Lord Himself was her keeper, her helper, her
    defender.' She found that 'as the hills stood about Jerusalem,
    even so standeth the Lord round about His people for evermore.'
    But observe how she found this help from the Lord--in the
    faithful use of appointed means, seeking the blessing of the
    Lord in the ordinances of the Lord as they are observed and
    ministered in our branch of His Church. For with all her growing
    in grace and godliness (and well will it be for us if we grow
    up, in our measure, towards the fulness of her stature in
    Christ!), with all her spiritual growth, this eminent Christian
    never grew above the Church of England, as many seem in the
    imagination of their minds to suppose respecting themselves; a
    spirit of true piety kept her in a state of true humility,
    manifesting the feelings expressed by those words of the
    Psalmist which we have heard this morning, 'I was glad when they
    said unto me, let us go into the house of the Lord.' You know
    how regularly, constantly, devoutly she used to come here 'into
    the house of the Lord,'--how, when her own strength failed, she
    used the help of others' strength to come 'into the house of the
    Lord,' the weakness of the body presenting an emblem of the
    humility of the soul leaning on the arm of the Lord Jesus, and
    'resting on the arm of that Beloved One coming up more and more
    from the wilderness' of corrupt nature, and drawing nearer and
    nearer to the heavenly temple. And oh, that all partook of and
    manifested the same spirit of humble dependence on the Lord's
    help, diligently seeking the Lord's blessing in the ordinances
    of the Lord's house! But alas! how many neglect these things!
    How many, permitted to enjoy full bodily strength, pervert that
    strength to other purposes, and use it not in coming regularly
    'to the house of the Lord,' while others make a measure of
    weakness which might be assisted an excuse for staying away from
    'the house and the ordinances of the Lord!' No wonder if in such
    cases the soul be left unfed, unstrengthened, to sink, and
    languish and die. Beware, that it be not so with any of you;
    seek food, nourishment, strength for your souls where our devout
    friend sought and found it, in the ordinances of the Lord's
    house, and that not only from the sermon, but also from and
    through the prayers. The preaching of the word she highly
    valued, and so likewise the prayers; as a humble disciple not
    only, with Mary, 'sitting at Jesus' feet to hear His word,' but
    also, with the leper, 'kneeling before Him to supplicate His
    mercy, power and blessing, both in the holy sacrament of His
    Supper, and in the Sunday prayers with the congregation; and
    thus her lamp was fed and kept brightly burning with oil from
    the sanctuary. The prayers of our Church indeed she specially
    loved, not with a blind, bigoted attachment, but with an
    intelligent, enlightened regard, knowing them to be sound,
    scriptural, spiritual, suited to the soul's wants, and, when
    rightly used, profitable to the soul's welfare. In the use of
    them she found good for her soul, and a great stay to her
    sinking spirit midst the increasing infirmities of the flesh;
    and the testimony of one who was with her to the last is 'that
    amidst restlessness and pain and decay the Church prayers would
    arrest her attention and be fervently joined in'--those tried
    and well-known helps in the daytime of life, still ministering
    help at eventide when the night of death came on.

    "And now she 'joins in prayer' no longer, such helps and stays
    she needs no more; upheld, sustained unto the end of her course,
    comforted with abundant peace, and finally strengthened unto
    complete and glorious victory, her happy spirit hath escaped
    from 'the burden of the flesh'--this prison-house of clay,
    gladly escaped 'like a bird from the fowler.' The fetters are
    all broken, and the emancipated spirit has taken its flight up
    to realms of bliss and blessedness beyond the reach of our
    present faculties, whither we can now only follow her in
    thought, in faith, in thanksgiving and praise. Human imagination
    cannot fully conceive, human tongue cannot describe, the
    blessedness 'of the spirits of the just made perfect'--to
    attempt doing so would be only to mar its glory and dim its
    splendour. Even the language of inspiration, with all its
    magnificent grandeur and sublimity, fails us here; even the
    beloved John, 'who lay in Jesus' bosom,' says, 'we know not what
    we shall be'; even the favoured Paul, who was 'caught up to the
    third heaven,' tells us that the words which he heard in
    paradise were 'unutterable words,' the very expression of the
    joys of the blessed spirits surpassing the power of human
    utterance! Yet it is good to think of that blessedness, though
    we are lost in utter inability to comprehend it; it is good in
    believing thought to muse upon it, to have the mind raised to
    the contemplation of it; good to know and remember that
    blessedness unspeakable, unalloyed, uninterrupted, unfailing,
    unending, eternal, only to be increased and perfected at the
    resurrection in the union of the glorified body with the
    glorified soul blessed with the entire fulness of blessedness in
    the presence of God for evermore; such is the blessedness in
    which our faith can contemplate, and rejoice to contemplate,
    our esteemed, revered, beloved and blessed friend! All, be it
    remembered, through Christ, the Saviour of sinners; all from the
    love, the free and undeserved love, of God in Christ Jesus. That
    love it was which, in its eternal counsels, gave the everlasting
    Son for this 'blessed' one's redemption; that love sought her in
    her natural state of alienation, awakened her to a sense of her
    sinfulness, led her to the knowledge of the Saviour, and enabled
    her in faith to lay hold on the hope set before her in Christ,
    and to find pardon and peace through His blood and
    righteousness, and strength and holiness in the spirit of life
    in Him; that love watched over her, guided, defended, sustained,
    upheld, comforted her in all her weakness, wants, difficulties,
    dangers, trials, tribulations, sufferings and sorrows; it 'led
    her all her journey through, safe to her journey's end,' and
    when she reached 'the verge of Jordan,' that love was there,
    like the ark with the Israelites of old, and its everlasting
    arms clave asunder the dark waters and bore her spirit through
    triumphant to join the company of the blessed gone before.

    "And who will follow? who will follow? Oh, may I, may you,
    follow her as she followed the Saviour, follow her in 'faith and
    patience' here to 'the inheritance of the promises' hereafter;
    may we receive the truth in the love and the power of the truth
    as she received it, and live the truth in the humble and
    faithful practice of the truth as she lived 'in the Lord.' Oh,
    come, let us follow, in Christ, 'the way' towards the heavenly
    Canaan; if you have not yet entered on the heavenward path, oh,
    enter now; away with your carelessness, your worldliness, your
    ungodliness; whatever it be that is keeping you from the
    Saviour, cast it from you, and in humble penitence and prayer
    and faith come to Christ, and set your face heavenward, and
    follow on to know and serve the Lord; and if you have through
    grace entered on that 'narrow' but blessed way, press forward,
    be stimulated, cheered, encouraged to press forward with renewed
    vigour and watchfulness and hope; the 'blessed' friend who has
    gone before beckons and calls you on, she points to the love and
    power that were all-sufficient for her, as all-sufficient for
    you. Oh, brethren, come; the same divine, unfailing love
    invites, awaits, encourages us; the love of the Father bids us
    come, the love of the Saviour will receive us, the love of the
    Sanctifier, 'the Holy Ghost the Comforter,' will help us. Oh,
    then come; in faith and prayer and humble submission flee to
    this redeeming love, cleave to it, trust to it, follow its
    heavenward guidance, depend on its unfailing promises, and
    though difficulties and dangers, and tribulations and trials,
    and enemies from within and without stand in the way, 'who shall
    separate us from the love of Christ?' Oh, if we have anything of
    the apostle's faith, as our departed friend had, we may take up
    the apostle's triumphant language and say, 'I am persuaded that
    neither death, nor life, nor angels, nor principalities, nor
    powers, nor things present, nor things to come, nor height nor
    depth, nor any other creature, shall be able to separate us from
    the love of God which is in Christ Jesus our Lord.' And to Him,
    with our lips now and in our lives day by day, in our words and
    works, our faith and practice, let us humbly ascribe all honour
    and praise and power and glory for ever and ever."




  CHAPTER XXV.

  _THE WILL OF MRS. SIMCOE._


Mrs. Simcoe's will was proved on the 19th of March, 1850. It was
originally made in 1840, and her son, the Rev. H. A. Simcoe, and the
Rev. John Clarke were appointed executors.

The first codicil is dated the 30th of March, 1841, and makes a new
disposition of the land at Dunkeswell Abbey, in the parish of
Dunkeswell.

The second codicil is dated the 9th of October, 1843, and adds the name
of the late Honourable Sir J. T. Coleridge, afterwards Lord Coleridge,
as an executor in conjunction with her son, Rev. H. A. Simcoe, and Rev.
John Clarke.

The third codicil is dated the 7th of January, 1848, two years before
her death. The Rev. John Clarke having died, she appointed Francis
George Coleridge, son of Sir J. T. Coleridge, to act in conjunction with
the Rev. H. A. Simcoe and Sir J. T. Coleridge as executors.

The copy of the will is extracted from the Principal Registry of the
Probate, Divorce and Admiralty Division of the High Court of Justice in
the Prerogative Court of Canterbury.

    I, ELIZABETH POSTHUMA SIMCOE of Wolford Lodge in the county of
    Devon widow do make publish and declare this to be my last will
    and testament in writing in manner and form following that is to
    say in conformity to the wish of my late deceased husband John
    Graves Simcoe expressed in his will and pursuant to and in
    exercise and execution of the several powers and authorities to
    me given or in me vested either under all or any of the several
    Indentures of Settlement executed by us or by my late aunt
    Margaret Graves widow or under any other deed settlement will or
    writing whatsoever or me in any other manner thereto in anywise
    enabling I do by this my last will and testament in writing by
    me executed in the presence of and attested by the credible
    persons whose names are hereto subscribed as witnesses attesting
    my execution hereof give devise bequeath direct limit appoint
    and dispose of all and every sum and sums of money in whomsoever
    vested and whether invested or standing in any of the public
    stocks or funds or on mortgage or any other securities or
    whether arising or produced by or from the sale of any tenement
    lands or hereditaments in such settlement deed will or writing
    comprised or by any other means whereof I have any power of
    disposal unto and amongst my several daughters by my said
    husband in manner and in the parts and proportions following
    that is to say unto my daughters Eliza Charlotte Henrietta Maria
    Caroline and Sophia Jemima so much of the said trust monies
    respectively as will amount unto and raise the sum of five
    thousand pounds for each of them and to my two youngest
    daughters Katherine and Ann (the latter of whom was born after
    the date and execution of my said husband's Will) so much of the
    said trust monies respectively as will amount unto and raise the
    sum of six thousand pounds for each of them and which said last
    mentioned sums I do appoint to them my said two youngest
    daughters Katherine and Ann to the intent that all my said
    daughters may be provided for in equal degree they my said
    daughters Eliza Charlotte Henrietta Maria Caroline Sophia Jemima
    having received legacies under the will of my late Aunt Margaret
    Graves widow and being entitled to other legacies payable at my
    death from my late Aunt Sophia Gwillim out of my Herefordshire
    property but inasmuch as under my said husband's will the power
    hereinafter mentioned of charging the estate with the payment of
    any provision for any of my said daughters may be limited and
    restrained to the sum of five thousand pounds for any one of
    them I do by this my said will direct limit and appoint that my
    executors hereinafter named shall raise and levy two several
    sums of one thousand pounds each in part of and to make up the
    said sums of six thousand pounds for each of my said youngest
    daughters by and out of the monies which at my death shall be
    invested in the funds or on mortgage either in my name or in the
    names of the trustees named in the said Indentures of Settlement
    and shall pay and apply the same in discharge of so much of the
    said two sums of six thousand pounds and I do by this my said
    will further direct order limit and appoint that the several
    trustees in whose names such several trust monies are or may be
    vested shall call in such parts thereof as are in the public
    funds or are on mortgage and apply the same agreeably to the
    intent of this my will in and towards discharge of the legacies
    hereby by me given and in case such monies so in the public
    funds or on mortgage or other security may not be adequate to
    the making up of the whole of the said legacies and provision
    for my said several daughters I do by this my said will executed
    and attested as aforesaid pursuant to and in exercise of the
    power and authority given for that purpose to me in and by the
    will of my said late husband and of all and every other power
    and powers me hereunto in any wise enabling subject and charge
    the residuary real estate by his said will given and devised to
    and with the payment to my said several daughters of such
    proportion of the respective sums of money hereby given or
    appointed to them as such trust money shall fall short or be
    deficient to make up for the portions or fortunes of my several
    daughters as aforesaid and I do by this my said will appoint and
    charge that such deficiency shall be made good to my said
    daughters respectively out of such residuary real estate I give
    to my said daughter Eliza my prints pictures plate books china
    linen wine horses cows carts carriages household goods and other
    furniture bank notes cash in Biddulph's Bank and lastly in
    pursuance and in execution and exercise of all and every power
    and powers either under my said husband's will or under or by
    virtue of any settlement or settlements or in any other manner
    whatsoever vested in me I do by this my said will by me executed
    and attested as aforesaid give devise bequeath direct order
    limit appoint and dispose of all and singular my mesuages
    tenements farms buildings closes lands hereditaments and all the
    rest residue and remainder of my real and personal estate monies
    securities for money goods and effects whatsoever wheresoever
    not hereinbefore given and bequeathed and of which I have any
    power of disposal subject to my debts and funeral expenses and
    also subject to and charged and chargeable with the payment of
    the said several portions or fortunes to my said several
    daughters hereinbefore given appointed or provided for them or
    intended so to be or such part or parts thereof as the trust
    monies hereinbefore mentioned shall fall short of paying and
    which I will and direct shall in every event be fully paid and
    satisfied and also all and every sum and sums of money trust
    estate and effects whatsoever in and by the said Indentures of
    Settlement or either of them or by my said husband's Will or in
    any other manner settled and not by me disposed of as aforesaid
    unto the use of my son Henry Addington Simcoe his heirs
    executors administrators and assigns to and for his and their
    own absolute use and benefit and I do hereby make constitute and
    appoint my son the said Henry Addington Simcoe and the Revd John
    Clarke to be joint EXECUTORS of this my last will and testament
    hereby revoking all former and other wills by me heretofore made
    and ratifying and confirming this to be my last. IN WITNESS
    whereof I the said Elizabeth Posthuma Simcoe the testatrix have
    to this my last will and testament set my hand and seal this
    eleventh day of September in the year of our Lord one thousand
    eight hundred and forty -- -- ELIZABETH POSTHUMA SIMCOE
    (L S) --  -- SIGNED and declared to be the last will and testament
    of the within named Elizabeth Posthuma Simcoe in her presence and
    at her request and in the presence of each other have subscribed
    our names witness thereto -- -- JAMES TEMPLE MANSEL Clerk Curate
    of Dunkeswell in the county of Devon -- JOHN BURKE Clerk Vicar
    of Kilalgan Co Galway Ireland.

    I, ELIZABETH POSTHUMA SIMCOE do hereby publish and declare this
    a CODICIL to my last will and testament dated the eleventh day
    of September 1840 hereto annexed I give devise and bequeath all
    my lands and estate whether freehold, or leasehold situated at
    Dunkeswell Abbey in the parish of Dunkeswell unto my daughters
    Eliza Simcoe and Caroline Simcoe their heirs executors
    administrators and assigns as joint tenants. And I do hereby
    revoke all and every devise and disposition of my said lands and
    estate contained in my said will IN WITNESS whereof I have
    hereunto set my hand and seal this thirtieth day of March in the
    year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and forty-one -- E P
    SIMCOE (L S) -- -- SIGNED published and declared by the said
    Elizabeth Posthuma Simcoe to be a codicil to her last will and
    testament in our presence who in her presence and in the
    presence of each other have subscribed our names as witnesses
    thereto -- -- PHILIP KRULES -- -- JOSEPH BURROWS.

    THIS IS A SECOND CODICIL to the last will and testament of me
    ELIZABETH POSTHUMA SIMCOE of Wolford Lodge in the county of
    Devon widow which will bears date the eleventh day of September
    in the year one thousand eight hundred and forty. Whereas I am
    desirous of naming the Honourable Sir John Taylor Coleridge
    Knight one of the Justices of Her Majesty's Court of Queen's
    Bench an EXECUTOR of my said will to act in the execution
    thereof in conjunction with my son Henry Addington Simcoe and
    the Reverend John Clarke the executors therein named I do
    therefore hereby appoint the said Sir John Taylor Coleridge one
    of the EXECUTORS of my said will and I direct that my said will
    shall be read and construed as if the name of the said Sir John
    Taylor Coleridge had been originally inserted therein together
    with the names of the said Henry Addington Simcoe and John
    Clarke and I confirm my said will and the codicil thereunto
    annexed except as aforesaid IN WITNESS whereof I have hereunto
    set my hand this ninth day of October one thousand eight
    hundred and forty three ---- E P SIMCOE ---- SIGNED by the said
    Elizabeth Posthuma Simcoe as and for a codicil to her last will
    and testament in the presence of us present at the same time who
    in her presence and at her request have hereunto subscribed our
    names as witnesses ---- J D COLERIDGE Exeter College Oxford ----
    FRAS GEO COLERIDGE Ottery St Mary Solr --

    THIS IS A THIRD CODICIL to the last will and testament of me
    ELIZABETH POSTHUMA SIMCOE of Wolford Lodge in the county of
    Devon widow which will bears date the eleventh day of September
    in the year one thousand eight hundred and forty. Whereas the
    Reverend John Clarke one of the executors named in my said will
    hath lately departed this life I am desirous of appointing
    Francis George Coleridge of Ottery Saint Mary in the county of
    Devon Gentleman an EXECUTOR of my said will to act in the
    execution of the trusts thereof in conjunction with my son Henry
    Addington Simcoe and the Honourable Sir John Taylor Coleridge
    respectively named as executors of my said will in and by my
    said will and one of the codicils thereto I do therefore by this
    third codicil to my said will appoint the said Francis George
    Coleridge one of my EXECUTORS and direct that my said will and
    codicils shall be read and construed as if the name of the said
    Francis George Coleridge had been originally inserted therein
    together with the executors therein named. In all other respects
    I ratify and confirm my said will and the several codicils
    thereto IN WITNESS whereof I have hereunto set my hand this
    seventh day of January one thousand eight hundred and
    forty-eight ---- E P SIMCOE ---- SIGNED by the said Elizabeth
    Posthuma Simcoe as and for a codicil to her last will and
    testament in the presence of us present at the same time who in
    her presence and at her request have hereunto subscribed our
    names as witnesses CHARLES E BAND ---- JOSEPH BURROWS ----

  Proved (with three Codicils)
  19th March 1850
  Fos 24
  J J C
  239

In order that the will of Mrs. Simcoe may be intelligible to the reader,
the following synopsis has been made.

    Testatrix in conformity to the wish of her husband, the late
    John Graves Simcoe, expressed in his will and pursuant to
    certain settlements executed by the testatrix and her husband or
    by her late aunt, Margaret Graves, or under any other deed,
    settlement, will or writing, devises and bequeathes: "All and
    every sum and sums of money in whomsoever vested and whether
    invested or standing in any of the public stocks or funds or on
    mortgage or any other securities or whether arising or produced
    by or from the sale of any tenement, land or hereditaments in
    such settlement, deed, will or writing comprised or by any other
    means whereof I have any power of disposal to the following
    daughters:

  Eliza           }
  Charlotte       }  So much of said trust
  Henrietta Maria }  moneys as will amount to
  Caroline        }  and raise £5,000 for each.
  Sophia Jemima   }

to the two youngest daughters:

  Katherine.                 }
  Ann (the latter born after }  So much of the trust
  date and execution of will }  moneys as will amount to
  of John Graves Simcoe).    }  and raise £6,000 for each.

    The testatrix explains her reason for giving the additional
    £1,000 to her two youngest daughters is by reason of the fact
    that the six eldest daughters have received legacies under the
    will of the testatrix's late aunt, Margaret Graves, and will
    also be entitled to other legacies payable at the death of the
    testatrix from her late aunt, Sophia Gwillim, out of the
    testatrix's Herefordshire property.

    Under the will of John Graves Simcoe it is provided that Mrs.
    Simcoe was only to charge the residuary real estate of her
    husband with payment to her children of such sums as she might
    think proper; no sum exceeding £5,000 shall be payable to any
    one child.

    The testatrix directs her executors to raise the two several
    sums of £1,000 required to make up the said sums of £6,000 for
    each of the said two youngest daughters out of moneys which at
    the death of the testatrix shall be invested in funds or on
    mortgage either in her name or in the names of trustees named
    "in the said indenture of settlement."

    In case such moneys in public funds or on mortgage or other
    security are not adequate to make up the whole of the said
    legacies the testatrix charges her residuary real estate with
    the payment to her several daughters of such proportion of the
    respective sums given to them as shall fall short or be
    deficient to make up the full amount of the legacies bequeathed
    to her several daughters.

    The testatrix further directs that such deficiency shall be made
    good to her daughters respectively out of her residuary real
    estate.

    The testatrix gives to her daughter Eliza the following: "My
    prints, pictures, plate, books, china, linen, wine, horses,
    cows, carts, carriages, household goods and other furniture,
    bank notes, cash in Biddulph's Bank."

    The testatrix bequeathes all and singular her messuages,
    tenements, farms, buildings, closes, hereditaments and all the
    rest and residue of her real and personal estate, subject to the
    payment of her debts and funeral expenses and subject to the
    payment of the legacies to her several daughters above
    mentioned, unto her son, Henry Addington Simcoe.

    The testatrix appoints her son, Henry Addington Simcoe, and the
    Rev. John Clarke joint executors of her will.

    By her first codicil the testatrix devises and bequeathes all
    her lands and real estate, whether freehold or leasehold, of
    Dunkeswell Abbey in the Parish of Dunkeswell to her daughters
    Eliza Simcoe and Caroline Simcoe as joint tenants.

    By a second codicil the testatrix appoints Sir John Taylor
    Coleridge, one of the Justices of her Majesty's Court of Queen's
    Bench, executor in conjunction with her son, Henry Addington
    Simcoe, and Rev. John Clarke.

    By a third codicil the testatrix appoints Francis George
    Coleridge of Ottery St. Mary in the County of Devon to be one of
    her executors to take the place of Reverend John Clarke, who has
    departed this life, and to act in conjunction with her son,
    Henry Addington Simcoe and Sir John Taylor Coleridge.

    Mr. Walcot, a cousin of Mrs. Simcoe's, died in 1830. He resided
    in Oundle, Northamptonshire. At his death he bequeathed to
    Eliza, Charlotte, Henrietta, Caroline, Sophia, Katherine and Ann
    Simcoe £2,000 each and to Mrs. Simcoe £100 and all his lands and
    houses in the counties of Norfolk, Huntingdon and Northampton.
    These "lands and houses" to be sold and divided "share and
    share" alike to the seven daughters of John Graves Simcoe. Mr.
    Walcot left his estate of Tichmarsh in Northampton to the Rev.
    Henry Addington Simcoe, the only surviving son of General
    Simcoe.




  CHAPTER XXVI.

  _GENERAL SIMCOE'S ESTATE IN CANADA._


There was no large accumulation of wealth in the Simcoe family. The
ancestors of the General were not men endowed with much more than
respectable competences. They were plain living, godly people, content
with their lot, doing their duty in their respective spheres of life as
Christian men and women.

None of the Simcoes in Cheshire had estates, although some few of them
were small land-holders. Those who lived in Northumberland and Durham
were better off, for as rectors and vicars they were in the possession
of "livings" that placed them in comfortable circumstances.

Captain John Simcoe, the son of a Northumberland vicar, had, through the
thrift and saving of some of his ancestors, inherited enough money to
enable him to wed; and this, with some thousands that his wife was
endowed with and his naval pay, kept his home in Cotterstock in
comparative comfort.

So that after the death of Captain Simcoe his widow was in circumstances
that permitted her to leave Cotterstock and take up house in Exeter,
bring up and educate her two surviving sons, Percy, who was
unfortunately drowned at the age of fourteen, and John Graves, the
future Governor of Upper Canada.

There is no trace of the disposition of the estate of Mrs. John Simcoe.
Certain it is that it all came to General Simcoe, so that when he
started life he had a few thousand pounds to his credit and the
advantage of a good education.

During the American campaign he drew liberally upon his own funds and
was thus enabled to secure many necessaries essential to his comfort
which would have been denied him had he to depend upon his army pay.

His personal expenditure while in command of the Queen's Rangers was
considerable, for he not only outfitted his men but, as the announcement
in Rivington's N. Y. _Gazette_ shows, he paid a premium for every
recruit obtained in New York.

Of course, after his marriage in 1782, he was in better circumstances.
His wife was an heiress in her own right, inheriting the wealth of the
Gwillims, and it was her money that purchased Wolford in Devon.

The welfare of the estate was an ambition with Mrs. Simcoe and large
sums were disbursed by her in improvements. The dwelling was practically
rebuilt, in fact what was left of the original building, built by Peter
Geneste, is now in the centre of the ground floor of the present
mansion.

Many thousands of pounds were expended by Mrs. Simcoe on the estate
between the years 1782 and 1806; and the General also contributed a
goodly share towards its upkeep.

But there were many personal calls upon the General's income. In
connection with the military commands in the Western District his
private purse was liberally drawn upon.

The Simcoe correspondence shows that he was anxious that his family
should be provided for after his death. The urgent appeals he made to
the Government of the day to grant him what was his due and his
continued reference to this matter in his personal correspondence,
justify the belief that he should have been recouped large amounts
expended by him which could fairly be charged to Government account.

When he accepted the post of Lieutenant-Governor of Upper Canada he had
no idea that his private purse would have to be drawn upon to enable him
to keep up his position in Canada as was befitting the representative of
his sovereign.

True, the income as Lieutenant-Governor was £2,000 per annum, with half
fees on sales of lands and from the privilege and application of the
Great Seal to divers private and public instruments, but while he
received his pay and part of the fees, there was a large arrearage at
the time of his death.

When Simcoe left the Province all of his accounts were not adjusted and
he had to leave the collection of the arrearage to his agent, Captain
John McGill, who was the Commissary of Stores in his government.

The General had also 4,770 acres of land in the Township of Yonge, the
Johnstown District, and in other parts of the Province, including the
Castle Frank property of 200 acres adjoining York. This latter property
was registered in the name of his son Francis Gwillim Simcoe, who in
April of 1812 fell at the siege of Badajoz.

At intervals he received remittances on account and down to 1802 it
amounted to £1,760. John McGill in writing to the General said in
reference to a payment of £873 made before 1800, he was instructed by
Mr. Peter Russell to say that "it was not his fault that the sum was not
more and that if the Attorney-General (Mr. White) had done his duty the
sum for grants ought to have been from £1,000 to £2,000 annually, but
why he was not made do his duty remains a mystery."

A subsequent return made as late as March, 1806, shows that an amount of
£255 was paid to the General, making in all £2,015.

Mrs. Simcoe made repeated efforts to collect the arrearage, but records
show that she did not receive many further payments. The lands owned by
General Simcoe were sold in later years before Mrs. Simcoe's death and
the amount received was duly transmitted to her. It is understood that
this land brought about $2 an acre.

Mrs. Simcoe was always interested in hearing of the progress of York,
for she had many friends residing there, the friends of her younger days
in 1792-6, when she lived at Niagara and York.

In a letter dated April 1, 1819, Mr. McGill writes of York: "This place
has increased greatly, both as to buildings and population since the
war. You will hardly believe when I state that two acres and two-thirds
(2 2-3), divided into fourteen house lots, was sold at auction a few
days ago for eighteen hundred and fifty-five pounds, currency (Dollar,
five shillings)."

This was a great surprise, no doubt, to Mrs. Simcoe and is a greater
surprise to the people of Toronto at the present time. There is no proof
of the location of these lots, but they are said to have been near the
corner of King and Yonge streets. If so, the market price to-day would
be about $2,500,000; for land in that vicinity in 1910, one hundred feet
in depth, sold for nearly $10,000 per foot frontage.

Mr. Samuel Smith, who was the Administrator of the Government in Upper
Canada in 1817 and in 1820, writes to Mrs. Simcoe on October 29, 1824,
stating that: "The Town of York is increasing fast, the principal street
(King) is about a mile long and the houses for most of the way tolerably
compact. The roads likewise are getting good so that stages, four-wheel
carriages, go from Kingston to Montreal and occasionally from York to
Niagara. There are several steamboats on the lake that ply in different
directions, which makes travelling by water very expeditious," and Mr.
Smith adds: "The Falls of Niagara has become a fashionable resort, as
many as some hundreds of people are seen there at a time in the summer
season."

Mrs. Simcoe kept up her correspondence with Canadian friends until
within a short period of her death. For the late Rev. Dr. Henry Scadding
she had a profound regard; his father had been the manager of Wolford
and settled in Upper Canada during her husband's term as
Lieutenant-Governor.




  CHAPTER XXVII.

  _JOHN BAILEY'S MEMOIRS._


Seldom, very seldom, do we have narratives written under the conditions
in which John Bailey wrote these memoirs. As a rule servants and
retainers, whether employed in the upper or lower duties of household
work--either within or without the walls of the family home, prefer to
perform their allotted duties faithfully, without indulging in any
ambitions of a literary character. So that with the manifold duties that
make up the daily routine of a household work it is a pleasant surprise
to find a narrative from the pen of a man whose opportunities for
education were probably limited to the mastering of the crude training
presented by a primitive parish school in a Devon village.

The writing may not be of a character or interest that would secure for
it a place on library shelves. But, nevertheless, it displays an ability
worthy of those who claim a wider range of intelligence. Great
opportunities were not, and could not, be within the reach of John
Bailey, the writer of the unique story entitled "A few remarks on the
lives of General and Mrs. Simcoe from 1802 to 1850."

During a visit to Wolford in the summer of 1904 I walked to the village
of Dunkeswell, two miles distant from Wolford, and had an interview with
the son of John Bailey, whose story is here presented. The son, named
William, lived in one of the cottages of the village, belonging to the
estate, and received a pension from Mrs. Simcoe. He had a fairly good
recollection of Mrs. Simcoe, the widow of the General; for not only as a
lad did he know her on the estate but he entered service at Wolford in
1850 some months prior to her decease. Of the Misses Simcoe, her
daughters, his memory was excellent, and in his esteem they were all
that women should be--"good, kind ladies who looked after the welfare of
everyone, man and woman, young and old, in Dunkeswell"--so said William
Bailey, who died in 1908, aged eighty-seven.

Another cottager, John Corrick, who for nearly sixty years had been in
the employ of the family on the home farm and as under gardener, also
added his meed of praise to the many virtues of Mrs. Simcoe, the widow
of the General. As for "the young ladies at Wolford" he was unstinted in
good words for all that they had done to promote the prosperity and
happiness not only of those employed on the estate, but also of the
tenants of the various farms.

He remembered Mrs. Simcoe and her daughters, for he saw them daily for
many years, and added in an earnest tone that while all were "so good
and charitable to everyone" yet Miss Anne was "terribly kind," an
expression common in some parts of Devonshire, and used to illustrate
perfection of character and the acme of charity. Corrick died in July,
1904, in his 78th year. Mrs. John Kennaway Simcoe, "The Lady of the
Manor," and friends at Wolford attended the old man's funeral. As one of
the family said, "He was a saint if ever there was one--a dear old man,
respected and loved by all, so good-natured, no one ever spoke a hard
word of him."

John Bailey was born in Awliscombe, four miles from Dunkeswell and two
from Wolford, and as a lad of twelve he entered the service of the
Simcoe family in 1802, as an attendant on the butler for one year, then
he worked as a groom in the stable for four years, after which he was
promoted to the position of footman and finally as coachman.

He was a good-looking, bright lad of average height--his son said about
five feet, eight inches--of a cheerful and obliging disposition, always
ready for the call of his butler, by whose grace he had received his
position. He always had a most profound respect and reverence for the
General, who on one occasion had declared that he was "a good lad."

After the death of the General in 1806, Bailey continued in Mrs.
Simcoe's service for two years and in 1808 left Wolford. He concluded
that a sea-faring life was better suited for him than household duties;
but he tired of roaming over the ocean and in 1816 returned to his
native heath and was again engaged by Mrs. Simcoe as footman, a position
he held for twenty years--and then he stepped into the coachman's seat
and held the reins for another twelve years--in all thirty-seven years
of service.

He lived during the last years of his service and his life, at the Percy
Cottages at the foot of Percy Hill, which leads down from Wolford into
Dunkeswell. These dwellings are still inhabited.

Bailey married a tidy Devon maiden and had several children. All are now
dead.

Some years before Mrs. Simcoe's death John Bailey was somewhat broken in
health, and she bestowed a pension on him, which continued to be paid
until the day of his death, 1st August, 1855.

If ever a man was faithful to his trust it was John Bailey. His goodness
of character seems to have been exceptional, and his loving attention to
his employers and their interests add to the story he has written--a
diary in a general way--of the life in the happy home at Wolford.
Bailey's memoirs--for so they may be justly called--are worthy of men
who occupied a higher sphere in the social scale.

Bailey had received a fair education, was an excellent pupil at the
village school, and so secured a large amount of general knowledge that
served him in good stead after he had grown to manhood. It is most
refreshing to read this man's manuscript, and in reading to remember
that his heart and soul were full of more than the average of kindly
thought for those who employed him.

Not only was John Bailey faithful in his work as between master and
servant, but he possessed many attributes that commended him to the
Simcoe family. He was evidently an earnest Christian--he knew the Good
Book from cover to cover. He had a sincere admiration for his mistress,
whom he regarded as a model among womankind. His whole narrative abounds
in admiration for her; and his devotion to the family seems to be that
of one who endeavored not only to serve them in the duties assigned to
him, but to lead the Christian life that was the distinguishing
characteristic of those who lived at Wolford.

I have given the narrative just as it came from the pen of its author,
adding an occasional note in parenthesis, in the body of the text,
explanatory of the location of the places mentioned. The MSS. is
entitled and inscribed as "A Few Remarks on the lives of General and
Mrs. Simcoe, by John Bailey, from 1802 to 1850." This title is followed
by a "preface" explaining in a way the nature of the text of the
narrative. Bailey writes of the "first and second editions." The
narrative is really in two parts. The first part includes the period
from 1802-8, and is devoted to "Remarks on the life of Mrs. Simcoe by
John Bailey." The second part embraces the period from 1818-50 and this
covers "the life of General and Mrs. Simcoe." The hiatus from 1809-17 is
explained by the fact that Bailey was away at sea during that period.

This preface, moreover, does not foreshadow, as a preface generally
does, the interesting "remarks" concerning those whom he has undertaken
to write about. It reads:--

    Now in my first and second editions of the lives of General and
    Mrs. Simcoe, I have not altogether dwelt on their lives, but
    some other people also, and some other things, some things about
    religious things, and some things about myself and other people;
    but my chief subject is on the lives of General and Mrs. Simcoe.
    But all the particulars of the lives of General and Mrs. Simcoe,
    this is far beyond my knowledge, but I saw enough of them in my
    37 years' service at Wolford Lodge to make out a small history
    of them, particularly of Mrs. Simcoe's life, as I have been so
    many years with her, and travelled so many thousands of miles
    with her.

  John Bailey.




  CHAPTER XXVIII.

  _BAILEY'S OPINION OF THE SIMCOE FAMILY._


Now to speak of Mrs. Simcoe. In her lifetime very few have seen more of
her ways than I myself, living in her service nearly forty years--twelve
years as coachman, twenty years as footman and five years when a boy.

Now in Mrs. Simcoe's lifetime I may very well say she was as good a
mistress as ever ruled a house; her works told that she followed the
example of good old Joshua, who said, "As for me and my house, we will
serve the Lord." Now we can firmly say that at Wolford Lodge not a
family in England was kept more regular at family worship; there was
family prayer morning and evening, and some part of the Holy Scriptures
read and explained to us. The Sabbath Day was kept holy, and it was Mrs.
Simcoe's rule for all in her house who were able to go to church. She
always showed the example herself; nothing scarcely would keep her from
church--no, not even sickness, for I have known when she has been very
unwell that she would endeavour to go to church. She would not lose the
opportunity, if possible; she was like Mary, she had chosen that good
part which shall not be taken from her, and it was seldom either wind or
weather would keep her from church, nor the ladies (the daughters of
Mrs. Simcoe), for I have known when the snow has been up level with the
hedges and no horse or carriage able to go, the ladies and servants all
set off, the men in front one after another to tread down the snow, then
the ladies and maid-servants in our tracks. We had no cause to think
that the deepness of the snow would prevent Mr. Clarke (the Rector of
Clayhidon and Vicar of Dunkeswell) from coming to church, as I never
remember him, not once, for the cause of bad weather to miss coming.

Now there was once something very remarkable at the time of the service
in Dunkeswell Church. The service was at one o'clock; the first lesson
was 1 Kings xviii., and just as Mr. Clarke was reading the words in the
44th and 45th verses, "And it came to pass at the seventh time, that he
said, Behold there ariseth a little cloud out of the sea, like a man's
hand." Now it seems this cloud which ariseth out of the sea is the same
thing which I have seen and been very near to, what we call a
waterspout; if a ship runs into it it will sink her, it will break the
spout and down the water will come. "And he said, Go up, say unto Ahab,
Prepare thy chariot and get thee down, that the rain stop thee not. And
it came to pass in the meanwhile that the heaven was black with clouds
and wind, and there was a great rain." And just at that time it became
so dark that we could scarcely see a word in our books, and soon the
rain came down in torrents; it was such heavy rain that when we returned
to Wolford the house was overflowed with water, the gratings and gutters
choked, the stable yard like a river, the water running in at the back
door and down the passage to the front hall and drawing-room, which was
covered with water; the two maids that were at home quite frightened,
going about without stockings or shoes. It was a very remarkable thing,
the first lesson giving us notice of the rain. We soon put away the
carriage and horses, and ran into the house and got off the water.

There is one thing more I shall just mention. I went with Mrs. Simcoe
and Miss Caroline to attend a missionary meeting at Wellington (a market
town in Somersetshire, at the foot of the Blackdown Hills). On our way
home it came on to rain very much so that there was a flood. When we
came to Millhayes (a farm in Hemyock--pronounced Hem-y-ock--in Devon,
five miles from Wellington) the water was very deep. Mr. Manley, the
tenant of the farm, said it was not safe to go through, as the main
stream ran close to the road, and if I should chance to drive one foot
out of the way we might get into it, and it was more than ten feet deep.
Mrs. Simcoe asked me what was to be done. I told her we could first see
the deepness of the water; so Mr. Manley sent someone through on one of
his horses. The water was up to the horse's side, so I told Mrs. Simcoe
I would quite trust to our horses. I thought "Venture makes the
merchant." Old William Selway, the coachman, was with us, so we jumped
on the dickey and started off, but just as we got about half-way through
poor old Selway was quite frightened; he said the wheels were quite
under the water, he could not see them. I told him not to say anything
and not to be frightened, so I just gave the horses a flick with the
whip. They gave a plunge or two in the water, and we were soon out of
danger and got safe to land, and soon arrived home without any hurt.

Mrs. Simcoe used often to go on a visit to her son, the Rev. Henry
Addington Simcoe, at Penheale, in Cornwall, five miles from Launceston.
I was there with her a great many times; she often took the favourite
old black pony for the purpose of taking her morning and evening rides,
which she very much enjoyed, particularly when the little children rode
with her, one before and one behind; the pony would go so carefully with
them. The poor old pony would take Mrs. Simcoe so carefully over plank
bridges, and would go over rocks with her like a goat, so that she could
venture and feel quite safe going over the rough rocks at Bude, on the
north coast of Cornwall, and other places near Penheale.

Mrs. Simcoe generally took two trips from home in a year, one to
Penheale, and one up the country to different places, but her favourite
places were North Wales, Godstone (in Surrey, nineteen miles from
London), Herefordshire and Cheltenham. We often had to cross the old
Passage near Bristol (the ferry across the Avon between Somersetshire
and Gloucestershire), so as to go from Somersetshire to Herefordshire;
and once when we came to Clifton (a suburb of Bristol) the news came
that the vessel, in crossing the "old passage," was sunk full of
passengers, and that all on board perished. I informed Miss Ann, as I
thought Mrs. Simcoe would not go on; but Miss Ann told me not to say
anything about it to Mrs. Simcoe, as it was not likely to be the steamer
that was lost, as it does not cross the Passage on Sundays, so it must
be a sailing vessel.

Off we started for the "Old Passage," and there we were informed of all
the particulars of the misfortune. As the steamer did not cross on
Sundays, and a great many people were wanting to cross that day, as
Monday was the 1st of September, and there were shooting parties wanting
to cross the Passage on Sunday to be in readiness for Monday morning,
and Monday being also Bristol Fair, there were a great many jobbers
wanting to cross to purchase cattle at the Fair, so they all hired a
sailing vessel to cross. Just as the vessel had started, four or five
more jobbers came in great haste and begged the captain to take them,
but he told them he could not take them, but would return as quickly as
possible and cross again. These men seemed very sorry to have been one
minute too late; they were watching the vessel crossing, and just as she
was about half-way across she gave a lee lurch, filled with water and
went down, and everyone on board perished. There was one gentleman who
had his carriage and horses and servants on board with him; this
gentleman was found, about eight days afterwards, on part of his own
estate, a great many miles distant from the place where the vessel sank.

They say there were many thousands of pounds went down in the vessel,
which the dealers had with them to purchase stock at Bristol Fair. What
a dreadful thing for so many of our fellow-creatures to be taken off so
suddenly, and, worst of all, everyone on board was breaking God's
Commandment on the Sabbath Day.

We arrived at Whitchurch, which is a large village in Herefordshire, on
the River Wye. Mrs. Simcoe and the ladies stayed at Old Court, the
former residence of Col. Gwillim and birthplace of Mrs. Simcoe, and I at
the Crown Inn. I was speaking of the sad misfortune that had happened at
the Old Passage (the ferry across the Avon between Somersetshire and
Gloucestershire). The master of the inn was one of those that came to
the Passage to cross, but was one minute too late. They told me he was
then in bed, and he seemed to be quite a changed man, and he considered
he was like a brand plucked out of the burning. There was a sermon
preached at the Forest Church (in the Forest of Dean, an ancient royal
forest between the estuary of the rivers Severn and Wye, in
Gloucestershire) by Mr. Gurnsey, the minister, on the melancholy
occasion.

Mrs. Simcoe stayed at Whitchurch some time; it had been her former home,
and where most of her friends lay. Old Court is now a farmhouse, but
formerly a grand place as the residence of Col. Gwillim. The house is
something like Penheale. Whitchurch is a very beautiful place with a
handsome little church quite close to the beautiful River Wye. I think
I can venture to say that the River Wye is as fine a river as any in
England.

From Chepstow, the market town in Monmouthshire, to the town of Ross, in
Herefordshire, is very fine. The beautiful Forest of Dean; the ruins of
Chepstow Castle, built in the eleventh century; the picturesque ruins of
Tintern Abbey, built in the eleventh century and rebuilt in the
thirteenth; Goodrich Castle, Goodrich Court, and many other grand places
are close by the River Wye. This river is more than a hundred and thirty
miles in length, and is very fine and beautiful all the way. I have been
with Mrs. and Miss Ann Simcoe on by the river to the mountain (of
Plynlymmon, in North Wales) where it springs. It is seldom that Mrs.
Simcoe stays in Herefordshire long, only just to pay a short visit to
her tenants at Old Court, on her late father's estate; then we returned
home, and seldom go from home in the winter.

It is a most extraordinary and providential thing that so many thousand
of miles as I have travelled with Mrs. Simcoe, not one misfortune or
accident ever happened. Nor can we find out for what reason this great
blessing was on us that we should always go out and come in with safety.
I should say the reason was that on Mrs. Simcoe's leaving home on a
journey, at family prayers the protection was put into the hands of the
Almighty; and what can be safer than that? The 121st Psalm was also read
before departure, trusting entirely to the Lord for protection on the
journey. Mrs. Simcoe every day read, or had read to her, some part of
the Holy Scripture, and in it she could plainly see the protection the
Lord grants to His people, and there we can see it if we like to look at
it. In the 13th chapter of Exodus, the 20th, 21st and 22nd verses, we
can see the protection the Lord granted to them in their journey; and
again, in the 2nd chapter of St. Matthew's gospel, in the 8th and 9th
verses, what a prosperous journey to find what so many generations have
been looking for so long. It was one of the first discoveries that ever
was made, far greater than the discovery of all the gold mines of Peru
or Mexico. They found the Saviour of the world. Look at the 24th chapter
of St. Luke, verses 15, 30 and 31; then look at the 24th chapter of
Genesis, verses 10 and 36, and there are many other places where we can
see that the Lord has prospered His people in their journeys; and so He
prospers Mrs. Simcoe in all her journeys, so that she always went out
and came in without any misfortune or accident happening. We know that
when Mrs. Simcoe is going on a journey she does not rush into the
carriage as a horse rushes into the battle, without thinking of the
danger it is running into. No, she looks before she leaps, and says,
"Lord, hold Thou me up and I shall be safe."

Mrs. Simcoe certainly had a very great talent given her, and she greatly
improved it; she certainly was of a good understanding and of good
judgment, very quick and very clever. She was a very early riser, seldom
in bed after five or six o'clock. In the summer she and her youngest
daughter, Miss Ann, always take a ride at six o'clock in the morning
before breakfast, and go four or five miles on the Black Down Hills, a
rising ground on the borders of Devonshire and Somerset. Mrs. Simcoe was
very fond of early riding. When she was young she has ridden from
Wolford Lodge to Clovelly, a village on the North Devon coast between
Bideford and Bude, on horseback, a distance of forty miles; and when she
was on a journey she always started at six o'clock, and went fifteen or
twenty miles before breakfast. Once she went to a watering-place, and a
lady of the place asked one of the bathing women whether Mrs. Simcoe had
arrived or not. She said she had not heard, but she had seen a lady at
the other end of the beach that morning drawing at six o'clock, and if
it was not Mrs. Simcoe she could not think who else it could be at that
early hour.

General Simcoe, when living, followed the same plan of early rising. He
would very often be either out riding or walking at five or six o'clock
in the morning with Mr. Scadding, planning about planting the
Plantations; and often General and Mrs. Simcoe would be out in the
Canadian snow slides (sleighs) when the snow was deep. These snow slides
do not go heavy and dead as anyone might suppose, but slip along on the
snow, so that a pony could draw it, and General and Mrs. Simcoe often
drove out so, and I formerly went with them. General Simcoe used to
drive these snow slides himself; he brought them from Canada; the bottom
is quite plain and flat, so they do not sink down into the snow, but
slip along very easy. Now as General and Mrs. Simcoe were both so fond
of being out early in the morning, it seems that Mr. H. A. Simcoe
followed their example. I have many times, when he was visiting at
Wolford, been with his hot water to call him at six o'clock, but when I
came to his room he was up and gone walking, perhaps three or four
miles.

There is another thing in which Mr. Simcoe seems to follow the example
of his father. We see the great improvement General Simcoe made in the
parish of Dunkeswell, so there was the very same done by Mr. Simcoe in
the parish of Egloskerry, in Cornwall. Very soon after Mr. Simcoe was at
Penheale, I went there on a visit with Mrs. Simcoe. I may very well say
that the road from Egloskerry to Penheale was not fit for a cart to go
over, and I had to go over it every day in the carriage, and had trouble
enough to keep out of the deep ruts, and as Penheale was at that time a
farmhouse there were no spare bedrooms, so I had to go five miles with
Mrs. Simcoe to Launceston every night. The hill at Launceston was at
that time as steep as the side of a house, but our horses were strong
and staunch. We stayed at Penheale by day and Launceston by night.

Mrs. Simcoe is going to make great alterations at Penheale, and also at
Egloskerry (five miles from Launceston). I was at Penheale with Mrs.
Simcoe nine different times, and each time found it greatly improved, as
Mr. Simcoe soon had all the house. The rooms at Penheale are certainly
very beautiful, the fine wood-carved work I never saw the equal, the
beautiful cornices and fine ceilings. The roads are now very good, and
there is a nice lodge at the entrance of the house. The village of
Egloskerry is very much improved by many new houses, and also a nice,
large schoolroom, and there is a great improvement in the church. It
certainly looks very nice, particularly when lighted up, for it is
something remarkable to see a country church lighted up for evening
service, and quite crowded.

Once I was with Mrs. Simcoe on a visit near Egloskerry; she was riding
the black pony, and on our way back to Penheale, it being dark, we saw a
very bright light on a hill. She asked me what light I should think it
was. I told her it was Tremaine Church (six miles from Launceston and
three miles from Egloskerry), lighted up for Wednesday evening service.
Although we were a long distance from the church we could see the people
in the church, and Mr. Simcoe in the pulpit, moving to and fro, as we
supposed, preaching. (The parishes of Egloskerry and Tremaine are
united.)

Now to turn again to Mrs. Simcoe's travels. Her favourite place was
North Wales; the scenery there is most beautiful; the inhabitants are
very civil people; the lofty mountains, fine lakes and waterfalls
present a most delightful appearance.

There were two places in particular which Mrs. Simcoe very much admired.
One was Snowdon, the other the Devil's Bridge (near a village in
Cardiganshire, ten miles from Aberystwyth), and the mountain Snowdon is
certainly very grand from its great height, and the Devil's Bridge from
its great depth. The Devil's Bridge is a very curious place. There is a
very nice inn near it, and many people stay there to see the bridge and
the waterfall. There are two bridges, one built over the other, and from
the top bridge to the water measures 110 feet. (The bridge spans the
narrow gorge of the river Mynoch.) I went down to the water's edge with
Miss Harriet and Miss Ann Simcoe, for the purpose of taking a sketch of
the bridges; it certainly is a very frightful place to behold when down
by the water.

We had a guide with us, and he told me that he had been down many a time
with gentlemen, and that before they had got half-way down they would
return, afraid to venture any further. I asked the guide what made them
call the bridge by such a curious name. He told me it was supposed that
this name of the Devil's Bridge, or "The Bridge of the Evil One," was
given it because no one could remember when it was built, neither could
they imagine for what purpose the under bridge was built, and some fancy
it was never built by the hands of man, because they never could find
any account or history of its erection. I fancy myself that it could be
plainly seen that the top bridge was built for the purpose of bringing
the road more to a level, and to make it more convenient for the
passengers, for the under bridge was very low, and I daresay they did
not think it worth while to destroy it, as it did not cause the least
inconvenience. Mrs. Simcoe very much admired this bridge and the
waterfall; so she also very much admired Snowdon. I was on the top of it
with Miss Harriet and Miss Ann Simcoe, but unfortunately there was a
fog. There is a pillar erected on the top built of large, rough stones,
and on it there is fixed a high staff. With great difficulty I climbed
up the staff, merely for curiosity. The pillar is for a sea-mark. When
clear, some parts of Ireland are visible from it.

Beddgelert was another place Mrs. Simcoe was very fond of. Whilst Mrs.
Simcoe was there, Miss Harriet wished to go to Bala (in Merionethshire,
Wales), and I was to go with her; so a fly was ordered, and we went to
Capel Curig, fourteen miles, then to Cerniogge, both in Carnarvonshire,
fifteen miles; then to Bala (in Merionethshire), thirteen miles, where
we stopped two hours for the horses to rest; all these are in North
Wales. Miss Harriet Simcoe remained there. Miss Simcoe then went to
Aberhirnaut, a beautiful spot a few miles from Bala, where Mr. H.
Richardson and his wife, who was a Miss Shuldham, of Deerpark, near
Honiton, were residing. I was to return with the fly to Cerniogge, and
to take the first coach to Beddgelert (at the foot of Snowdon, on the
borders of Carnarvonshire and Merionethshire), but there was no coach
going there until the next day at twelve o'clock, and as I thought Mrs.
Simcoe would want me, I started off on foot. It was then eleven o'clock
at night. I had to pass by a forest which seemed to be very lonesome and
dismal, but I was very much amused by the nightingales and night crows
singing so beautifully, and it sounded so remarkably well in the middle
of the night, and I had also the grand sound of the waterfalls, which
were a great way off; they could be heard ten or fifteen miles distant
roaring down from the mountains. The road that I was travelling on was
one of the largest and finest in England--from London to Holyhead and
Dublin; although so many travel upon it, I did not meet or see man or
woman except the Holyhead mail, which passed at two o'clock, although
the stage is fifteen miles. I arrived at Capel Curig, and stopped to
rest a little while; then off I started again another stage, fourteen
miles.

About four or five miles this side of Beddgelert, the village near
Snowdon, there is a fine view of Snowdon and other mountains, which I
thought Mrs. Simcoe would like to see, to take a sketch of them.
Beddgelert is a large village, in a green basin shut in by mountains and
high precipices. It gets its name from the story of Llewellyn, who came
here during the hunting season with his child and his greyhound, Gelert.
The child, left unprotected in a hut, was attacked by a wolf. On
Lewellyn's return he met Gelert wagging his tail, but covered with
blood. Alarmed, and thinking that the dog had injured the child, the
impetuous prince slew the hound. He entered the hut, to find the dead
body of a wolf lying near his sleeping child, disclosing to him his
fatal mistake and the fidelity of Gelert. In grief for his dog the
prince erected a tomb and called the spot Beddgelert, from Bedd, the
grave, and Gelert, the dog.

Although I had walked twenty-nine miles during the night I did not feel
tired, so I informed Mrs. Simcoe of the fine scenery that I had passed
through. She said she should like to go to see it, but I was to rest
myself for a little while. I did not tell Mrs. Simcoe that I had been
travelling all night, as I thought it might disappoint her of the ride,
as she might think it too much for me; so I got two ponies, one for Mrs.
Simcoe and one for Miss Ann Simcoe, and after I had rested a little
while I informed Mrs. Simcoe that they were ready. So off we started and
got to the place. Mrs. Simcoe was quite delighted with the scenery, and
stopped there a long time drawing and taking the sketch of it. Then we
returned, very much pleased, and although my walk was forty miles I did
not feel tired, but quite delighted.

Close to Beddgelert there is a fine mountain called Moel Hebog, which
Miss Ann Simcoe had a wish to go to the top of, and wished me to go with
her. So off we started; we had four or five miles to get to the top by
winding round it. There was a fog, but it made it look a great deal
finer, as the fog would clear off, then suddenly the whole bottom would
look beautiful. The village and church of Beddgelert looked remarkably
fine. There is a very deep precipice--I should think eight or nine
hundred feet deep--which looked rather frightful. Miss Ann Simcoe seemed
to be very much pleased with her walk, so we went down the mountain and
informed Mrs. Simcoe what a pleasant walk we had had. We left the
delightful village of Beddgelert for Capel Curig Inn, and stopped there
a few days.

There is a mountain near the inn, which Miss Ann Simcoe wished very much
to go to the top of, so Mrs. Simcoe consented for her to go and me to go
with her. This mountain very much reminded me of the mountain of
Trincutte, one of the Nicobar Islands, off the Malay Peninsula in the
Indian Ocean, which the officers of our ship went up. The distance
straight to the top of it was about two miles, but they had to go thirty
to get to the top, which took them two days. So Miss Ann Simcoe and I
had to go many miles to get to the top of this mountain. It is most
beautiful on the top, and it was a fine clear day, so that we could see
a great distance. We could see the Sugar Loaf mountain, near
Abergavenny, in Monmouthshire, quite plainly, although sixty miles off,
and thirteen lakes--Bala Lake, twenty-five miles distant, quite plain.

After stopping on the mountain for some time viewing the fine sights, we
returned to the inn, and then made our departure from North Wales for
Herefordshire, going through Oswestry (a market town in Shropshire,
fifteen miles from Shrewsbury), the town of Shropshire, Ludlow (a town
twenty-five miles from Shrewsbury), Leominster and Hereford (the capital
of Herefordshire), where we attended the cathedral services. Then on to
Whitchurch, where we stayed a fortnight. The cholera was raging very bad
in Devonshire, and also at Bristol, and in all England, but there was
not a single case in North Wales.

Mrs. Simcoe enjoyed herself very much at Old Court, riding on a pony
nearly every day, viewing the fine scenery. Then we left Whitchurch for
home, went as far as the town of Ross and stopped the night. Mrs.
Simcoe wished for me to go by the first coach to get home as quickly as
I possibly could, as she had not sent any letter to say she was coming
home; so I started by the first coach, and arrived at Taunton, in
Somersetshire, about nine at night. There was no coach for Honiton, so I
walked off for Wolford, then ten o'clock at night. My journey seemed to
me rather dismal. I had not got the beautiful singing nightingales to
amuse me as I had in North Wales. I cannot say I saw no one on my way
from Taunton to Wolford Lodge, for I fell in with company which I did
not very much like--a party of poachers by the Blackdown Plantation,
between Wolford and Taunton, and about ten miles from Honiton; but they
made off, and I got to Wolford quite safe, and arrived about three
o'clock in the morning, after a walk of fourteen miles and a ride of one
hundred.

Next day Mrs. and Miss Ann Simcoe arrived, and I never recollect Mrs.
Simcoe having been so much pleased with a journey before as this to
North Wales; the fine sights and those high mountains, which she used to
say she had a great deal sooner go to see than any of the fine buildings
or places in London--one was the work of man that can be destroyed by
man again, the same as Jerusalem and the fine temple; this was built by
man, and again all destroyed by man; but the fine mountains of North
Wales cannot be destroyed by man. They are like the hills round
Jerusalem, that stand fast forever.

Mrs. Simcoe generally went to Cheltenham (a watering-place in
Gloucestershire, on the Chelten arm of the Severn) once a year in the
season. It is wonderful to see the great improvements there are in
Cheltenham. The first time I went there with Mrs. Simcoe was in 1824. At
that time there was only one church, but in 1841, the last time I was
there with Mrs. and Miss Simcoe and Miss Ann Simcoe, there were five
large, beautiful churches, and the old church greatly enlarged, with a
large new gallery erected all round the church, and also greatly
improved; and it was delightful to see the fine, large congregations
that attend there, and more delightful to see so many attend the
Sacrament. They came at eight o'clock; sometimes there would be six or
eight hundred attend, and again as many at the forenoon service. It was
wonderful to see how many attended the evening service at six
o'clock--every seat and aisle and gallery quite full. A large
congregation is the proof of a good preacher, which was the case at the
old church, as Mr. Close is supposed to be as good a preacher as there
is in England. He was called Dean Close, and was a great friend of Mrs.
Simcoe, and lived at Cheltenham. At the other churches in Cheltenham
there are very good preachers.

It is wonderful to see the great improvements that have been made in
Cheltenham since the first time I was there with Mrs. Simcoe in 1824--so
many fine new streets, squares and terraces, having been built, and also
two very beautiful spas and bath houses, and very fine hotels and inns.
It was formerly the saying that Leamington (on the river Leam, in
Warwickshire) was the place for the remedy of the body, and Cheltenham
for the remedy of the soul, but I think that Cheltenham is the place
where we may get a remedy for our souls and bodies; as the bread and
wine so often administered to us in the Sacrament, which is the sure
remedy for the soul, so the Cheltenham waters are a remedy for the body;
but so many thousands of people get so much benefit by drinking the
waters. I think Cheltenham is as fine a place as any in England, both
for spiritual and temporal things. It is, as we may say, a heaven on
earth, for what can be more like heaven than being in a heavenly place.
By such places as this England receives all its blessing, as the Lord
saith, "Him that honoureth me, will I honour." Every time that I was at
Cheltenham with Mrs. Simcoe, which was many times, it was quite a
blessing to be there, to see the large congregations that attend on the
Sabbath Day at all the churches to praise and glorify the God that made
the heavens and the earth and all that in them is.

Mrs. Simcoe generally stayed at Cheltenham five or six weeks, and then
returned home, generally a great deal better, both in temporal and
spiritual things.




  CHAPTER XXIX.

  _THE PASSING OF MRS. SIMCOE._


As Mrs. Simcoe advanced in years, as we might expect, her strength
failed, and at the latter end of her life she did not go far from home.
Sidmouth was the furthest place, and she would only stay a short time.
At home she generally took a small drive every day when it was fine, and
sometimes she went out in the wheel chair, which she very much enjoyed.
The last time she was ever out she took two drives in one day, but she
was very unwell; she then took to her bed. She was often visited by Mr.
Muller, vicar of Dunkeswell, and also by Mr. H. A. Simcoe, her son; they
both gave a very good account of the state of her soul. She was pressing
towards the mark for the prize of the high calling of God in Christ
Jesus, nothing doubting but that He who had begun a good work in her
would perform it until the day of Jesus Christ. God is faithful that
hath promised, and therefore she rests assured that He will remember her
work of faith and labour of love, and patience of hope in our Lord Jesus
Christ. O happy time for those blessed souls who have fought the good
fight and kept the faith. We feel assured that Mrs. Simcoe is one of
this number; although the lamp of life is nearly extinguished, yet
another life is sprung up--the light of God's Holy Spirit, and that will
be a light even when walking through the valley of the shadow of death.
It will not be death to the believer, only the shadow of it, so she need
fear no evil, but may say with the Psalmist, "For thou art with me, thy
rod and thy staff they comfort me." What could she fear, whose soul is
anchored upon the Rock of Ages, who has the God of Jacob for her help,
whose hope is in the Lord her God? She knows that she is in the hands of
a most gracious and merciful God, and now that her days are almost at an
end I think that I can firmly say that Mrs. Simcoe, now at her last
hour, can look back upon a life well spent, and can say with Hezekiah,
"Remember now, O Lord, I beseech thee, how I have walked before thee in
truth, and with a perfect heart, and have done that which is good in thy
sight." What a happy death. What comfort it must be, not only to the
dying person, but to the living friends and relations present; and now
she may say, as good old Joshua said, "Behold, this day I am going the
way of all the earth."

So her last day came, and she died in a good old age, full of days,
riches and honour. Mrs. Simcoe departed this life at Wolford Lodge,
January 17th, 1850, after forty-four years of widowhood. Her death will
be lamented by many, and she will be missed by many, both at home and
abroad, by the poor and the afflicted, and by the heathen in different
countries abroad. She promoted the societies for sending to them Bibles,
and missionaries to instruct them.

Now at Mrs. Simcoe's funeral all her six children attended, and all the
clergy of the neighbourhood, and the tenantry, household servants and
workmen. A beautiful escutcheon was placed over the front door, done by
Mr. Ward, of Honiton. The body was taken from the front door, and the
whole funeral procession went off from the front door, and went slowly
round the front of the house and up the garden walks. I thought to
myself how many journeys and to how many different places I had been
with Mrs. Simcoe, and now going one more for the last--to her grave;
what a hard stroke! The funeral service was read by Mr. Muller in the
chapel. The body was then taken to the grave close to General Simcoe's.
When it was let down into the grave I thought what a wonderful thing it
was that I should have been present at General Simcoe's funeral, then
only a boy of fifteen years of age, and now an old man of sixty to be
present at Mrs. Simcoe's funeral forty-four years afterwards. She was
the mother of eleven children--nine living when General Simcoe died.
What a striking thing, what a charge to be left with such a family, and
she at that time only little more than forty years of age! One would
scarcely think it to be true, but such was the case.

General Simcoe's funeral was one of the largest that was ever known in
Devonshire, he then being Commander-in-Chief of all the Western
District. So by reason of that a very large body of troops attended the
funeral, Infantry, Cavalry and Artillery, many thousands. As the
procession left Exeter, a long train of carriages followed and the
streets were lined with troops with arms reversed, so the procession
left the city of Exeter for Wolford Lodge. Artillery were stationed with
their guns at Straightway Head (near Escot, in Devon, owned by Sir John
Kennaway), and Fenny Bridges (a hamlet belonging to the parish of
Feniton, four miles from Honiton), and fired as the procession passed
on. The East Devon Yeomanry Cavalry were stationed at the battery on St.
Cyres Hill, close to Wolford. This regiment was raised by General
Simcoe. The second troop was the Dunkeswell troop, chiefly General
Simcoe's tenants. As the funeral procession passed through Honiton the
shops were closed and the streets were lined with troops with arms
reversed. Part of the 3rd Regiment of Dragoon Guards was in advance of
the procession, and one thing looked very striking, one of the Dragoons
led General Simcoe's charger, a favourite horse, with the General's arms
on it. So the procession arrived at Wolford Lodge Chapel attended by
thousands of people. The church field was crowded. The Luppitt Company
of Artillery (Volunteers raised in Luppitt village by General Simcoe to
oppose the expected invasion by Napoleon) was there with the guns, which
were fired when the body was put in the grave, which shook the very
house of Wolford.

But what a difference it will be when this body shall rise again at the
resurrection. What a difference there will be between the sound of the
great guns and the sound of the mighty trumpet, when the powers of
Heaven shall be shaken; and what a difference there will be between the
tribe of people that was in the church field (although that was a great
number) and the tribe it will be when all the people that ever were born
into this world, from Adam to this time, shall be assembled, when all
who are in their graves shall rise again. And what another great
difference there will be to those who have served the Lord, and to those
who have served Him not. And what a difference there will be to those on
the right hand, and to those on the left. And what a difference there
will be in the places to which they are to go. To those on the right
hand it will be said, "Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the
kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the World," but to those
who have not served the Lord it will be said, "Depart, ye cursed." All
of us now living have the choice, and if we wish to be like those on the
right hand, we must follow the advice of good old Joshua, who said, "As
for me and my house, we will serve the Lord."

Mrs. Simcoe was one who followed that advice in her house. See what a
blessing it was to her to have such a happy death as she seems to have
had, how she met her death without fear or amazement. She is gone, I
hope, to a happy place, where the wicked cease from troubling, and where
the weary are at rest. She is gone, and her works do follow her. The
talent that she had given her was improved.

General Simcoe, like his wife, had talent and improved it. He was a very
useful man in the world; by that he got to such high rank. How soon he
reached the rank of General. See what good he did in Canada. When he
went there as Governor there were no provisions but what were sent to
them from England. But what a great change there was soon after; instead
of our sending provisions to them they sent them to us, and he made
great improvements there while Governor, and see, again, how much he did
here in England. What danger the country was then in. The French were
then preparing a very large expedition to invade England, and Devonshire
was the place where it was the intention of Bonaparte to land, very
likely at Tor Bay. The whole of the west of England was put under the
care of General Simcoe; he was Commander-in-Chief. He raised a very
large body of troops, and every man who was able in the West of England
had something to do or perform if the enemy should land. All the
carpenters were ready with their saws and axes to cut down the trees and
lay them across the roads to prevent the enemy from passing; furze ricks
put on the hills to set fire to them if the enemy did land, to alarm the
country. There were camps at different places. It was supposed that Tor
Bay, on the east coast of Devonshire, would certainly be Bonaparte's
landing place, and to London his route, so that the great road from
Exeter to London was General Simcoe's chief care, to prevent the enemy
from passing that way; he had a large camp on Woodbury Common, six miles
from Exeter, of many thousand troops, and also a very strong battery on
St. Cyres's Hill, where there was plenty of room to work 200 great
guns. I should think it impossible for an army to pass the bottom
through Honiton, as the guns on that battery would very well carry balls
as far as Fenny Bridges.

So great were the preparations made by General Simcoe in this part of
the country that he left not a stone unturned, all the soldiers that
were under his command in the four counties of Dorsetshire, Devonshire,
Somersetshire and Cornwall were well trained, as the General often had
sham fights. There was one very grand one; there were four thousand
soldiers present, and, I should think, ten thousand lookers-on. The
battle began at Fenny Bridges; the Militia and Regulars were the French,
and the Volunteers, Yeomanry Cavalry and Volunteer Artillery with their
cannon were to be the English. So the French retreated to Hembury Fort,
owned by Admiral Graves, and on the lawns there was a very sharp attack.
It was so sharp that there was great fear the soldiers would get in
earnest, so orders were given for the Regulars to retreat to Hembury
Fort Hill, the site of an ancient Roman camp and fort, the property of
Admiral Graves, where the battle ended, and the English gained a
complete victory. Hembury Fort, three miles from Wolford, was like a
large fair with stands. The "French" encamped on Hembury Fort Hill for
the night; the tents looked very grand on the hill. After they were
pitched, the evening gun was fired at nine o'clock for all the soldiers
to be in their tents. I was present and witnessed the whole of it. A few
incidents happened. One young lad was very near being killed; he was
close to the muzzle of a cannon when it was fired and the charge (but it
was only powder) went to his head and face, so he was blinded. Great
praise was due to the officers and soldiers for their soldierlike manner
in the sham fight.

General Simcoe had another very large sham fight soon after this at
Totnes (in Devonshire, eight miles from Torquay). He generally had some
regular regiments at the sham fights to instruct the Volunteers and
Militia, so by this means General Simcoe trained the Volunteers to
become good soldiers, and fit for an army to meet the French when they
landed. At Wolford Lodge, General Simcoe was just about the middle of
the Western District, so when there he was at his post, and despatches
were sent to him every day from the headquarters at Plymouth. There were
three dragoons at the half-way house, stationed there to bring the
despatches which came from Exeter and Plymouth. One of the dragoons came
over to Wolford with despatches at 12 o'clock at night. He came by
Buckerall, four miles from Honiton, and up the Grange road, a private
road from Wolford to Awliscombe, but made a mistake and came through the
Chase and under Sand Walk. Formerly there was a Canadian wooden bridge
for foot passengers only; the bridge crossed over a deep gully. The
dragoon thought to get his horse over it, so he led it, but in crossing
the horse slipped and fell into the gully from the bridge to the bottom,
so the poor man came to the house and rang the door bell. He said he
had brought despatches for General Simcoe, but his horse was gone down.
So some men with lights were sent out to see what had become of the poor
horse, and to their great surprise they found the horse in the gully
standing under the bridge where it fell down, although from the bridge
to the bottom was nearly 20 feet, and also rough stones to fall on, and
yet the horse was not hurt at all. They had to take it down a long way
before they could get it up from the gully, and the horse was able to
return to the half-way house again, after resting and feeding; but it
was thought a most wonderful thing that the horse was not killed on the
spot from so great a fall.

The training of the Volunteers was General Simcoe's great care; he had
raised such very large bodies, not a parish in the West of England
wherein there were not Volunteers. At every town eight or ten companies
of them would meet for six or eight days' training and exercise; there
was nearly a thousand of them met at Honiton for eight days' training;
and those men were from the neighborhood of Honiton.

There were nearly fifty thousand Volunteers in Devonshire, and General
Simcoe reviewed them all, so the Volunteers were nearly as good soldiers
as there were in the regular regiments. General Simcoe sometimes had the
Honiton Volunteers first and second companies at Wolford Lodge to
exercise and fire, and then would treat them with a nice dinner, have
tables fixed through the avenue for two hundred of them, the band at the
front of the house playing some lively tunes. Sometimes the Volunteers
would meet at the Battery on St. Cyres's Hill and the Luppitt Company of
Volunteer Artillery commanded by Captain Pierce, of Greenway (a house in
Luppitt parish, three miles from Wolford). On any particular day, such
as the fourth of June, the King's birthday, a royal salute was fired by
the Artillery, the Ensign was hoisted at the flag-staff. This flag-staff
General Simcoe had fixed there when the battery was built, it was very
high, the ensign was very large--the St. George's flag--it is at Wolford
Lodge at this present time.

Now to proceed with Bonaparte's invading England, which we know for
certain it was his intention to do, as the preparations for conveying
the armies to England were prepared. It was arranged to convey the
armies from France to England in large, flat-bottomed boats, many
hundreds of which were built for the purpose; some of these boats would
carry three or four hundred men, so that five hundred of these boats
would bring over to England at least a hundred and fifty thousand men.
It was Bonaparte's plan to come over by night, and land his troops so as
to take England by surprise; but as General Simcoe was making such great
preparations it was likely that Bonaparte was aware of it, as there were
supposed to be many French spies in England spying out the country, but
if Bonaparte does come he will come suddenly, like a thief in the night.
We may say now that General Simcoe is ready, let it be what day or what
hour; if it be at evening, or at midnight, or at the cock-crowing or in
the morning, he will be watching and ready to meet them.

General Simcoe has been so very busy in preparing for the French and to
be ready to give them a meeting, so now he looks at home at his own
parish, Dunkeswell; what great improvements he has been making there. If
anyone could have seen it when he came there first, and see it now, they
would think it was not the same place. Just look at Blackdown Hills, the
high ridge from Luppitt Hill, up a very steep hill to Broadhembury Hill,
near Wolford, not a hedge or tree was to be seen; no road, only wheel
tracks. No road from Wolford to Dunkeswell, nothing but wheel ruts and
not fit for a cart to pass on it. As for waggons, there was not one in
the parish of Dunkeswell. General Simcoe had the first waggon that was
in the parish.




  CHAPTER XXX.

  _THE VILLAGE OF DUNKESWELL._


Now to view the village of Dunkeswell; when I came to service at Wolford
Lodge in 1802 there were six old houses in the village, and the Church,
which was so small that only about forty people could sit down in it,
and it was the only place of worship in the parish. But just see it now
in 1850! Instead of one little church there are three fine handsome
churches (Luppitt, Dunkeswell and Dunkeswell Abbey churches), with
sittings for nearly a thousand people in them, and instead of six houses
in the village, there are thirty. Again, just view the Blackdown Hills
in 1850, formerly no road, hedge or tree to be seen, but now many fine
plantations, with many thousands of trees in them, and many thousands
have been cut down. All these plantations were planned by General Simcoe
and Mr. John Scadding. What great good these plantations have been to
the neighbourhood from the timber, and the number of labourers employed
about them, and also the great profit they bring in. And think what
great improvements General Simcoe made in the house at Wolford, how many
thousands of pounds it cost in building, and fifty men employed daily.

As General Simcoe was a military man he wished all that came there to
come in a military way. All the tradespeople assembled at the end of the
Avenue and fell in there two deep according to their trades, those of
the highest rank in trade going first. When all were mustered they were
marched off to the house with a drum and fife played before them, then
all received their orders and were dismissed. When they left work all
fell in again, and were marched off with drum and fife.

So much building at Wolford was a great expense, as all the timber was
bought, there not being a tree on the Wolford estate fit for building,
but if there had been, General Simcoe would not have had a tree cut down
by any means; even the fire-wood for the use of the house was all
bought, not a stick was to be cut down. The only timber at Wolford was
the Long Copse, or plantation, so General Simcoe employed a great many
people planting. So very much labour was going on at Wolford that if
anyone wanted work if they went there they were sure to get it, there
were so many new roads, new hedges, and so much planting of trees. One
excellent thing General Simcoe was going to do, which was to make a new
carriage road through the under sand walk and chase; the stones were
drawn to build a bridge across the gully. This road was meant for an
Exeter road through Buckerall to Fenny Bridges, and would make it near
four miles shorter than going through Honiton, and also save two
turnpikes and many long hills; and it was General Simcoe's plan to make
this the road from Wolford to Honiton, instead of going through Combe
Raleigh, so as to avoid the very steep hills, for the road from Honiton
to Grange farm is very good and level; the only hill would be from
Grange to the Chase gate, which is but little, and that little could
have been made better. General Simcoe was going to have another new road
instead of the Dunkeswell road, coming down the Limers Lane. When coming
from Honiton he meant it to go on the old Taunton road for a little,
then to branch off straight to Dunkeswell; and it was also General
Simcoe's plan for Limers Lane, the road from Wolford Cross to Wolford,
to be made a private carriage drive to Wolford, and to be the grand
entrance to the house.

If it had pleased the Lord that General Simcoe had lived a few years
longer, a very great improvement would have been made at Wolford, and
also in the neighbourhood, for we see how much has been already done,
for he very much liked Wolford, and it certainly is a very pleasant
situation and has a very nice view from the front of the house, a fine
rich vale for twenty miles, the little river Otter taking its course by
Fenny Ridges to Ottery, five miles from Honiton, then on to Budleigh
Salterton, a seaside place on the south Devon coast; the beautiful
valley from Wolford Lodge to Budleigh Salterton, which is twenty miles,
can all be seen from Wolford Lodge. This rich tract of land, as rich as
any in England, also the beautiful hills that are in sight from the
front of the house, the East and West Hills, Woodbury Hill, Haldon Hill,
ten miles from Exeter; Gittesham, three miles from Honiton; Buckerall
Knap ("knap" is a local term for a small hill or rising ground); some
parts of Dartmoor, Bury Head, Beacon Hill, near Exmouth, all can be seen
from Wolford Lodge, and also a very fine view of the sea. One can see
the ships Very plainly passing up and down the English Channel and going
in and coming out of Tor Bay, Exmouth and Teignmouth Harbours, which all
look very pleasant in fine weather.

There was one very great blessing at Wolford Lodge; it is a very healthy
place, very little sickness ever was there. Although it was such a large
establishment, particularly when General Simcoe was living, yet not one
death took place from the year 1802 until 1846, when Miss Henrietta
Simcoe died, and in 1850 Mrs. Simcoe died; for although we may live in a
healthy place, death will surely come, "for since by man came death, by
man came also the resurrection of the dead; for as in Adam all die even
so in Christ shall all be made alive." We see God is all in all, and in
him we live and move and have our being.

Although General Simcoe so much enjoyed being at Wolford Lodge, his
services were very much required elsewhere. He had such a large body of
troops under his command, particularly volunteers who wanted so much
training and reviewing, and he had to watch the movements of Bonaparte's
great expedition, and it was not known whether he would come or not, all
had to be in readiness, for General Simcoe knew well that Bonaparte was
a very covetous man, wanting all the world; and also, like the unjust
judge who feared not God neither regarded man. If he had feared God he
would not have done what he did when he took Spain, making the churches
into stables for his horses; and again, when he took the large city of
Warsaw (Moscow) he drove out the inhabitants to perish and die with
cold, whilst he and his army lived in it. But Providence would not
permit that he and his army should dwell in the city, for the Russians
set fire to it and burnt it to ashes, and a great part of the French
army perished from the cold; the remainder returned to France. Very
likely if he had been permitted to land in England he would have been
just as bad to us, but it was supposed if he had landed in Devonshire
that he and all his great army would have been taken, as General Simcoe
had thousands of troops all well trained and fit for battle; but
Devonshire was the strongest part of the kingdom. It is supposed if
Bonaparte had landed at Tor Bay that he would never have got as far as
Exeter. But now came the glorious news of a great naval victory gained
by Lord Nelson at Trafalgar. This glorious news came to Wolford in the
evening; then General Simcoe sent to Captain Pierce to take the Luppitt
Artillery, with their cannon, to the end of St. Cyres Hill, and there to
fire a salute; it was then eight o'clock in the evening. The people of
Honiton were rather alarmed at hearing the cannon so very near them; the
guns were heard very plainly at Axminster and many parts of Devonshire.

General Simcoe gave a very grand dinner party; all the chief gentry of
the neighbourhood were present; the great new room (the saloon on the
south-west side of the house) was fitted up beautifully--more than five
hundred lamps were lighted up in the room. The crown and "G.R." were
formed with lamps, as well as many other devices. The dinner table was
sixty feet long. The great room looked remarkably grand, and a grand
party was there; nearly fifty carriages were in the front park. The
front of the house looked very grand. The windows were all illuminated,
a light in every square of glass. The cannons were fired in the front
park, and fireworks let off. There was a large bonfire at the Cleve Farm
(the plantation above Wolford), another at Ben Point (the plantation to
the right of Wolford), and one on Buckerall Knap, which were all lighted
after dinner was over. A grand ball took place in the evening, and all
passed off with great joy. After this the party took their leave. The
next morning all were very busy clearing up and preparing for another
ball, which was to be the young ladies' party, and to take place very
soon. The beautiful green at the front of the house was like a ploughed
field from the carriages going over it to turn at the front door. The
ladies' ball took place very soon after this, and was very grand. The
house was again illuminated, fireworks let off, the cannon fired in the
front park and bonfires as before.

Soon after this second ball General Simcoe had another very amusing
thing done in the great new room. It was a fair. There were all sorts of
things going on, some crying out "Moore's Almanacks," "Sheet Almanack,"
some crying "nuts," and crying "crack away, toss or buy." All these
things General Simcoe had done by way of rejoicing for Lord Nelson's
great victory at the battle of Trafalgar.

Soon after this General Simcoe was appointed Commander-in-Chief of the
British Forces in India, and had it pleased God that he should go very
likely I should have been one of the party to go with him to the East
Indies, for I was told by Mr. Morgan, the butler, that if I should like
to go I was to ask my parents if they were willing to let me, and all
were agreeable. Great preparations were going on at Wolford Lodge for
the voyage, and large boxes made; but we see what man appointeth God
disappointeth. If General Simcoe had lived and gone to India, and if it
had pleased the Lord for him to have returned home again safe, he would
have been a very great person in the world. But before his departure to
India he was directed by Government to go to Lisbon, for the purpose of
rendering all the assistance he could against the French in that
country; but on the voyage to Lisbon General Simcoe was taken alarmingly
ill, and on his arrival there he was advised to return to England again,
which he did, and put into Tor Bay, and then sent to Topsham. I have
heard that the sudden illness of General Simcoe was supposed to have
been caused by the ship he was on board having been newly painted. I
remember one of the servants who went with General Simcoe said that the
paint was the cause of his illness, the ship having been newly painted;
and we know paint is slow poison, and we might almost as well eat it as
be always smelling it. Mrs. Simcoe was as much afraid of paint as she
was of a plague.

General Simcoe was taken to Archdeacon Moore's house in the Cathedral
Close of Exeter, where he soon breathed his last. The news soon reached
Wolford, and I remember very well that I was sent very early in the
morning, long before daylight, to Mrs. Elliot's at Egland, with a letter
for Mrs. Elliot, as Miss Harriet and Miss Caroline Simcoe were staying
there. When I arrived Miss Harriet came to her bedroom window and asked
me if I had come from Wolford, and if I had heard how General Simcoe
was. I told her I was in hopes he was a great deal better. Great
preparations were made at Wolford for the funeral.

Note.--Bailey then refers to the mural monument by Flaxman, erected in
the Cathedral, Exeter, England, to the memory of General Simcoe and his
son Francis Gwillim, who was killed at Badajoz and buried on the field
of battle. Then he gives the inscriptions on the six niches of one of
the outer walls of the private chapel at Wolford, where General Simcoe,
his widow and children, except Francis and the first Katherine, are
buried. Those who died and are buried away from Wolford are remembered
in these inscriptions.

He then resumes his narrative:

Now look and see what is inscribed on those six headstones. Just look at
General Simcoe's, what we see on it. "As for me and my house we will
serve the Lord." What a blessing it is for those who dwell in such a
house as this--to serve the Lord. It is quite different to those who
dwell in such a house as that of which we read in Proverbs iii., 33:
"The curse of the Lord is in the house of the wicked." And again, just
see the words on Mrs. Simcoe's headstone: "The heart of her husband doth
safely trust in her; her children arise up and call her blessed,"
Proverbs xxi., 11, 28. What a blessing for a husband to get such a wife,
and what a blessing for children to have such a mother. From the tenth
to the thirty-first verses of that chapter there is not one but is
suitable to Mrs. Simcoe.

The next, Mr. Francis Simcoe. What is there more that is required in a
soldier than what we see on his headstone--good courage in battle. We
know that is the chief work of a soldier in fighting.

Now the next, Miss Henrietta Simcoe. "My peace I give unto you." The
peace of God, you know, passeth all understanding. We make our peace
with God through Jesus Christ. There is no peace to the wicked; it is
only for the righteous.

Now next to the infant children, Miss Katherine and Mr. John Simcoe.
Those infants, we may feel assured, are in heaven, for Christ sayeth in
St. Mark x., 14: "For of such is the Kingdom of God." All their troubles
were at an end soon after they began. The Lord gave them, and the Lord
took them again to Himself.

Now next. Miss Charlotte Simcoe, what we see on her headstone: "Be ye
steadfast." Like the church which is built on the rock, the gates of
hell shall not prevail against it. And I do believe that Miss Charlotte
Simcoe was a steadfast member of this church, so we may feel assured
that all her labours were not in vain in the Lord. We know that all
those who were hired in the Lord's vineyard received what was due to
them.

After the death of General Simcoe the establishment at Wolford was very
much lessened. Only seven servants remained. I was one of the seven, and
was to be in the stables as usual, and I had the care of General
Simcoe's charger, a favourite horse, and four beautiful ponies which Mr.
Francis and Mr. Henry A. Simcoe often rode, and I went with them. They
were beautiful ponies, two of them black and two of them grey; they went
like the wind.

I went to service to General Simcoe at the latter end of 1802, and
remained with him until his death. Then I remained with Mrs. Simcoe two
years; then I left, and was away nine years, and in that time I was in
the four quarters of the world. I was in the Baltic Sea, Gulf of
Finland, West Indies, South America, East Indies, China, Philippine
Islands, Cape of Good Hope and the Mediterranean. I returned in 1816,
and went again into Mrs. Simcoe's service, and remained with her until
her death, thirty-two years afterwards; then I left.

Now during the last thirty-two years of my service with Mrs. Simcoe I
never once knew her to go to any place of amusement, such as balls,
plays or any such things; but very often to missionary meetings, Bible
meetings, Jews' meetings or such places as these, where good is to be
done. She was always ready in a good cause with hand and heart ready to
support it, ready to relieve the poor and distressed, a soldier or
sailor.

It was General Simcoe's intention for his two sons, Mr. Francis Simcoe
and Mr. Henry A. Simcoe, both to be in His Majesty's service--Mr. F.
Simcoe to be in the army, and Mr. H. A. Simcoe to be in the navy; but as
Mr. Francis Simcoe was killed in the trench at the siege of Badajoz in
1812, in the twenty-first year of his age, he being the heir and just of
age and a large property coming to him, so by his death the heirship
fell to the next son, Mr. H. A. Simcoe. As Mr. F. G. Simcoe was killed
in battle, Mrs. Simcoe would not consent to Mr. H. A. Simcoe, the only
son and heir, going into the navy, so he became a minister of the
Gospel. Mrs. Simcoe lived to that wonderful age that she saw her
children's children, even four generations, which very few are permitted
to do.




  CHAPTER XXXI.

  _INCIDENT AND COMMENT._


As has been stated, John Bailey divided his paper on the Simcoe family
into two parts, covering the period 1802-50. The first part he devoted
mainly to the family life at Wolford from 1802 until 1808. The second
part, which is full of incident and comment down to the passing of Mrs.
Simcoe in 1850, he calls "The Second Edition of the Life of General and
Mrs. Simcoe."

Now to proceed with the lives of General and Mrs. Simcoe. By the help of
the Lord I hope to do it, for without the Lord we can do nothing, and
with Him we can do all things.

Now to speak of the greatness and usefulness of General Simcoe is far
beyond my power. I can only mention what I saw in my three years'
service with him. Now of Mrs. Simcoe's life I can give more particulars.
First, I shall mention what I have seen done by General and Mrs. Simcoe
in the parish of Dunkeswell, by planting and building. Just view all the
trees round Wolford, the number of plantations; there is the Beach
Plantation, the Roughborough, the Oak. This last was sown with acorns in
my remembrance, and now at this time has come to fine timber. See the
Blackdown and Roughgrey Plantations near Wolford, the higher and lower
sand walks. All these were planned and planted by General Simcoe and Mr.
John Scadding. The Chase, a plantation on the east side of the house at
Wolford, was also sown with acorns, and is at this time very fine
timber. There are also the Cleeve and St. Cyres Plantations. How many
thousands of trees have been lately cut down. Look at the last sale
paper, how many trees were advertised for sale in it. Ask Mr. Burrows,
the estate bailiff, how many thousands of trees he has sold in the
sixteen years that he has been at Wolford, and also the great quantity
of wood. All these trees were planted by General Simcoe. And again, how
much building there has been, how many houses have been built in the
parish of Dunkeswell by General and Mrs. Simcoe. I will mention
them--Grange Farms, barns, linhays (a Devonshire name for outhouses) and
stables were all destroyed by fire and rebuilt by General Simcoe;
Wolford itself greatly altered and enlarged, and a chapel built; Wolford
Cottage; the Battery on St. Cyres Hill; the south aisle of Dunkeswell
Church built and seated by Mrs. Simcoe; West Hill Farm, barns and
stables; East Hill Farm, barns and stables also built by Mrs. Simcoe;
Ball Nap Cottage, built by Miss Ann Simcoe; Southay Farm, barns and
stables, built by Mrs. Simcoe; Blackdown House, coach house and stables,
built by Mrs. and the Misses Simcoe; W. Selway's, John Tuck's, William
Dimond's cottages, built by Mrs. Simcoe; Parish Clerk Selway's, John
Gosling's houses, built by General Simcoe; William Row's, William
Carter's and James Cole's cottages, formerly a farmhouse, made into
three cottages by Mrs. Simcoe; the parish house, built by General Simcoe
and given by him for the poor, but now bought from the parish and made
into three cottages by Mrs. Simcoe; Roughgrey Farmhouse, barn and
stables, built by General Simcoe; John Hitchcock's house and homestead,
built by Mrs. Simcoe; Dunkeswell Abbey School and school house, built by
Miss Caroline Simcoe; Southay Farmhouse, barns and stables destroyed by
fire and rebuilt by Mrs. Simcoe; Blackdown House, destroyed by fire and
rebuilt by Mrs. Simcoe; Richard Marshall's cottage, leasehold to Mrs.
Simcoe; Levi Richard's cottage, leasehold to Mrs. Simcoe; Henry
Somerset's and John Russell's cottages and blacksmith's shop, leasehold
to Mrs. Simcoe; Sarah Cox's cottage, leasehold to Mrs. Simcoe; and
besides all the buildings and planting, think of the new roads and
hedges. Most likely, if General Simcoe had not come into the parish,
none of this would have been done. How thankful we should be to the Lord
for permitting such a person to come amongst us. Was it by chance? No,
there is no chance work with the Lord; it is with Him yea and amen. When
the man was going to Jericho and fell among thieves which wounded him
and left him half dead, it is said by chance there came down a certain
priest that way, and when he saw him he passed by on the other side.
What a thing for a priest to pass! You would think he would have been,
the first to help the poor, suffering man. No, he was by chance. He was
not ordained to assist him. It was the good Samaritan the Lord ordained.
It was not by chance. Most likely this poor, suffering man was a good
man; so the Lord sends a good man to help him. Most likely he was a
chosen man to the Lord. Like Moses, we know he was chosen. See how
wonderfully he was nursed by Pharaoh's daughter; if she had not come
down to the river to wash herself she would not have seen the child; but
it does not say she came down by chance. There was no chance work, it
was by the power of God. Again, in the 21st chapter of Genesis, from the
12th to the 21st verse, we see no chance work in the deliverance of
Joseph from his brethren. Read the last thirteen chapters of Genesis and
see if there is a word about chance. With God all things are done by
word and power. God said, "Let there be light," and there was light. By
the word of the Lord the heavens and the earth were made; not one thing
came by chance.

And was it by chance that General and Mrs. Simcoe came into the parish
of Dunkeswell? No, the Lord ordained it to be so. How many parts of the
Scripture have been fulfilled by their coming. See by the Abbey how the
Scripture was fulfilled--Isaiah lxi.: 3, 4, and many other places in the
Bible. Again, how many Scriptures are fulfilled by Wolford?--Isaiah
xli.: 19, 20, where it is said, "I will plant in the wilderness the
cedar, the shittah tree, and the myrtle, and the oil tree. I will set in
the desert the fir tree, and the pine, and the box tree together. That
they may see and know and consider and understand together that the hand
of the Lord hath done this, and the Holy One of Israel hath created it."
And again, in the 55th chapter of Isaiah, verses 12, 13, "For ye shall
go out with joy and be led forth with peace; the mountains and the hills
shall break forth before you into singing, and all the trees of the
field shall clap their hands. Instead of the thorn shall come up the fir
tree, and it shall be to the Lord for a name, for an everlasting sign
that shall not be cut off?" What can be plainer of the Scriptures being
fulfilled? And also how plainly the Scriptures were fulfilled in the
Abbey. Of how many different places we see the Lord said, "They shall
build the old wastes, they shall raise up the former desolations, and
they shall repair the waste cities, the desolations of many
generations." We know that the Abbey was formerly a very large place,
and who can tell if it will not become a large place again? We cannot
tell what the Lord may do; the same hand that fed 5,000 people with five
barley loaves and two small fishes can make Dunkeswell Abbey become a
very large place. We can see that it was so formerly by the old
buildings, and why not become so again? How did Cheltenham become a
large place? It was only by guidance of pigeons; those birds were often
seen to come to a spring of water. Pigeons are very fond of salt, so for
that reason they flocked there. The water was examined and found to be
very good mineral water, so people came from all parts to drink it, and
found much benefit; so Cheltenham is now become one of the grandest and
most fashionable places in England. And who can tell if the pigeons may
not come and find one of these springs of water at Dunkeswell Abbey?
There is a very good beginning made at the Abbey, a handsome church and
schoolroom built. We know it was not General Simcoe who built them, but
he made the first beginning. He purchased the Abbey. The temple at
Jerusalem was not built by King David, but he made the preparations for
the work, but his son was to build it. Now it is very likely that if
General Simcoe had not come into the parish of Dunkeswell there would
not have been any more church room than there was before he came; but as
there were so many houses built by General and Mrs. Simcoe, the church
was greatly enlarged, and a new tower built. Before the church was
enlarged the establishment at Wolford Lodge when General Simcoe was
living there took nearly half the room in the church; but the family was
very often away, particularly in the summer.

At this time I had a great deal of riding about; very often I had to go
to Honiton two or three times in a day, but there were four fine little
ponies that would go like the wind, and when the family was at Budleigh
Salterton (on the south Devon coast, nine miles from Wolford), which was
generally for two or three months during the summer, then I was
frequently sent there, sometimes two or three times in a week. I often
set off from Wolford at three o'clock in the morning, and was down there
before anyone was up in the house; and I generally had a great many
things to take there. General Simcoe would ask me how I could be there
so early from such a long distance. I was generally back at Wolford by
three o'clock in the afternoon, a 40-mile ride.

Soon after this I took a journey with M. de Luc, a French gentleman who
was a visitor at Wolford. But before I say anything about M. de Luc I
will endeavour to give a short account of my first going out to service.
My father was informed that there was a boy wanted at General Simcoe's,
of Wolford Lodge, to clean knives and forks. I was the youngest son, and
about twelve years of age. I had a brother then at home who was about
fourteen years of age, so my father took us both to Wolford Lodge, to
offer one of us to fill the situation, thinking if one did not do the
other might. When we came to Wolford we had to appear before Mr. Morgan,
the butler, for him to take his choice of us; so after my father and Mr.
Morgan had held a little conversation he decided upon me, and I was to
come soon; so in a few days I went. The establishment at Wolford Lodge
was at that time very large--twenty-one servants. My father promised me
that if I was a good boy and kept my place he would give me a new suit
of clothes, and he soon had the pleasure of hearing that I was going on
very well, so he sent a tailor of the name of Ham, from Ulverstone, a
small place comprising some cottages and farms near Awliscombe below Pen
Point, to take my measure, and he was to ask me what sort of clothes I
would like to have; which he did, and I, seeing the other servants
cutting about in their gay livery, fancied I should like to have mine
the same--it was blue turned up with white. I ordered the tailor to make
mine exactly like it, and off he went to Honiton for the cloth, and in a
few days he came with my new livery, and I, being anxious to see how I
looked in it, started upstairs and put it on instantly. Now it can be
well supposed that I was not a little proud of it, and wishing to
display it as much as I could, down I went to the servants' hall to show
myself. They, of course, were all struck with surprise on seeing me in
livery and said, "Dear me, you are looking smart enough." "What, Jack,
are you put in livery?" Now this soon reached Mr. Morgan's ears, and
down he came to the hall looking rather smiling, and said to me, "Oh,
Jack, who ordered you to put on livery?" He desired me to take it off
immediately and let the tailor have it to take off all the trimmings. I
was very much disappointed that I was not permitted to wear it. Shortly
after this a boy was wanted in the stable under John Gosling, the groom.
So Mr. Morgan sent me to my father telling him of it, and asked whether
he had another son he could send him; so my father sent my other
brother, and it was settled for him to come; but he being the elder, Mr.
Morgan thought it would be better for him to be in the house under the
butler, and for me to be in the stable, which was done.

I will now return to my journey with M. de Luc, a French gentleman, but
I must say that the time I was with him was not very long, neither was
the distance very great. M. de Luc was on a visit to Mrs. Burgess, at
Ashfield, and was wanting to go to the north coast of Somerset. He
moreover wished to take his journey on horseback, so General Simcoe lent
him a horse for the purpose, and I was to go with him, and also Henry
Rowe, the gardener at Ashfield. He was to keep us both as long as he
liked. So we started off together by Wolford, through Dunkeswell and
Hemyock, in the Culme Valley, four miles from Dunkeswell, and went as
far as Wellington, in Somersetshire, the first day. This journey took us
a long time, as M. de Luc wished to see a little of the country, and
there was one place in particular where he was engaged for a
considerable time. It was Simonsborough; it lies between Hemyock and
Wellington, and at this place there was a large heap of stones, supposed
to be many thousand waggon loads, and it appeared as if they had been
there many hundred years, for no one could give any account how they
came there, or for what purpose they were put there. M. de Luc was very
much interested in viewing these stones, for it was wonderful how they
could have been placed to such a great height, and where they could all
have been brought from. We then made the best of our way to Wellington,
where we arrived safe that night. The next morning our route was to Sir
John Trevelyan's at Nettlecombe, near Watchet (in Somersetshire). I have
before stated that M. de Luc had liberty to keep me as long as he liked,
and the horses also; yet the horse he rode was the one which General
Simcoe always rode himself, but the General respected M. de Luc very
much, as did also all the head gentry round there, so he wished to
oblige him in any way he could. I was told that M. de Luc had often
visited the royal family, King George the 3rd and Queen Charlotte, but
notwithstanding his being of such high rank he would stop and talk with
a poor man working on the road, just the same as he would with a
nobleman. Before leaving Wellington, M. de Luc considered that he did
not need two persons to go with him, so he sent Henry Rowe back to
Ashfield, and we proceeded on our journey to Nettlecombe, passing
through Milverton (a small town in a dell seven miles from Taunton) and
Wivelscombe (pronounced Wilscombe, near Milverton). Near the latter
place there was a large limestone quarry, and many men at work there. We
rode up to it, and stayed there some time. M. de Luc asked the men all
particulars about the stone, and also about the country round. M. de Luc
not being able to speak very plain English, the men were rather afraid
that he was a French spy; there was very hot war between England and
France at this time, and it was reported that there were many French
spies about England, so they thought he was one of them, and many of
them came and asked me what country my master was from, and whether he
was a Frenchman or not. I told them that I was not his servant. They
then asked me where he came from. I told them that I was General
Simcoe's servant and lived near Honiton, and that the horses belonged to
General Simcoe, and that we were going to Sir John Trevelyan's, at
Nettlecombe. They said they thought he was asking a good many questions,
which they did not like very well, but I assured them that he was a very
nice gentleman and no spy, so then they became a little more reconciled.

After M. de Luc had looked about the place as long as he liked we
proceeded on our journey, and arrived at Nettlecombe the same night.
This was a very beautiful place, the house very large and very ancient.
The parish church was close to the house, and it appeared by the very
great resemblance of the building that they were built at the same time.
The village of Nettlecombe is some distance from the church.

Sir John Trevelyan's park was very beautiful, with many hundred deer in
it, and as Sir John took M. de Luc to the village of Watchet the next
day in his carriage, I had the opportunity of taking a walk round the
park, and also of seeing a little of Nettlecombe. The following day they
went to Dunster (in Somersetshire) and other places, and the next day we
left Nettlecombe and went to Bridgewater (Somersetshire). We found the
road very pleasant; we had in our view the Bristol Channel, and also the
south of Wales. We went through Nether Stowey (Somersetshire), where we
stopped and fed the horses, and then proceeded on again, and arrived at
Bridgewater the same night.

The next day M. de Luc sent for me, and told me that he was not going on
horseback any further, and that I could return to Wolford with the
horses. He seemed very much satisfied with all I had done for him, and I
then took my departure and returned to Wolford quite safe.

Now there was another journey which I had--a very quick trip on
horseback to Bath. An express came for Miss Charlotte Simcoe to go to
Bath. Accordingly the carriage was ordered to take her, and I was to go
on horseback to Taunton (Somersetshire) and order a post chaise, and a
saddle horse for myself, which were to be ready by the time the carriage
reached Taunton, which I did. The horse I rode was to stay there until I
returned again. When the carriage arrived I was ordered to gallop on to
Burrow Bridge and order another post chaise and another saddle horse.
These were also to be ready by the time the former one reached, and from
this I was to gallop on to Street Inn, and do the same, and then to Old
Down Inn, and there Mrs. Graves', widow of the late Admiral Graves,
carriage was intended to be waiting to take on Miss Charlotte Simcoe,
but when we arrived it had not come. If it had been there I was to have
returned by the first coach, but as such was not the case Miss Charlotte
Simcoe asked if it would be too much for me to ride on to Bath. I told
her it would not, and I moreover said I could go on directly. She seemed
very much disappointed at not finding Mrs. Graves' carriage there, but I
was quite overjoyed with thinking I was to see Bath; so another post
chaise was ordered and another saddle horse, and we set off again, and
soon arrived at 15 Lansdowne Crescent, Bath. This was 63 miles from
Wolford Lodge in little more than seven hours. I stayed in Bath that
night and the next day, and saw some of the principal places in Bath.
Mr. Smith, Mrs. Graves' coachman, was kind enough to show me round the
place. We went to the Abbey, the Pump Room and many other places. The
next morning I started by coach at six o'clock for Taunton, arrived safe
at the White Hart, found my horse quite well, and returned to Wolford,
and here I end this journey.

There is one thing I will mention which happened after General Simcoe's
death. Mrs. Simcoe went on a morning visit to Ashfield; she went on
horseback, and I went with her. Before starting she ordered the pony
carriage to be brought to the end of the long avenue plantation leading
to St. Cyres and to wait until we returned. But when we came back it was
not there. I told her it certainly had been there, for the wheel marks
were quite plain where it had turned; so we went on, and when we came to
the first gate we found it burst open and part of the carriage there.
When we came to the large white gate leading to the Sand Walk there lay
more of it, and when we came to the park gate there was some more of the
carriage, and on reaching Wolford we were told that the horse came
galloping by the front of the house and up the stable yard with part of
the carriage. It appears that the cause of the horse running away was a
gun being fired near, which frightened it. One of the wheels was knocked
off at the entrance of the park, and was found long afterwards a great
distance off, it having been knocked off with such force that it had run
a long way.




  CHAPTER XXXII.

  _MANY JOURNEYS WITH MRS. SIMCOE._


Now I hope to give an account of all the counties, cities and towns I
have seen, and particularly those I have visited with Mrs. Simcoe and
the Misses Simcoe:

    1. Devonshire.--Exeter, Axminster, Shute House (the seat of Sir
    W. E. Pole, built in 1787-8).

    (Some of the MSS. missing.)

    7. Warwickshire.--Warwick, Coventry, Stratford, Alcester,
    Southam, Atherstone, Leamington.

    8. Worcestershire.--Evesham.

    9. Oxfordshire.--Oxford, Witney.

    10. Northamptonshire.--Brackley.

    11. Buckinghamshire.--Beaconsfleld, Stoney Stratford, Stowe (the
    seat of the Duke of Buckingham), Colnbrook.

    12. Surrey.--Guildford, Dorking, Croydon, Reigate, Kingston,
    Farnham, Godstone.

    13. Kent.--Bromley.

    14. Berkshire.--Reading, Windsor, Maidenhead, Hungerford.

    15. Wiltshire.--Swindon, Chippenham, Wootton Bassett, Cricklade.

    16. Hampshire.--Winchester, Southampton, Lymington, Romsey,
    Ringwood, Christchurch.

    17. Middlesex.--London, Hounslow, Staines.

    18. Shropshire.--Shrewsbury, Ludlow, Oswestry.

    19. Herefordshire.--Hereford, Ross, Leominster, Whitchurch,
    Goodrich Court and Castle, North and South Wales.

    20. Brecknockshire.--Brecon, Crickhowel.

    21. Radnorshire.--Radnor.

    22. Montgomeryshire.--Machynlleth.

    23. Cardiganshire.--Aberystwyth, Devil's Bridge.

    24. Merionethshire.--Bala, Dolgelley.

    25. Denbighshire.--Llangollen.

    26. Carnarvonshire.--Beddgelert, Capel Curig, Snowdon.

Places we were at in the Isle of Wight:

    Newport, Cowes, Ventnor, Ryde, Godshill, Yarmouth.

The names of the railroads I was on with Miss Simcoe:--

    1st. The London and Birmingham. The only railroad at this time
    in England, and was just then opened in November, 1839.

We went from Coventry by Rugby, Crick, Weedon, Roade, Brandon,
Ellsworth, Wolverton; the Duke of Buckingham's carriage was there
waiting to take us on to Stowe. This is a most splendid and magnificent
place, and very large. I was shown over the house, and was in the
bedroom where the King and Queen slept.

The names of the stations I was at with Miss Simcoe on the Great Western
Railway.--Taunton, Bridgewater, Highbridge, Weston-super-Mere, Clevedon,
Nailsee, Bristol, Keynsham, Saltford, Tiverton, Bath, Box, Evesham,
Chippenham, Swindon, Minety, Cirencester.

Now I have already mentioned all the places, and to think of going
through most of them so many times with Mrs. and the Misses Simcoe for
so many years, and to think what the Lord has done for us, that in all
those journeys not one misfortune or accident ever happened. "The Lord
himself is thy keeper, the Lord is thy defence upon thy right hand. The
Lord shall preserve thee from all evil. The Lord shall preserve thy
going out and thy coming in, from this time forth for evermore."--Psalm
cxxi., 5, 7, 8. "They that put their trust in the Lord shall be even as
the Mount Zion: which may not be removed, but standeth fast forever. The
hills stand about Jerusalem: even so standeth the Lord round about his
people, from this time forth for evermore."--Psalm cxxv., 1, 2.

In how many places in the Bible we see the Lord's guidance of His
people, and the Lord is willing to help any of us if we pray to Him.
Whatever we ask of the Father in Christ's name He will give it to us.
The Holy Spirit is willing to direct and assist us when we read our
Bibles, so that we may understand what we read. We may as well not read
the Bible at all if we do not pray for the Holy Spirit to help us. As we
see by the man of Ethiopia, in the 8th chapter of the Acts, the 30th and
31st verses: "And Philip ran thither to him, and heard him read the
prophet Esaias, and said, Understandest thou what thou readest? And he
said, How can I, except some man should guide me? and he desired Philip
that he would come up and sit with him."

Pity but what we could humble ourselves as the Ethiopian did, to ask of
those who understand the Bible better than we do. We know that there are
many parts of the Bible very hard to understand, but there is a meaning
or it would not be in the Bible. There is not a verse but what is
useful, neither is there a word but what is profitable. I remember
hearing a sermon preached at Dunkeswell Church, and the text was only
one word. Some people say there is a great deal in the Bible which is of
no use. If we look at the works of a clock or a watch, how many wheels
there are, we might think one-half of them are not wanted, but if one of
those wheels were taken out of the clock or watch, they would stop going
immediately.

Also, if we look at a ship, and if we had never seen one before, we
should be quite surprised at so many ropes, and we might think that
one-half cannot be of any good; but there is not one rope but what has
its use. What use is the anchor without a cable, or what use is a mast
without the rigging?

There are the stays and tackles, traces, lanyards, clews, bowlines,
halyards, and many other ropes, and not one of all those ropes but what
is useful, and without them the ship would not be properly rigged. It is
the same thing with the Bible; if any of the chapters or verses were
left out it would not be complete. We cannot be too thankful for being
permitted to read our Bibles; how thankful we should be that we have not
got the Pope to prevent our doing so. What should we be without our
Bibles? We should be as ignorant as the heathens are, worshipping all
kinds of graven images, which we see in our Bibles is spoken against,
especially in the second Commandment. It would be almost as well for a
ship to take a long voyage without chart or compass as for us to be
without our Bibles. We know that the chart, the compass, the quadrant
are the ship's guides. I remember our voyage to Madras, in the East
Indies; it was very long, we were five months making the passage, yet
when land in sight was reported from the masthead, there was the city of
Madras straight before us. If we had seen the place before our eyes all
the way from England we could not have come straighter. Now our Bible,
if we go by its directions, will take us safe to the heavenly Canaan,
but we must go entirely by its guidance. We must not be one point out of
the course. If we break one of the Commandments we are guilty of all.
Now in the matter of our ship going to Madras. If the master of the ship
had not been particular about the latitude and longitude, most likely we
should not have had Madras so straight ahead when land was reported in
sight. And it is just the same in reading our Bible, if we read it
without the assistance of the Holy Spirit to direct and guide us through
the wilderness of this world, in the same way as the charts, compass and
quadrants guide the ship to the places where she is bound. The quadrant
is the chief thing to go by, but the quadrant is no good to us unless
the sun shines; and it is the same in reading our Bibles, if we do not
look up to God and pray to Him to grant us His Holy Spirit to shine on
us and direct us when we read, that we may understand. We must pray to
God, through His Son Jesus Christ; we must not leave out Christ in our
prayers; the quadrant is no good without the sun, and our prayers are no
good if Christ is left out. "Whatsoever ye ask of the Father in My name
ye shall receive it." "Without me ye can do nothing." The wedding
garment was no good to the man in the parable because he did not put it
on when it was offered him. If a servant, waiting at table at a party,
had not put on his livery--either from thinking his own clothes looked
the best, or from being too proud to wear livery--do we not think his
master would be angry, and would say, "How came you hither, not having
on your livery?" If we wish to be Christ's disciples we must follow His
steps and do His commandments. We know there was no pride in Christ.
When He was going into Jerusalem He chose a poor donkey to ride on. I
remember when Mrs. Simcoe always rode on a donkey, although she had
plenty of beautiful ponies. Pride has been the ruin of thousands of
people, so let us humble ourselves and follow the steps of our Saviour,
who went about doing good. To trust in Christ is a great blessing. I
never read in the Bible of Christ refusing any request that was asked
according to His will, even when the Levites, tempting Him, asked if it
was lawful to give tribute to Cæsar or not, they had the answer,
"Render unto Cæsar the things which are Cæsar's, and unto God the things
which are God's." How much better had they asked, "What must we do to be
saved?" or say as the publican, "God be merciful to me, a sinner." What
a thing it is to have so many invitations and not to accept them. The
door of mercy will soon be closed; as the tree falls so it must lie;
time rolls away. It seems but a little while ago since I came to live at
Wolford Lodge, and yet how many changes there have been in that time. I
first went in 1802; what a difference between that time and now. At that
time there were nearly forty persons belonging to the house, and now
only thirteen, and also nearly forty workmen. General Simcoe was not
pleased unless there was plenty of work going on, and it was his delight
to go out and see the workmen, and have a little talk with them about
their work. I remember once he was talking to one of the men. The man
took off his hat and held it in his hand. The General told him to put it
on his head, but the man did not like to do so whilst he was talking to
him. The General told him if he did not put it on he must take off his,
too, so they stood talking a long time both with their hats in their
hands.

General Simcoe was a very liberal gentleman. When work pleased him the
men were sure to have something given them. I remember once a poor man
coming to Wolford with a petition; his donkey had died. The General
asked him how much the donkey was worth. He said thirty shillings. The
General gave the man the thirty shillings, and told him he need not go
any further with the petition but go and buy himself another donkey.

General Simcoe was generous to the rich and liberal to the poor as long
as he lived. General Simcoe never let the work stand still, but was
always busy; something or other planned out every day--new roads, new
bridges. General Simcoe was very fond of the Canadian bridges. One was
made to cross the gully leading to the under Sand Walk at Wolford.




  CHAPTER XXXIII.

  _TRIBUTE BY BAILEY._


When General and Mrs. Simcoe returned from Canada they brought with them
a great many curious things, such as bows and arrows, swords, spears and
many other things such as the Indians use; there were also a great many
dresses made of sheet iron, caps, jackets, breeches and leggings, about
a hundred dresses. They wear them in battle, so that a sword or a spear
cannot hurt them. The only part they have to guard is the face.

The General also brought home three beautiful brass cannon--field pieces
(from San Domingo). They are now at Wolford. There was also a very
beautiful canoe, with paddles; it was very long. It was made from the
bark of a tree, and sewn together with bark cord. There was not a nail
used in it. I remember its coming very well. A waggon was sent to
Topsham, where it was landed. It was a great deal longer than the
waggon. I think it was nearly thirty feet long. The General told Mr.
Scadding to put it in some safe place where it could not be hurt; so Mr.
Scadding made a place for it in the stable yard under a bank, but very
unfortunately it had not been there long when the bank rushed down on it
and smashed it all to pieces after coming safe so many thousand miles.

There were also the Canadian snow slides (sleighs), which were kept in
the coach house. All these many different things were quite a curiosity
and amusement to the gentry who visited Wolford. The visitors at that
time were a great many; there were often ten or fifteen carriages there
in a day, as all the head gentry in Devonshire visited Wolford, and so
many officers came on duty for orders I have known three or four lords
staying at Wolford at one time. I believe there was not a great person
in Devonshire who did not very much respect General Simcoe. But Lord
Rolle and General Simcoe were not very friendly. There was strife
between them, I suppose, as to which of them should be the greater. The
contention was so sharp between them that there was a duel challenge;
Lord Rolle offered to fight with his fists, but General Simcoe would not
consent unless it was said what the quarrel was about. Lord Rolle wanted
to have a camp near Bicton, ten miles from Exeter and his place of
residence. His lordship was commander of two regiments, which were both
at a camp near Bicton. General Simcoe ordered him to take his regiments
to Plymouth, but Lord Rolle refused to do so, and wrote to the Duke of
York for leave to have his camp near Bicton. The Duke of York told him
he was to ask leave of General Simcoe, the Commander-in-Chief of the
Western District. This rather nettled Lord Rolle. He then petitioned to
remove his regiment from the district. The petition was granted, and
the regiment was sent to Liverpool. Soon after this there was a
situation appointed far greater than that of being Commander-in-Chief of
the Western District. The Government appointed General Simcoe to be
Commander-in-Chief of all the British forces in India.

Bonaparte had quite given up all his plans of invading England, but he
was still bent on mischief, and his plan was to go against Spain and
Portugal; and it was wonderful the mischief he did. Spain formerly was
the richest kingdom in the world, and now the poorest. How thankful
England should be that he was not permitted to land on our shores. How
thankful we should be to those who strongly fortified the country. But
what I said in my first edition--if Bonaparte had landed at Tor Bay,
which was certainly his intention, he never would have got as far as
Exeter. He was not aware of the preparations made. He did not know of
the large body of Volunteers raised in such quick time, more than fifty
thousand in Devonshire alone. Before going to India, General Simcoe was
directed to go to Lisbon, and to render any assistance against the
French in that country. Now it was certain that before General Simcoe
went to India he would be knighted or made a lord, as the
Commander-in-Chief in India has always those titles before taking the
command. General Simcoe made such great improvements whilst he was
Governor of Canada, so most likely he would have done the same in India,
as improving was his chief study. We ourselves have seen it at Wolford
Lodge and Dunkeswell.

The General and Mr. John Scadding used to be out so early in the
morning. Mr. Scadding was with General Simcoe in Canada so long that
their plans suited, and what one said the other approved. Mr. Scadding
was a very good, kind person, and much liked by all classes of people.
He was estate manager at Wolford for many years.

The two brothers, Mr. John and Mr. Thomas Scadding, married two sisters,
the Misses Triges. Mr. John Scadding's wedding was very grand. I
remember it very well. General Simcoe's carriage took them from Wolford
to Dunkeswell Church. General Simcoe was brideman and gave away the
bride, and a grand dinner was given at Wolford to the party. Mr. John
Scadding took Wolford Farm and rented it for many years, but was still
manager at Wolford. He remained at the farm until April, 1818; then
there was a sale, all the stock and goods were sold.

Mr. John Scadding went again to Canada, and Mrs. Scadding returned to
Wolford. The two elder sons of Mr. Scadding went to school at
Sittingbourne (in Kent), and the youngest, Henry (late Rev. Dr. Henry
Scadding, of Toronto), a little boy, came with his mother to Wolford.

After a few years Mr. Scadding came home, and then took his wife and the
two elder boys, John and Charles, back with him to Canada. Henry was
with Mr. Simcoe at Penheale for some time, and then went to college and
became a minister of the church, and is now at Toronto, where he has a
church. It must be such a great comfort to him to be in the same place
as his aged mother, and also his brother Charles.

Now to turn again to the lives of General and Mrs. Simcoe. Most
particulars I have given in my first edition, but there cannot be too
much said about both of them. It did not please the Lord that General
Simcoe should live to a great age; if such had been the case, no doubt
he would have been a very great person in the world. You know when great
people go to India they generally return much greater, have a higher
title, often get from a lord to an earl or marquis. India is the place
for riches and honour. It is not often that people get honour in their
own country; did Lord Nelson or Lord Wellington? And what brought
General Simcoe so soon to the rank of general was his going abroad. So
very likely, if it had pleased the Lord that he should go to India and
return home again, he would have been greatly promoted; but he had
finished his work.

We know the great things he did in England, even enough to frighten
Bonaparte, for he was afraid to come with his great expedition, although
his army was all ready to come over, and would very likely have come had
there not been such a large body of Volunteers raised, and the country
put in such a fortified state, particularly Devonshire, where it was
Bonaparte's intention to land. What a confusion all England was in at
that time. I remember it very well, many people hiding away their
treasures and property; and what was General Simcoe doing? He was busy
enough with sham fights, reviewing Volunteers, military and cavalry, and
warning them all to hold themselves in readiness to meet the enemy. Such
was General Simcoe's employment and study. It was the same in those days
as it was in the days of old, as we see by Joshua, Hezekiah, David and
all those great warlike people. Only read the history of those noble
men, see in all their plans, what did they do? Before they made war they
first enquired of the Lord, and He directed them. We do not see this in
Pharaoh, nor in Nebuchadnezzar, the one who said of the three Jews who
were cast into the burning fiery furnace, "And who is that God that
shall deliver you out of my hands?" And in Exodus, v. 2, "And Pharaoh
said, Who is the Lord, that I should obey his voice to let Israel go? I
know not the Lord, neither will I let Israel go." See what a difference
there is between those who serve the Lord and those who serve Him not.
We do not hear such holy men as Joshua, Samuel and David say, "Who is
that God that shall deliver you out of my hands?" or say, "I know not
the Lord, neither will I let Israel go." No, it is not so with those
holy men; they say, "It is the Lord, let him do what seemeth him good."
David said, "Lord, thou hast searched me and known me. Thou knowest my
downsitting and mine uprising; thou understandeth my thoughts afar off.
Thou compasseth my path and my lying down, and art acquainted with all
my ways. For there is not a word in my tongue, but lo, O Lord, thou
knowest it altogether." Psalm cxxxix., 1, 2, 3. And again, in another
psalm, "My soul truly waiteth still upon God, for of him cometh my
salvation. He verily is my strength and my salvation; he is my defence,
so that I shall not greatly fear." And that "thou, Lord, art merciful;
for thou rewardest every man according to his work." Psalm lxii., 1, 2,
12.

And again we sing:

  "My lot is fall'n in that blest land
    Where God is truly known;
  He fills my cup with lib'ral hand,
    'Tis He supports my throne.

  "Thou shalt the paths of life display,
    That to Thy presence lead,
  Where pleasures dwell without allay,
    And joys that never fade."

Note.--These lines are from Tate and Brady's paraphrase version of the
16th Psalm, 5th and 11th verses. This paraphrase version of the Psalms
was sanctioned and recommended by the Bishop of London in 1698.

Now in the book of Psalms we do not find one place in which David does
not give all the glory to God, from the first verse of the 1st Psalm to
the last verse of the 150th Psalm. In the first verse of the 1st Psalm
we read, "Blessed is the man that walketh not in the counsel of the
ungodly, nor stood in the way of sinners, and hath not sat in the seat
of the scornful." And in the last verse of the 150th Psalm it is said,
"Let everything that hath breath praise the Lord." In all the history of
David we only find two occasions in which he sinned, and what did he do
then? He did not do as Adam and Eve did, laying the fault on each other.
No, he directly confessed "I have sinned," adding, "but these sheep,
what have they done?" We see he wished to have all the blame himself. He
knew that he had sinned, and he knew that the Lord is gracious, His
mercy is everlasting, and his truth endureth from generation to
generation. I do wish myself and all the rest of us could have this
faith to pray to God for pardon of our sins. We know that we have the
same privileges as David had. "Ask and ye shall receive, seek and ye
shall find, knock and it shall be opened unto you." Our beautiful church
service begins, "I acknowledge my transgressions, and my sin is ever
before me. Hide thy face from my sins and blot out all mine iniquities."
Psalm li., 3, 9. "The sacrifices of God are a broken spirit; a broken
and a contrite heart, O God, thou wilt not despise." Psalm li., 17. "O
Lord, correct me, but with judgment; not in thine anger, lest thou bring
me to nothing." Jer. x., 24. "Enter not into judgment with thy servant,
for in thy sight shall no man living be justified." Psalm cxliii., 2.
And then we hear those beautiful words, "Dearly beloved brethren, the
Scripture moveth us in sundry places to acknowledge and confess our
manifold sins and wickedness; and that we should not dissemble nor cloke
them before the face of Almighty God our heavenly Father, but confess
them."

We see plainly these promises are to us, as much as they were to David.
David was a man after God's own heart, and so should we be if we were to
follow David's steps, and, like him, to give the Lord the honour due
unto His name, all honour and glory and might and power. All this David
gave to the Lord, and all the holy men of old did the same. And if we
did so too, we should be like David and be people after God's own heart;
and also like good old Joshua, who said "As for me and my house, we will
serve the Lord." I hope there are now many who do so. It was General and
Mrs. Simcoe's rule, and for that purpose the chapel at Wolford was
built, and by so doing our children will arise up and call us blessed.
In so doing we know what enemies we have to overcome--the world, the
flesh and the devil, all to be conquered, and what do we require to do
it? "Be of good courage, and let us behave ourselves valiantly for our
people, and let the Lord do that which is good in his sight." But this
is not all that we have to do. We are to be steadfast, unmovable, always
abounding in the work of the Lord, forasmuch as ye know that your labour
is not in vain in the Lord. In whatever our crosses or losses may
consist, either in our substance or in the loss of friends or
children--for we may expect these things to happen--let us remember that
the Lord gave, and the Lord taketh away, and say, "Blessed be the name
of the Lord." Again, we must expect wars and commotions, but the Lord
says, "My peace I give unto you."




  INDEX


  A.

  Addison's _Spectator_, 46.

  Ainslie, Thomas, Collector of Customs, Quebec, 66;
    entertains Mrs. Simcoe, 82, 259.

  Aitkin, Alexander, makes first survey and plan of Toronto, 163, 192.

  American settlers emigrate to Canada, 139.

  Anticosti, Island of, 51.

  Amherst Island, in Gulf of St. Lawrence, 49.

  Appanee River, The, 270;
    meaning of name, 270.

  Arms of Simcoe-Gwillim, 31-2.

  Ashbridge, Sarah, of York, 302;
    her descendants, 302;
    original home in York of, 302.

  Askin, Col. John, 131-2.

  Askin, Miss (Catherine), afterwards wife of Dr. Richardson, 131-2.

  Assembly, House of--see First Legislature.


  B.

  Bàby, Hon. François, member Legislative Council, 66;
    entertains Mrs. Simcoe, 77;
    compliments Mrs. Simcoe on her French, 81.

  Bàby, Madame, visits Ursuline Convent with Mrs. Simcoe, 66, 351;
    regarded by Mrs. Simcoe as one of the most agreeable people in
      Quebec, 262.

  Bàby, Hon. James, of Detroit, member Executive Council, 21.

  Ballard, Captain, of "Pearl," 353;
    makes preparations for meeting the French, 354;
    has drawings which interest Mrs. Simcoe, 355;
    dines with the Simcoes at Deal, 357.

  Bailey, John, servant of Simcoe family, writes of gentry of Devonshire,
      at Wolford, 361;
    tours with Mrs. Simcoe, 365, 395-6;
    his memoirs, 390;
    in service of Simcoes for 37 years, 390;
    enters service at twelve years of age, 391;
    his opinion of Simcoe family, 393;
    a Bible scholar, 396;
    relates of daily life at Wolford, 397;
    describes Mrs. Simcoe's trips to Wales, 399-400;
    visits Cheltenham, 401;
    tells of death of Mrs. Simcoe, 403;
    description of Mrs. Simcoe's funeral, 404;
    writes about Bonaparte's threat to invade England, 405-8;
    describes Dunkeswell Village and parish, 409;
    relates how General Simcoe assembled his workmen, 409;
    gives account of improvements at Wolford, 409;
    describes anniversary of Trafalgar at Wolford, 411;
    dwells on General Simcoe's illness and death, 412;
    writes about the Simcoe children who had passed, 413;
    his world-wide travels, 413;
    comment on the General and wife, 415-7;
    gives particulars of farms at Wolford, 415;
    escorts M. de Luc, a guest of General Simcoe, 418-20;
    makes quick trips when ordered, 420;
    account of quarrel between General Simcoe and Lord Rolle, 426;
    sketch of Scadding family, 427;
    quotes Scripture in writing of Bonaparte's threats, 428;
    draws liberally on the Psalms in closing his "remarks," 429-30.

  Barney, Joshua, 355.

  Bay of Quinte, Winter outing on, 270-4.

  "Bear," The, Government sloop, 136.

  Beasley, Richard, Indian trader, 323;
    first settler at "Head of Lake," 323;
    original owner Dundurn Park, 323;
    site of house, 323;
    his descendants, 324.

  Belle Isle, Ice at, 354.

  Belmont, near Quebec, home of Colonel Caldwell, 59;
    original ownership and present use of, 59;
    arrival of Simcoes at, 349.

  Berczy Settlement at Markham, U.C., 214.

  Berey, de, Father Felix P., last Provincial of Recollets, Canada, 78.

  Bic, in Rimouski County, Que., 51.

  Bond's farm, on Bond Lake, 307.

  Bond, William, sergeant in Queen's Rangers, 307;
    first nurseryman in York, 307.

  Bouchette, Commodore, in command on Lake Ontario, 140;
    differs with Simcoe regarding Toronto and Kingston as naval base on
      lake, 140.

  Bouchette, Lieutenant-Colonel Joseph, makes first survey of Toronto
    Harbor, 140.

  Bouchette, Miss, 251, 275.

  Brandy Pots Islands, 52.

  Brant, Joseph (Thayendanegea), of the Six Nations, at Navy Hall, 141;
    his education, 142;
    his marriages, 142;
    as a Freemason and warrior, 142;
    negotiates for peace with the Indian tribes, 142;
    his part in conferences on Indian question, 142-3;
    not a chief, 143;
    meets Governor Simcoe at Burlington Bay, 328.

  Brant, Molly, her daughters complimented by General Lincoln in his
      diary, 166;
    her Indian marriage with Colonel William Johnson, 167;
    accompanies Mrs. Simcoe to Kingston, 247;
    her daughters well married, 247;
    discovery of record of her burial, 247;
    prescribes for Governor Simcoe, 274-5.

  Brantford, The first "church-going bell" at, 142.

  Breakenridge, James, his descendants, 274.

  Bruyere, Captain, of the Engineers, 357-8.

  Buckerall Parish Church, where Simcoe marriage took place, 30.

  Burch's Mills, Niagara, 172.

  Burlington, The mountain north of, 319.

  Burlington Bay, formerly Geneva Lake or Macassa Bay, 304;
    salmon fishing at, 323;
    Indians camp near, 328;
    tents pitched on north shore of, 328.

  Burlington Beach, Salt spring at, 327.

  Butler's Barracks, Location of, 152.

  Butler, Colonel John, of Butler's Rangers, 71-2;
    at Buffalo Creek, 139;
    his death, 311.


  C.

  Caldwell, Colonel Henry, Assistant Quartermaster-General under Wolfe,
      59;
    built Belmont, 59;
    welcomes Mrs. Simcoe again to Quebec, 258.

  "Caldwell," The, sloop, 161.

  Camille, Mount, 51.

  Campbell, Major, commander at Fort Miami, 242.

  Canada Act, 19, 53.

  Canadian women, Education of, 91.

  Canise (Great Sail), Indian Chief, 188, 196, 210.

  Canoe, a graceful craft, 192;
    a North West, 209.

  Canoe travel in winter, 76-7.

  Canterbury, Governor Simcoe leaves Deal for, 358;
    visits old cathedral, 358.

  Canvas houses, utilized as rooms for Mrs. Simcoe, 141;
    at one time belonged to Captain Cook, 180.

  Cap Santé, Politeness of habitants at, 90, 257.

  Cape Diamond, Mrs. Simcoe walks to, 83;
    an incident on, 84.

  Carleton Island, 120, 126.

  Carriole, Mrs. Simcoe's first ride in a, 54.

  Carrioles from Quebec on Toronto Bay, 303.

  Cartwright, Richard, Jr., appointed a Councillor, 21;
    in partnership with Hon. Robert Hamilton, 126;
    his descendants, 273.

  Castle Frank, History of, 203-209;
    its location, 276;
    a description of, by Mrs. Simcoe, 298;
    winter picnics at, 298;
    a week at, 309;
    farewell to, 336.

  Carleton, Sir Guy--see Dorchester.

  Cathedral, The, Quebec, 67, 68;
    Christmas service in, 69;
    Mrs. Simcoe writes of Epiphany service and Bishop's vestments, 73.

  Cedars, The, running the rapids, 345.

  Chateau de Ramezay, 95.

  Chateau, The, Quebec, 61;
    distinction between Chateau and Fort, 62;
    the old Chateau stone, 62;
    whist parties at, 264;
    routs held at, 264, 265.

  Chateau Haldimand, addition to Castle St. Louis, 75.

  Chippawa, an industrial centre, 285;
    pioneer mills at, 285;
    burning springs near, 285;
    blockhouse at, 286.

  Christie, General, his coach, 347.

  Clarke, Sir Alured, administrator, Canada, 18, 53;
    Lieutenant-Governor Lower Canada and powers as such, 18.

  Clearing land in Upper Canada, 119.

  Coffin, Thomas Ashton, private Secretary to Sir Guy Carleton and
    Controller of Accounts, Lower Canada, 81.

  Cook, James, master of "Pembroke," 15.

  Collier, Lady, meets Mrs. Simcoe, 36.

  Coon's farm on Don River, 191-2, 335.

  Coote, Captain, an old soldier, 327;
   served in 8th Regiment, 327.

  Coote's Paradise, Shooting ducks on marsh land at, 324;
    tortoises and wild fowl plentiful at, 324.

  Cowan, Captain David, an example of his courtesy and politeness, 253.

  Credit River, Indians fish for salmon on, 328;
    plenty of salmon in, 331.

  Creeks on south shore of Lake Ontario, 222.

  Crooks, Family of, Niagara, 241.

  Crookshank, Miss (Rachel), sister of Hon. George Crookshank, 152, 302,
    336.


  D.

  Darling, General Henry, has collection of birds, 141;
    accompanies Governor on journey to Matchedash Bay, 141.

  Dartford, Visit to, 358.

  Deadman's Island, 50.

  Deal, The Governor and party disembark at, 357;
    a ramble round old town of, 357.

  "Deal Castle," lost off Martinique, 45.

  De La Corne, Chevalier, 191.

  De La Pole, Lady, at Weymouth, 39.

  De Salaberry, Monsieur Ignace, 77, 78.

  De Salaberry, Madame, 77, 78.

  Des Barres, Joseph F. W., 52.

  Deschambault, L. C., position of, examined by Governor Simcoe, 90.

  Desjardins, L'Abbe, envoy to Canada, 188, 191;
    Mrs. Simcoe hears him preach in Quebec, 262.

  Detroit, 1796, weather in, 311.

  Dodgson, Major, of 60th, 310;
    something about regiment, 310.

  Don River, 184;
    Indian name of, 187;
    scenery on, 191-2;
    in winter of 1793, 213;
    wolves on, 213;
    German and Pennsylvanian settlers on, 213;
    midwinter fishing on, 214, 298;
    a garrison dinner on, 332;
    first bridge over, 335.

  Dorchester, Lord, his powers as Governor-General of Canada, 19;
    on board the "Alligator," 50;
    his rank, offices and appointments, 50;
    orders building of Fort Miami, 217;
    refuses Duke Rochefoucauld-Liancourt permission to visit Lower
      Canada, 277;
    objects to fortifying Long Point, 293;
    sails for England on the "Active," 350;
    wrecked off Anticosti, 351;
    taken by schooner to Gaspé, 351.

  Dorchester, Lady, courtesies to Mrs. Simcoe, 260;
    interesting incident in connection with her marriage, 261-2.

  Dosquet, Mgr., Bishop of Samos, 56.

  Doughty, Rev. John, at Sorel, 92;
    appearance of his house noted by Mrs. Simcoe, 92.

  Dover, The cliffs at, 357;
    Mrs. Simcoe spends pleasant hours at old port, 358.

  Duke of Kent--see Prince Edward.

  Duke, Major George, 255.

  Duncan, Hon. Richard, of Dundas County, member of First Legislative
      Council, 104;
    presents Mrs. Simcoe with a horse, 104;
    Justice of the Peace, 104.

  Dundas Street, work of opening begun, 196;
    road opened for twenty miles, 200.

  Dunn, Hon. Thomas, Mrs. Simcoe dines at his home, 259.


  E.

  Earthquake in St. Louis St., Quebec, 61;
    at St. Paul's Bay, 68-9;
    at York, 1795, 298.

  Elliott, Captain Matthew, of Indian Department, at Detroit, 221;
    friend of Tecumseh, 221;
    at eighty years of age commanded Indians in 1813 in assault on Fort
      Niagara, 221.

  Estate of General Simcoe, 387;
    personal expenditure in American campaign, 387;
    private demands on purse, 388;
    income as Lieutenant-Governor, and fees in connection with office,
      388;
    owns about 5,000 acres in Upper Canada, 388;
    large sum due him on leaving Canada, 388;
    many arrearages never collected, 388.

  Executive Council of Upper Canada, Extract from minutes of First,
    115-6.

  Exeter, General Simcoe's death at, 28.


  F.

  Fairfields, the pioneers of Ernestown, 248-9.

  Farmers in Upper Canada, Mrs. Simcoe compliments Dutch and German, 105.

  Finlay, Hon. Hugh, Deputy Postmaster-General of Canada, 80.

  First Legislature of Upper Canada, inaugural meeting, 22;
    meeting places of, 22;
    sessions of, 175-6;
    members of third session dined by Governor Simcoe, 229;
    third session prorogues, 229;
    fourth session prorogues, 281;
    fifth session opens, 311;
    fifth session prorogues, 312.

  Fisher, Captain Benjamin, of the Royal Engineers, 82, 83, 85;
    at Kingston, 120.

  Flanders, British victory in, 187;
    salute in commemoration of, 187.

  Fleming, Staff-Surgeon, his meeting with Captain Cowan at Chippawa,
    253.

  Flour and wheat, Price of, in 1794, 237.

  Fort "Little Niagara," First, 143.

  Fort "Little Niagara," Second, 143.

  Fort Erie, Intense heat at, 289.

  Fort Miami, Situation of, 218-9.

  Fort Schlosser, opposite Chippawa, built in 1760, by Colonel Schlosser,
    143-5.

  Fort Schlosser Fall, 128.

  Fort St. Louis, 70.

  Forty Mile Creek, Mrs. Simcoe's visit to, 230;
     scenery at, 234.

  Fraser (Frasier), Colonel Thomas, served in Revolutionary War, 105;
    a non-resident member for Dundas, 105.

  Fraser (Frazier), Captain William, 104-5.

  Freemason's Hall, Niagara, used as church, 125;
    opinions regarding site, 125.

  French envoys arrive at York, 188.

  Frobisher, Joseph, one of founders of "North-West Company," 94-5;
    his country home, 97;
    entertains Mrs. Simcoe, 255;
    visited by Mrs. Simcoe on her final stay in Montreal, 347.

  Frobisher, Mrs., her garden, 347.


  G.

  Gamble, Mr., Surgeon of the Rangers, returns from the Mohawk village,
      220;
    descendants of in Canada, 220.

  Gananoque (Gananowui) River, 106;
    Carey's house at, 106, 109, 269.

  Gardner, Admiral, 212.

  Garlies, George, Viscount, visits Niagara, 136.

  Geneva Lake--see Burlington Bay.

  George III., his sojourn at Weymouth, 36;
    courteous to Mrs. Simcoe, 41;
    interests himself regarding voyage of Mrs. Simcoe, 42.

  Gibraltar Point, 180, 184;
    blockhouse at, 308;
    Government storehouses at, 308.

  Givins, Col. James, Superintendent Indian Affairs, 303-4;
    his descendants, 304.

  Gloucester House, where George III. resided at Weymouth, 36.

  Gonzague, Mother St. Louis de, 66-67.

  Government House, Montreal--see Chateau de Ramezay.

  Government sawmill on Humber River, 183-4.

  "Governor Simcoe," schooner, built, 226-7;
    makes trip to York from Niagara in nine hours, 297.

  Gower, Captain, of the "Active," wrecked, 351;
    takes passage with Captain Ballard, 353;
    dines with the Simcoes at Deal, 357.

  Grand River (the Ouse), 99.

  Grant, Hon. Alexander (Commodore) at Major Smith's, 168;
    in command of lake vessels from Niagara to Mackinaw, 171;
    member first Executive and Legislative Council, 171;
    at Navy Hall, 228;
    arrives at Fort Erie from Detroit, 289.

  Grant, Hon. William, Receiver-General, Canada, 98.

  Grave, Mons. François de la Rive, 71, 78.

  Graves, Mrs., aunt of Mrs. Simcoe, 9.

  Graves, Admiral, of Hembury Fort, Devon, 9;
    godfather of Governor Simcoe, 30.

  Gray, Edward William, prominent in Montreal, 254;
    has first Masonic certificate issued in Canada, 1760, 254;
    his life in Montreal, 255.

  Gray, Colonel James, 103-4.

  Gray, Robert Isaac Dey, first Solicitor-General for Upper Canada, 103.

  Green, Adam, emigrated from New Jersey, 328;
    his house neatly kept, 328.

  Green, John, of Forty Mile Creek, entertains Mrs. Simcoe, 315;
    his house a noted dwelling, and used recently as a railway
      waiting-room, 315-6;
    his garden yields 800 pumpkins in three-quarters of an acre, 319.

  Green's mills at the "Forty," 234, 316.

  Grenville, Baron, at Weymouth, 39.

  Grey, Sir Charles, first Earl, General in the Army, 43.

  Grey, Lieutenant Thomas, son of first Earl, sails with Governor Simcoe
      to Canada, 43;
    receives orders to join Sir Charles Grey in West Indies, 210-1.

  Grinfield, General, with his wife, welcomes the Governor, 357.

  Grondines, pastoral scene at, 90-1;
    Mrs. Simcoe visits, 348;
    delightful scenery described by Mrs. Simcoe, 348.

  Gut of Canso, "Triton" unable to make passage through, 48.

  Gwillim, Elizabeth Posthuma, birth of, 1;
    her girlhood, 10-1;
    her marriage, 8.

  Gwillim, family tomb, 2;
    ancestral homes, 3;
    connection with Herberts, 3-4;
    as a surname, 4;
    arms of, 4;
    genealogy of, 4-7;
    connection with family of Creed, 7.

  Gwillim, Lieutenant-Colonel Thomas, in Canada, 2.


  H.

  Haldimand, Sir Frederick, Governor of Canada, 75.

  Hamelin, Madame, seigneuresse of Grondines, 90.

  Hamilton, Captain James, of Chippawa, his marriage a double event, 282;
    his descendants, 285.

  Hamilton, Robert, appointed a councillor, 21;
    D.P.G.M., first Provincial Grand Lodge of Freemasons under Jarvis,
      126;
    member first Executive Council, 126;
    his residence at Queenstown, 126-7;
    his family, 127.

  Hamilton, Mrs., 131-2, 145.

  Hammond, George, British Ambassador to the United States, 139-40;
    informs Governor Simcoe of La Rochefoucauld-Liancourt's visit to
     Upper Canada, 277.

  "Head of the Lake," a new road suggested by the Governor from Niagara
      to, 319;
    Indian's welcome to Governor at, 320.

  Heights of Abraham, Mrs. Simcoe visits the, 82.

  Hembury Fort, Description of, 9.

  Hennepin, Father, his visit to Toronto, 183.

  Herring, Richard, 212.

  Holland River, 196;
    Pine Fort at, named Gwillimbury, 298.

  Holland, Surveyor-General Samuel, visited by Mrs. Simcoe, 57;
    his positions and descendants, 57-8.

  Howe Island, 109.

  Hubert, Mgr. Jean François, Bishop of Quebec, grants Mrs Simcoe
    permission to visit Ursuline Convent, 66.

  Humber River, The, in 1756 known as St. John's Creek, 183;
    description of, 191.

  Hunt, Mrs. assumes charge of four elder children during Mrs. Simcoe's
      absence in Canada, 34;
    letters from Mrs. Simcoe to, 90, 151, 156-7.


  I.

  "Illustrious," H. M. S., carries General Simcoe in 1806 to England, 28.

  Indian Boundary Question, 175.

  Indian Commissioners leave Niagara for Fort Erie, 172;
    unsuccessful in negotiations, 191.

  Indian Ladder, Colonel Clarke's notes on, 286.

  Indian mourning, 210.

  Indians, at Lorette, 69, 70;
    Iroquois at St. Regis, 100, 103;
    Mississagas at Kingston, 115;
    entertain the Governor, 118;
    their speeches, 139;
    Delawares, 155-6;
    Seven Nations, 175;
    Ojibways pay respects to Governor Simcoe at Toronto, 184;
    Senecas visit Navy Hall, 228-9;
    sell maple sugar at sixpence a pound, 308.

  Intendant's Palace, ruins of and present-day occupation of site, 61.

  Isle aux Soeurs (now Nun's Island), Arrival of Government party at,
      346;
    Grey Nuns' House on, 346.


  J.

  "Jack Snap," 199.

  Jarvis, William, his appointment as Provincial Secretary, 311;
    his marriage and descendants, 312.

  Jay Treaty, under it the American Fort at Niagara given up, 312.

  Jervoise (Jervis)--see St. Vincent.

  Jessup, Major Edward, on whose property the town of Prescott was begun,
      268;
    his descendants, 268.

  Johnson, Ann, eldest daughter of Sir John Johnson, 74.

  Johnson, Col. Guy, Deputy Superintendent of the Indian Department, 168;
    succeeds his father-in-law as Superintendent, 168.

  Johnson, Sir John, recommended by Lord Dorchester as Lieutenant-Governor
      of Upper Canada, 17;
    Superintendent Indian Affairs in British North America, 168.

  Johnson, Sir William, Bart., his ancestry, marriage and military
      appointments, 167;
    at Fort Niagara, 167;
    his successors in baronetcy, 168;
    his will and provision for Molly Brant and her children, 247;
    his children by Molly Brant, 247.

  Jones, Augustus, a well-known Surveyor, 276;
    his house at Burlington Bay, 327.


  K.

  King's Head Inn at "Head of the Lake," why built, 320;
    beautifully situated, 320;
    description of, 320;
    picturesque scenes at, 320.

  Kingston, Mrs. Simcoe has a distant view of, 109;
    described by Mrs. Simcoe, 110;
    its situation as a military and naval station, 111;
    shipyard at, 112;
    inhabitants wish seat of Government established at, 120;
    Simcoes reside in barracks, 269;
    key to Mrs. Simcoe's picture, 1796, 336;
    Government party leave for Montreal, and interesting description
      _en route_, 339.


  L.

  La Rochefoucauld-Liancourt, Duke de, welcomed by Governor Simcoe, 277;
    violates rules of hospitality, 277;
    writes an account of his visit to Canada, 277;
    his work reviewed by D. W. Smith, 278;
    impresses Mrs. Simcoe unfavorably, 278.

  Lachine Rapids, Arrival at, 346;
    running the, 346.

  Lac aux Claies--see Lake Simcoe.

  Lake Simcoe, formerly Lac aux Claies, 196;
    known by other names, 199;
    islands in, 199;
    trout from, 307.

  Lake St. Francis, Storm on, 250.

  Lake Ontario, Blustery weather in April, 310.

  Lawrence, John, of New Jersey, settles in Canada, 297;
    a fellow-prisoner of Colonel Simcoe in American Revolutionary War,
      297;
    his opinion of land on Yonge Street, York, in 1796, 307.

  Lewiston, N.Y., site of French fort at, 176.

  "Liberty," The, communicates with H. M. S. "Triton," 50.

  Lincoln, Benjamin, U. S. Commissioner at Niagara in connection with
      Indian Boundary question, 164;
    secretary of War and subsequently Lieutenant-Governor of
      Massachusetts, 165;
    an extract from his diary, 166.

  Linton, Arthur Henry, descended from eldest daughter of Rev. Henry
    Addington Simcoe, next heir to estate on death of Mrs. J. K. Simcoe,
      369.

  Littlehales, Major E. B., Military Secretary to Governor Simcoe, meets
      Mrs. Simcoe at Dautré, 93;
    created a baronet, 93;
    goes to Philadelphia to see British Ambassador, 139;
    makes notes of his journey to Philadelphia, 146;
    rides from York to Niagara, 210.

  London, Arrival of Governor Simcoe at, 358.

  Longueuil, de, Baronne (Dowager Baroness), her home on St. Helen's
    Island, 97-8.

  Longueuil, de, third Baron, 98.

  Longueuil, de, fourth Baroness, 98.

  Longueuil, de, descendants, 98.

  Lorimer, Chevalier, interpreter of the Indian Department, 105.

  Lullworth Cove, in the English Channel, 40.

  Lutes' Farm near Niagara, 294.


  Mc.

  McCord, John, a leading merchant in Quebec, 90, 91.

  McGill, Andrew, of Montreal, 80.

  McGill Cottage, home of Captain John McGill, York, 80.

  McGill Farm at York, value to-day, 219-20.

  McGill, Hon. James, of Montreal, 80.

  McGill, Captain John, officer in Queen's Rangers, subsequently
      Receiver-General, 80;
    accompanies Mrs. Simcoe to Quebec, 247.

  McGill, Mrs., 152;
    visits Mrs. Simcoe at Niagara, 278, 281.

  McKee, Colonel Alexander, Deputy-Superintendent-General Indian Affairs,
      132;
    Indian agent at Pittsburg, 171.

  McKee, Colonel Thomas, member for Kent in Second Legislature, Upper
    Canada, 172.


  Mac.

  Macaulay, Dr. James, of the Queen's Rangers, 118-9;
    value of his property at York a hundred years ago and present value,
      303;
    his cottage named "Teraulay," 303.

  Macaulay, Mrs., a frequent visitor at Navy Hall, 118, 131, 141, 143.

  Macaulay, John Simcoe, a youthful axeman, 303.

  Macdonell, Colonel John, A.D.C. to General Brock, 100.

  Macdonell, Colonel John, of Glengarry Point, Speaker of the First House
    of Assembly, extends hospitality to the Governor, 100.

  Macdonell, Rev. Roderick, missionary to the Iroquois, 103.

  Macdonell, Mrs., at the Long Sault, 104.

  Mackenzie, Alexander, the North-West explorer, at Navy Hall, 243.

  Macnab, Allan, father of Sir A. N. Macnab, 233.

  Macormick, Governor of Cape Breton, 48-9.


  M.

  Mabane, Judge Adam, member of first Executive Council, 56.

  Mabane, Isabella, purchases "Woodfield," 56.

  Markham, John, with Jervis, West Indian Fleet, visits Niagara, 136.

  Maumee (Miami) Fort, 25-6--see Fort Miami.

  May Apple, The, described by Mrs. Simcoe, 136, 139.

  Mayne, Captain William, 158, 308.

  Mississaga Creek--see Holland River.

  Mississaga Point, at Niagara, 211.

  "Mississaga" arrives at Niagara from St. Regis, 175.

  Mohawk Settlement on Bay of Quinte, 273.

  Monklands, now Ville Marie Convent, Montreal, 97.

  Montmorency, Quebec, its summer scenery, 86.

  Montmorency Fall (Niagara), 128.

  Montmorency, Falls of, Quebec, described by Mrs. Simcoe, 74.

  Montmorency House, summer home of Prince Edward, 75.

  Montreal, Governor Simcoe's arrival at, 94;
    town of, 95-7;
    Christ Church at, 95.

  Moose, Habits of, 79.

  "Moravian Town," 155.

  Moraviantown, Old, 155-6.

  Mother Emily Clare, granddaughter of General Simcoe, 364.

  Mountain, Rev. Jacob, first Anglican Bishop of Quebec, arrives at Navy
      Hall, 237;
    preaches at Niagara, 238;
    visits Niagara Falls with Governor Simcoe, 238;
    sails for Kingston, 238;
    places home in Quebec at Mrs. Simcoe's disposal, 350.

  Mountain, Rev. Jehoshaphat at Three Rivers, 348.

  Mountain, Miss, 350.

  Munro, Hon. John, of Matilda, member first Legislative Council, 21, 103;
    Captain in King's Royal Regiment of New York, 103;
    Justice of the Peace, 104;
    location of his mill, 343-4.

  Munro, Hugh, his mill, 340.

  Murray, Captain, of the "Triton," Mrs. Simcoe's opinion of him, 41;
    his naval career, 42;
    sails for Halifax, 54;
    communicates with Governor Simcoe from Halifax, 81.


  N.

  Napanee, King's sawmill at, 270.

  Navy Hall, built by Governor Haldimand, 22;
    group of buildings, 121-2;
    view from, 125;
    ball in council chamber, 228;
    ball room at, 315.

  Newark, Social life at, 227.

  Niagara, Wild fowl at, 157;
    origin of town name, 162;
    fort at, 162;
    fruit at, 172;
    to Toronto by bateaux, 176;
    called Newark, and afterwards renamed Niagara, 226;
    warm weather at, 237.

  Niagara Falls, 127-8;
    impress Mrs. Simcoe, 161;
    Mrs. Simcoe picnics at, and at the whirlpool, 285.

  Niagara River, Mineral springs on, 293.

  Nooth, Dr. T. M., 68, 77, 219.

  Nuns of Ursuline Convent, Quebec, 66.


  O.

  Ogden, Isaac, Judge of Admiralty, 80-1.

  Old Court, birthplace of Mrs. Simcoe, 1.

  "Onondaga," The, at Kingston, 115;
    sails for Niagara, 120;
    sails from Kingston to Niagara in 22 hours, 162;
    runs ashore off Gibraltar Point, 210;
    viewed by Governor, 210;
    off the shoal, 216;
    perilous trip of, 275;
    sails for Kingston with Governor and party, 336.

  Osgoode, William, Chief Justice Upper Canada, arrives in Canada, 85;
    legislative counsellor, and later Chief Justice Lower Canada, 85-6;
    administers oath to Governor Simcoe, 116;
    at Niagara, 145;
    gives a whist party in honor of Mrs. Simcoe, 152;
    sails for Quebec, 229.

  Oswegatchie, the forts, 187-8.

  Ottawa (Grand) River, 99.


  P.

  Parr, Captain, at Kingston, 274.

  "Pearl," H.M.S., arrives in Quebec from Halifax, 352;
    Governor and family on board, 353;
    meets French frigates, 354;
    six of convoy captured by French, 354;
    in fighting trim, 354;
    Mrs. Simcoe and children spend six hours in the bread room, 354;
    danger over, 354;
    first days of disagreeable weather on board, 355-6;
    off the English coast, 356;
    anchors in the Downs, 357.

  "Pembroke," H.M.S., Captain John Simcoe's death on, 8, 15.

  Penetanguishene, 200.

  Penheale Manor, in Doomsday Book, 364;
    present owner of, 365-6.

  Petroleum on the Thames, U.C., 155.

  Pickering, Colonel Timothy, U. S. Indian Commissioner at Niagara, 164;
    member National House of Representatives, 165.

  Pilkington, Robert, of the Royal Engineers, 161;
    coasts Lake Ontario from Niagara to York, 192;
    builds fort on Miami, 192;
    Major-General and Inspector-General of Fortifications in England, 192;
    makes sketches of places in Georgian Bay district, 196;
    walks from Niagara to York, 219;
    goes to Fort Miami, 226;
    wades across inlet at "Head of the Lake," 304.

  Playter, Captain George, an early settler in York, 276;
    his descendants, 276;
    haymaking, 335;
    his bridge over Don, 335.

  Point au Biron, Pretty view from, 345.

  Point au Cardinal, 340.

  Point du Lac, remains of barracks inspected by Governor, 348.

  Point Iroquois, its situation, 343;
    first Methodist church at, 343.

  Pointe au Bodet, 100, 266, 267.

  Porter, Captain Richard, 248.

  Portland, Duke of, receives communications from Governor Simcoe, 26.

  Portland Isle, Mrs. Simcoe's visit to, 37;
    custom of gavel-kind, 37;
    method of conveyancing land in, 37;
    a reeve's duties at, 37-9.

  Poulett, Lady, entertains Mrs. Simcoe, 40.

  Poulett, Lady Mary, daughter of Earl Poulett, 41.

  Powell, Chief Justice, 281;
    his descendants, 282.

  Powell, Mrs., a pleasant woman, 290.

  Powell Place, Quebec, 85.

  Plessis, Joseph Octave, Bishop of Quebec, 73-4;
    builds R. C. church on land donated by a Presbyterian, 74.

  Prescott, General, succeeds Dorchester, 350;
    welcomes Simcoes to Quebec, 350.

  Prescott, Mrs., 350-2.

  Prince Edward, in command of Royal Fusiliers, Quebec, 18, 53;
    his characteristics, 53;
    his promotions, 54;
    attends dance given by Mrs. Simcoe, 78;
    visits Navy Hall and reviews troops, 136.

  Protestant Church (St. George's), Kingston, where Governor Simcoe took
    oaths of office, 116-8.

  Prison Island, 99-100.

  Provision store, Quebec, 66, 76.


  Q.

  Quebec, Citadel at, 54;
    general hospital at, 67;
    an ice bridge forms, 77;
    winter scene on river near, 78;
    pleases Mrs. Simcoe, 81;
    scenery in vicinity of, 83;
    Simcoes leave for Upper Canada, 89;
    a great fire and a narrow escape for, 352-3.

  Queen Charlotte, her birthday celebrated in Quebec, 74;
    a salute fired in honor of anniversary, 213.

  Queen's Rangers, in Revolutionary War, 17;
    raising a corps for service in Canada, 20;
    encamped at Kingston, 110;
    at Niagara, 125;
    of Niagara history, 132-5;
    encamped at Queenstown, 132;
    first regiment stationed at Toronto, 179.


  R.

  Randolph, John, U. S. Indian Commissioner, at Niagara, 164;
    an American orator, 165.

  Rattlesnakes numerous in Upper Canada, 196, 298.

  Recollet Church, Quebec, 1791, Protestants allowed to hold service
      therein, 55;
    present site, 55;
    description of, by Mrs. Simcoe, 67-8;
    burned, 352.

  Reeve staff, of Saxon origin, 38.

  Regiments--Royal Fusiliers, formation of and where stationed, 54;
    band of, 55;
    as actors, 77, 80;
    in ballroom, 79, 81;
    60th or King's Royal Rifle Corps, a coincidence in connection with,
      248;
    rifles first issued to a battalion of, 310.

  Richardson, Dr., of the Queen's Rangers, 176.

  Richardson, Mrs., 176, 290, 301.

  Rogers' Rangers, original corps of Queen's Rangers, its strength, 132;
    the command of, 132.

  Rolle, The Misses, 40.

  Rosskilly, Rev. Thomas, performs marriage ceremony of Colonel Simcoe,
    30.

  Rousseau, St. Jean Baptiste, 179.

  Russell, Hon. Peter, arrival in Canada, 85;
    administrator, 86;
    his house at Two Mile Creek, 226;
    his residence at York, 311.

  Russell, Miss (Elizabeth), sister of Hon. Peter Russell, 85;
    an admirable woman, 311.

  Ryland, Herman Witsius, dinner and ball on occasion of his marriage,
      262;
    civil secretary to Lord Dorchester, 263;
    his descendants in Canada, 263.


  S.

  Sable Island, 47-8.

  Samos, afterwards Woodfield, owners of the estate of, 56;
    description of original house, 56;
    final disposition of site, 56.

  Sans Bruit, an amusing incident in connection with name, 58.

  Sassafras trees near Navy Hall, 290.

  Scadding, John, Sr., manager at Wolford, 32, 215;
    in Canada, 215;
    his descendants, 215.

  Scadding, Rev. Dr. Henry, a personal friend of Mrs. Simcoe, 215.

  Servos, Colonel Peter, 230;
    ancestors of, 233.

  Servos House at the Four Mile Creek, 230;
     oldest house in district, 230.

  Servos Mill, 294.

  Severn River, 196;
    McDonald's Rapids on, 196;
    Big Chute, 199;
    Gloucester Pool, an enlargement of, 200.

  Shank, Captain David, arrives from York with detachment for the Miamis,
      241;
    his life in Canada, 241.

  Shaw, Captain Æneas, member of Executive Council, 21, 79;
    travels from New Brunswick, 79;
    brings his family to Niagara, 161.

  Sheaffe, Lieutenant (General) Roger, visits Navy Hall, 241;
    arbitrator about American settlements on south shore of lake, 241-2;
    commands at York in 1813, 242;
    his conduct criticised, 242.

  Sheehan, Walter Butler, of Indian Department, 315;
    married Miss Andrews, daughter of Captain Andrews, 315;
    his descendants, 315.

  Sillery, near Quebec, immortalized by "Emily Montague," 85;
    originally a mission, 352.

  Simcoe, Anne, her birth, 361;
    writes about her mother, 368.

  Simcoe, Caroline, birth of 32.

  Simcoe, Charlotte, birth of, 32.

  Simcoe, Eliza, birth of, 32;
    leaves £30,000 for upkeep of Wolford, 369.

  Simcoe, Francis Gwillim, birth of, 32;
    friendly with Indians, 210;
    in honor of his third birthday a salute of 21 guns is fired from a
      two-inch cannon, 228;
    has severe illness, 262, 263, 265;
    gives a birthday dinner, 276;
    his picture made by Mr. Pilkington on his fifth birthday, 315;
    anxious to be a sailor, 357;
    most important for his age, for he had "talked to the Indians," 360;
    a lieutenant in the army, 363;
    killed at Badajoz, 363.

  Simcoe, Henrietta, birth of, 32.

  Simcoe, Rev. Henry Addington, his birth, 361;
    purchases Manor of Penheale in Cornwall, 363;
    his wife and family, 364;
    a printer, 364;
    visits Wolford, 367;
    his mother's affection for him, 367;
    his loving disposition, 367;
    inherits Wolford, 368;
    never resided there, 368;
    his death, 368.

  Simcoe, Captain John, R.N., father of Governor Simcoe, 8;
    in command of "Prince Edward," 8;
    naval career, 14;
    author "Maxims of Conduct," 14;
    his children, 14;
    arms of, 14-5;
    his ancestors, 387.

  Simcoe, John Cornwall, his birth, 361.

  Simcoe, John Graves, marriage of, 8;
    his ancestors, 12-3;
    education of, 16;
    enters army, 16;
    sails for America, 16;
    at Boston, 16;
    Major Commander Queen's Rangers, 17;
    receives rank of lieutenant-colonel, 17;
    colonel in the army, 17;
    opinion regarding freedom to administer affairs of Upper Canada, 19;
    hampered at outset, 20;
    journeys to Kingston, 21;
    takes oaths of office, 21, 115;
    visits western parts of the province, 25;
    humiliated by Dorchester, 25;
    later military appointments, 26-7;
    return to England after Revolutionary War, 29;
    marriage certificate, 31;
    regrets inability to pass through Gut of Canso, 48;
    meets Prince Edward at Sir Alured Clarke's, 53;
    journeys to Montreal, 59;
    experiences by the way, 62;
    welcomed by Glengarry Highlanders, 100;
    walks to Burlington Bay, 143;
    makes a midwinter trip to Detroit via the Mohawk Village, 148;
    is favorably impressed by country in west of Province, 155;
    first visit to Toronto, 162-3;
    leaves for Lake Huron, 196;
    his return journey full of incident, 199;
    with Lieutenant Talbot leaves for Detroit, 219;
    account of journey, 221;
    at Fort Erie, 221;
    pays daily visits to Fort Niagara, 228;
    accidentally shot, 230;
    visits Tuscarora Village, above Lewiston, N.Y., 237;
    leaves for Detroit with Brant and warriors, 242;
    indulges in poetry, 269;
    illness of, 274;
    returns from Long Point, 293;
    names it Charlotteville, 293;
    his health in Canada, 310;
    receives leave of absence, 332;
    his relations with Lord Dorchester, 332;
    building of Fort Miami a cause of rupture, 332;
    leaves for England, 353;
    an early riser, 360;
    appointed Governor in San Domingo, 360;
    his appointment a shock to Mrs. Simcoe, 360;
    asks assurance from Government that in case of death his family
      should be provided for, 360;
    thanks Mr. Pitt for the guarantee, 360;
    departure for San Domingo, 360;
    lands at Port au Prince, 360;
    his work on the island, 360;
    return to England, 360;
    his position as commander of Western Military District, 361;
    in 1798, gazetted Lieutenant-General, 361;
    appointed Commander-in-chief in India, 362;
    ordered to Portugal, 362;
    his arrival at Lisbon, 362;
    his illness and return to England, 362;
    his death at Exeter, 362;
    funeral at Wolford, 362.

  Simcoe, Mrs. John Graves, how fine and stormy weather affected her at
      sea, 46;
    her pastimes on board ship, 48;
    fears the "Triton" would be unable to weather storm, 50;
    first glimpse of Quebec, 53;
    first impressions of town, 54;
    dances with Prince Edward, 69;
    her opinion of Canadian winter, 71;
    visits Falls of Montmorency, 74;
    how her time is spent in Quebec, 81;
    entertains Prince Edward, 84;
    commences journey from Quebec in bateaux, 89;
    stays at Hon. John Munro's on way to Kingston, 104;
    arrival at Navy Hall, 125;
    first visit to Niagara Falls, 128;
    receives Nankeen china from England, 136;
    as a whist player, 145;
    camps at Queenstown, 175;
    first visit to Toronto, 179;
    in camp with party at Toronto, 179;
    visits actual site of Toronto, 192;
    leaves York for Niagara, 221;
    has a fondness for dinner parties, 227;
    leaves for Quebec owing to threatened war with United States, 247;
    in Kingston Harbor, 248;
    leaves for Gananoque, 248;
    is the guest of Captain Cowan at Prescott, 250;
    runs the Galops Rapids, 250;
    sends a letter to the Governor en route from Kingston to Montreal,
      with further description of visit to Gananoque, 251-4;
    arrives at Quebec, 257;
    is entertained by all the old Quebec families, 259;
    learns of Governor's return from Detroit to Niagara, 259;
    arranges to return to Niagara, 265;
    has a novel travelling carriage, 265;
    finds ice in poor condition, 266;
    a somewhat dangerous journey, 266;
    relays of horses at all post houses on road, 266;
    meets the Governor at Colonel Gray's, near Cornwall, 267;
    sojourns at Johnstown, 267;
    drives to Mr. Ephraim Jones', of Augusta, 267;
    entertained by the Fraser (Frasier) brothers, of Grenville, 268;
    again at Kingston, 275;
    travels from York to Niagara by canoe, 276;
    her Indian ladder, 285;
    at Fort Erie with the Governor, 289;
    spends five months at York, 297;
    fishes on the Don from her carriole, 301;
    picnics at the Twenty Mile Creek, 315;
    canoes from Burlington to York, 328;
    arrival at the Credit River, 328;
    goes up the Credit River, 331;
     with her children visit Castle Frank, 332;
    her spinning wheel, 336;
    bids good-bye to Mrs. McGill and Miss Crookshank, 336;
    sorrow at leaving York, 336;
    gives vivid description of descent of Long Sault, 344;
    arrival at Montreal, 346;
    entertained by Mr. Gray, 346;
    makes short stay in Montreal, 347;
    journeys by bateaux to Quebec, 347;
    meets old friends, 349;
    spends enjoyable days in the ancient city, 350;
    renews old friendship with the Winslows and Finlays, 351;
    last sight of Quebec, 353;
    describes scenery on the St. Lawrence, 354;
    contrasts Canadian and English climates, 358;
    her children, 361-3;
    her characteristics in manner, 361;
    obedience of her children a prerequisite, 361;
    her daily routine at Wolford, 361;
    a visit to London, 361;
    visits Old Court, her birthplace, 363;
    opposes marriage of her daughters and declines noble offers, 365;
    her closing years, 367;
    her passing, 367;
    expressions of grief from people of the parish, 367;
    her funeral attended by leading county families, 367;
    seven children follow her coffin, 367;
    her burial in private chapel, 367;
    funeral sermon by Vicar of Dunkeswell, 367;
    her character reviewed, 367;
    her memorial sermon by Rev. John Blackmore of Culmstock, 370-80.

  Simcoe, Captain John Kennaway, second son of Rev. Henry Addington
      Simcoe, inherits Wolford, 368;
    marries daughter of Colonel Basil Jackson, 368;
    generous in hospitality, 368.

  Simcoe, Katherine, birth of, at Niagara, 146;
    her death at York, 148, 221.

  Simcoe, Katherine (second), her birth, 361.

  Simcoe, Mary Northcote, marries Mr. Vowler, 364.

  Simcoe, Misses, the, proficient in domestic economy, 366;
    their parish work, 366;
    build Dunkeswell Abbey Church in conjunction with their mother, 366;
    expert stone carvers, 366.

  Simcoe, Sophia, birth of, accompanies parents to Canada, 32.

  Skating in 1793, on Toronto Bay, 211.

  Skinner's Mill, near Castle Frank, 301.

  Skinner, Timothy, an early settler of York, 301;
    connection of his family with that of Helliwell, 302.

  Smith, Lieutenant, afterwards Sir D. W., Surveyor-General Upper Canada,
      131;
    member executive council, 187;
    his mansion at Niagara, 225.

  Smith, Lieutenant-Colonel John, commandant of fortress of Niagara, 131.

  Smith, William, first Chief Justice of Canada, 76.

  Smith, Sir William Sydney, naval officer, makes favorable impression on
    Mrs. Simcoe, 41.

  Spinckes, Elizabeth, mother of Mrs. Simcoe, 2.

  Spinckes, Elmes, of Aldwinkle, 2.

  Stacey's Rooms at Weymouth, 36.

  Stamford, Catherine, wife of Captain John Simcoe, R.N., 8.

  Stevenson, Captain, accompanies Governor Simcoe to Canada, 43;
    recommended by Simcoe to office of Deputy Quartermaster-General, 59;
    returns to England, 139.

  Stewart, Major John, 56.

  Stoney Creek, description by Mrs. Simcoe, 319;
    a tour to, 327;
    herbs for every ailment found at, 327-8.

  Stone, Colonel Joel, his advent to Gananoque and experiences, 106, 109;
    his descendants, 249.

  Stuart, Rev. John, first incumbent of the Protestant Church, Kingston,
      119;
    sermon by, 274.

  Stuart, Rev. George O'Kill, first rector of Anglican Church, York,
    119-20.


  St.

  St. Clair, General, defeated near Fort Recovery, 72.

  St. George's Church, Kingston--see Protestant Church.

  St. John's Creek--see Humber River.

  St. Lawrence, Gulf, islands in, 49.

  St. Lawrence River, The, sunset on, 92, 93;
    Mrs. Simcoe travels from Montreal to Three Rivers on, 255-6;
    description of scenery, 256;
    incidents of journey by Mrs. Simcoe to Quebec, 257.

  St. Ours, Paul Roch de, member Legislative Council, 84.

  St. Vincent, Earl (John Jervis), joined by Lord Rosslyn and General
      Simcoe at Lisbon, 27;
    his opinion regarding Simcoe making passage to Quebec, 41;
    friend of Captain John Simcoe, R.N., 42;
    Admiral of the Blue, 42;
    raised to the peerage, 42.


  T.

  Taiaiagon, first Indian village at mouth of Humber River, 183.

  Talbot, Lieutenant-Colonel Thomas, his parentage, 62;
    military service in Canada and Holland, 65;
    founds Talbot Settlement, 65;
    goes to Sandusky, 171;
    accompanies Lieutenant Grey from York to Niagara, 211.

  Talbot, Captain, of Prince Edward's suite, in Canada, 105.

  Talbot Creek, 66.

  Thayendanegea--see Brant.

  "The Mohawk," launching of, 275;
    makes a quick trip from York to Niagara, 310.

  Thomson, Archibald, builder of Protestant Church, Kingston, 117;
    his descendants, 118.

  Three Rivers, origin of name, 91-2;
    convent at, 92;
    an old town, 256;
    visited by the Simcoes on final journey to Quebec, 348.

  Thousand Islands, The, 106.

  Thurlow, Baron, his political principles, 40.

  Tice, Gilbert, U. E. L., 172.

  Tice, Mrs., 172;
    Mrs. Simcoe spends part of summer at house of, 281, 286.

  Topsham, General Simcoe's arrival in 1806 at, 28.

  Toronto, Some streets in old, 163;
    site of Old Fort, 179;
    the peninsula at, 180;
    forestry in 1793, 180;
    old French Fort at, 183;
    water fowl in and about, 184, 209;
    discovery of first plan of, 192;
    extent of Yonge Street in 1796, 307.

  Tosey, Rev. Philip, second authorized Protestant minister in Quebec, 58.

  Tosey, Mrs., 60;
    sails on the "Recovery," 84.

  "Triton," H.M.S., 34;
    Governor and suite embark on, 43;
    leaky in upper works, 46;
    anchors at Quebec, 53;
    makes a late voyage to England, 82.

  Trojan, a hound of Mrs. Simcoe's, 143.

  Trumpour Brothers of Adolphustown, 273.


  U.

  _Upper Canada Gazette_, first issue of, 161;
    an extract from, 165-6.

  Upper and Lower Canada, division of, 69.


  V.

  Vowler, Mr., assumes arms of Simcoe, 364.

  Voyage to Canada--incidents in a gale, 44;
    the "Minerva" passes, 44;
    in the Azores, 44;
    vessels sighted, 45;
    gales and hurricanes, 45;
    whales and birds at sea, 47;
    Sable Island reached, 47;
    off Cape Breton, 48-9;
    scenery along coast, 48;
    Spanish River passed, 48;
    severe snowstorm and rough weather, 50.


  W.

  Walcot of Oundle, a cousin of Mrs. Simcoe, 386;
    his death, 386;
    leaves handsome bequests to daughters of Mrs. Simcoe, 386;
    leaves an estate in Northampton to Rev. Henry Addington Simcoe, 386.

  Wayne, General Anthony, in front of Fort Miami, 242.

  Weymouth, arrival of Simcoes at, 36;
    a popular resort, 36.

  Whitchurch, Church of, 2.

  White, John, Attorney-General Upper Canada, 85-6.

  Will of Mrs. Simcoe, 381-5.

  Williams, Jenkins, succeeds Judge Mabane, 66;
    Mrs. Simcoe dines with, 82.

  Williams, Mrs., her accomplishments, 66.

  Winslow, Joshua, Paymaster-General British forces in North America, 84.

  Wolfe, General, 82.

  Wolfe's Cove, 84.

  Wolfe (Grand) Island, 109.

  Wolford, the Simcoe estate, 17;
    extent of, 32;
    farewell to, 35;
    home again at, 359;
    glad welcome, 359;
    county families call at, 359;
    home life quietly resumed, 359;
    a social centre, 361;
    family prayers at, 362;
    after the death of Mrs. Simcoe, 368.

  Woodfield, residence of Judge Mabane, 56;
    situation described by Mrs. Simcoe, 58.

  Wright, Edward Graves Simcoe, first white child born at York, 212.

  Wright, Edward, 212.

  Watson, Major, 55, 61.

  Wurtemburg, Princess of, eldest daughter of George III., 40.

  Wurtemburg, King of, 40.


  Y.

  York, origin of name, 25;
    its natal day, 188;
    salmon spearing at, 209;
    winter at, 213;
    maskalonge, pike and pickerel caught, 215;
    its extremely cold weather, 216;
    maple sugar making, 219;
    has growth of fine water melons, 241;
    dinner and ball in garrison at, 276;
    a walk on the ice from the garrison to Castle Frank, 298;
    a winter picnic, 302;
    bad roads and bad weather at, 308;
    the town in 1819, 389;
    value of property at that period, 389;
    contrast in value with property in Toronto to-day, 389;
    interesting correspondence in the Archives at Wolford in connection
      with, 389.


  =Transcriber's Notes:=
  hyphenation, spelling and grammar have been preserved as in the original
  various places, mixture of Bàby, Báby, and Baby spelling left alone
  Contents, Chapter XV, Loss of the Bridget" ==> Loss of the "Bridget"
  Illustrations, several minor punctuation changes made without marking
  Illustrations, Mrs Hamilton 282, his grandson ==> her grandson
  Page 25, Mr. Alexander Aitken ==> Mr. Alexander Aitkin
  Page 54, was not preposessing ==> was not prepossessing
  Page 57, Ste. Foye Road ==> Ste. Foy Road
  Page 77, Moliére ==> Molière (two places)
  Page 80, the learge heaps ==> the large heaps
  Page 82, Heights of Abram ==> Heights of Abraham
  Page 93, Santé. twelve leagues ==> Santé, twelve leagues
  Page 121, 13th Setember, 1794 ==> 13th September, 1794
  Page 122, some time, as a ==> some time, at a
  Page 152, Dr. James Macaulay, ==> Dr. James Macaulay.
  Page 167, jurisdiction of Sir Willam ==> jurisdiction of Sir William
  Page 204, the steep-hillsides ==> the steep hillsides
  Page 237, twenty-two shillings (4.40) ==> twenty-two shillings ($4.40)
  Page 249, one of the emgirants ==> one of the emigrants
  Page 258, Thurs. 23rd 2nd par., two lines need transposing
  Page 275, Wed. 6th. Ladies ==> Wed. 6th.--Ladies
  Page 276, evening as usual ==> evening as usual.
  Page 354, played at back-gammon ==> played at backgammon
  Page 376, light," and the eye ==> light,' and the eye
  Page 376, (John 6; 37) ==> (John 6: 37)
  Page 379, expresssion of the joys ==> expression of the joys
  Page 383, names as witnsses thereto ==> names as witnesses thereto
  Page 384, hundred and forty Whereas ==> hundred and forty. Whereas
  Page 384, named In all other ==> named. In all other
  Page 398, ten miles from Aberystwith ==> ten miles from Aberystwyth
  Page 412, appointed Commander-in Chief ==> appointed Commander-in-Chief
  Index Page 437, Regiment, where staioned ==> where stationed
  Index Page 439, Taiaigon ==> Taiaiagon
  Index Page 439, U. heading added


[The end of _The Diary of Mrs. Simcoe_ by Elizabeth Simcoe & John Ross Robertson]
